THE TRANSACTIONS LINNEAN SOCIETY OF LONDON. VOLUME XII. 3 * Tt E z : - | LOND ON2 — PRINTED BY RICHARD AND'ARTHUR TAYLOR, SHOE-LANE: SOLD AT THE SOCIETY'S HOUSE, NO, 9, GERRARD-STREET, SOHO ; AND BY LONGMAN, HURST, REES, ORME, AND BROWN, PATERNOSTER-ROW, —— MDCCCXVIII. MISSOURT BOTANICAL GARDEN THE d TRANSACTIONS OF THE LINNEAN SOCIETY OF I PART THE FIRST. LONDON: RICHARD AND ARTHUR TAYLOR, SHOE-LANE, FLEET-STREET. SOLD AT THE SOCIETY’S HOUSE, NO. 9, GERRARD-STREET, SOHO ; CH e AND BY LONGMAN, HURST, REES, ORME, AND BROWN, PATERNOSTER-ROW. ——Áü ——— MDCCCXVII, itods h / } E ^f; ong Le Atc CONTENTS. di dep dateetot ¥ fret I. Somz Information respecting the Lignum Rhodium of Pococke's Travels, in a Letter to Alexander MacLea: Ys Esq. F. R.S. Sec. L.S. By Sir James Edward Smith, : M.D. F.R.S. Pr. L.S., $c. - T ecd. à IL. Of the Formation of the Vegetable Epidermis. By the. Rev. Patrick Keith, T.L.S. c á - B. 6 III. On the Classification of the ess, Tribe of bisects NoronrcTIDES, with Descriptions of the British Species. By William Elford Leach, M.D. F.R.S. and L.S. H 19 IV. Some Remarks on the Natural Hes of the Black v: + Stork, for the first time captured in Great Britain. By George Montagu, Esq. F.L.S. T 0 7o XN aa : & Sine aco UN: of the Tantalus Ephouskyca,a rare À merican Bird. By Benjamin Smith Barton, M.D. F.M. L.S. p. 24 VI. Observations on the Orchis militaris of Linneus. By Mr. ` COJOE.Bicheuoó, ELS = os i eee 28 VII. Grypuis and CHioDECTON, two new Genera of the E .. Family of Lichenes, with Descriptions and Figures of the Species hitherto discovered. - By Erik Acharius, M.D. + —— FALLS. mE T E LU oet re - - P.. 35- VIII. On the Power of Sarracenia adunca to entrap Insects. In a Letter to Sir J. E. Smith, Pres. Linn. Soc., from James Macbride, M.D. of South Carolina t p. 49 | IX. Ob- iv CONTENTS. 1X. Observations on the Nature and Formation of the Stone incrusting the Skeletons which have been found in the Island of Guadaloupe, with some Account of the Origin of those Skeletons. In a Report made to General Ernouf, late Governor of the Colony. Communicated by the Right Honourable Sir Joseph Banks, Bart. K.G.C. B. Pres. R.S. H.M.L.S. $c. - - - E - E p.. 53 Descriptions of a new Genus of. Plants named Araujia, and of a new Species of Passiflora. By Felix de Avellar Brotero, Professor of Botany in the University of Coim- aE MLS. . - - - E - - P- Ed XI. Some Observations on the natural Fail ST Plants called ComposiTæ. By Robert Brown, Esq. F. R.S. Libr.L.S. p. 76 XII. On some remarkable Deviations from the usual Struc- ture of Seeds and Fruits. By Robert Brown, F.R.S, — ELI ED ATI E AE T. RHI. Remarks on two Genera of Plants to be referred to the Family of the Rosacea, in a Letter from Mr. AE- pe candolle, Professor of Natural History in the Academy of Geneva, Corresp. R. Acad. Sc. Paris, &c. to Sir James Edward Smith, President of the Linnean Society p. 152 XIV. A Synopsis of the British Species of Rosa. By Joseph Woods, Esq. F. L.S. EU elg t a c 100 XV. A Botanical History of the Genus Tofieldia.. By Sir James Edward Smith, M.D. F.R.S.P.L.S. =. p. 235 XVI. A Monograph of the Genus Pconia. By the late George Anderson, Esq, F.L.S. dc. = - p. 248 TRANS- TRANSACTIONS OF THE LINNEAN SOCIETY. + "wr Some Information respecting /the Lignum Rhodium of Pococke’s - Travels, in a Letter to AlezaWder MacLeay, Esq. F.R.S. Sec. L. S. By Sir James Edward Smith, M.D. F.R.S. Pr. L.S., 4c. Read February 21, 1815. Dear Str, | POINT of botanical history has just been cleared up by my examinations of the manuscripts and dried specimens of the late Dr. J. Sibthorp, which, not being admissible into the Flora Graca, . I think proper to rescue from oblivion, by requesting you to lay it before the Linnean Society. Lf Pococke, in his well-known * Description of the East," vol. ii. part 1. p. 230, speaking of Cyprus, has the following passage: “ Most of the trees in the island are evergreen; but it is most famous for the tree called by the natives Xylon Effendi, the Wood of our Lord, and by naturalists Lignum Cyprinum and Lignum — — - p Rhodium, because it grows in these two islands. It is called also the Rose Wood, by reason of its smell. Some say it is in other parts of the Levant, and also in the isle of Martinico. It grows like the Platanus or Plane-tree, and bears a seed or mast like that, only the leaf and fruit are rather smaller. -The botanists VOL. XII. B call 2 Sir J. E. Suirn on the Lignum Rhodium call it the Oriental Plane-tree. The leaves being rubbed have a fine balsamic smell, with an orange flavour. It produces an ex- cellent white turpentine; especially when any incisions are made in the bark. I suppose it is from this that they extract a very fine perfumed oil, which, they say, as well as the wood, has the virtue of fortifying the heart and brain. The common people here cut off the bark and wood together, toast it in the fire, and suck it, which they esteem a specific remedy in a fever, and seem to think that it has a miraculous operation." ' So far Dr. Pococke, who in the 2d part of the same vol. p. 188, mentions this tree again, and, in plate 89, gives a tolerable, but not precisely botanical figure of it. ‘This plate is cited by Will- denow, Sp. Pl. vol. 4. 475, asa representation of the Liquidambar imberbe, Ait. Hort. Kew, ed. 1. vol. 3. 365. That author perceiving it to be no Platanus, but rather a Liquidambar, reasonably enough concluded it to represent the Oriental, rather than the American, species of that genus. The figure, though drawn and engraved by Ehret, is not sufficiently accurate to determine so nice a point. As it does not show the hairiness about the veins of the leaves, which distinguishes the occidental Liquidambar from the oriental, Willdenow is the more excusable; though the outline of the foli- age agrees best with the former. Dr. Sibthorp, in his visit to Cyprus, was anxious to ascertain the tree mentioned by Pococke, and the result of his inquiry cannot be better related than in the words of his manuscript journal. * April 19, 1785, at eight in the morning we left Upreva, and, passing through the vales below, gradually ascended the moun- tains of Antiphoniti. At noon we arrived at the convent, most romantically situated among the mountains, with a view of the sea, and a distant sight of the mountains of Caramania. I was come of Pococke's Travels. 3 come here, on the authority of Pococke, to see the Lignum Rho- dium. This the Greeks call Xylon Effendi. The Eugumenos of the convent, a very old man, offered himself as my conductor ; and leading me a few paces below the convent, into a garden, now covered with rubbish, he pointed out a tree, which upon examination I found to be Liquidambar Styraciflua. The trunk ofit was much hacked. Different bits of it had been carried off by the curious or superstitious, as an ornament to their cabinets or churches. This was probably the same tree that Pococke had seen. To ascertain the Lignum Rhodium has been much wished by the naturalists. An American tree, growing in the swamps of Virginia, seems to have little claim to be considered as the tree which should produce it. The name of Xylon Effendi, and the traditions of the convent, testify the reputation in which this tree has long been held in the island. It was probably originally in- troduced by the Venetians during their possession of Cyprus. I could not discover, either from observation or inquiry, that it was to be found in any other part of the island; nor do I recollect that the Liquidambar Styraciflua has been mentioned, by any bo- tanist, as an oriental tree. Whether the Lignum Rhodium of the shops is the wood of this tree or not, I am doubtful. The first Aspalathus of Dioscorides; I think, is cintas the Lignum Rho- dium of the ancients." Dr. Sibthorp then proceeds to mention two species of onm one of which he suspects to be the first, and the other the second, Aspalathus of Dioscorides; but the want of descriptions, and of marked specimens, renders it impossible to distinguish what he meant. . I do not presume to reconcile the discordant accounts, which may be found in writers on the Materia Medica, respecting the Lignum Rhodium ; nor are these writers even agreed whether its name originated from the rose-like scent of the wood, or from 2. the À Sir J. E. Smitu on the Lignum Rhodium the isle of Rhodes being its native country. We find nothing among them indicative of the above Liquidambar, or any similar tree. It is evident that Pococke had but a superficial knowledge of the historical, and still less of the botanical, part of the subject. The only point I have had in view, after the example of Dr. Sib- thorp, was to ascertain Pococke’s plant. Specimens preserved in the herbarium of my deceased friend, and a pencil sketch by Mr. Bauer, show this to be, without any doubt, what he deter- mined it, the Liquidambar Styraciflua of Linneus, and not, as Willdenow presumed, the imberbe of Aiton. This last was brought from the Levant, Duhamel says from Caria, by Peysonel to the Paris garden, from whence I have an authentic specimen. Miller obtained seeds, by which the _L. imberbe was introduced-into our gardens, and he describes it well. Nothing can be more distinct as a species; but it was not well ascertained when Dr. Sibthorp began his travels, which will account for his adverting to the American Liquidambar only. | There still remains great difficulty in accounting for the intro- duction of this tree into Cyprus, and for its becoming so famous there. The plant is not known to have been cultivated in En- gland, much before the end of the seventeenth century, scarcely fifty years before Pococke found it, apparently long established in Cyprus. The Venetians were owners of this island from the year 1480 to 1570; so that if they, as Dr. Sibthorp guesses, in- troduced this tree, it must have been among the earlier botanical importations from the new-discovered continent. But we can find no traces of the Liquidambar tree having, any where, excited the particular attention of the Venetians, or an y other Italians, either for medical, ceconomical, or religious purposes; nor does it occur in their gardens, or even their botanical catalogues, as far as I can trace. Pococke’s vague mention of the ** isle of Marti- nico” of Pococke's Travels. 5 nico" might induce a suspicion of its having been obtained from thence; but no Europæans were settled in that island previous to the year 1635, nor do we know that the tree, being a native of North America, would grow in so hot a climate. : How the Liquidambar Styraciflua travelled to Cyprus, must therefore remain unexplained ; for we have not even a legend to help us, like that of the staff of Joseph of Arimathea at Glas- tonbury. That so great a novelty should have acquired consi- derable reputation in the garden of a Cyprian convent, so as to have even supernatural properties attributed to it, may not so much excite our wonder. Its celebrity indeed appears to have declined between the periods of Dr. Pococke's visit and Dr. Sib- thorp's, but the tree itself still flourished. Dr. Sibthorp, like his predecessor, found it forming seed ; yet it does not appear to have scattered its progeny over the neighbourhood, as, in so fine a cli- mate, it might have been expected to have done, though I have never heard of its bringing any seed to perfection in England, where it rarely even blossoms. Sa d remain, &c. XE er L di Norwich, Feb. 20, 1815. sip 4000 dE. SMITH Ett II. Of the Formation of the Vegetable Epidermis. By the Rev. Patrick Keith, F.L.S. Read March 7, 1815. Tue pellicle that constitutes the vegetable epidermis has gene- rally been regarded as a membrane essentially distinct from the parts which it invests, and as generated with a view to the dis- charge of some peculiar functions in the vegetable œconomy. Some phytologists, however, have viewed it in a light altogether different, and have regarded it as being merely the effect of acci- dent, and nothing more than a scurf formed upon the exterior and pulpy surface of the parenchyma indurated by the action of the air. This was the opinion of Grew and Malpighi, and, though it does not seem to have ever met with any very general reception, has been revived of late by M. Mirbel, who, pro- fessing to be dissatisfied with the analogy that has generally been thought to exist between the epidermis of the animal and vegetable, contends that the latter is nothing more than the in- durated surface of the parenchyma, from which it differs only in such circumstances as are occasioned by position. If it is more or less transparent ; if it is tougher and firmer in its texture than the parenchyma, or any of its parts; it is only because it is con- stantly exposed to the influence of light and air, and to the con- tact of such bodies as float in the atmosphere; but it is not to be regarded as constituting a distinct organ or membrane; or as exhibiting The Rev. PATRICK Kerra on the Vegetable Epidermis, — 7 exhibiting any proof of its being analogous to the epidermis of animals *. | | Such is the substance of M. Mirbel's opinion, against which he is aware that objections may still be urged. For it may be said, If this is the true origin of the epidermis, how comes it to sepa- „Tate so easily from the interior parts in the spring? To this ob- | jection M. Mirbel furnishes the following reply, namely, that its facility of detachment is owing to the disorganization occasioned in it by means of its exposed situation, which has even the effect of ultimately separating it from the plant altogether, as may be seen in the instances in which it bursts and exfoliates when it is not able to expand in proportion to tbe internal parts. And thus M. Mirbel presumes he has got rid of all difficulties. But the above is by no means the most formidable objection to which the hypothesis is liable. For if it be true that the epider- mis is nothing more than the pellicle formed on the external sur- face of the parenchyma indurated by the action of the air, then it will follow that an epidermis can never be completely formed till such time as it has been exposed to that action. But it is known that the epidermis exists in a state of complete perfection, in cases where it could not possibly have been affected by the action of the external air. If you take a rose-bud or bud of any other flower before it expands, and strip it of its external cover- ing, you will find that the petals and other inclosed parts of the fructification are as completely furnished with their epidermis as any other parts of the plant, and yet they have never been ex- posed to the action of the air. The same may be said of the epidermis of the seed while yet in the seed-vessel, or of the root, or of the stem of the paper birch, which still continues to form and to detach itself, though the interior layers are defended from the action of the air by the layers that invest them. * Traité d'Anat. et de Phys. Veg. i. 87. 1 n 8 The Rev. Patrick KEITH on In herbs, and in the temporary parts of woody plants, such as the leaves and flowers, the epidermis never detaches itself at all ; which circumstance M. Mirbel adduces as an additional argu- ment in favour of his hypothesis. But to me it seems an argu- ment against it. For, if the air produces such violent effects upon the trunk and branches of woody plants, why does it not produce similar effects upon other plants, or upon other parts of the same plant? And why is the epidermis of the leaf, flower and fruit in- capable of being again regenerated, if accidentally destroyed ? Till a satisfactory answer can be given to these inquiries, that shall be at the same time compatible with the supposed action of the air in other cases, it is impossible to admit the hypothesis of M. Mirbel. abdidit ie Mbit RE . But so far is the action of the mere air from being the cause ES origin of the epidermis, that it is even detrimental to its for- mation. For the re-production of a part that has been acciden- tally destroyed, in cases capable of re-production, is always more easily effected if the wound be covered closely up*. And hence it is extremely improbable that the epidermis is merely a modifi- cation of the external surface of the parenchyma effected by the influence and action of the air; if rather it is not evidently an organ formed by the agency of the vital principle, even when the plant i is yet in embryo, for the very purpose of protecting it from injury when it shall have been exposed to the action of the air in the process of vegetation. Accordingly the developement of the epidermis is found to -— pace with that of the plant which it invests, so that it * grows with its growth and strengthens with its strength,” ex- panding in all its dimensions, and accommodating itself with wonderful facility to the augmentation of the nelésad parts, as may be seen in the case of trees and fruits of rapid growth. Its * Senebier, Phys. Veg. i. 154, expansion + the Formation of the Vegetable Epidermis. 9 expansion is circumscribed, however, by certain bounds or limits which it cannot pass. For, when it has become indurated with age, or when vegetation is too luxuriant, it refuses or is unable to expand further, and consequently bursts. But if it does not burst spontaneously, where it does not expand freely, it is then thought to check or retard the growth of the plant, by operating as a sort of tight roller or bandage; as may be exemplified in the case of the cherry-tree, the epidermis of which the gardener is often obliged to lay open by means of a longitudinal incision, in order to facilitate the growth of the parts inclosed. With regard to the disavowed analogy between the animal and vegetable epidermis, it is of no consequence to the above argu- ment whether it holds good or not. But there are several i impor- tant respects in which an analogy between the two cuticles is sufficiently striking. They are both capable of great expansion in the growth of the subject. They are both easily regenerated when destroyed, (with the exceptions above stated,) and seem- ingly in the same manner. They are both subject, in certain cases, to a constant decay and repair; and they both protect from injury the parts inclosed. Whence we feel ourselves en- titled to draw a conclusion directly the reverse of that of M. Mir- bel, namely, that the epidermis of the vegetable is not an acci- dental scurf formed on the surface of the parenchyma by means of the action of the air; but a distinct and individual organ formed by the agency of the vital principle, at the period of the genera- tion of the plant, and destined to the discharge of peculiar func- tions in the vegetable ceconomy, as well as exhibiting a close ana- logy to the epidermis of the animai. Stow Maries, Dec. 22, 1814. VOL. XII. c | Il. On ( 10 ) III. On the Classification of the Natural Tribe of Insects Noro- NECTIDES, with Descriptions of the British Species. By Wil- liam Elford Leach, M.D. F.R.S. and L.S. Read April 4, 1815. Beror: laying down the characters of this interesting and natu- ral tribe of insects, it may not be deemed improper to give a very short account of what has been done PL a | entomologists. Linné and albhis predecessors comprehe nded the species under the generic appellation Notonecta. The accurate Geoffroy was the first who separated Notonecta into two genera, which have been adopted by most succeeding writers, excepting Linné, who = in the last edition of his Some Naturæ has merely given the synonyms of that author, without taking the least notice of the important characters which induced him to separate them. De Geer confounded the animals of this tribe with Nepa and Naucoris, whilst Latreille and Olivier placed them in a division of their family Hydrocorise. . In the Edinburgh Encyclopedia I separated them from the Hydrocorise, and placed them in a particular tribe, named in that work Notonectides, which term I shall adopt in the following little essay. Onto: $i Dr. LraAcn's Classification of the Notonectides. 11 with Ordo. HEMIPTERA*. Subordo. HYDROCORISÆ. Insecta aquatica, antennis mi- nutissimis. Tribus 2. NoTOoNECTIDESs. - Pedes duo postici longiores, natatorii. Fam. I. Corpus cylindrico-ovatum, aut ovato-quadratum. Tarsi omnes biarticulati. (Scutellum magnum.) | nu | Oeil orere Corpus cylindrico-ovatum. Antenne articulo tertio secundo tenui- ore. Tarsi antici FLO primo longiore. Ungues postici minu- tissimi. Gen. 2. PREA: | Corpus ovato-quadratum. Antenne articulo tertio aliis majore. Tarsi antici articulis subæquè longis. Ungues postici magni. Fam. II. Corpus depresso-cylindricum. Tarsi antici uniarticulati; qua- tuor postici biarticulati. (Elytra margine antico ad basin saltem canaliculato.) Gen. 3. SIGARA. Scutellum distinctum. Thorax transversus, linearis. Corpus ova- tum, posticè acuminatum. Gen. 4. ConiXa. — Scutellum nullum. - Thorax transversus, posticè productus. Cor- pus lineare, anticè et posticè rotundatum. * In the Edinburgh Encyclopedia 1 have divided the HemrprerA of Latreille into HE- MIPTERA and OMOPTERA, which Latreille considered as two great divisions of one order. c 2 Fam. 12 Dro LzacH's Classification of the Notonectides. Fam. I. AI the insects of this family swim on their back, moving by means of their long hinder legs, which resemble oars; whence they have been aptly named boat-flies. Gen. 1. NOTONECTA. : Besides the characters given in the above table, the following will be useful in order to enable the young entomologist to di- stinguish this genus from Prza, from which it has not been sepa- rated by any entomologist*. The thorax is hexagonal, the anterior part is much attenuated, and the hinder margin is straight. The head is narrower than the broadest part of the thorax; the eyes are oblong, and cón- . verge a little behind ; the hinder legs are much ciliated, and the claws are so minute as to be discovered with great rent - ; the tips of the 'elytra are notched. Spec. 1. Notonecta furcata. N. elytris nigris, maculis duabus baseos griseis: posticá — Notonecta furcata. Fabr. Ent. Syst. iv. 58. Syst. Rhyng. 102. 2. Oliv. Encycl. Méthod. Hist. Nat. viii. 388. 2. Var. £. Elytris maculá ferrugineá. Habitat in Caledoniz, Angli: aquis vulgatissime. Ogs. Elytra apice fuliginosa; dorsum nigrum. Spec. 2. Notonecta maculata. N. elytris fusco ferrugineoque variis, dorso ferrugineo fascià media pernigrá. ug Notonecta maculata. Fabr. Ent. Syst. iv. 58. —-— Syst. Rhyng. 103. 4. * In the Genera Crustaceorum et Insectorum, tom. iii. p. 150, the accurate Latreille has detailed the principal characters of PLEA, which he considered as a species of Notonecta. Notonecta Dr. Leacn’s Classification of. the Notonectides. AS Notonecta maculata. Oliv. Encycl. Méthod. Hist. Nat. viii. 988. 4. Notonecta glauca var. A. Latr. Gen. Crust. et Ins. iii. 150. Habitat in Anglia prope Bristol, Plymouth, et Exeter. Elytra apice fuliginosa. Spec. 3. Notonecta glauca. N. elytris griseis margine fusco-puncfatis, dorso nigro apice pallido. Notonecta glauca auctorum. Var. 8. Elytris subferrugineis fusco-subirroratis. Var. y. Elytris apice subnebulosis. Var. à. Elytris pallidis immaculatis. Habitat in Britannia vulgatissime. "This species is by far the most common that occurs in Great Britain. ‘The back- T" the abdomen is always black, terminated with pale yellow. Var. 6 at first sight bears a-near resemblance to .N. maculata ; but the spots in the front of the elytra, and the colour of the back, will readily distinguish them. Var. y I twice received from Mr. S. W. Millard, who took them near Bristol. Var. à I found in the north of England, and I suspect it to be an immature specimen. All the varieties, excepting the last, have a small blackish spot on the hinder margin of the elytra; but it is much more distinct in some specimens than in others, and it is never to be seen in N: maculata: this affords another character for discrimination, and therefore ought not to remain unnoticed. Gen.2. Pufa: The thorax is obscurely hexagonal, with the hinder margin pro- minent and rounded ; the head as broad as the broadest part of the thorax; the eyes are rather oblong, without the least ten- dency to converge behind ; the hinder pair of legs not more cili- ated than the others, but are terminated by very strong and di- stinct claws; tips of the elytra acuminated and entire. = 7 ^ — | Spec. 14 Dr. Luacn’s Classification of the Notonectides. Spec. 1. Plea minutissima. P. grisea, fronte lined fuscá, thorace elytrisque subtilissime punctatis. : Notonecta cinerea, anelytra. Geoffroy Ins. Par. i. 477. 2 Notonecta minutissima. Fourc. Entom. Paris. i. 220. 2. Latr. Gen. Crust. et Ins. iii. 150. Oliv. Encycl. Méth d. viii. 389. Fabr. Ent. Syst. iv. 59. Syst. Rhyng. 104. 10. Long. Corp. 14 lin. Habitat in aquis stagnantibus prope Londinum vulgatissime. This species has been considered by Geoffroy, Fabricius, and Oli- vier, as Notonecta minutissima of Linné, whicl reference undoubt- to the following “species ; 1 viz. to Sigara minutissima. “Whether Notónecta minutissima of Panzer (Fn. Ins. Germ. In.ii.14. ) be intended for this species, I cannot take upon myself to decide, as his figure indicates a deep notch in the hinder margin of the thorax, which I have not been enabled to detect in any speci- mens ; his figure must therefore be incorrect, or be intended for a distinct species from the one in question. Geoffroy has described the larva, never having seen the perfect insect. + Fam. Ir. Gen..3. SicARA. The characters already given sufficiently distinguish this from the two preceding genera. Spec. 1. Sigara minutissima. S. supra cinerea, elytris fusco obsolete maculatis, subtus pedi- busque flavis. Notonecta Dr. LzAcn's Classification of the Notonectides. 15 Notonecta minutissima. Linn. Fn. Sv. 244. 905. — — Syst. Nat. i. 713. 3. Habitat in rivis, lacubus vulgatissime. Long. Corp. 1 lin. Linné has described this species so minutely as to leave no doubt with respec: to the above reference; in the twelfth edition of his Systema Nature, and in the last edition of his Fauna Suecica, he has given the following characters: ** N. elytris cinereis; maculis fuscis longitudinalibus. Magnitudo minime arenule ; depressa est. Pedes posteriores longiores ; primum par minimum. Habet alas, ely- tra, scutellum”? Sigara minutissima is | found in every part of Gross Britain; I have observed it in the Lake of Killarney, and in other lakes in the south of Ireland ; in the north of England, near Carlisle, and in Derwentwater ; in Loch Lomond and Loch Katerine in Scot- land ; in the river Tavy in Devon; and I have frequently received it from the Norfolk collectors: whence we may infer that it occurs in that country. To this genus probabl y belongs the Sigara coleoptrata of Panzer, Faun. Ins. Germ. In. 50. 24. Gen. 4. Cortxa. The thorax is more or less produced behind in all the species of this genus; but it is not evident in the first division of the ge- nus until the elytra have been elevated. "The front, the under parts of the body, and the legs, in all the British species, are yel- lowish. | supe Swick * Elytris ad apicem subgradatim acuminatis. "Ihe channel on the anterior margin of the elytra in this divi- sion is uninterrupted, and gradually disappears before it reaches to the — S of the elytra. Spec. 16 Dr. LraAcnu's Classification of the Notonectides. Spec. 1. Coriva coleoptrata. | C. thorace rufo-griseo, elytris sublutescentibus: maculis longitu- dinalibus nigricantibus. Sigara coleoptrata, elytris totis coriaceis fuscis; margine exte- riori flavo. Fabr. Syst. Rhyng. 105. 4. | Habitat in Norfolciæ aquis prope Norwich. Although the character by Fabricius does not accord with that given above, yet as he drew his description from a museum speci- men (which generally assumes the colour he mentions) I give his synonym without any hesitation ; but this insect is distinct from the Sigara coleoptrata of Panzer, which is figured with a scutellum, and most probably due to the genus Sigara as mentioned above. The To in the fore part o of f the qb at t about two-thirds from its commencement, is interrupted by an oblique transverse elevated line, and it terminates abruptly before it reaches to the apex of the elytron, and then it leaves the margin, inclining a little inwards or backwards. a. Elytris thoraceque rugulosis. | Spec. 2. Corixa striata. C. thorace el ytrisque fuscis: lineolis flavicantibus transversis stria- tis, dorso nigro, lateribus flavidis. Notonecta striata. Linn. Fn. Sv. 244. 904. Syst. Nat. i. 712. 2. Habitat in aquis stagnantibus. Descr. Elytra striis undulatis flavicantibus, margine exteriore fusco. Thorax perfuscus lineolis transversis numerosissimis fla- vicantibus, : Spec. 3. Corixa stagnalis. C. fusca, thorace lineolis transversis numerosissimis flavicantibus, elytris fuscis flavido irroratis. Habitat Dr. LzAcn's Classification of the Notonectides. 17 Habitat in aquis stagnantibus putridis vulgatissime. Elytra fusca flavido-irrorata; margine anteriore flavido ; mar- gine postico basin versus flavido-lineato. Dorsum fusco-nigricans. This species is about half the size of C. striata. Spec. 4. Corixa fossarum. C. fusca, thorace lineolis sex transversis flavidis, elytris fuscis flavido-irroratis. Habitat in fossis passim. C. stagnali paulo minor. Elytra fusca flavido-irrorata, antice fla- vida, postice basin versus flavido-lineata. Dorsum flavum. | Spec. 5. Corixa lateralis. C. albida, thorace lineolis septem nigris, elytris nigro-irroratis : margine antico immaculato. Habitat in fluviis. C. fossarum paululum minor. Dorsum atrum, lateribus flavis. Spec. 6. Corixa dorsalis. C. flavida, thorace margine lineolisque sex transversis nigris, elytris nigro-irroratis: margine antico immaculato. Habitat in fluviis vulgatissime. C. stagnali paulo major. Dorsum flavum. b. Elytris thoraceque glaberrimis, levibus. Spec. 7. Corixa Geoffroyi. C. flavida, thorace lineolis transversis numerosissimis nigris, ely- tris nigro-irroratis: dorso pernigro apice flavido. La Corise. Geoff. Hist. Nat. des Insect. i. p. 48. pl. 9. fig. T. Sigara striata. Panz. Fn. Ins. Germ. In. 50. 23. | VOL. XII. D | Long. 18 Dr. LzAcn's Classification of the Notonectides. Long. Corp. 4 unc. Habitat in aquis stagnantibus vulgatissime. All authors have considered this species as Notonecta striata of Linné, although it will not agree with his character. It is figured by Geoffroy and Panzer, and is of the former author the species serving as the type of the genus Coriza. : Spec. 8. Corixa affinis. C. flavida, thorace lineolis transversis numerosissimis nigris, ely- tris nigro-irroratis : dorso pernigro; lateribus postice dentato- flavis. Habitat in stagnis prope Plymouth haud infrequens. C. Geoffroyi duplo minor. à x + Diner ae m Meer irm cdd pin nait Le MES p cantici E TNT Tofiteptet9g LE: EE : z ` + pe "TT d t a t E. : - IV. Some C 49: ) IV. Some Remarks on the Natural History of the Black Stork, for the first time captured in Great Britain. By George Montagu, Esq. F.L.S. Read May 2, 1815. ARDEA NIGRA. Linn. - Brack Stork. ~ Mosr ornithological writers mention this bird as an European - species, less common than the White Stork, and of a more soli- tary disposition. Its latitudinal range in its periodical migra- tions is apparently greater than that of the white species, since it is said to visit Russia and Siberia, and also to pass over Sweden in the spring in vast flocks, flying towards the extreme north, and soaring to so great a height as to appear no larger than a sparrow. From innumerable observations it is evident that migrative birds are much more coafined in their longitudinal range than in their latitudinal: hence it is that many species pass through France and Germany in the spring, and return in the autumn, which by no chance have as yet been ever observed to wander into this country, although they proceed much further north than any part of Britain. Others, from accidental causes of which we have no certain knowledge, occasionally vary a little from their natu- ral course, and are found solitary in this country. Of this I have the pleasure of announcing an example in Ardea nigra, the only instance I believe of its being found at large in Great Britain. D 2 This 20 Mr. Montaau’s Remarks on This bird was captured by means of a slight shot-wound in the wing, without breaking a bone, and is now in my possession in excellent health. To my scientific friend, Mr. Austin of Bridge- water, naturalists in general, and myself in particular, are indebted for this addition to the British Fauna, he having rescued it from plebeian hands, where in all probability the circumstance would bave been consigned to oblivion. It was shot in West Sedge- moor, adjoining the parish of Stoke St. Gregory, Somersetshire, on the 13th of May 1814; and what is remarkable, another very rare bird, the White Spoonbill, was shot on the same moor, by the same person, in November of the preceding year. When first the Black Stork was observed, it was searching for food by the side of a drain, and when approached flew a consi- derable distan — m -—— —— P MÀ = " we 8.9 4 LLL II LE $ V €) " - € ciently near to slightly wound it. It made little resistance, and on the following day ate some eels that had been placed near it. - I was greatly rejoiced to receive this interesting bird alive from Mr. Austin, as its manners do notseem to be much known. Like the White Stork, it frequently rests upon one leg ; and if alarmed, particularly by the approach of a dog, it makes a considerable noise by reiterated snapping of the bill, similar to that species. It soon became docile, and would follow its feeder for a favourite morsel, an eel. When very hungry it crouches, resting the whole length of the legs upon the ground, and supplicantly seems to demand food, by nodding the head, flapping its unwieldy pinions, and forcibly blowing the air from the lungs with audible exspira- tions. Whenever it is approached, the expulsion of air accom- panied by repeated nodding of the head is provoked. The bird is of a mild and peaceful disposition, very unlike many of its con- geners ; for it never makes use of its formidable bill offensively: against any of the companions of its prison, and even submits . peaceably the Natural History of the Black Stork. 21 peaceably to be taken up without much struggle. From the manner in which it is observed to search the grass with its bill, there can be no doubt that reptiles form part of its natural food ; even mice, worms, and the larger insects, probably add to its usual repast. When searching in thick grass or in the mud for its prey, the bill is kept partly open: by this means I have ob- served it take eels in a pond with great dexterity : no spear, com- mon in use for taking that fish, can more effectually receive it between its prongs than the grasp of the Stork's open mandibles. A small eel has no chance of escaping when once roused from its lurking-place. But the Stork does not gorge its prey instantly like the Corvorant; on the contrary, it retires to the margin of the pool, and there disables its prey by shaking and beating with its bill, before it ventures to swallow it. I never observed this bird attempt to swim ; but it will wade up to the belly, and occa- sionally thrust the whole head and neck under water after its prey. It prefers an elevated spot on which to repose: an old ivy-bound weeping-willow, that lies prostrate over the pond, is usually re- sorted to for that purpose. In this quiescent state the neck is much shortened by resting the hinder part of the head on the back; and the bill rests on the fore-part of the neck, over which the feathers flow partly so as to conceal it, making a very indie appearance. "m The Black Stork, perhaps, is not more delicate in its food than the white species : fish appears to be preferred to flesh, but when very hungry any sort of offal is acceptable. - . All birds that pursue their migrative course by night in con- gregation, have undoubtedly some cry by which the whole assem- bly is kept together; yet it should appear that at other times the Black Stork is extremely mute: not a single note has been heard to issue from the bird in question since its captivity. As 22 Mr. Monracu’s Remarks on As there is a little variation in the plumage of my specimen of Ardea nigra from what has generally been described, and as the plumage when first captured indicated immaturity, being very different from what has been since assumed, I beg leave to sub- join a short description of three states of plumage. The head and upper part of the neck speckled with pale brown of different shades, having a slight tinge of rufous, becoming darker on the lower part of the neck, the fcathers being dusky in the middle: the back, scapulars, and coverts of the wings dusky- black, slightly margined with brown: quills and tail dusky-black, the latter glossed with green: the feathers on the lower part of the neck before pretty long and loose, hanging over the breast : from thence to the tail dingy-white. On the.back were two or three feathers, apparently-new; that-were of a dark glossy green, indicating a change of plumage. "This description was taken in June 1814, soon after the bird was captured. The bird conti- nued very gradually to moult throughout the summer and win- ter, becoming much darker on the head and neck, and much greener on the back; and by the beginning of February 1815 the upper part of the head and back of the neck became dusky- black, glossed with green; the lower neck before dusk y-black, and the whole upper part of the body, including wing-coverts and scapulars, dark shining green, similar in colour to that variety of the Glossy Ibis known under the title of Tantalus viridis*. The under parts of the plumage continued as at first. The bill, which is full seven inches in length, has the upper mandible a trifle the longest, and deficcts a little at the point: the colour is dusky-red, brighter at the base, and orange at the tip: irides light hazel: the lore and orbits bare of feathers, and of a dull red: the legs = Pennant says blue. Arct, Zool. t Latham says greenish-grey, with a whitish tip, s and the Natural History of the Black Stork. 23 and toes dull orange. "These parts have changed but little, and perhaps are rather brighter in colour than at first. | Indisposition having prevented my seeing the bird since the last-mentioned. period till the middle of March, I was much sur- prised to find the appearance of a few feathers on the upper part of the back, that were dusky, resplendent with violet and purple, having a margin of dark glossy green. These elegant feathers continued to increase in number, till the whole upper part of the back had nearly assumed this beautiful plumage by the first of April. At this time no other part of the bird indicated any further change of plumage: the scapulars and coverts, many of which had recently changed, continued of the same colour as last described, without the purple reflections or marginal green. It is scarcely possible to account for such a succession of change in plumage in so short a time, except by supposing that a change in the con- stitution of the bird, produced by captivity and a want of natural food, had caused obstruction to the usual course of moulting, and that the autumnal change had been retarded, and was scarcely effected before the spring moulting commenced. ‘The bill at this season has also become more orange. — | V. Some V. Some Account of the Tantalus Ephouskyca, a rare American Bird. By Benjamin Smith Barton, M.D. F.M.L.S. Read June 6, 1815. — T'uz annexed figure (Tab. I.) of a rare American bird, together with those very few facts and circumstances which I have been able to collect concerning the bird, may, I flatter myself, prove acceptable to the Linnean Society. It may be proper to observe, that although the. ing, by à Bar has been in my pc been made frogits: 4: >) pisos : We know little or nothing of this bird, but what has been com- municated to us by the ingenious gentleman just mentioned. I here subjoin all that he has said concerning it. * There is inhabiting the low shores and swamps of this river*, and the lakes of Florida, as well as Georgia, a very curious bird, called by an Indian name, (Ephousk yca 1.) which signifies in our language the Crying Bird. I cannot determine what genus of Eu- ropean birds to join it with. It isabout the size of a large domes- tic hen. All the body, above and beneath, is of a dark lead co- lour, every feather edged or tipped with white, which makes the bird appear speckled on a near view: the eye is large, and placed high on the head, which is very prominent: the billor beak is APrirs * AT DAI tialil, graving has ever * The St. Juan, in East Florida. t “ Tantalus pictus?" In another part of his work (p. 293.) Mr. Bartram mentions our bird by the same name, Š five Linn. Frans Vot XH. Fab. 1. b. $4. We Cir ree ec boe EL. c. A Tantalus Chou Mee : s Weddelé Se. Dr. B. S. Ba RTON’s Account of the Tantalus Ephauskyca. 25 five or six inches in length, arched or bent gradually downwards, in that respect to be compared to one half of a bent bow: it is large or thick near the base, compressed on each side, and flatted at top and beneath, which makes it appear four-square for more than an inch, where the nostrils are placed, from whence to their tips both mandibles are round, gradually lessening or tapering to their extremities, which are thicker for about half an inch than immediately above, by which the mandibles never fit quite close their whole length: the upper mandible.is a small matter longer than the under: the bill is of a dusky green colour, more bright and yellowish about. the base and angles of the mouth. The tail is very short, and the middle feather the longest: the others on each side shorten gradually, and are of the colour of the rest of the bird, only somewhat darker: the two shortest or outermost feathers are perfectly white, which the bird has a faculty of flirt- ing out on either side as quick as a flash of lightning, especially when he hears or sees any thing that disturbs him, uttering at the same instant an extreme harsh and loud shriek. His neck is long and slender; and his legs are also long, and bare of feathers above the knee, like those of the bittern, and are black, or of a dark lead colour *.” It will be evident, I think, from an inspection of the drawing, that the Ephouskyca is a species of the genus Tantalus or Ibis ; a genus of which America produces many species, several of which are now known to be natives of the United States. I can- not, however, find that the ** Crying Bird" is noticed by any of the European ornithologists. I am pretty sure that it is not one of the nineteen species described by Mr. Latham in his General Synopsis of Birds. I may add, that our bird has entirely escaped * Travels through North and South Carolina, Georgia, East and West Florida, &e., by William Bartram, pp. 147, 148, Philadelphia, 1791. YOL. XII. E the 386 wo Dr. D. S. Barton's Account of the notice of the late Mr. Wilson, author of the American Orni- thology. This gentleman has noticed only three species of the genus Tantalus, viz. Tantalus Loculator, or Wood Ibis; T. ruber, or scarlet Ibis; and T. albus, or white Ibis. I think it highly probable that the two last birds are really one and the same species. I am fully sensible how imperfect are these notices: but I have not hitherto been able to obtain any thing more satisfactory on the subject, though I have for several years endeavoured, through . the medium of my correspondents in the country of the Musco- gulge, or Creek-Indians, to obtain a specimen of the bird. I have no doubt that I shall ultimately be successful in my researches. In this case, I shall not fail to communicate something much more satisfactory on the subject to the Linnzan Society, whose pursuits are at all times highly interesting to me. | I shall only further observe at present, that should the Crying Bird prove to be a new species of Tantalus (I mean a species not noticed by any systematic ornithologist), it may be well to call it Tantalus Ephouskyca. This, I have already observed, is its In- dian name, the literal meaning of which has been mentioned. Ephous, or Ephaus, in the language of the Creek Indians, signifies a bird.—Nor will those who are well versed in the study of the oriental languages, fail to observe how close is.the affinity be- tween this word and the word for bird in the language of the an- cient Chaldeans: I may add, even in the Hebrew. ‘That this af- finity is not accidental, will appear more probable from what I am now to state; that the Creek and other North-American lan- guages contain many words that are most palpably derived from the Chaldaic, Hebrew, Persian, &c.* There is no reason to believe that the Tantalus Ephouskyca has * See my New Views, &c. Philadelphia, 1798. ever the Tantalus Ephouskyca. 27 ever been seen in the United States, to the north of Georgia, or at least of the Carolinas. In page 293, Mr. Bartram mentions it as one of those birds which are natives of Carolina and Florida, and continue the year round in those countries. I have no doubt that we shall find our Tantalus in Cayenne, and other parts of southern America. I have elsewhere shown that the American animals have a great geographical range. B. S. Barton. Philadelphia, July 10, 1814. E 2 VI. Obser- ( 28 ) / VI. Observations on the Orchis mil Far of Linneus. By Mr. Eg E. Bicheno, F.L.S. Read June 20, 1815. Tue very near affinity which orchideous plants have to each other has rendered their separation into genera and species a mat- ter of great difficulty. Scarcely any tribe, however, has been more effectually changed,.or received greater improvements since the time of Linnæus, than this; and in support of the fact, we need only refer to the labours of Swartz in Sweden, and of Brown in our own country. No species required an elucidation more than the Orchis militaris ; for Linn:us has introduced so many varieties, and they are so badly supported by synonyms, that it is difficult, sometimes impossible, to make out what he means. It is to be feared that English botanists in general have not understood them, and that they have still further perplexed the subject. My object, therefore, on the present occasion is to point out what I conceive to be the English species, which have been called, since the time of Linnzus, by the name of Orchis militaris. Of these there are three: the Orchis fusca of Curtis; the Orchis militaris of English Botany, vol. xxvii. t. 1873; and the Orchis tephrosanthos of Willdenow and Swartz. The synonyms which I am enabled to as- certain are not numerous, because I am situated far from the rich libraries of the metropolis; but even if I could command them, I believe I should not be disposed to quote largely, since it is almost impossible to identify these plants in the old authors, un- ; i | less -Mr. J. E. BreuzNo's Observations on the Orchis militaris. 20 less the description is accompanied with a figure. It will facili- tate our inquiries if we examine each of these species pentes beginning with aE ORCHIS FUSCA. : e There is less difficulty in identifying this species and tracing its synonyms than in either of the other two. Linnæus, misled by the uncharacteristic and. formal figure of Dillenius in Ray's Synopsis, t. xix. f. 2. has made two varieties of it, and 3; and Hudson is the first author, adopting the Linnean system, who made it distinct under the name of purpurea. He, however, united it again with militaris in the second edition of his Flora. Jacquin clearly defined the plant; and his opinion was followed by Murray, Hoffman, Roth, Willdenow, Swartz, and most of the continental botanists. Curtis also has well distinguished it in his Flora Londinensis. Withering, in the second edition of his Ar- rangement, has made it a variety, but says he had not seenit. Sir James Smith in his excellent Flora Britannica has done the same, but has followed Linnzus too closely; and, if his synonyms be correct, bas included three English species, and we believe a fo- reign one, in his militaris : O. tephrosanthos, O. militaris, Eng. Bot. vol. xxvii. £. 1873, O. variegata (the fig. 22, 23, and 24, of Vail- lant being this plant), and O. fusca. ‘The error in the first vo- . lume of English Botany, where fusca is called militaris, is cor- rected in a later volume, to which we have referred ; and another plant is admitted, though mages as the # intended by Linnæus. The earliest notice we have of this as an English plant is to be found in Gerard, p. 166; where he informs us that it grows in many places in Kent with the Bee and the Fly Satyrions, and among the rest * upon the hills adjoining to a village named Greenhithe,” the very place referred to by James Sherard in Dil- lenius’s Ray, and where it is frequently found at present. ‘This information .—.0 Mr. J. E. Bicuzno’s Observations information Gerard communicated of the Ornithophora candida, 165, or Butterfly Orchis; but the figure is Orchis fusca: and there is little doubt but that this was intended, since Johnson corrects the synonym in his edition, and complains greatly of the transposition of the figures in the chapter in which this plant stands. Caspar Bauhine, too, refers to this icon, excluding the synonym, under his Cynosorchis militaris major, which is unques- tionably our present plant. Johnson's Orchis Strateumatica, p. 215, is an improved figure, and is copied in Parkinson's Theatrum Botanicum, p. 1344. no. 6. The description of the flower is signifi- cant enough, being like the * body of a man with his hands and legs cutoff." Dillenius is the next author who takes notice of it as an English plant (for Ray does not seem to have been acquainted with its being indigenous) ; and though his figure in the Synopsis is stiff and bad, his description is appropriate— Galea obtusa atro-rubens minusque surrecta, qua nota a precedente (O. tephro- santhos) distinguitur." Vaillant, who understood the Orchidee better than any of his predecessors, has given an excellent draw- ing of the flowers of this and others nearly allied to it; but it is curious that he should attribute to its flowers an insupportable smell of the goat, while Curtis says they have a strong smell, somewhat like, but not so pleasant as, Anthoxanthum. Blackstone is the last English author of the old school, who seems to have been acquainted with it, having found it plentifully “in the old chalk- pit near the paper-mill at Harefield." Since his time it has been gathered frequently in the fine chalky districts of Kent and Middle- sex; but we do not know that it is found beyond these counties. Haller in his Hist. 4. 31, and Curtis Flor, Lond. fasc. 6. t. 04. have given superb figures of it. This Orchis surpasses all its English congeners in size and gran- deur, and may be known by the lip of the nectary being divided into three segments, the two lateral ones being linear, and the middle on the Orchis militaris. 31 middle one broad, bilobed, generally with an intermediate tooth. The middle segment varies in the depth of its fissures, so that many authors have described the lip as four-cleft, and others as five-cleft; but, when this is the case, the segments are never so regularly linear as in the following species, and they are notched 4 and, besides, the petals are broader and not nearl y so acuminate. - Orcuis MILITARIS. Eng. Dot. t. 1873. Though this plant is figured by the old herbalists Gerard, John- son, and Parkinson, it does not appear to have been noticed as a distinct species by any English writer, until it was taken up by Sir J. E. Smith in the 27th volume of English Botany. In this work, however, it is confounded with another, the O. tephrosanthos of Swartz. The figure which Johnson gives of it, p. 216, no. 13. is a tolerable similitude, and leaves little doubt as to what he intended. Parkinson has copied it, p. 1344, »o. 8. and has added another of a most fanciful and ridiculous kind, p. 1347, which seems to have had its origin in this species or the following. Merett in his Pinaz tells us that Mr. Brown, one of the authors of the Catalogus Oz- oniensis, and whom he calls in his preface * vir exercitatissimus et eruditissimus," found three Orchides ** near the highway from Wallingford to Reading, on Barkshire side the river. “ 1. Orchis anthropophora autumnalis. CoL mas. C. B. et P. 1347*. The Man Orchis. OE PEDES * 2. Orchis anthropophora oreades altera. Col. p. 318. ** 3. Orchis oreades trunco pallido, brachiis et cruribus satu- rate rubescentibus.” The O. militaris, E. B. t. 1873 and O. tephrosanthos arc proba- bly intended by these descriptions, since the former is found at * This reference to Bauhine I do not understand thoroughly, but suppose it to rcfer to his Orchis flore nudi hominis effigiem representans, mas.— Pin. p. 82. iiu 32 Mr. J. E. Brcneno’s Observations the present day in the neighbourhood of Streatley and Pangbourn, answering exactly to the situation which Brown describes; and the latter is said to grow there, and at Caversham in the neigh- bourhood, on the authority of the same Mr. Brown, in Ray's Catalogus Plantarum. Vaillant has given the figure of a flower, t. 31. f. 21. which » regards as only a variety of fusca, and says he gathered it on the same spot with O. tephrosanthos ; but we are inclined to believe it belongs to this species. Ray's Orchis anthropophora altera, Hist. Plant. 1218, seems to answer to it. From the reports we have received of the Harefield O. militaris, mentioned by Blackstone as growing with the fusca, we suspect it to belong to this species rather than to the following. Haller’s t. 28. is somewhat doubtful. Willdenow's specific character, and consequently that of the Hortus Kewensis, does not accord with the English plant; for the middle segment cannot be called bilobed, nor are the bracteas, upon which the editor of Linnæus places his chief dependence, ob- solete. The reference to Vaillant also leads me to suspect it, t. xxxi. f. 24., as well as f. 22. and 23., being O. variegata. The bracteas, however, vary so much in shape in the dried specimens of all the three plants, from the circumstance of the point being caducous, that we ought not, perhaps, to rely too much on the character drawn from this appendage. Should Willdenow's spe- -cies be found to be distinct, it will be necessary to give our plant a new trivial name; but we leave this to be ascertained by those who have foreign specimens at hand, and who can refer to the figures which be has quoted. The chief character of our plant is the regular linear incurved segments of the lip, which are broader than in tephrosanthos, and not notched and ragged as in fusca, but much narrower. The flowers grow in a dense spike, which old Gerard describes as ash-coloured. : Oncurs on the Orchis militaris. ; AK 68 ORCHIS TEPHROSANTHOS. This plant is well figured in the first and. second editions of Gerard, p. 156, no. 1. p. 205, no. 2. though under a different name in each, and copied from them into Parkinson, p. 1344, no. 4. These | old authors, however, do not mention it as found in England. The earliest information we have of this fact, if we except the allusion to it hy Merett, already stated, is recorded in Ray's Catalogus Plan- tarum, where we learn that it was discovered by Mr. Brown on “the hills by the river Thames, near Cawsham-Bridge, a mile from Iteading, and on several other hills on the other side the water to- wards Wallingford." ‘This last habitat is omitted in the first edi- tion of the Synopsis. Ray tells us in his Journey on the Conti- nent, that he found it near Geneva, and that he had recently ob- served itin England; and yet it might be suspected that he never gathered it himself at Caversham (the modern name) in Oxford- shire, since he records the place in Gibson's Camden as being in Berkshire. It is found at present on the rising ground among the bushes to the west of the great chalk-pit facing the river Thames ; butt is an uncertain plant, like many other Orchidee, being found some years very abundantly, and then altogether as sparingly. The two habitats quoted in Flora Britannica, from Ray and Sib- thorp, for this plant, are the same spot. That this is the fephro- santhos of Willdenow there can be no doubt. It takes its trivial name from the ash-coloured spike; but this would have been equally applicable to Bauhin’s plant, Orchis galea et alis cinereis, Hist. ii. p. 755, which seems not to belong to it, though quoted by Ray, but to O. militaris of Eng. Bot. or of Willdenow. E might have been supposed that Withering, in his second edi- tion of the Arrangement, intended our present species by his æ, since he has uniformly quoted synonyms and figures which refer "uni XIL F to 84 Mr. J. E. Brcuexo’s Observations on the Orchis militaris. to it; but the description is evidently drawn up from a foreign species, probably O. variegata, and the references are all trans- ferred in the succeeding edition to another variety. This is ¢ of Linneus. : | This plant is easily known by the narrow segments of the lip, and the acuminated petals. It is a delicate, smaller plant than the other two, flowers early in May, and has a remarkably abrupt termination in the spike of flowers. The lip of the nectary is less scabrous than in either of the others. Vaillant, t. 31. f. 25. 96. has well represented the flower; but we believe that no modern figure has yet been published of this rare plant. VII. GLYPHIS VII. GrvPnuris and Cu1opEcToN, two new Genera of the Family of Lichenes, with Descriptions and Figures of the Species hitherto discovered. By Erik Acharius, M.D. F.M.L.S. Read November 21, 1815. Posrevam fundamenta Lichenologiæ jam pridem jeci* vel vera, ut opinor, principia constitui, spem mihi facio, fore neminem rei hujus intelligentem, qui negaverit, duo hzc describenda gener, satis su perque a reliquis omnibus distincta esse. In dies increscere coepit Lichenum tam numerus antea incog- nitarum specierum, quam de earum proprietatibus et partium formis singularibus notitia. Qus harum detectarum divitiis su- perstructa est, scientia, specierum in plura genera distributionem necessariam reddidit; quando nempe characteribus essentialibus apprime convenientibus, fixis certisque, hec determinari possunt. Inter eas species, quarum apothecia intra singularem et e pro- pria substantia, nec a thallo formatam verrucam locata sunt T, distinctissimum inter reliqua a me stabilita, huc usque solum eminuit genus, quod Trypethelium vocaturt. Species illae nuper detectæ, quarum descriptiones et figuras Societati Linneanæ Lon- * Lichenographia Universalis, Gôttingæ 1810 edita c. Tab. color. collatis Præmonen- dis in Synopsi mea Methodica Lichenum, jam nunc typis exscripta et mox evulganda. t Lichenes Idiothalami Hyperogenei. Cfr. Conspectus Systemat. Lichenum in Synopsi supra memorata. 1 Monographiam hujus Generis c. Figuris dedi 1 in Actis Societ. Phytogr. Gorenkensis, vol. i. seqq.--Cfr. etiam de hoe Genere Synopsis Meth, Lichenum antea citata. r2 dinensi 36 Dr. E. ACHARIUS on dinensi jam offerre animum induxi, cum Trypetheliis natura et dispositione jam dictarum verrucarum et apotheciorum etiani conveniunt, sed propriis simul dignoscuntur characteribus essen- tialibus, quibus a Trypetheliis omnibus et singulis ita discedunt, ut inter hac, salvo eorum charactere generico, recipi nequeant. He note e sequentibus clarius apparebunt. ! GLYPHIS. CHARACTER GENERIS EssreNTIALIS. RxcrPTACULUM universale crustaceo-cartilagineum p!ano-expan- sum adnatum uniforme. Partiale verrucæforme, e propria substantia colorata formatum. ApoTuEcta subcartilagi- nea subrotunda oblongiuscula elongataque supra denudata impressa vel canaliculata (atra), in singula verruca plura innata, intus homogenea. | CHARACTER NATURALIS. RECEPTACULUM UNIVERSALE. Thallus cartilagineo-membrana- ceus, contiguus uniformis plano-adnatus, effusus L limi- tatus. ; ! RECEPTACULUM PARTIALE. Verruca planiuscula, colore et sub- stantia propria a thallo diversa, apothecia fovens. . A po- thecia numerosa verrucæ propri: innata, ad ejus superfi- ciem denudata, aggregata l. subconfluentia, difformia (sub- rotunda, oblonga, elongato-linearia) su pra impressa, disco À planiusculo, excavato 1. subcanaliculato, in ambitu magis elevata submarginata, solidiuscula atra, parenchymate ho- mogeneo. | Ogs. Singulare hoc genus, equidem tam ab Opegraphis et G yrophoris, quam a Trypetheliis distinctissimum, cum his tamen | | generibus Glyphis and Chiodecton. | 37 generibus analogiam majorem habet quam cum reliquis e familia Idiothalamorum Lichenibus ; sed singule ejus, quotquot sunt adhuc note, vel a me nunc primum detecta species, notas quas- dam proprias et essentiales offerunt, quibus ab omnibus aliis valde recedunt. E characteribus supra datis kæ etiam facile eriuntur. - In primis vero in eo differt genus Glyphis, quod, si verrucas apothe- ciorum, ut ita dicam, vel apothecium commune respicimus, hoc nec propria nec cruste solidiori quadam membranula tectum sit,. sed esubstantia plus minus pulveracea et raro solidiuscula forma- tum, atque aliter quam thallus coloratum ; quodque ipsa apothe- cia partialia, intra verrucas jam dictas pro maxima sua parte ad superficiem verrucarum denudata sint, atque loco thalamiorum : globosorum perithecio et nucleo instructorum (ut in Trypetheliis), tota quanta e parenchymate homogeneo atro compactiori, in aqua macerato versus centrum tantisper dilutius colorato, formata : figura aliquando rotundata, sepissime oblonga, elongata ac li- . nearia, disco depresso vel canaliculato, unde eorum ambitus ele- vatus, illum quasi marginatum reddit. Itaque differt Glyphis. — . ab Opegrapha, Graphide et Gyrophora apotheciis partialibus intra propriam substantiam verruczeformem (s. apothecium quoddam commune) aggregatis et receptis, nec non horum | forma et interna structura diversa. a Trypethelio: apotheciis partialibus oblongis et linearibus, perithecio, ostiolo papillato, nucleoque destitutis. a Chiodecto: forma et textura apotheciorum partialium, atque eorum situ, presentia disci et marginis. dy Derivatur nomen generis a Graeca voce yAvgis ob apothecium commune opusculum celatum assimilans. . | Locus: inter Lichenes Idiothalamos in ordine Hyperogeneorum, post Trypethelium, == —— | ae - Species. 38 Dr. E. Acuartivs on Species. 1, GrvPurs labyrinthica. Tab. II. fig. 1. G. crusta fuscescenti-subolivacea ; pros atten verrucis ob- longis sordide albis plano-convexiusculis pulverulentis, e | disco apotheciorum elongatorum canaliculato nigro rimoso- subreticulatis, Glyphis labyrinthica. Ach. Syao: p: 107... Trypethelium labyrinthiforme. Ach. Sylloge n nov. Benn ad Cl. Schrader pro ejus Diario Botan. missa. ; | Habitat in Guinea ad Sierram Leonam supra corticem arboris ignotz, quam secum adtulit Clariss. D. D. et Prof. Ap. Ar- . ZELIUS, incolis sub nomine Duffa obvenientis. Drscm. Crusta membranacea tenuis levigata, sed ex eminen- tiis subjacentis corticis inæquabilis, e fusco et cinereo olivacea, ite, ut videtur, et indeterminatim expansa. Verruce apotheci- orum Tarius sparse, parum supra crustam elevate subpulvinatæ; - Se planiusculæ, rotundatæ, oblonge, curvatæ, difformes, in ambitu integerrimæ tenuissimæ, sordide albicantes et pulvere pin suffusæ, rugis et rimis nigris frequentissimis tenuissimis profundis ramosis anastomosantibus et retieulatis secundum for- mam apotheciorum inclusorum notatæ. Apothecia longiuscula et elongata linearia, intra substantiam albicantem verrucarum abs- condita, vario modo flexuosa ibidemque confluentia, atra opaca, extus intusque e pulvere compacto solidiuscula, supra et ad su- perficiem verrucarum disco angustissimo profunde excavato ca- naliculata et inde marginibus elevatis parallelis acutiusculis, pru- ina albida verrucarum velatis, secundum longitudinem cincta, ‘Timas verrucarum nigras decussantes formantia. Oss., Pauca tantum rarissimæ hujus speciei individua, nec nisi in unico corticis frustulo eor occurrentia inveni, licet quam- Linn. rans Vol. JAM. Tab. p.a. Pig. » . Er. fF. Curis Soup. E Acharius. ded! Glyphis and Chiodecton. .89 quamplurimas alias cortices in eodem loco a se collectas scruti- nio meo benevole concesserit amicissimus AFzE LIUS. Explicatio Icon. Tab. II. fig. 1.—a. Corticis frustulum hujus Lichenis crusta obductum, in quo verruce apotheciorum Sparse, magnit. nat.—b. Du: verruce supra vise multum aucte.— c. Particula thalli in quo verruca et ejus apothecia inclusa hori- zontaliter resecta repræsentantur, ut structura et color internarum harum partium videatur, magn. valde aucta.— d. Particula corticis cum crusta et verruca apotheciorum ad perpendiculum dissecta. 2. Giypuis tricosa. Tab. II. fig. 2. ; G. crusta ferrugineo-lutescente; apotheciorum verrucis planis difformibus cinerascentibus, e disco apotheciorum elongato- rum rimoso-canaliculato rugoso-gyrosis. Glyphis tricosa. Ach. Synops. p. 107. Graphis tricosa. Ach. Lichenogr. Univ. in Add. p. 67A. Habitat in India (Occid.?)ad corticem arboris ignote. Swartz. Descr. Crusta in specimine a me viso effusa contigua carti- lagineo-membranacea læviuscula lütescenti-brunnea s. pallide- ferruginea. Verrucæ apotheciorum parum supra crustam elevate plane irregulares, intus extusque cinerascentes, maculas quasi difformes dispersas et approximatas formantes; ob copiam apo- theciorum nigrorum e cinereo et nigro variegate ac gyrose. Apo- thecia verrucis immersa figura variant subrotunda oblonga et lon- giuscula, plurima autem valde elongata linearia flexuosa, confer-. tissima, intus extusque solidiuscula atra opaca, disco concavius- culo l. rimoso-canaliculato et marginibus parum elevatis tenuio- ribus integris l. tenuissime crispis ac flexuosis, ad superficiem verrucarum prominulis nudis instructa, unde he supra rugoso- gyrosæ apparent. Extra ipsas verrucas non raro extenduntur quzdam ex apotheciis longioribus et crustam percurrunt, formam et ambitum verrucarum perquam irregularem reddentia. Intra verrucas 40 | Dr. E. Acuartius on verrucas apothecia confertissima aggregata et singulari modo in- vicem complicata, congeriem vermiculorum curvatorum atrorum assimilantia, nec tamen inde in hae specie concreta vel confluen- tia ut in Glyphide labi yrinthica, Oss. Fugitivis oculis inspecta similitudinem quamdam habet hzcce species cum Trypethelio anomalo, inque ejusdem arboris cortice obveniente, sed attentius examinata facile ab hoc dignos- citur. Præsentia verrucarum propriarum et natura apotheciorum quantum ab Opegraphis, Graphidibus et Gyrophoris discedat nos- tra species unicuique patet. Explic. Icon. "lab. IF. fig. 9. a. Crusta et verrucæ quzdam hujus speciei in corticis frustulo, magn. naturali.—b. Particula crust resccta cum apotheciorum verrucis binis supra adspectis, magn. aucta.—c. Verruca alia in particula cruste una cum apo- diede inclusis horizontaliter dissecta, ut harum conformatio intra cam conspici queat.—d. Sectio perpendicularis verruce cum apotheciis, crusta et corticis. Tigg. c. et d. magnopere auctze, 3. Guyputs cicatricosa. Tab. II. fig. 3. G. crusta fuscesceuti-cinerea nigro-limitata ; apotheciorum ver- rucis cinerascenti-nigris in ambitu subcrenatis cinereoque marginatis planis, e disco apotheciorum latiori subrotundo elongatoque concaviusculo cicatricosis. ' Glyphis cicatricosa. Ach. Synops. p. 107. Trypethelium cicatricosum. Ach. in supra dicta Sylloge. Habitat in Guinea ad corticem Codarii Solandri V Aur. (Dialü guineensis WiLLD. Sp. Pl.) aliarumque arborum ibidem cres- centium. Descr. Crusta tenuis membranacea levigata e fusco cine- rascens, in statu perfecto lineola nigra serpentina limitata. Ver- ruce apotheciorum sparsæ parve, parum a crusta elevatæ planæ intus . insigniter aucta. Glyphis and Chiodecton. ål intus extusque nigricantes vel obscure cinereæ colidiusculæ, in ambitu plerumque lobato-crenatz et e pruina cinerea ibidem sor- dide albicantes, per ætatem vero evanescente. Apothecia ipsa fere tota intra parenchyma verrucarum abscondita, solo disco ad earum superficiem perceptibili, minus numerosa quam in reliquis speciebus, latiora et breviora quam in duabus præcedentibus, jam subrotunda, jam oblonga et vix unquam triplo longiora quam lata, atque sub hac forma parum curvata, disco aliquantum depresso l. concaviusculo, margine obtuso tantillum elevato inte- gerrimo cincto; quam ob caussam verruce supra quasi cicatrici- bus nigris inustis notatæ videntur. Eleganter et in modum rosulæ in quamplurimis verrucis dispositi observantur apotheciorum disci, uno scilicet centrali et ceteris circumcirca hunc coronantibus. Oss. Quoad habitum prope accedit ad Glyphidem favulosam, sed criteriis essentialibus ab ea prorsus diversa species manet: ut Trypethelii speciem in supra memorata Sylloge, cum Cl. Schrader communicata, inter alias etiam hanc dubitanter recensui. Explic. Icon. Tab. II. fig. 3.—a. Pars rami Codarii cum crusta et apotheciis hujus speciei, magnit. naturali. (In eodem ramo - ad * delineata etiam occurrit Graphis tenella, nova species in Synopsi Lichen. p. 81, descripta.)—b. Lichenis crusta et apo- thecia in suis verrucis supra visa, magn. aucta.—c. et d. Verruce apotheciorum seorsim cum particula crustæ cui adnascuntur de- sumtæ, supra vise et magnopere auctæ, quarum una apothecia offert ad verruce superficiem subrotundata et oblonga concavi- uscula atque inde marginata in formam rosule disposita ; altera vero (d.) apothecia longiora et curvata absque ordine aggregata. —e. Sectio horizontalis ejusmodi verrucæ, apotheciorum formam et dispositionem intra substantiam verruce exhibens.—f. Ver- rucæ et apotheciorum inclusorum sectio perpendicularis, magn. VOL. XII. G 4. GLYPHIS LÀ 42 | | Dr. E. AcHARIUS 0n 4. Grvrurs favulosa. Tab. IIT. fig. 1. G. crusta albicante nigro-limitata ; apotheciorum verrucis ro- tundatis planiusculis nigris glauco-pruinosis margine cine- rascentibus, e disco apotheciorum suborbiculari excavato cicatricosis. Glyphis favulosa. ‘Ach. Synops. p. 107. "Trypethelium. favulosum a me pridem appellatum, tam in Actis —. Gorenkens. vol. 1. quan in Sylloge Lichen. Novor. su ! rata. ag m . Habitat i in America ad corticem Crotonis Cascarille. ` Descr. Crusta cartilaginea, crassior quam in antecedentibus speciebus, contigua laevigata, ex eminentiis et fissuris corticis sub- jacentis parum ineequabilis ac diffracta, sordide albescens, sub- inde pulvere albo adspersa, per ætatem e pallido-cinerascens vel parum fuscescens, i in ambitu irregularis, lineola nigra repanda et serpentina in statu perfecto limitata. Verruce apotheciorum su- pra crustam prominentes, subrotundæ oblongæ difformes, juni- ores convexæ pulvere albo-cinerascente l. glaucescente adspersæ, vetustiores planæ latiores; margine elevato subintegro utpluri- mum cinereo-pulverulento cincte, substantia interna carbonacea. Apotheciaverrucis innata subrotunda aut aliquando oblongiuscula, ad superficiem verrucarum quamplurima aggregata, supra exca- vata, in ambitu elevata, unde distincte marginata apparent, foveo- lasque nigras seu cicatrices in superficie verrucarum efformant. Ogs. Descriptio in Actis Gorenkens. ob specimina minus bona, utpote vitiosa, secundum jam datam corrigi debet. Iconem no- | vam etiam nunc dedi, quum forte incendio Moscoviz deleta est, qua ibidem incideretur.—Afänitas multa hujus speciei est cum Glyphide cicatricosa, a qua tamen abunde differt cruste natura ac colore, verrucis multo majoribus magis elevatis, nec non apo- theciis in his numerosioribus. Faplic. Linn Trans Vol AN. 725.3 p. 42, E. Acharius del J. Curtis scudp s Glyphis and Chiodecton. 43 Explic. iain Tab. IIT. fig. 1.—a. Lichen in cortice Cascarille, magn. naturali—b. Crustz frustum cum verrucis quibusdam, magn. aucta.—oc. Verruca solitaria, supra visa, insigniter aucta. —d. Sectio horizontalis verrucæ, substantiam ejus et apotheci- orum inclusorum internam ostendens, magn. valde aucta.—e. Ver- ruca cum parte subjacente cor ticis ad perpendiculum dissecía sub . augmento adhuc majori. CHIODECTO SN. CHARACTER Generis ESsENTIALIS. RECEPTACULUM universale crustaceo-cartilagineum plano-expan- sum adnatum uniforme. Partiale verrucæforme e propria substantia colorata (alba) formatum. AroruHrcra sub- pulveracea subglobosa (atra), plura singulis verrucis in- clusa subconfluentia, alia ad earum superficiem instar punctorum elevatorum notabilia. CHARACTER NATURALIS. RECEPTACULUM UNIVERSALE. Thallus cartilagineo-membrana- ceus, contiguus uniformis plano-adnatus, effusus 1. limita- tus. ae RECEPTACULUM PARTIALE. Verruca convexa l. sphærica, co- lore (albo) et substantia propria a thallo diversa, apothecia includens. Apothecia numerosa subglobosa, plurima intra substantiam verrucæ propriæ nidulantia aggregata et con- fluentia, alia pauciora ad ejus superficiem in modum papil- larum punctiformium subprominentia, intus extusque sub- pulveracea atra. : G 2 Oss. 4A Dr. E. Acnartus on Oss. Verrucas apotheciorum hujus generis si spectemus, na- tura sua a Trypetheliorum et Glyphidum parum recedunt; sed si formam et indolem apotheciorum inclusorum consideremus, lizec in Chiodecti speciebus diversissima sunt et notas characteristicas validissimas essentiales offerunt, quibus hocce genus ab his et aliis satis distinctum sese præbet. Quoad verrucas ipsas, in notis spe- ciebus, coloris sunt extus intusque albissimi et substantia earum bombycino-pulveracea. Intra hanc apothecia nidulantur minu- ta subglobosa vel parum difformia suboblonga, homogenea sub- pulverace atra, nullum nuclei seu parenchymatis solidioris textu- ram offerentia, tamen maceratione in aqua ad earum centrum substantia aliquantum pellucidior in Chiodecto seriali observata est; de cætero in hac specie quasi concatenata, in altera ad cen- trum verrucz adeo congesta ut massam pulveraceam simul sumta constituant. Versus superficiem verrucarum quadam etiam lo- cata observantur apothecia, has supra quasi nigro-punctatas red- dentia atque admodum spectabiles. Differt adeo Chiodecton a Trypethelio, Porina, Thelotremate et Variolaria, absentia tha- lamii veri, nam neque perithecii et ostioli, neque nuclei vesti- gia in ejus apotheciis observantur,—in specie a tribus ultimis generibus: Verruca apotheciorum e propria nec e thalli sub- stantia formata. | a Glyphide: situ, forma, et natura apotheciorum, nec disco nec margine instructorum atque omnino intra substantiam verrucarum nidulantium—a reliquis cognatis Lichenum Ge- neribus, ut supra monui, presentia apothecii communis seu verrucz, a thallo haud formate, Chiodectis, Glyphidibus et Trypetheliis solis solemnis, nec non forma et indole apothe- ciorum partialium. A Greca voce xro» receptaculum et x^; albus nomen generis composui. | Locus: Glyphis and Chiodecton. 45 Locus: inter Lichenes Idiothalamos in ordine Hyperogeneorum post Glyphidem. Species. 1. Curopecron spherale. Tab. III. fig. 2. C. crusta effusa lacteo-pallescente tenuissime tuberculosa ; apo- theciorum verrucis subglobosis albissimis, apotheciis intus ad centrum earum in massam confluentibus. Chiodecton sphærale. Ach. Synops. p. 108. | Trypethelium pulcherrimum. Ach. in supra dicta Sylloge. Habitat in America ad corticem Cinchone flave dictae. Descr. Crusta cartilagineo-membranacea effusa (uti videtur) lactea seu pallescens,e verruculis confertis albidioribus (forte initia apotheciorum communium) inzequabilis. Verruce apotheciorum frequenter subglobosæ |. parum compress: albissime Jævigatæ, punctis plurimis atris, (a totidem apotheciis, in superficie verru- carum subprominulis, ortis) supra notate. Apothecia numerosis- sima minuta subglobosa intus extusque homogenea subpulveru- lenta atra opaca, intra verrucas nidulantia, et juxta superficiem earum sparsa, et, quoad maximam partem, versus centrum con- gregata ibidem confluentia et massam atram simnl sumta effor- mantia. Explic. Icon. Tab. III. fig: 2.—a. Hujus Lichenis crusta cum apotheciis in corticis frustulo, magn. naturali.—b. Particula Li- chenis, magn. aucta.—c. Verruca fertilis separata a la tere visa, multum aucta.—d. Alia supra adspecta, cincta partic a crustæ verrucosæ, sub eodem augmento.—e. Verruca ad perpendiculum et.—f. Alia horizontaliter resecta, structuram et dispositionem Mc onu intra has i Apes verrucas representantes, magn. valde aucta. 2, Curopecrox seriale. Tab. III. fig. 3 C. crusta flavo-fuscescente levigata nigro-limitata ; apothe- ciorum 46 | Dr. E. Acn ARIUS on ciorum verrucis oblongo-difformibus convexiusculis, apothe- ciis intus per series subconcatenatis. - : Chiodecton seriale. Ach. Synops. p. 108. 2 | Trypethelium paradoxum. Ach. in Act. Soc. Phytogr. Gorenk. vol. i. c. figg. inque Sylloge Novor. Lich. ; Habitat in America supra corticem Bonplandie trifoliate WiLrp. (vulgo Angusture dictam.) Descr. Crusta cartilagineo-membranacea lzviuscula, e sub- jacentis corticis irregularitate parum inæquabilis seu eminentiis levibus notata et diffracto-rimosa, sordide flavescens, linea serpen- tina nigra determinata. Verrucæ apotheciorum sparse, primo a crusta membranula subvelate apparent, sed sæpissime denu- date occurrunt, parum supra crustam elevate ac convexiusculæ, demum planæ, albissimæ byssaceo-pulverulentæ, juniores ob- longs magis regulares, vetustiores difformes margine subrepande. Apethecia oblongo-spheroidea minuta subpulveracea vel in cen- tro parum solidiora atra, et ad verrucarum superficiem sparsa, quam nigro-punctatam reddunt absque signo papillæ genuine, et intra substantiam verrucarum seriatim disposita, flavedine quadam parenchymatis verruce plus minus evidente circumdata. Oers. Descriptionem speciei, que in Actis Gorenk. l. c. ha- betur, heic emendatam et correctiorem tradere debui, postquam de partium natura et de genere ipso magis illustrati sumus. Sub vitris compositis maxime augentibus nullum intra apothecia partialia nucleum verum detegere potui, quare etiam dubitanter ad Trypethelii genus ibidem retuli, et licet apotheciorum verrucæ et apothecia ipsa iconibus ad augmentum factis antea in Actis hisce illustrata sunt, tamen superfluum esse non putavi, harum partium figuras iterum fideliter tradere, ut comparatio specierum evidentior fieret, in primis dum. adhuc nescimus, an sub incendio Moscoviæ perierunt Societ. Gorenkens, Acta. Explic. * Glyphis and Chiodecton. 47 Explic. Icon. Tab. II. fig. 3.—a. Crusta Lichenis cum apothe- ciis in corticis frustulo, magn. naturali.—b. Eædem partes magn. aucta.—c. et d. Verruce apotheciorum solitariæ cum parte crus- tæ ambientis supra visa, magn. multum aucta, quarum prima (c.) verrucam juniorem integriusculam exhibet, ex apotheciis in ejus superficie subprominulis nigro-punctatam—secunda (d.) etate provectiorem et supra omnino denudatam magisque deformem, in qua etiam apothecia fere tota denudata occurrunt.—e. Ver- ruca alia horizontaliter resecta, formam et dispositionem subcon- catenatam apotheciorum intra ejùs substantiam exponens. VIII. On ( 48 ) i VIII. On the Power of Sarracenia adunca to entrap Insects. In Letter to Sir James E. Smith, Pres. Linn. Soc., from James Ma bride, M.D. of South Carolina. Read December 19, 1815. SIR, Your remarks on the ceconomy of the Sarracenie in your Intro- duction to Botany, led me to think of making this communication ; and I was emboldened to undertake it from having observed in your prefatory remarks on the study of this science, a spirit of pe- culiar liberality and disinterestedness. M y object is to lay before you the result of my observations on the insect-destroying-process carried on by the tubular leaves of these plants. It will hardly be necessary to inform you that the Sarracenia flava and S. adunca (S. minor of Walter, and S. variolaris of Mi- chaux,) grow in the flat country of this state in great abundance. With the latter my experiments have been chiefly conducted. If, in the months of May, June, or July, when the leaves of these plants perform their extraordinary functions in the greatest per- fection, some of them be removed to a house and fixed in an erect position, it will soon be perceived that flies are attracted by them. These insects immediately approach the fauces of the leaves, and leaning over their edges appear to sip with eagerness something from their internal surfaces. In this position they linger; but at length, allured as it would seem by the pleasure of taste, they enter the tubes. The fly which has thus changed its situation, will be seen to stand unsteadily, it totters for a few seconds, slips, and Dr. James Macnnrpz on Sarracenia adunca. 49 and falls to the bottom of the tube, where it is either drowned, or attempts in vain to ascend against the points of the hairs, The fly seldom takes wing in its fall and escapes; but this sometimes happens, especially where the hood has been removed to assist observation. In a house much infested by flies, this entrapment goes on so rapidly that a tube is filled in a few hours, and it be- comes necessary to add water, the natural quantity being insuf- ficient to drown the imprisoned insects. The leaves of the S. adunca and S, rubra of Walter might well be employed as fly- : catchers; indeed I am credibly informed they are in some neigh- bourhoods. The leaves of the flava, although they are very capa- cious, and often grow to the height of three feet or more, are never found to contain so many insects as the leaves of the species above mentioned. The spreading fauces and erect appendices of the leaves of this species render them (I suppose) less destruc- tive. | The cause which attracts flies is evidently a sweet viscid sub- stance*, resembling honey, secreted by, or exuding from, the in- ternal surface of the tube. On splitting a leaf it may readily be discovered in front, just below the margin, and in greatest quan- tity at the termination of the ala ventralis. From the margin, where it commences, it does not extend lower than one-fourth of an inch. During the vernal and summer months it is very per- ceptible to the eye and touch ; and although it may be s not discoverable by either, yet the sensation of swi tn dily perceived on applying the tongue to this portion of surface. In warm and dry weather it becomes inspissated, resembling a whitish membrane. Dow a ab ae a A * This substance it seems was noticed by Bartram the younger (see the Preface to his Travels). I was entirely ignorant of his conjectures respecting it, until long after 1 had proved their correctness. VOL. XII. H The MISSOURI . BOTANICAL . GARDEN. - 50 Dr. Jauzs MACBR1DE on the Power of The falling of thé insect as soon as it enters the tube is wholly attributable to the downward or inverted position of the hairs of the internal surface of the leaf. At the bottom of a tube, split open, the hairs are plainly discernible pointing downwards; and as the eye ranges upwards they become gradually shorter and at- tenuated, till at, or just below, the surface covered with the bait, they are no longer perceptible to the naked eye, nor to the most delicate touch. It is here that the fly cannot take a hold suffi- ' ciently strong to support itself, but falls. The inability of insects to crawl up against the points of the hairs I have often tested in the most satisfactory manner. Spiders descend into the tubes, to prey (I suppose) on the entrapped insects, and ascend with impu- nity ; but this is performed, as.I have witnessed, by the assistance of their threads. Also a small species of Phalena* appears to take shelter in these tubes during the day, and is enabled to ascend ; but by what contrivance I am at a loss to conjecture; unless it be by some peculiarity of structure in its feet. E - In the putrid masses of insects thus collected, are always to be seen one or more maggots in a very active state. To account for their presence, and to ascertain the insect to which they be- longed, I was long unable. The mystery was however unveiled in the following manner: While watching attentively some tall tubes of the S. flava growing in their natural situations, in order to discover whether other insects as well as flies were attracted by the bait above described, a large fly caught my attention: it passed rapidly from one tube to another, delaying scarcely a mo- ment at the faux of each, until it found, as it should seem, one * This Phalena, which is about half an inch in length, may be deseribed by saying it is divided transversely into three equal parts; the first division including the head is black ; the second dirty white, or yellow ; the third is like the first: Larva a greenish geo- metra, suitable Sarracenia adunca to entrap Insects, | 51 suitable to its purpose ; then hanging its posterior extremity over the margin, it ejected on the internal surface of the tube a larva with a black head, which immediately proceeded downwards by a brisk vermicular motion. This viviparous musca was more than double the size of the common house-fly, had a reddish head, and the body hairy, and streaked grayish. I had often noticed it. be- fore among the S. adunce, but could never ascertain its object ; the hoods probably obstructing my view. | 3 That insects may be found in these tubes which were not al- lured by the bait, I have well ascertained. At the time that 1- discovered the origin of the larvæ, I observed a beetle (Scarabeus carnifex, a herd being near) in its flight strike against the erect ap- pendage of the S. flava and fall into the tube. In the leaves of the S. adunca, growing on the margin of a large pool, I once observed the fragments of a large Gryllus and several Gyrini. These and similar appearances have led me to suspect that our large Nepa*, an extremely voracious insect, may occasionally use these tubes as storehouses. The hooked feet of this last insect would doubt- less enable it to ascend against the inverted pubescence. What purposes beneficial to the growth of these plants may be effected by the putrid masses of insects, I have never ascertained ; but I learn from a hint given in the article Dionæa, in Rees’s Cyclopedia, that it has been discovered that the air evolved is wholesome to the plants. I once entertained a suspicion that this air might be of such a deleterious nature as to cause the precipitation of thé insects exposed to it, but I have long since relinquished it as entirely groundless. * Very nearly allied to Nepa grandis of South America. It is very strong, and often destroys the Spring Frog. It inserts the claws of the two fore-feet into one of the frog's . hind legs, and with the claws of its hind feet it grapples rice-stubble, or some aquatic . plant; the frog unable to disengage itself becomes exhausted by struggling. n-2 ! The 54 On the Nature and Formation of the Stone incrusting coquillages marins alternativement submergés et exposés a la chaleur du soleil, mais bien celle de ce liquide saturé.de soude et de chaux muriatées et sujets à une évaporation que la tempé- rature du climat nécessite. De l'évaporation des liquides qui tiennent des solides en solu- tion, résulte naturellement la précipitation de ces derniers. Mais comme il importe fort peu de considérer ici le corps précipité quant à la forme qu'il peut affecter en pareil cas, nous nous bor- nerons à observer, que les débris agglutinés des coquillages ma- rins, infiltrés par l'eau de la mer, que la chaleur du soleil évapore sans cesse, recoivent entre leurs interstices la chaux et la soude muriatées que ce liquide dissolvait, que la précipitation et une certaine adhérence de ces sels, envers ces débris agglutinés des coquilles, ont du déterminer une réunion plus. parfaite de ces derniers, en devenant eux-mémes parties constituantes de la masse pierreuse qui en.est résultée par la suite. Examinons maintenant ce produit de la nature à l'endroit de son gisement et de sa formation. : : La configuration et le rapport des masses sont certainement les premiers caractères qui doivent être spécifiés; mais ici nulle forme régulière ou constante ne se laisse appercevoir; nul rap- port de position ou de nature ne parait exister entre le minéral dont il est question et les autres minéraux dont il est environné. Les débris agglutinés des coquilles auxquels ce premier doit sa formation figurent ordinairement à leur surface les ondulations de la mer, résultát de linfluence des marées ascendantes sur ces mémes débris d'abord réunis par une faible adhérénce. | L'espéce de pierre qui provient de leur réunion est bien évidemment de formation nouvelle, et nous pouvons méme dire journalière, ainsi que l'on peut s'en convaincre aisément sur le lieu. Il n'est pas difficile de reconnaitre ni méme de distinguer à T vue the Skeletons found in the Island of Guadaloupe. 55 vue simple les premiers matériaux dont cette pierre est composée; il est évident, au contraire, qu'elle doit sa formation aux débris des coquillages marins qui se sont réunis, ainsi que nous l'avons déjà dit, .par l'interméde de la chaux et de la soude muriatées déposées entre leurs interstices. Une adhérence trés-faible et presque nulle caractérise le pre- mier état d'agrégation des débris des coquillages marins, et nous oblige à ne considérer leur réunion que comme un État d'agglu- tination, en la définissant de la manière suivante : La Agrégat par agglutination, à gros grains, très-poreux et très- friable. Une agglutination plus intime, ou une adhérence, toutefois indirecte*, réunit les débris des coquillages marins un une masse beaucoup moins fragile, qui peut étre spécifiée par la dénomina- tion de e 2. Agrégat par adhérence à gros grains, poreux et non friable ; =- composé de chaux muriatée, de soude muriatée, et des débris des coquillages marins. Le troisième état de réunion de ces mêmes débris se URSS E la définition de | 3. A grégat adhérent, compacte, ou à grains resserrés de même nature que le précédent. | - Une adhérence plus parfaite de ces débris des coquilles, dans laquelle les parties hétérogènes réunies se trouvent confondues en un tout ou une masse à peu près homogène, peut admettre la co- * Nous disons indirecte parcequ'il est démontré que les débris des coquillages marins ne sont point réunis par une adhérence réciproque, mais bien par l'adhérence intermédiaire de la soude et de la chaux muriatées pour ces mêmes débris. hérence 5G On the Nature and Formation of the Stone incrusting hérence pour définition. Ainsi nous déterminerons ce quatrième état par les caractères de 4. Agrégat cohérent, de méme nature que le dernier, d'un gris jau- nátre, d'une saveur légèrement salée ; semi-transparent sur les bords seulement ; rayé par le verre, et rayant la chaux fluatée ; répandant une odeur animale par le frottement ; inphosphorescent ; fortement sonore ; réductible en chaux vive ; soluble en entier et avec une forte effervescence dans l'acide nitrique dilué. C'est sous ce quatrième état que les débris des coquillages marins réunis peuvent admettre la dénomination de pierre, et se ranger parmi les autres minéraux sous le nom d’agrégat composé de chaux carbonatée unie à la chaux et à la soude muriatées. Mais, outre que cette espece de pierre se distingue, en admettant dans sa formation ces deux derniers sels, des concrétions calcaires car- bonatées,. que nous fournissent les lithophites et quelquefois les -zoophites, elle se caractérise encore par un degré de dureté, que nous venons de déterminer par sa propriété de rayer la chaux fluatée, et par une pesanteur spécifique beaucoup plus grande que celle de la chaux carbonatée ordinaire. Il ne sera, sans doute, pas hors de propos de donner mainte- nant une courte énumération des différens vers testacés, dont nous avons pu reconnaître les dépouilles, puisque de cette ma- nière nous indiquerons les coquillages marins, dont les débris d'abord agglutinés, bientôt adhérens et enfin cohérens, ont pro- duit l'espéce de pierre dont nous venons de retracer tous les ca- ractères ;. ceci nous menera encore à connaître les diverses incrus- tations que l'on peut rencontrer dans cette pierre par de plus am- ples recherches ; mais il conviendra aussi de faire observer que cette énumération locale ne peut donner qu'une idée trés-bornée de là Conchyliologie des Antilles. Le the Skeletons found in the Island of Guadaloupe. 57 Le genre Cyprea de Linné se fait connaitre par les espéces suivantes : Le Cyprea Pediculus. --— stercoraria. Exanthema et Zebra. Ces deux dernières espèces ne sont suivant Bruguieres que la méme coquille plus ou moins avancée en áge. Parmi les Buccins l'on trouve Le Buccinum cornutum. Perdix. Dolium. | Dans les autres genres l'on rencontre la Voluta Oliva; le Mu- rex ramosus; la Bulla Ampulla; la Bulla gibbosa; la Nerita versi- color; la Nerita peloronta; le Strombus Lambis; le Turbo Pica: le Trochus niloticus, et plusieurs espèces de Patella. i Toutes ces coquilles, ainsi que tous les corps qui se trouvaient interposés parmi leurs débris concassés, ont du nécessairement s'y incruster, du moment que ces débris se sont agglutinés. C'est pourquoi l'on y rencontre aujourd'hui, outre ces différens coquil- lages marins, quelques coquilles terrestres, des morceaux de po- terie ou de terre cuite, des haches en pierre, instrumens dont sé servaient les naturels du pays; des ossemens humains isolés, et méme des squelettes entiers plus ou moins bien conservés. — Non seulement la nature de tous ces objets n'est point altérée, mais de plus les coquilles se trouvent incrustées sans avoir perdu leur nacre et leurs couleurs. C'est donc à tort que l'on a vulgaire- ment confondu jusqu'à ce jour l'incrustation de ces substances avec celles que l'on désigne communément sous le nom de pétrifi- cations. / Gi YOL. XII. I SUR 58 On the Origin of SUR LORIGINE DES SQUELETTES. Les apparences nous portent à présumer d'abord, que les sque- lettes que l'on trouve au bord de la mer à l'est du bourg du Moule, sont les charpentes d'autant de cadavres déposés dans ce lieu. Nos premieres observations nous autorisaient d'autant plus à adhérer à cette opinion, que le squelette* que nous cherchons à extraire aujourd'hui se trouve dans une position qui paraitrait confirmer ce que nous avons avancé à ce sujet. Les anciens du quartier prétendent néanmoins que cette opi- nion est mal fondée ; ils nous assurent, que cet endroit, ot l'on a découvert successivement différens squelettes, était autrefois un carbet; que ce carbet fut également habité par des Indiens de deux nations différentes, dont les uns connus sous le nom de Caraibes étaient des hommes petits ou de moyenne grandeur, peu robustes, ayant les cheveux noirs assez longs; et le teint d'un brun assez foncé. Les Galibis, au contraire, qui formaient l'autre nation de ces Indiens, étaient d'une stature extraordinaire de six pieds au moins, trés-forte ; ils avaient également les cheveux noirs et très longs, mais le teint de ces derniers était d'un jaune olivátre, méme un peu basané. La plüpart des habitans du quartier du Moule s'accordent à ad- mettre la co-existence de deux nations d'Indiens, méme jusqu'à une époque bien postérieure à la découverte des colonies: quelques uns d'entreux ajoutent: que les Galibis habitaient une partie du quartier du Moule, le quartier du Port-Louis, et l'Anse Ber- trand, tandis que les Caraibes occupaient le quartier de St. Anne, celui de St. François, et une partie de celui du Moule, où la * For an account of this skeleton, see Philosophical Transactions for the year 1814, p. 107. rivière the Skeletons found. 59 rivière servait de ligne de démarcation convenue entre ces deux peuples. Quoique ces différens rapports ne soient point denués de vrai- semblance ou de probabilité, ils ne font toutefois point mention de l'époque à laquelle il faut remonter, pour retrouver ces deux classes différentes d'Indiens, ni du tems présumable de leur di- spersion, émigration, ou déstruction. Un particulier, homme digne de foi, nous assure cependant, ` que la déstruction de ce carbet et la dispersion des Indiens qui lhabitaient ne remontent point à une époque très-reculée. Il nous dit: que son père, qui mourut à un âge très-avancé, lui a raconté maintefois, non seulement, qu'il avait eu connaissance du carbet, que l'on dit avoir existé dans ce lieu, et des deux sectes d'Indiens qui l'habitaient, mais qu'il se rappellait de plus, que vers les années 1710 et 1711, une rixe s'était élevée entre les ha- bitans de ce carbet, et que les deux nations entiéres intervinrent dans cette querelle. Un combat eut lieu dans ce-méme endroit, ajouta le vieillard, et un grand massacre s'ensuivit. Les Galibis furent battus et dispersés, tandis que les Caraibes vainqueurs res- tèrent maîtres du champ de bataille. Il se fit sans doute alors une émigration des Galibis qui survecurent à cette triste défaite, car il ne fut plus mention d'eux depuis cette époque. 58° Ce même vieillard raconta encore à son fils, qu'il s'était rendu sur le lieu quelque tems après cet évènement, et qu'il vit quinze à vingt cadavres étendus sur le carreau. Les squelettes de ces cadavres furent encore reconnus il y à quarante ans environ par le particulier qui nous a fourni ces renseignemens, ainsi que par plusieurs habitans du Moule: A cette époque, ces squelettes commençaient à s'incruster dans les débris agglutinés des coquilles dont toute la cóte est meublée. Ce particulier observe toutefois I2 que 60 On the Origin of que l'on pouvait alors en détacher ces squelettes au moyen d'un simple morceau de bois. | La position dans laquelle l'on a trouvé de nos jours, dans cet endroit, des squelettes incrustés dans la pierre, paraitrait dévoir nous éclairer, quant à la vérité des faits que nous venons d'ex- poser. Il n’y aque quelqués années, qu'un squelette fut déterré et enlevé avec une pierre d'incrustation, de formation nouvelle - (ainsi que l'on pouvait en juger par l'extréme friabilité de cette pierre). Ce squelette* fut trouvé dans la position d'un homme assis à terre et dont les talons rapprochés du rectum ramenaient les genoux à une trés grande proximité de la téte; les bras un peu repliés sur eux mémes étaient appuyés sur les genoux. Ce genre de sépulture a été, dit-on, celui adopté de tout tems par les Caraibes; nous ne pouvons donc rien inférer de l'exposition de ce fait. Le squelette dont nous surveillons aujourd'hui l'extrac- tion est étendu sur le dos dans toute sa longueur, et parait un u incliné sur le cóté gauche. 1l serait encore difficile ici de pouvoir déduire une conséquence dont nous puissions étre satis- faits, et de prouver que le cadavre auquel ce squelette a appartenu n'ait point été enterré de cette maniere. ‘Tout ce que l'on peut conclure de la différente position des deux squelettes dont il vient d'étre parlé, c'est qu'en admettant, qu'ils aient reçu l'un et l'autre Ja sépulture, ils paraissent avoir appartenu à des individus de na- tion différente, ou chez qui les usages différaient à l'égard de l'in- humation. | | Il convient donc encore de nous en rapporter ici à la tradition ; des témoins oculaires s'accordent à attester, que les différens squelettes qui se trouvaient au bord de la mer, à l'endroit du _* Voyez L'Histoire Naturelle et Morale des Isles Antilles de l'Amérique. Rotterdam, 1658, 4to. p. 310. t carbet, the Skeletons found. 61 carbet, étaient dispersés; que des membres étaient épars, et que la position de ces squelettes n'était nullement analogue à celle que l'on pourrait supposer à des cadavres enterrés, d'autant plus qu'elle n'était point la méme partout. Des ossemens isolés se trouvent encore aujourd'hui sur le méme lieu; des arcs, des fleches, des haches ont également été trouvés à différentes époques par les habitans du quartier. Au Moule, ce 15 Avril 1806. í "a ( 62 ) > X. Descriptions of a new Genus of Plants named A aujia, and of a new Species of Passiflora. By Felix de Avellar Brôtero, Professor of Botany in the University of Coimbra, F.M.L.S. Read November 7, 1815. ETNAUIIA CHARACTER GENERICUS. Carvx magnus, profunde quinquepartitus, persistens. Corolla campanulata, basi subglobosa, quinquegibba, tubo infra me- dium coarctato, limbo quinquefido. Nectaria sacculi quinque gibbosi, in fundo corollæ inter antherarum filamenta decurren- tia, in quorum decursu squama horizontalis et auricula termi- nalis. Styli duo brevissimi; Stigma utrisque commune ovatum, apice bicorni. Folliculi duo oppositi, deorsum flexi, coriaceo- fungosi, subovales, semi-biloculares: dissepimento eorum ad centrum, seu medium, protenso, utrinque multilamellato. Se- mina numerosa, lamellis dissepimenti adhærentia, coma longa sericiformi coronata. ARAUJIA SERICOFERA. A. caule fruticoso, scandente; foliis cordatis, integerrimis, gla- bris, ad petioli apicem glandulosis ; racemis paucifloris. Radix perennis, ramosa, serpens. . Caulis fruticosus, debilis, scandens, teres, glaber, inferne penne anserinæ superne gallinaceæ crassitudine, tres quatuorve pedes et M. Bnorkno's Descriptions of anew Genus named Araujia, &c. 63 et ultra longus, succo lacteo refertus, (uti flores, fructus, et tota planta,) ramosus, ramis glabris, junioribus subtomentosis, op- positis, patentibus, interdüm uno ex ipsis in oppositione abor- tiente, aut serius pullulante, nec paucis ad idem latus sursüm reversis. Folia opposita, oblongo-cordata, acuta, patentia, (nonnulla inter- dùm secunda,) venosa, integerrima, suprà saturate viridia, gla- bra, basi prope petioli apicem duabus tribusve glandulis mini- mis instructa, subtüs dilutè viridia, seu subglauca, glabra, sed lente visa subtomentosa, tres quatuorve uncias longa, novem ad quatuordecim lineas in basi lata: petiolus subteres, suprà canaliculatus, glaber, aut lente visus vii tates triplo quadruplove folii laminá brevior. Flores racemosi; racemi penduli, simplices, pauciflori, quorum flores plures sæpè abortivi; inferiores floribus quinque ad sep- tem alii versus caulis ramorumque apicem numero florum sen- sim decrescentes. Pedunculus communis extüs è latere axillæ foliorum exortus, teres, glaber, patens aut cernuus, semi-unci- am plus minüsve longus, partialibus brevior: Pedicellus infimi floris uni majori bractez oppositus unciam aut pauló ultra lon- gus, uti quoque pedicellus terminalis ; alii breviores, ex brac- tearum oppositarum axillis exorti, et non raró infra medium duabus aliis bracteis minoribus oppositis instructi. Bractee omnes sessiles, lanceolate, integerrimæ, utrinque glabrae, viri- des, patulae. Cal. Perianthium monophyllum, magnum, ita profundé quinque- partitum, ut ferè pentaphyllum videatur, persistens ; laciniis ' Jato-lanceolatis, acutis, integerrimis, utrinque glabris et dilute viridibus aut interdàm extüs sordidé subpurpureis, primdm erecto-patulis, dein patentibus, altitudine inter sese æqualibus, rariüs. 64 M. Bnorzno's Descriptions of a new Genus named Araujia, rariüs latitudine subæqualibus, corolla brevioribus, quinque ad septem lineas longis, tres ad quinque in medio latis. Corolla monopetala, campanulata; inferné subglobosa, obtusa, pentagona seu quinquegibba, gibbis ex viridi flavis, singulæ limbi lacini oppositis; tubo infra medium ad organa sexualia coarctato, exinde laxiusculo, extüs usque ad limbi lacinias sor- didè purpureo; quinquefida, laciniis tubo brevioribus, ovatis, obtusiusculis, leviter revolutis obliquatisque ; intüs, ex apice usque ad tubi coarctationem, venis striisque variis saturate purpureis pulchré picta, exinde zona alba, villosa, ad lineas duas latA, cincta; fundus ventricosus, sacculis quinque gla- bris albisque instructus, supra tenul membrana marginatus, centro in tubulum crassum, conicum, decurrentibus staminum filamentis coadunatum, germina arcté involventem, et stigmate clausum, sursüm producto. Ejus ima basis perforata, qua re- ceptaculo adhæret, sesquilineæ duarumve linearum diametro, vix constat; ex ipsá usque ad limbi lacinias decem undecimve lineas longa est, et diametro linearum ferè quinque inter fundi gibbas gaudet. Post anthesin facilé decidit. Nectaria, non squamulæ neque auriculæ, sed sacculi, qui, stami- num inter filamenta curva decurrentia, gibbas extrorsùm effi- ciunt, et sub laxis antherarum commissuras ex opposito siti sunt; in istis enim sacculis succus melleus, ex prædictis com- missuris exsudatus, continetur. Stam. filamenta quinque, alba, crassa, plana, deorsüm sensim latiora, per corolle fundum arcuaté decurrentia, ex ipso de- -^müm exerta auriculis ad antheras conniventibus terminantur ; superne rimis vix apparentibus inter sese distincta, infernè in fundo corolla inter sacculos quinque distantia; intùs tubulo centrali conico ipsius fundi adnata ; paulo sub antheris, squama Ee horizontali and of a new Species of Passiflora. 65 horizontali alba, brevi, latà, leviter emarginatà, obovata, sessili, instructa; he omnium filamentorum squamæ quinque coro- nam, seu stellulam, obsolete pentagonam quasi effingunt ; au- riculæ, quibus singulorum cauda plana, extra fundi membra- nam marginalem soluta, terminatur, sunt squamis antherisque opposite, ipsis approximate, albe, carnose, glabrae, obtuse, -hinc concave, absque ullis corniculis, inde convexæ ; harum tres minores, ovate, extrorsum ad corollam concave, due alie latiores, ovato-cordatz, introrsüm ad antheras concave, et ad unius ex minoribus latera utrinque site. Corolla tubus, has , supra auriculas quinque convergentes, coarctatur. Anihere quinque, cum corollz laciniis alternantes, filamentis ad- nate, sagittate, germinum apicibus approximate, membrana ovato-cordatá, inflexá, et stigmati arct® incumbente, termi- natæ ; utrinque ald reversà deorsüm sensim latiore prominen- tioreque, demüm in denticulum rigidum fragilemque desinente, auctæ ; vicinis aliarum antherarum alis similibus contiguæ, in- ferné veró intüs laxe ; biloculares, loculis pollinigeris apice in- -.-. trorsüm, sub membraná terminali, dehiscentibus. Pro polline, in utroque singule antherz loculo, corpusculum compactum, ex viridi flavescens, planiusculum, spatulatum, intüs (lente visum) contextu cellulari granuloso succulento farctum, extüs cuticulà scabrá tectum, superne lateraliter filo insertum ; filum breve, elasticum, obliquum, apice basique ad insertiones nodosum, hyalinum, succis ex viridi flavescentibus conspurcatum, superné ad tuberculi nigri latus prope basin adherens: tuberculum nigrum ovale, extüs nitidum, intüs opa- cum, cartilagineum, medio sulcatum et quasi didymum, apice duabus squamulis ovalibus minimis, albis, hyalinis, stigmati adhærentibus, terminatum, antherarum alis, corolleque laci- niis oppositum, uni ex quinque stigmatis foveolis ovalibus VOL. XII. K . semi- 66 M. Brorero’s Descriptions of a new Genus named Araujia, semi-immersum ; ex alio ejus baseos latere aliud simile filum emittit, quod obliqué descendens corpusculo spatulato primi loculi proxime antheræ similiter adhæret : unde singulum tu- berculum duarum antherarum corpusculis spatulatis commune, et singula anthera filis hinc inde duorum tuberculorum corpus- cula spatulata ministrat. | Pist. Germina d uo approximata, ovata, acuminata, glabra, in tu- bulo seu cavitate conicá centrali fundi corollæ cum stylis re- condita. Styli duo graciles, teretes, brevissimi, mucronifor- miter persistentes. Stigma utrisque commune, magnum, cras- sum, ovato-subglobosum, glabrum, apice leviter emarginatum, bicorne, corniculis incurvis, introrsàm canaliculatis ; obsolete quinquestriatum, inter strias foveolis quinque ovalibus, pro tuberculis quinque nigris recipiendis, succo ex viridi flave- _scente tinctis, excavatum ; apicibus antherarum membranaceis _ferè usque ad medium tectum; sub foveolis in ora baseos mar- ginali emarginaturis quinque leviter notatum. | Per. Folliculi duo (quorum unus non raro abortit) oppositi, plus minüsve reflexi, oblongo-subovales, magni, tres ad quatuor uncias longi, unciam ad sesquiunciam et ultra in medio lati, coriaceo-fungosi, corio ad sesquilineam crasso, apice obtuso leviter mucronati, basi cavá retusi, subrugosi, glabri, diluté vi- rides; intüs ex viridi albidi, à seminibus prementibus subalve- olati, univalves, semibiloculares, extüs, quá parte in florescen- tia contigui, longitudinaliter unisulcati, sulcoque conscissè de- biscentes, . | Dissepimentum, seu seminum receptaculum, longitudinale hinc liberum et usque ad follicali centrum aut pauld ultra proten- sum, inde ad ejus parietem sub sulco tenuiter adherens, in matura veró dehiscentia-omninó solutum, solumque ipsius basi et apici adherens, latum, subcoriaceum, prope latus externum sub 3 sub sulco, inque basi et apice, nudum, cæterùm utrinque mul- tipliciter alatum, alis, seu lamellis, membranaceis, ad quadra- - ginta, latis, semilanceolatis, acutè deorsüm serratis, dentibus prope folliculi basin acutioribus, longioribus. Semina numerosa, ad quingenta (nonnulla abortientia) deorsüm imbricata, immatura, interné prope come ortum, dissepimenti lamellarum dentibus adherentia, in maturitate soluta, crassi- uscula, compressa, ovato-oblonga, versus apicem attenuata, tuberculis obtusis mollibus instructa, hinc convexa inde sub- plana ibique in medio obsoletà costa notata, & castaneo fusca duas lineas cum dimidia longa, apice truncata, comosa. Co- ma pilosa; pilis numerosis, simplicissimis, albis, tenuissimis, sericiformibus, altitudine inzequalibus, in seminibus infimis ad duas uncias et ultra longis, in aliis sensim ad apicem folliculi brevioribus; in fructu immaturo omnibus inter sese adhæren- tibus, fasciculumque magnum, crassum, fibriforme constituen- tibus, in ipso autem maturo inter dissepimenti lamellas arcte contentis, demum divergenter solutis. Seminum integumentum simplex, tenue, membranaceum, in vesi- eulas tuberculiformes hinc inde sparsas elevatum. Hilus in apice seminum truncato ad come ortum, ubi dens lamelle af- fixus erat. Albumen, seu perisperma, integumento firmiter ad- hærens, crassiusculum, subcoriaceum, intüs sordide seu ex ci- nereo albidum. Embryo longitudine albuminis, inversus; lac- 'teus. Cotyledones duæ, oblongo-elliptice, foliaceæ. Radi- cula teretiuscula, cotyledonibus dimidio brevior, supera. Habitat in Perû, unde sub nomine Apocyni Peruviani missum. In -Regio Horto Olisiponensi autumno floret, fructus autem vere maturescit; ibi tota planta pluribus abhinc annis frigus hyber- num fert, et cicurata demum est: inodora, sed acris, cma succis lacteis abunde plena sit, et ut videtur virosa. | x 2 " Genus 68 M. Bnorrno's Descriptions of a new Genus named Araujia, Genus in honorem Illustrissimi ac Excellentissimi Viri Antonii de Araujo, Principi Portugal. Regenti à Secretioribus Consiliis Regnique pro re navali Administri, et Botanices Botanicorum- que fautoris eximii, gratus dixi. Speciem à longis pilis serici- formibus, quos semina ferunt, nominavi: hi cum gossypio et serico misti ad eadem artificia, quibus Asclepiadis Syriacæ la- nugo, seu coma seminum, inservit, valde aptiores recogniti sunt. Ad Contortarum Linnei, et Apocinearum Jussiæi, ordinem naturalem attinet; non tamen cum ullo ipsius ordinis genere hucusque cognito confundendum, ab omnibus enim fructus florisque structurá nimis compositá singularique differt. Quod ad organa sexualia Generis attinet, existimo corpusculum compactum, succulentum, ex viridi flavescens, quod singulum antherarum loculum occupat, verum sperma foecundans conti- nere, affine illi, quod in granulis antherarum Orchidearum se- cernitur, sed diversè perfectum stigmatique diversè applica- tum ; in Orchideis enim, liquore spermatico in granulis anthe- rarum compactis complete preparato, exinde eorumdem gra- - nulorum fila, halitu quodam venereo, ex stigmatis mucositate emisso, irritata convergunt, ad istud immediaté applicantur, ipsumque liquore spermatico sensim ex sudato irrorant: in nostro autem Genere liquor spermaticus in corpusculis anthe- rarum compactis non complete perficitur, sed quadam elabo- ratione in filis et tuberculo nigro perficienda indiget ; quaprop- ter, apertis antherarum loculis, liquor spermaticus imperfectus ilico à vicinis filis proxime adherentibus absorbetur, exinde per ipsorum vasa sensim adscendens ad tubercula nigra perve- nit, ibique demüm perfecte elaboratus ad stigmatis foveolas, per sulcum seu rimam internam singuli tuberculi, sensim egre- ditur seu exsudat ; unde per vasa spermatica stylorum et re- ceptaculi ad ovula foecundanda descendit. Hæc omnia ita se - | babere, Linn. Trans. Vot. XH. Tab.4 .p. 64. Fr ? (7 i i Eon. CUJA ACTU, CIC . Pd and of a new Species of Passiflora, 69 habere, succi ex viridi flavescentes, quibus fila internè con- spurcari videntur, nec non et stigmatis foveolæ quinque eis- dem succis tinctæ suadent. Squamulas tàm antheris qi tuberculis nigris natura dedit, ne liquor spermaticus hur tate aliquá externa misceretur, aut ipsi ne aeris nimia aliqua siccitas noceret. EXPLICATIO. Tan. IV. Fig. 1. Caulis pars extrema. et unus ramus lateralis florentes. ; (aa.) Folia paginá superiori visa. . i ; (bbb.) Folia nonnulla ad idem latus versa, et. Disk. visa. às wi ; E (ccc.) Racemi. EXPLICATIO.: Ta». V. P Fig. 1. Flos apertus magnitudine naturali visus. 2. Ejusdem calyx cum pistilli germinibus duobus visus.. 3. Corolla calyce separata cum gibbis in basi. — 4. Corolla verticaliter scissa et expansa, ut ipsius interna facies insimul cum auriculis quinque, quibus stami- num cauda. pens: terminatur, conapitia d geniat. 5, G therarum commissuris DT in “centro. gatis cornicula duo, et circa ipsa antherz transverse sectae. s` ima corolla sacculisque nectariferis nuda- TO M. Bnorzno's Descriptions of a new Genus named Araujia, Fig. T. Auricule duz ita dissectæ, ut appareat modus quo in antheras et pistillum connivent. . 8. Unius staminis anthera cum suo filamento crasso, plano, ^ in auriculam desinente (hic non arcuatim, sed recte depicto). 9. Anthera seorsùm posita. | 10, Pistilli partes receptaculo insertæ (lente auctæ). 11. Eædem partes magnitudine naturali, et sine receptaculo, scilicet, germina duo, styli et stigma bicorne cum fove- olis pro tuberculis nigris recipiendis. 12. Tubercula duo, singulum cum duobus corpusculis polli- niferis, stigmatis foveolis applicata (lateraliter visa). 13. Tubercula omnia quinque, singulum cum suis duobus . corpusculis polliniferis, stigmati applicata. - 14. Tuberculum unum nigrum cum suis duobus corpusculis polliniferis, singulis è filo pendentibus (omnia magnitu- dine naturali). 15. Ezdem partes lente auctæ. 16. Folliculi duo magnitudine naturali paulo minores. — A. Unus ex folliculis verticaliter sectus, ut semina et disse- pimentum conspiciantur. 18. Dissepimentum cum suis lamellis serratis indus. 39. Semen unum coma piloso-sericiformi coronatum magni | tudine naturali). : - 20. Idem absque coma, et verticaliter eectum ait nucleus pe- risperma et embryonem continens videatur. - 21. Idem lente auctum. 22. Idem transverse sectum. ‘ - iy à PASSI- Pe ; Linn. Trans. Vet. XII. fab. 5 p. 70. Weddell Se and of a new Species of Passiflora. 71 PASSIFLORA racemosa. à Marti yrio cachudo (Lus. Bras.) B his subpeltatis, basi emarginatis, glabris, trilobis; lobis ova- tis, acutiusculis, integerrimis, intermedio productiori ; petiolis quadriglandulosis; floribus terminalibus, racemosis ; calycis laciniis acinaciformibus, corollà longioribus, apice introrsüm bicornibus. | Tas. VI. _ Radix perennis, caule crassior, obconica, inque ramos obconicos inferne multifibratos, divisa. Inodora est, atque nullo alio sapore, nisi herbaceo, prædita, sicque totius plantæ partes aliæ sunt. Caulis sarmentosus, teres, glaber, ut tota planta; inferné prope radicem crassitudine digiti, lignosus, subrimosus, nec tamen su- berosus, superné filiformis, crassitudine fili sutorii aut tenuior, alté arbores scandens, ramosus. Rami etiam filiformes, alterni, scandentes, superiores racemis terminati, penduli. - Folia alterna, duas ad quatuor uncias inter sese distantia, paten- tia, coriacea, utrinque glabra, saturaté viridia, impunctata, basi emarginata, subpeltata, omnia triloba (caulis infimis exceptis, qua sæpe ovata) lobis ovatis, acutiusculis, integerrimis, medio latiori longiorique, lateralibus binerviis, sinubus obtusis, à basi “ad lobi medii apicem tres ad quatuor uncias longa, transverse, inter lobos laterales, tres ad quatuor uncias cum dimidia lata. Petiolus folii laminà ferè dimidio brevior, sesquiunciam ad duas uncias aut pauló ultrà longus, sübteres, basi articulatus, glan- dulis szepiüs quatuor, sessilibus, ovatis, apice leviter concavis, instructus, quarum: duze infra ipsius medium subopposite, et duæ iux É 12 M. Brotero’s Descriptions of a new Genus named Araujia, du: aliz paulo infra folii laminz basin oblique inter sese di- stantes, sitze sunt. Ad basin et latus petioli stipulæ duce solute, oppositz, sessiles aut subsessiles, cauli appressæ, utrinque glabre, integerrimæ, acutiusculz, mucronate, ovate aut subcordato-ovate, basi ob- liquatæ, inæquilateræ, semilamina interna dimidio angustiore, semiunciam ad fere unciam longz, caduce. Inter stipulas, et in axilla petioli, cirrhus filiformis, simplex, viri- dis, primum recté tensus, folio longior, demüm spiraliter tor- tus, folio equalis aut brevior. Flores in axillis foliorum nulli, sed ramos et caulem terminantes, racemosi, inodori. Caulis et ramorum apices sub racemo nudi, eorum nodi cirrhis solüm parati, et à casu foliorum stipularum- que leviter tuberculati. Pedunculus communis (seu interno- dium supremum racemo immediatum) brevis. Racemus sim- plex, pendulus, aphyllus, et foliorum loco stipulis instructus. Ejus rachis, seu pedunculus communis prolongatus, cylindra- cea, septem, octo uncias et ultrà longa: interdüm, praesertim cum nullos fructus alit, viva persistit, novosque ramulos ex emortuorum pedunculorum axillis protrudit. Pedunculi partiales simplicissimi, sepe novem ad tredecim, inii: mus et supremi sepius solitarii, alii alternè bini, unciam . aut paulo ultra longi, teretes, ex patenti adscendentes (in fructüs - veró maturitate penduli) pauló infra calycem articulati, ibique - demüm à casu involucri trituberculati ; basi inter binos, et sub solitariis, cirrhus brevis spiraliter tortus, ibidemque ad eorum latera stipulae duz opposite, adpresse, versus apicem rachis sensim minores, citò caducæ, ex omni parte illis, que ad peti- olorum basin site sunt, persimiles. Floris involucrum ad duas lineas, duasve cum dimidia, infra | calycem and of a new Species of Passiflora. 73 calycem situm, triphyllum, foliolis ovatis, leviter inæquilateris, mucronatis, integerrimis, subsessilibus, glabris, erectis, primüm . flori recenter è gemmá evoluto subæqualibus, demüm calycis tubo pauló brevioribus, omnibus, sæpè multó ante floris aperti- onem, caducis. Cal. perianthium inferum, glabrum, monophyllum, inferné tubu- losum, limbo profundè quinquepartito ; laciniis petalis corollæ nonconformibus, extüs sordidé puniceis, latissimé carinatis, carina acinaciformi, intüs ferè usque ad apicem concavis, coc- cineis, apice introrsim semilunato-bicornibus (corniculo supe- riori longiori uncinatoque) patentissimis, duas uncias cum di- midià longis, tres lineas et ultra in medio latis, simul cum co- rollà marcescentibus ; tubo cylindraceo, obscuré subpuniceo, obsolete decemlineato, duas ad tres lineas longo, inferné duas lineas aut pauló ultra lato. Dum inapertum, tumidè obconi- cum, argutissimé quinquangulum, profunde quinquesinuatum. Corollæ petala quinque, fauci calycis inserta, ipsiusque laciniis 4 ferè breviora, patentia, semilanceolata, obtusiuscula, inte- gerrima, planiuscula, extüs leviter carinata, intùs subcanalicu- lata, in solo natali utrinque coccinea. ! Nectarium corona triplex, filamentosa, filis omnibus supernè albis, inferne cæruleis ; intima exteriori altitudine zqualis, filis circa stipitem cylindraceum conniventibus, inter sese æqualibus, simplicibus, infernè membranâ coalitis, margini receptaculi elevato, fundum calycis circumcingenti, adnatis; due alix fauci calycis sub petalis insertæ, intermedia brevior, filis vix extra calycis faucem exertis, erectis, apice subcapitatis, inter sese æqualibus ; exterior filis simplicibus, duas tresve lineas extra calycis faucem prolongatis, patentibus, inæqualibus, illis, quz calycis laciniis sunt opposita, longioribus. | à Stam. filamenta quinque, summo stipiti sub germine inserta, basi VOL. XII. L leviter 74 M. Bnorzno's Descriptions of a new Genus named Araujia, leviter coalita, pallidé viridia, sublinearia, erecto-patula. An- there sublineares, obtusæ cum brevi acumine, incumbentes, ex viridi lutescentes, medio et lateribus unisulcate, bilocu- lares. Pist. Germen superum, oblongum, subovale, obsoleté ut tum, glabrum, pallide viride, apici stipitis insidens, qui ad unam unciam extra calycis faucem protenditur, cylindraceus, viridis, basi pentagoná latior. Styli tres, supernè crassiores, pallide virides, ad antheras recurvi. Stigmata capitata, ex lu- tescenti viridia. Peric. Bacca pedicellata, ovalis, trisulcata, glabra, pallidé viridis, ad duas uncias longa, unilocularis, polysperma, carnosa, demüm exsucca. | Semina axillata, ovata, compressa, receptaculo triplici, quod cor- tici bacce longitudinaliter adnatum est, adhærentia. Habitat in umbrosis sylvaticis inque solo glareoso littorali unam fere leucam ab urbe Riojanerià dissitis, et alibi in Brasilia, Floret Novembri, Decembri. Frutex sarmentosus, ob pul- cherrimos flores sat dignum hortorum ornamentum. Hanc novam speciem clariss. E, I. A. Woodford, botanices dili- gentissimus, in Brasilia invenit, in Europam secum transvexit, et mecum, uti alias quoque stirpes rariores in horto suo Olisi- ponensi cultas, benevolé communicavit. Quantüm ab omni- bus aliis hucusque cognitis congeneribus differat, ex florescen- _ tiâ racemosá, calycis formá, et aliis notis in descriptione posi- - tis, abundé patet. Oss. In solo natali caules duos ex eádem radice sæpè fert, quo- rum unus alté scandens, et omninó defoliatus fructificat; alter foliatus, scandens aut procumbens, tardiüs, hoc est, uno aliove anno transacto postquàm primus fructus tulit, florifer. Variat in Europá 1*. Aliquorum foliorum petiolis triglandulosis aut quinque- Zinn Trans. VA. XII. Fab.6.p.74. ACHT, 2 € N ^ and of a new Species of Passiflora. 75 quinqueglandulosis, nec quadriglandulosis; 2°. Calyce et co- .. TOllá pits minüsve puniceis, nec coccineis; 3%. Nectarii filis albidis, inferné virescentibus, nec cæruleis. ` . AE SES EXPLICATIO. : Tas. VI. Fig. 1. Unius rami nondum florentis pars extrema cum foliis, sti- pulis et cirrhis. | (a.) Folii petiolus cum glandulis quatuor. (5.) Stipulae. (c.) Cirrhus. Fig. 2. Alterius rami pars extrema nuda, racemosa. (A.) Racemi ex arbore vicinâ penduli pedunculus communis. (aaaaa.) Floris primarii aperti calycinz lacinie, dorso acinaci- formes, apice bicornes. (bbbbb.) Corolle petala. (B.) Staminum anthere, et filamenta stipiti summo inserta. (C.) Stigmata et styli cum germine apici stipitis insidente. (DD.) Nectarii corona triplex. (EE) Pedunculi partiales, alterné bini, cum cirrho inter ipsos spiralitèr torto. — m Pedunculi articulatio. | (4). Calycis pars inferior tubulosa. TU ) Calycis pars superior inaperti quinquangula. E ) Unus ex floribus extremis involucratus. — — ag .) Racemi pars extrema cum stipulis, et nonnullis floribus |. involucro penitus tectis. . Fig. 3. Unius floris recentér è gemma evoluti involucrum tri- phyllum: (a.) ejusdem foliolum separatum. Fig. 4, Bacca matura. p" ^ 62 XI. Some XI. Some Observations on the natural Family of Plants called CowrosiTx. By Robert Brown, Esq. F.R.S. Libr. L.S. Read Feb. 6 and 20, 1816. Tux class Syngenesia of the Linnean artificial system, as at pre- sent limited, constitutes a family strictly natural, and by far the most extensive in the vegetable kingdom. It is also, with the ex- ception of Grasses only, the most generally diffused, and is almost equally remarkable with that order, for the great apparent unifor- mity in the structure of its essential parts of fructification. This class of plants, for which I retain the established name Composit, in preference to any of those recently proposed, has lately become the subject of a minute and accurate exami- nation by Mons. Henri Cassini ; two of whose Memoirs on the Style and Stamina of the class, alread y published in the Journal de Physique*, are in my opinion models for botanical investiga- . tion. ! t Mp t Lu c rS A few years before the publication of M. Cassini's Memoirs on Compositæ I was induced to examine a considerable part of this extensive family, chiefly with a view to the more accurate deter- mination of the New Holland plants belonging to it. My principal object in the present paper is to communicate such general observations, the results of this investigation, as either have not yet been published by M. Cassini, or respecting which I consi- der myself to have anticipated that author in my General Remarks * Of 1813 and 1814, eh kar gore aor d on Mr. BnowN's Observations, ác. 77 on the Botany of New Holiand, appended to Captain Flinders's Voyage to Terra Australis. : To these observations I shall add some remarks on certain ge- nera of Compositz, which occur repeatedly under different names. in late systematic works, and whose structure and limits appear to be imperfectly understood. _ My first observation relates to the peculiar disposition of the © nerves or vessels of the corolla of this family of plants. In the essay already mentioned, which appeared early in the summer of 1814, I have noticed this peculiarity in the following terms : “The whole of Composite agree in two remarkable points of structure of their corolla; which, taken together at least, materi- ally assist in determining the limits of the class. The first of these is its valvular estivation ; this however it has in common with several other families. ‘The second I believe to be peculiar to the class, and hitherto unnoticed. It consists in the disposi- tion of its fasciculi of vessels or nerves; these, which at their . origin are generally equal in number to the divisions of the co- rolla, instead of being placed opposite to these divisions, and passing through their axes as in other plants, alternate with them; each of the vessels at the top of the tube dividing into two equal ~ branches, running parallel to and near the margins of the corre- sponding lacmiæ, within whose apices they unite. These, as they exist in the whole class and are in great part of it the only ves- sels observable, may be called primary. In several genera, how- ever, other vessels occur, alternating with the primary, and occu- pying the axes of the laciniz: in some cases these secondary ves- sels being most distinctly visible in the laciniæ, and becoming gradually fainter as they descend the tube, might be regarded as recurrent; originating from the united apices of the primary branches ; 18 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the branches ; but in other cases, where they are equally distinct at the base of the tube, this supposition cannot be admitted. A monopetalous corolla not splitting at the base is necessarily con- nected with this structure, which seems also peculiarly weli adapted to the dense inflorescence of Composite; the vessels of the corolla and stamina being — and so disposed as to be least liable to suffer by pressure.” At the date of this publication I certainly had no knowledge of any similar observations having been previously made: but Inow - see in M. Cuvier's account of the proceedings of the Institute of France for 1815, that M. Cassini is considered as having antici- pated me on this subject, and as he says in * termes non équivo- ques." What these terms are, appears by a letter I have received from M, Cassini himself, in which he states his claim to rest on the following passage : | os B HOS * Chaque fleur hermaphrodite ou male contient cinq étamines, correspondant aux — nervures de la Sorone et par conséquent alternes avec ses lobes.” This passage occurs in a Memoir on the Stamina of Compositæ, which was read to the Institute of France in July 1813, and first appeared with the substance of that Memoir in the Journal de Physique, said to be for April 1814; but the actual date of the publication of which I have reason to believe was somewhat later, and very nearly corresponding with that at which M. de Jussieu was in possession of à copy of my essay containing the observations already quoted. I conclude it is not supposed I could have been acquainted with the passage in the original memoir, unless the report usually made on memoirs read to the Institute should have been printed, and should have actually no- — ticed this passage or the discovery itis now said to contain. - But independently of the near equality of dates, I cannot con- sider © sc natural Family of Plants called Composite. —— 79 sider my observations as either wholly or even in any considera- ble degree anticipated by the passage in question. My observa- tions notice not only the disposition of the five vessels in the tube of the corolla, but their ramification in the laciniz, by no means. a necessary consequence of that disposition ; they notice also the existence, in several genera of Composite, of five vessels alter- . nating with those, and which I considered secondary in this order, though they occupy the place of the primary vessels in other fa- milies: and it is this inverted disposition, indicated in the greater part of the class by the primary being the only vessels existing, which I have considered as of material importance in determin- ing the limits of Composite, though by no means as affording an essential practical character for the whole class. In the passage quoted from M. Cassini (the only one I can find relative to the subject in the memoir in which it occurs), the existence of five nerves or vessels in the tube of the corolla, alternating with its laciniz, is stated, but their division and. dis- position in the laciniæ are not noticed; it is at the same time to be inferred from the terms of the passage, that no other vessels exist in the tube of the corolla: and itis equally evident that, so far from. announcing this disposition of vessels as a discovery, or peculiar to the order, the author rather considers it either as a fact already known, or as the usual structure. That M. Cassini was not then. aware of the importance of the fact which he had imperfectly stated, appears likewise from his having, many months after his. memoir was read, and at a time when he says he had finished his analysis of the corolla, proposed.a name for the class, taken from a supposed peculiarity in the structure of the filament, a name which he is now inclined to abandon for one derived from the dis- position of vessels in the corolla. Since 80 - Mr. Brown’s Observations on the Since my attention has been again turned to the subject, I have endeavoured to collect all that has been observed on the nerves or vessels of the corolla of Composite, a brief account of which may be not altogether without interest. The earliest notice I have been able to find is-contained in a passage (in page 170) of Grew's Anatomy of Plants, where, in speaking of syngenesious flosculi, he says, **they are frequently ridged, or as it were hem'd like the edge of a band." And his figure of a magnified floret of the common Marigold, in tab. 61, gives a tolerable idea of the marginal vessels of its laciniæ. Grew however takes no notice of the trunks from which these branches arise, either in his text or plates. à Van Berkhey, in his Dissertation on Composite, published at Leyden in 1760, though he makes no mention of the nerves of the corolla in his text, yet in all the magnified figures he has given both of ligulate and tubular florets, correctly represents the trunks of the primary vessels, without however noticing their ra- mification in the laciniæ. I am anticipated therefore by this au- thor’s figures exactly in the same degree as by the passage con- tained in M. Cassini’s second memoir. The accurate Schmidel, in the few Composite which occur in his Icones, has correctly represented the trunks of the primary ves- sels, but has equally omitted their ramifications. In the Analysis Florum of Batsch, a work published in 1790, the object of which was to give an idea of the structure of the natu- ral families of plants, by a minute description and magnified figures of one or more species selected from each, Coreopsis tripte- - ris occurs ; and although the vessels of its tubular floret are very indistinctly figured, yet both their trunks and branches are cor- rectly described. The same author however, who in 1802 pub- lished natural- Family of Plants called Composite. — eu lished an ingenious work on the natural families of plants*, takes no notice of the vessels of the corolla in the character of Compo- site which he has there proposed. In the figures of syngenesious plants given by Schkuhr}, where- ever the ligule of Cichoraceæ are magnified, the trunks of the nerves are correctly represented ending in the sinuses; unless in one plate containing Lactuca.virosa and Sonchus sibericus, in both of which the vessels are made to pass through the axes of the teeth ; but in no case are the marginal branches noticed. It is singular that this generally accurate author, in the many magnified figures - he has given of tubular florets, has only in two cases represented the trunks of their vessels, namely in Echinops Ritro, where they are correctly placed, and in Silphium trifoliatum, where, though only five vessels are visible, they are erroneously made to pass through the axes of the laciniz. The only remaining author that notices these vessels is M. Mir- bel, who in the second part of his valuable Elémens de Physio- logie Végétale et de Botanique, published in 1815, introduces into his character of Composite the fact of the laciniz of the co- rolla being furnished with marginal nerves. This observation, if not original, the author may have adopted either ftom my essay already quoted, of which he was in possession soon after its pub- lication, or from M. Cassini's third memoir, which was read to the _ Institute of France six months after that essay appeared: but he could not have derived it from the passage in that author's second ‘memoir, on which he rests his claim; no notice being there taken of the disposition of vessels in the lacinie. . . In M. Cassini's memoir expressly on the Corolla of Composite, which was read to the Institute of France in December 1814, and of which an abstract, by the author himself, is given in a làte * 'l'abulz affinitatum regni vegetabilis. ; . In Botanisches Handbuch. VOL. XII. M number 82 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the . number of the Nouveau Bulletin des Sciences, the disposition of vessels in the corolla is expressed in the following terms: * Chacun des cinq petales dont se compose la corolle est muni de deux nervures trés simples qui le bordent d'un bout à l'autre des deux cótés, et confluent par conséquent au sommet," On this statement I have several remarks to offer. And first, I object to its hypothetical language. Whatever opinion may be formed of the theory here adopted by the author, namely, that -every monopetalous corolla is in reality composed of several con- fluent petals; a theory first proposed by Linneus himself in his Prolepsis Plantarum, and ably supported on different grounds by Mons. Decandolle in his excellent Théorie Elémentaire de la Botanique ; I can see no advantage in adopting its language in stating a fact of this kind, especially if — as a — character. . For my own part, I consider ahis opinion as correct in the sense in which it was held by Linneus, without, however, connecting with it the ingenious hypothesis of M. Decandolle, namely, that petals are only modified stamina. It remains to be seen on what ground M. Cassini has adopted this theory, as proposed by M. Decan- dolle, for Composite, the only family which seems to present a very important objection to it, in having its principal, and in the greater part of the order its only, vessels occupying the lines of junction of the supposed united petals. To adapt this disposition of vessels to the theory, M. Cassini is obliged to subdivide their apparently simple trunks ; a division, however, which may be regarded as entirely hypothetical. From the observations I have made on the subject, I have no doubt that these trunks are equally simple with the secondary nerves when present, or with the primary in other families. I find them to con- sist of two kinds of vessels, the spiral and ligneous. Of the spiral vessels natural Family of Plants called Composite. — — 83 vessels there are generally several in the cord : in Helianthus mul- tiflorus, however, I have not been able to find more than one, either. in the trunk of the nerve above the insertion of stamina, or in the branches of the laciniæ. It will be of some interest to verify this fact (which I by no means give with absolute confidence), both on account of the apparently formidable objection it presents to the theory in question, and also that, in following it up by an examination of the point of division, a clearer idea may be ob- tained of the ramification of spiral vessels than has hitherto been given. | : My second objection to M. Cassini’s account is, that he de- scribes the nerves as marginal through their whole length. I have formerly, in the passage already quoted, stated them to be pa- rallel and approximated to the margins of the lacinia. Perhaps in no instance can the branches be considered as strictly margi- nal; in many cases they are manifestly distinct from the mar- gins, and in the genus Hymenopappus are further removed from them than from the axis of the laciniæ. In H. scabioseus there is also an evident inequality of the two branches in each lacinia, the stronger extending nearly to the apex, while the weaker either entirely disappears before it reaches the stronger, or unites with it considerably below its termination. In H. tenuifolius this irre- gularity is still greater; one branch being not unfrequently alto- gether wanting, and even the remaining branch considerably weak- ened: where this happens a secondary vessel is always produced, | though very few flosculi are furnished with five complete middle DNE o e TOR B ; à - To the fact stated by M. Cassini that the lateral nerves are always simple, I have met with only one apparent exception, in an unpublished species of Madia, where they are connected by a few branches with the secondary or middle nerve, which in this M 2 plant 84. = Mr. Brown’s Observations on the plant is more strongly marked than the primary, and from which indeed these connecting branches probably originate. It must, I think, be admitted by M. Cassini, that in many genera of Composite five vessels passing through the axes of the segments exist, even ten others are occasionally found, as in Helianthus, though these can hardly be traced below the insertion of stamina. But as it has been already shown that the lateral or primary vessels are not strictly marginal through their whole length, and as one instance has been Biden which their branches, if not them- selves subdivided, are at least connected by ramifications of the middle nerves*, it follows that a monopetalous corolla having in its tube fifteen nerves with distinct origins, three of which are con- tinued through each of its segnients, and unite together at the apex, would upon the whole better correspond with the definition M. Cassini has given of the corolla of Composite, than the actual disposition of vessels in that order. Now such a structure exists inthe whole of Goodenoviæ-, a family of plants very nearly related ci ih to -** M. Cassini himself (in a note to his third memoir published in the Journal de Phy- sique for February 1816, p. 129) hae given another instance of the ramification of nerves in. Tva frutescens. T Ihave formerly observed (in Prodr. Flor. Nov. Holl. p. 580, and in General Tomais. on the Botany of Terra Australis) that Euthales and Velleia, genera belonging to Gooden- ovice, exhibit the remarkable and nearly peeuliar character of a corolla having the lower part of the tube cohering with the ovarium, while the calyx is entirely distinct, I have at the same time remarked that, even in those genera of the same natural family in which the calyx is coherent, the tube of the corolla may be supposed to be continued down to the base of the ovarium ; and that this becomes even evident in such species as have the adhering part di- lated into nectariferous processes; or in those where, the segments of the calyx not being closely approximated, the coloured corolla is visible in the interstices. In some species of Goodenia, particularly G. decurrens and bellidifolia, I find it practicable to separate not only the adhering calyx, but also the tube of the corolla from the ovarium. In the tube thus separated it appears that the lateral nerves, which preserve their parallelism to the middle nerve nearly to the base of the segment, become more evidently divergent below the point natural Family of Plants called Composite. 85 to Composite. It exists also in Ernodea, in which the lateral nerves, though they give out externally a few branches, observe the same course, and terminate in the same manner in the laciniæ as those of Composite. A similar disposition is observable in certain genera of Solanacez, as Datura and Cestrum, though in these the lateral nerves are more ramified; and their trunks generally less distinct in the laciniæ. It appears therefore that, in adopting M. Cassini's theoretical expression for the vascular structure of point of adhesion, and iu such a degree that the corresponding branches of the neighbour- ing segments unite with each other considerably above the middle of the tube, forming a common trunk, which is continued to the base of the ovarium; the five trunks thus formed uniting internally with those from which the filaments originate, and externally with the axes of the opposite segments of the calyx. The middle nerves of the segments of the corolla are in like manner continued below the point of cohesion to the real base of th tube. ; . The analogy of this disposition of vessels in the corolla of Goodenovie to that of Com- posite is obvious. To assimilate entirely the two structures, it is only necessary to suppose a deeper division of the five primary vessels of Composite, and a continuation of the tube of the corolla below its apparent base to that of the ovarium. That this is its real origin, is rendered not improbable both from the analogous structure now described in the family of Goodenoviæ, and from the manifestly hypogynous corolla of Brunonia; a genus in many respects still more nearly related to Composite, though differing in the disposition of the vessels of its corolla, | The more direct proof of this origin, derived from an examination of the surface itself, can hardly, perhaps, be expected where the parts are generally so small, and where, as I conceive, the surface of the pericarpium in many cases depends less on. that of the cohering envelopes, than on the proper figure of the ovarium itself, as seems to be likewise the case in Umbellate, — - an + s | There are however a few cases in which this opinion respecting the origin of corolla in Composit may derive some additional-support from the appearance of the surface of the ovarium, as in Marshallia and Hymenopappus, in both: of which genera, but particularly in: the former, it is marked with ten longitudinal striæ, of which the five stronger are continued into the five nerves. of the corolla, the remaining five ending abruptly at the apex of the ovarium. the 86 . Mr. Brown’s Observations on ihe the corolla of Composite, one — aw existing is lost *. | The principal peculiarity, however, consists in the corolla of a syngenesious plant, when reduced to its smallestnumber of nerves, having these nerves alternating with its segments in the tube. I am acquainted with no instance of this order of reduction in the nerves of any other monopetalous corolla, but I observe an ap- parent tendency to it in Portlandia and Catesbea. In the tube of the corolla of both these genera there are ten nerves, of which the five that alternate with the segments are manifestly stronger, and seem to furnish the greater part of the vascular system of the upper part of the tube and of the segments; the intermediate nerves being there somewhat like recurrent branches. I shall conclude thissubject by observing, that although the ex- istence of nerves alternating with the segments of a monopetalous corolla, dividing below the sinus and uniting their branches at the apex of the segment, be rare, this disposition is comparatively fre- quent in a monophyllous calyx, especially where its æstivation is valvular. Labiatæ furnish the most striking examples of this structure. I am not however acquainted with any instance of a calyx having five nerves only, and those alternating with its seg- ments. | The æstivation or condition of the corolla before expansion is the subject of my second remark on Composite. I have, iu the * A still stronger objection to M. Cassini's definition is, that while its application to Composite is only hypothetical, it very nearly corresponds with the actual disposition of vessels in certain polypetalous genera. Thus in Pittosporum revolutum, each of the petals has three nerves with distinct origins. Of these the two lateral, evidently within the margins, less so, however, than in Hymenopappus, are quite simple in the ungues, and ramify more or less in the lamina, near the top of which they unite with each other and with the middle nerve, observations natural Family of Plants called Composite. — 87 — formerly quoted, stated this to be valvular, that is, having the margins of the segments applied to each other and dehiscing like the valves of a capsule. As I have remarked in the same place that this estivation exists in several other fami- lies, it is rather surprising that M. Cassini, in the abstract of his third memoir given in the Nouveau Bulletin des Sciences for last October, should seem to consider this characteras peculiar to Com- positæ*. It appears also- that he is not aware of any exception to itin the class. I have however, in a different part of the same essay, noticed one exception existing in Chuquiraga, and I have since found another in Corymbium. In both these genera the æstivation is induplicate, that is, the margins of the segments are doubled in, so that in the unexpanded state none of them are visible. I have * * Since this paper was read, M. Cassini has published his memoir (in the Journal de Physique for February 1816), in which he states the same æstivation to exist in certain other families, namely, Campanulaceæ, Lobeliaceæ, and Rubiacee. This observation, if applied to the whole of these families, as is evidently the author's intention, is correct only with respect to Campanulacez, from which I have separated Stylidee as a distinct order, partly, as I have stated, on account of its imbricate æstivation. In a considerable part of the Lobeliacez of Jussieu, which includes my Goodenoviæ, the æstivation is not valvular but indu- plicate: and though in Rubiaceæ the valvular mode is very general, there are many remark- able exceptions to it, as Gardenia, Ixora, Pavetta, Coffea, and several other genera, where it is unilaterally and obliquely imbricate, as in most of the Apocineæ, with which Linneus united them under the name of Contortæ, derived from this very circumstance. On this subject I may be allowed further to remark, that M. Cassini, who in the memoir now cited has repeatedly asserted his claim to the priority of the observation on the disposition of vessels in the corolla, has in treating of its æstivation omitted to notice what had been already published respecting it in my essay above quoted, where I conclude he must have seen my observation, as he refers to the sentence containing it. The æstivation of corolla in Composita is also noticed in the observations on Brunonia, contained in my Prodromus: Flore Nove Hollandie, which I suppose he has not seen: I may therefore, for the general importance of æstivation of calyx and corolla in affording characters both for Orders and Genera, refer him to almost every page of the same work, and to its preface, for an observation on the degree of attention that had been previously paid to this point of structure, which will enable him to correct in some measure his own remark on the subject. : in 88 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the in the passage referred to observed that the valvular and indupli- cate modes of æstivation easily pass into each other, merely by an addition or abstraction of the elevated margins of the laciniz : instances of their abstraction, and of the consequent conversion of the induplicate into the valvular mode, occur in several Good- enoviæ, and in some Convolvulaceæ and Solanaceæ ; while Chuquiraga and Corymbium are examples of their addition i in an order where they are generally wanting. | My third remark is entirely borrowed from Schkuhr*, who states that in all Cichoracee or Ligulate the pollen is angular, and that in Corymbifere and Carduacee, or in all tubular florets, it is spherical or oval. All the figures which this author has given of pollen in Giit racez represent it as a regular icosahedron, except that of Gero- pogon glabrum, which is a dodecahedron. I believe neither of these forms of — has been observed in à mans — » plants. A fourth remark on — I do not offer with absolute confidence, as it is opposed to the statement of M. Cassini, on whose general accuracy I have great reliance. It relates to the disposition of the branches of the style or stigmata, which accord- ing to M. Cassini are lateral, or right and left with relation to the axis of the common receptacle ; whereas; 1 consider them as.an- terior and posterior, though in many cases by a slight degree of twisting in the style they acquire what M. past regards as their original position. os This may seem a point of very little consequence to establish. Independent however of the necessity of minute accuracy in every case, it appears to me to have some connexion with my fifth remark, which relates to the internal structure of the Ova- * Botanisches Handbuch 3, p. 8. rium natural Family of Plants called Composite. 89 rium of Composite. I am not aware of any thing baving been yet said on thissubject further than that it contains a single erect ovulum, inserted at the base of the cavity. In addition to this, I observe in the greater part of Compositz, whose ovarium I have examined, two very slender filiform cords, which, originating from opposite points of the base of the ovulum, or of its short footstalk, run up, and are more or less connected with, the lateral parietes of the ovarium, until they unite at the top of its cavity, immediately under the style; between which and the ovulum a connexion is thus formed. In many cases, as in Liatris spicata and Tussilago odorata, these cords are easily separa ble from the ovarium, and have such a degree of tenacity that they may be extracted from it en- tire, along with the ovulum. In other cases they more firmly co- here with the sides of the cavity: and in those plants in which I have been unable to see them distinctly, I conclude they are not absolutely wanting, but that their connexion with the parietes is still more intimate. These cords may be supposed to consist either solely of the vessels through which the ovulum is foecundated, or to contain also the remains or indications of a system of nourishing ves- sels, or chordæ pistillares, the position of which points out the true nature of the ovarium in this class, or the relation it has to the apparently less simple ovarium of other families. I am in- clined to adopt the latter supposition. In order, however, to be understood on this subject, it is necessary to premise that I con- sider the pistillum or female organ of all phznogamous plants to . be formed on the same plan, of which a polyspermous legumen or folliculus whose seeds are disposed in a double series may be taken as the type. A circular series of these pistilla, disposed round an imaginary axis, and whose number corresponds with . VOL. XII. © N that 90 <` Mr. Brown’s Observations on the that of the parts of the calyx or corolla, enters into my notion of a flower complete in all its parts. - But from this type and number of pintilik many iin take place, arising either from the abstraction of part of the complete series of organs, from their confluence, or from both these causes united ; with consequent. abortions and obliterations of parts in almost every degree. According to this hypothesis, the ovarium of asyngenesious plant is composed of two confluent ovaria; a struc» - ture which is in some degree indicated externally by the division of the style, and internally by the two cords which I consider as occupying the place of two parietal placentæ, each of these being made up of two confluent chordule, belonging to different parts of the compound organ: I am well aware how very paradoxical such an hypothesis must seem, especially when applied to a struc- ture apparently so simple as that of the ovarium of Compo- site; and I therefore regret that I am not yet fully prepared to bring forward in its support a series of facts.alread y. in my pos- session, consisting of deviations from the usual structure of organs, and particularly of instances of stamina changed into pistilla, . In the mean time it may give some plausibility to the hypo- thesis to remark, that there are families of plants strictly natural in which a series of degradations exist, if ¿l may so speak, from the assumed. perfect. Medis: to a structure as: iue as that of Composite. | «Thus in Proteacce we desk: ati types obi i pati fille in the many-seeded folliculus of Embothrium ; the first degree of im- perfection in that of Grevillea, where only one. ovulum of each series; remains ; a further-reduction: in the indehiscent mono- spermous fruit of. Leucospermum, in. which the insertion of the ovulum is lateral ; and. the simplest. form in Protea itself, where es the natural Family of Plants. called Composite. 9t the-single ovulum is inserted at the base of thecavity., Proteacex, however, exhibit a series of obliterations in the parts of a single pistillum only. An illustration more in point, though somewhat -less perfect as a series; may be taken from Goodenovie, an order of plants very nearly related to the-class of. which. we are treat- ing. In the greater part of: Goodenovie, the ovarium is-bilocular, each cell having an indefinite: number-of seeds; in the greater number of Scævole, each cell. is: reduced to: a. single evulum ; d in some species of the same genus; and in albthe species ot Dampiera, the ovarium, though retaining: its-external pes is reduced to a single monospermous»cell, with an-erect ovulum, as in Composite. The anadas exhibits a obliterations, more obviously analogous .to: those | ID eO | Ltd ANGIANTHUS. UT ttes Angianthus tomentosus of Wendland's Collectio Plantarum, (vol. ii. p.32. tab. 48.) published in 1809, is evidently thesame plant as my Cassinia aurea, described in the fifth volume of the second edition of Hortus. Kewensis, which did not appear till 1818. Wendland neither mentions the native country of his Angianthus, . nor from whence he received it. He must, no doubt, however, have obtained it from Kew Garden, where it was introduced and flowered from seeds which I collected in 1802, in the island of St. Francis, on the South coast of New Holland. “ed, 2 | Se aes ^MEXYERA. ddech SEA nc - This genus, described by Schreber in his edition of the Genera Plantarum, is not. adopted by Willdenow. Swartz, however, in his Flora Indiæ Occidentalis, has referred to it; and I have no doubt correctly, Eclipta sessilis of his Prodromus. On comparing this species of Meyera with a:plant in Sir Joseph Banks’s Herbarium, collected in Peru by Dombey, and which exactly agrees with Sobreya 104 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the Sobreya of the Flora Peruviana, it appears evident that this genus is reducible to Meyera. Enhydra of Loureiro's Flora cochinchi- nensis, though described somewhat differently, and referred to Polygamia segregata, 1 have little doubt, belongs to the same genus; as does unquestionably Hingstha of Roxburgh's unpub- lished Flora Indica, where it is also referred to Polygamia segre- gata. This plant, which I have examined, is scarcely distinct from a species of Meyera that grows in New South Wales. - Cryphiospermum of Mons. de Beauvois's interestin g Flore d'Oware et Benin, although reduced by him to Cichoracez, I have but little hesitation in referring also to Meyera. And lastly, Cesulia radicans of Willdenow, likewise a native of æquinoctial Africa, is perhaps not specifically different from Cryphiospermum repens of Mons. de Beauvois, . - eats . MELAMPODIUM was established by Linneus, in the first edition of Genera Plan- tarum and in Hortus Cliffortianus, from a specimen found by Houston near Vera Cruz, and communicated by Miller to Clif- ford, in whose Herbarium, now forming part of the collection of Sir Joseph Banks, it still exists. It does not appear that this plant has been found by any other botanist than Houston ; and according to the character given by Linneus of Melampodium, it must be considered the only species of the genus. | . In the second edition of Species Plantarum he added to it, but with a doubt, Me/ampodium australe, a plant adopted from Leefling, according to whose description the pappus and surface | of the seed are widely different from those of the original species. Swartz has referred to the genus a third species, M. humile, en- tirely distinct in these respects from both the former; and more recently a fourth species, M. dongifolium, with seeds differently: modified from all the others, has been annexed to it. | E But - natural Family of Plants called Composite. 105 But if these four plants, so extremely different from each other in pappus and form of the pericarpium, really belong to the same genus, as their habit seems strongly to indicate, there can be no reason to separate from them Alcina of Cavanilles, erroneously considered by Willdenow as a species of Wedelia: and Dysodium of Richard, published in Persoon's Synopsis, though differing from all the others in the form of its pericarpium and in that of its receptacle, must also be reduced to this genus. If, how- ever, the part described by Linneus as pappus in Melampodium americanum be really such, and if the pericarpium itself vary so widely both in form and surface, it would be inconsistent with the principles of division generally adopted in Composite, to unite all these ‘plants into one genus, notwithstanding their great resemblance in habit as well as in the other parts of fructifica- tion; and it would be at-least in vain to look for any cotebinig character in this part of their structure. À careful examination of the female flowers, especially in an early stage, removes this difficulty, by proving that the supposed external coat of the ovarium, with its various inequalities of sur- face, some of which have been described as pappus, is in reality an involute bractea or foliolum of the involucrum, like that of Micropus, completely inclosing the ovarium, but from which in several species of the genus it is entirely, andi in others in great iin distinct. | of l Cn ASPEDIA. e appears in E orster’s Prodromus Florule dei ot ins lium, where an essential generic character is given, but no de- scription of the species. The genus is adopted and the cha- racter received without remark by Willdenow in his edition of Species Plantarum, and by Persoon in his Synopsis. Among George Forster's drawings of subjects of natural history made in VOL. XII. P | | Cook's 106. Mr. Brown’s Observations on the Cook’s second voyage, and now in the library of Sir Joseph Banks, there is a figure of this plant, from which it appears that he origi- nally referred it to Stehelina; a proof that he had not at that time very carefully examined it. It is not improbable therefore that he afterwards proposed it as a distinct genus, belonging to Polygamia segregata, from finding that this had been already done by Solan- der, whose name (Cartodium), however, he did not think it neces- sary to adopt, and with whose generic character he probably was not acquainted. In his own he very erroneously states that there is no partial involucrum, and hence perhaps M. Labillardiere entirely overlooked Craspedia when he established his Richea from a nearly related species of the same genus. That such is the case I have long since briefly noticed*; and have ascertained by a comparison of the specimen of Craspedia uniflora in George Forster's Herbarium with .Richea glauca of Labillardiere, and other species of the same genus which I have observed in New Hollandisi»sq:5: «5 of olemist- ad) 3o acihniamsra-d ary - M. Labillardiere’s character of Richea is essentially correct. It is well to remark, however, that his general involucrum is formed of the bracteze subtending and in equal number with the outer partial capitula; and that the general receptacle has no other paleæ than the analogous bractee of the inner capitula. It is the more necessary to take this view of the structure, as I. have found in New Holland a nearly related genus (Calocephalus), which differs from Craspedia and Richea in the want of these brac- tex, as well as in the partial receptacles being without paleæ, and in the rays of the pappus being plumose only in the upper part. I have also another genus of this tribe ( Leucophyta) from the same country, differing from Calocephalus in having a. general involu- crum consisting of a few short bracteæ, in the squamæ of its par- tial involucra being concave and bearded at top, and in the rays * In Prodr, Flor, Nov. Holl. p. 555. " of ` natural Family of Plants called Composite. 107 ofits pappus being plumose through their whole length, as in Craspedia, from which it is distinguished by the want of palez on the partial receptacles, and very remarkably in habit. I have selected the foregoing genera as having been either pub- lished under different names, or, as it appears to me, unnecessarily subdivided. In this extensive class it would not be difficult to point out a much greater number consisting of species impro- perly united. One very remarkable case of this kind is the genus - s un | Casidus innt pii CRX se loisirs to which, as I intend to enter fully into the history and affinities of its species, I shall confine myself. ate wie" sont This genus was established by. Linneus in the sixth edition of his Genera Plantarum, where the natural character is given: but the following essential character, which is still retained, appears for the first time in the twelfth-edition of Systema Nature, in the third section of Polygamia æqualis : qe» ** Receptaculum paleaceum, Pappus pilosus, Calyx imbricatus.” The species originally referred. to Calea, in the second edition of Species Plantarum, are C. jamaicensis, oppositifolia, and Amellus, described from specimens in Browne's Jamaica Herbarium, which he had received a few years before, and incorporated with his "These three plants Linneus had originally referred to Santolina*, for which it seems to me rather less difficult to account than for his afterwards uniting them together to form his genus Calea ; two of them, according to his descriptions4 though in reality one only, being without pappus, and in other respects corresponding. with the generic character of Santolina ; and the third, which * [n Ameenit. Acad. vol. v. p. 404. + Loc. cit. P2 Browne 108 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the Browne had doubtfully referred to the same genus, though fur- nished with pappus, agreeing with the others in having opposite leaves. TER | But the difference in habit between all these plants and the original species of Santolina is so great, that it probably after- wards determined Linneus to remove them from that genus ; and although he found a sufficient generic character in the pappus of Calea jamaicensis only, he united with it the two other species, for a reason perhaps similar to what I have su pposed led him to separate all the three from Santolina. It is remarkable, however, that not one of these three original species of Calea corresponds with his character of the genus ; and that they in reality belong to three very distinct genera, on principles which, I conceive, Linneus himself would have admitted. | The first species, Calea jamaicensis, is the only one that even seems to agree with the generic character, in having pappus which at first sight (to the naked eye at least) might appear sim- ply capillary, but which on a closer examination proves to be of à very different and nearly peculiar structure. Of this species I have seen only one authentic specimen, received from Browne by Ehret, and now in Sir Joseph Banks's Herbarium. The speci- men in question, though incomplete, evidently belongs to the same species with * Conyza fruticosa cisti odore, floribus pallide purpureis, summitatibus ramulorum insidentibus,” of Sloane*, of which I have examined the original very perfect specimens in his Herbarium, preserved in the British Museum, and am satisfied that its pappus is of the same structure as that of Calea cordifolia of Swartz, who has well described it, but who has at the same time given a different account of that of C. Jamaicensist. '|hese .* Hist. Jam. i. p. 257. tab. 151. fig. 3. t Herb. vol. v. fol. 14 & 15. 1 In Flor. Ind, Occid. vol. iii, p. 1328, - two. natural Family of Plants called Composita. 109 two plants are the only published species of this genus, for which the name of Calea should be retained, and which may be distin- guished by the following characters : 3 CALEA. Calez species Linnei. Involucrum* imbricatum. Receptaculum paleaceum. — Flosculi tubulosi, uniformes, hermaphroditi. Anthere basi mutice. Stigmata acuta. Pappus paleaceus: radiis uninerviis, pinna- tifido-striatis. Fratices. (Americae. PERS PARA scabri. Folia op- posita, indivisa. Capitula} corymbosa, v..terminalia, v. avillaria. Involucri subovati foliola nervosa, obtusa. Paleæ receptaculi convezi distincte, figura et textura fere involucri. Corolle luteo-purpuree (Swartz), glabre, laciniis dinerviis. Achenium subcylindraceum v. obsolete angulatum, glabrum v. pubescens, callo baseos subobliquo. Pappus persistens albus, nitens; radiis simplici serie subulatis, indivisis, superne denticulatis. Ons. In Sir Joseph Banks's Herbarium there are two plants very nearly related to Calea, differing from it merely in having a radius of ligular female florets. If this difference be considered sufficient to constitute a genus, it may be named Caleacte. The first of these plants (C. urticifolia), with nearly ovate acute . crenated leaves, found by Houston near Vera Cruz, is Solidago _urticefolia of Miller, by whom it appears to have been culti- M vated. ‘The second, with deeply lobed or pinnatifid leaves (C. pinnatifida), was lately sent from Brazil by Mr. Sellow. — 'Yhe second Linnean species, Calea oppositifolia, has very little affinity to the first. In attending merely to the technical cha- racter of Santolina, it might be referred to that genus ; but it dif- * Calyx communis Linnei, t Corolla communis Linn. : ters. 110 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the... fers so widely, both in other points of structure and in habit, that there can be no question of the propriety of separating it, which may be done by the‘following character, and under the name of IsocAnPHA. Receptaculum conicum: paleis distinctis, conformibus : extimis in- volucrum constituentibus. Flosculi tubulosi, uniformes, herma- . phroditi. Anthere basi mutice. Stigmata appendice elongato, - hispidulo, acuto. Achenium prismaticum : pappo nullo. Herbæ (Americe æquinoctialis). Folia opposita. (vel alterna) in- | divisa. Capitula ovata, terminalia, terna (vel solitaria). Pales lanceolate. Corollz albide. Anthere basi truncate. Oss. I have so constructed the generic character of Isocarpha as . to include Spilanthus atriplicifolius of Linneus, which, however, differs very remarkably from Calea oppositifolia in having alter- nate leaves and solitary capitula, as well as in the texture and form of its palex. ive ig ^ iin The pappus, consisting of three or four very minute aristæ, de- —s€ribed by Swartz* in Calea oppositifolia; 1 have not been.able -to observe in any of the specimens that I have examined. The third species, Calea Amellus, is probably the same plant as Bidens scandens, which Linneus described in Hortus Cliffortianus, but, having no specimen in his own collection, appears to have forgotten. The original specimen in Clifford’s Herbarium, now in the possession of Sir Joseph Banks, evidently belongs to the same species, and perhaps to the same individual, with a specimen in Miller’s collection, which Mr. Dryander compared, and consi- dered to agree with Calea Amellus of the Linnean Herbarium. The true synonym, therefore, of Calea Amellus is “Bidens suffruti- * In Obs. Bot. p. 302. cosus * natural Family of Plants called Composite. iri cosus vimineus, foliis oblongo-ovatis oppositis, floribus comosis" of Browne* ; while Linneus has quoted and even derived his spe- cific name from the same author's “ Amellus ramosus, foliis remotis terminalibus, fulcris longis divaricatis4;” which, instead of belong- ing to Bidens scandens, I believe, for the following reasons, to be Bidens nivea. 1st, The figure in Burmann's Thesaurus Zeylani- cus}, quoted by Browne for his plant, though belonging to Lavenia erecta, is at the same time a good representation of Bidens nivea, and very unlike Bidens scandens. 2dly, Browne’s description in most respects very well agrees with the former species, but cer- tainly not with Bidens scandens. And Sdly, I infer that Bidens nivea was actually in Browne’s Herbarium, from finding it in the Flora Jamaicensis published in the 5th volume of Ameenitates Academic, and formed chiefly from that Herbarium ; thougha very erroneous reference for this species is there made to Browne’s first Santolina, which, from the description, cannot possibly be- long to Bidens nivea, but is probably Verbesina gigantea. M. Decandolle has lately established a new genus, Salmea, con- sisting of Bidens scandens, Bidens hirsuta, and a third species which I have not examined. ‘These plants are very properly se- parated from Bidens by this excellent botanist, and well distin- guished both from that genus and from Melananthera. It is rather remarkable, however, that he has not thought it necessary to compare Salmea with Spilanthus, from which, according | to his description, it differs only in its imbricate involucrum. But as in. Spilanthus the foliola of the involucrum are not exactly equal, and are disposed a at least in a double series, I have in- ‘Biche, Tats. 317. 7 EO PR HS 1 Eb pottipiidiquniit scrophularie — foliis oppositis, Burm. Thesaur. am p. 95. €. 42. (dca 112 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the troduced some additional distinctions into the following charac- ter of SALMEA. | Decandolle in Cat. Hort. Monspel. p. 140. Involucrum imbricatum. | Receptaculum conicum, paleis persisten- tibus. Flosculi tubulosi, uniformes, hermaphroditi (5-fidi). An- there sagittate. Achenium verticaliter com pressym, bi-arista tum ; aristis persistentibus (apteris v. alatis). — Frutices (Americæ æquinoctialis) sepius decumbentes. Folia op- posita, indivisa. Inflorescentia terminalis, subpaniculata, vel corym- bosa. Corolle albide. Paleæ receptaculi post lapsum pericarpiorum persistentes. Oss. Of this genus I have examined specimens of three species in Sir Joseph Banks’s Herbarium, differing from each other in several very remarkable characters. | t | .. 1. Salmea scandens, (Decand.l. c.) in which the aristæ are equal and without any membranaceous border: stigmata remarkably dilated, tongue-shaped, obtuse, not hispid, obscurely papulose, and apparently withont any terminal appendix: style dilated at the base into a hemispherical bulb which is truncated underneath. 2. Salmea hirsuta, (Decand. |. c.) whose aristæ are unequal ; the inner, which is the larger, being furnished with an evident ala; the outer having a narrow margin only: stigmata sharp and spreading: style dilated into an ovate bulb which has an attenuated base. : 3. Salmea? curviflora (nob.) differs from both the preceding in the tube of its corolla being remarkably bent outwards. In place ofthe inner arista there is a broad obtuse wing, of which the in- ner margin is straight and thickened, the outer continued down nearly to the base of the pericarpium: the outer arista is winged: and natural Family of Plants called Composita. 113 and besides these, one or two minute processes are generally ob- servable. Stigmata revolute *. In the 12th edition of Systema Nature, Linneus added to his genus Calea a fourth species, namely Calea scoparia; for what rea- son it would be difficult to discover, as it does not resemble, either * In theremarkable character of its re-curved florets, as well as in some other respects, this species of Salmea agrees with Spilanthus arboreus of George Forster (in Commentat. Gotting. ix. p. 66.), of which he originally formed his genus Laxmannia ; from a very er- roneous view of its structure, however, having described the Nectarium or glandula epigyna as a * germen superum ;” the real, though imperfect, germen with its two aristæ as a e perianthium bidentatum," and consequently referring the genus to Polvgamia segregata. When he afterwards corrected these errors and reduced Laxmannia to. Spilanthus, he did not discover that he had only the imperfect hermaphrodite or male plant before him. That Spilanthus arboreus is really dioecious, I have ascertained from the examination of numerous specimens collected by Sir Joseph Banks in the Island of St. Helena, where it forms a small tree called by the inhabitants White-wood. It is Bidens arborea and per- haps also Spilanthus tetrandrus of Dr. Roxburgh's List of Plants appended to General Beat- son's Tracts on St. Helena; the former being probably the female, the latter as tarved variety of the male plant. In re-establishing Spilanthus arboreus as a genus, sufficiently distinct from Bidens, Spi- lanthus, and Salmea, it will not, I conclude, be considered expedient to recur to Forster's name Laxmannia, which as far as relates to this plant is connected only with a series of blunders, was abandoned by the author himself, and has since been applied to another ge- nus already generally adopted. It may be —— by the following character, sat named PETROBIUM. Bia polyphyllum subduplici serie: exteriore breviore, foliolis paucioribus 4 . ceptaculum paleaceum, planiusculum. Flosculi dioici, tubulosi, 4-fidi : Masculi : Bn ris exsertis ; Stigmatibus acutis hispidulis : Feminei : Staminibus sterilibus ; ; resin acutis recurvis. Achenium v. parallelo compressum v. creen ae (2-3) aristatis : : aristis persistentibus, antrorsum. denticulatis. - ; Arbor (Insulæ Ste Helenz). Folia opposita, indivisa. EN idrednalis, brachiata. In- .. volucrum oblongum. Paleæ receptaculi squamis involucri subsimiles. Corollulæ ochroleu- cæ, tubo arcuato-recurvo (ut capitulum primo intuitu radiatum videatur). Mas. Antheris nigricantibus, basi emarginatis, appendice apicis brevissimo, acuto; loculis vestigio septi longitudinalis instructis. Fem. Staminibus sterilibus distinctis, antheris sagitiatis cassis. VOL. XII. Q in 114 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the in its fructification or habit, any of the three genera of which, as has been shown, Ca/ea was originally composed. This fourth species, which he had at first referred to Chrysocoma*, is now known to be dicecious ;—Browne, by whom it was first described and figured, and one of whose specimens I have examined, Lin- neus, and even Swartz when he published his Observationes Bo- tanice, being acquainted with the male plant only; which, how- ever, all of them considered hermaphrodite: nor is there any reason to doubt that Gærtner’s genus Sergilus is also the male of this species; although he has ventured to describe the colour of the embryo, deceived, probably, by the size of the imperfect ovarium, and the colour of its inner surface. Professor Swartz has since given a more satisfactory account of Calea scoparia, and has referred it to Baccharis f ; to which ge- nus as Richard f and Jussieu § have proposed to limit it, namely to the frenoi species of. America, it unquestionably belongs. This limitation of Baccharis it may, upon the whole, be expe- dient to adopt; by doing so, however, a name of Dioscorides is applied to a genus of plants found only in the new continent; while, notwithstanding the contrary opinion is expressed by M. de Jussieu ||, sufficient distinctions exist between those species of Bac- charis from which the Linnean character was taken, and Conyza when reduced to its original species, C. squarrosa and bifrons, and a few others since added to the genus: for these differ from Inula chiefly in the extreme shortness of their ligulz. As no satisfactory character has hitherto been given of Baccha- ris, that will serve to distinguish it, as now limited, from the diœ- cious Gnaphalia, I propose the following. * Ameen. Acad. v. p. 404. et Syst. Nat. ed. 10. vol. ii, p. 1206. t Flor. Ind. Ocvident, iii. p. 1339. -. . $1 Mich. Flor. Bor-amer. ii. p. 125. $ Annal. du Mus. d'Hist, Natur. vii. p.385. || L c. Bac- natural Family of Plants called Composite. |. 115 | BACCHARIS. © ( Ranker ) in Michaux Amer. ii. p. 125. J'ai in Annal. du Mus. — d'Hist. Nat. vii. p. 385. Molina Ruiz et Pavon Prodr. Flor. - Perwv. 111. Baccharidis species Linn. Involucrum imbricatum. Receptaculum nudum. Flosculi tubulosi, dioici. Masculi: antheris exsertis, basi muticis; stigmatibus ap- pendice acuto hispidulo; pappo subpenicillato. Feminei fili- formes; pappo capillari. Frutices (Americæ æquinoctialis et temperate). Folia alterna, -raro opposita, in quibusdam minuta vel nulla, ramis tunc foliaceo- alatis. Inflorescentia terminalis rariusve lateralis, corymbosa, nunc fasciculata. Involucri subovati v. oblongi squame semisca- riose, margine simplici. Mas. pappo cinereo. Fem. limbo minuto 2-3dentato, staminibus sterilibus nullis: pappo elongato*. * Willdenow, in his edition of Species Plantarum, has retained the four Linnean species of Calea, and added to them an equal num- ber, not one of which belongs to any of the genera formed by the original species, but to four others equally distinct. | . The first of these additional species, taking them in the order in which Willdenow has arranged them, is Calea aspera, which he adopted from Jacquin; by whom it is well described and figured, though erroneously referred to Calea. * I have observed another dicecious genus with naked Sn celine pappas, and a habit nearly similar to that of Baccharis, of which Baccharis nereifolia Linn. - only published species. It may be named BRACHYLENA. Involucrum MERER, squamis coriaceis. Receptaculum nudum. Flosċuli dioici. Mas- culi : antheris exsertis, basi bisetis. Feminei angustiores, limbo 5-fido ; filamentis steri- libus: stigmatibus linguiformibus imberbibus. Pappus utriusque sexüs pilosus scaber. Arbusculæ vel Frutices (Africae australis) subtomentosi. Folia alterna integerrima. vel dentata. Inflorescentia terminalis, subracemosa. Involucra subovata, brevia : squamis ovatis, textura uniformi. Q 2 VERS, 116 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the This, and not (as M. Richard has supposed) the nearly related species of North America, is what Linneus originally intended by — his Bidens nivea, as appears by the specimen in his Herbarium ; by his original reference to Vaillant's ** Ceratocephalus foliis cordatis s. triangularibus flore albo*," described from a speci- men in Surian's Herbarium; and by his-afterwards adding as va- rieties of his species the two plants from Carolina figured in Hortus Elthamensis. ' ! Calea aspera is abundantly distinct from Bidens, and has very little affinity with any of the original species of Calea, and least of all with C. jamaicensis, from which the character was taken. Since its appearance in Willdenow's work, however, it has been continued in this genus, in most of the recent catalogues of Gar- dens, as those of Desfontaines, Decandolle, and the second edi- tion of Mr. Aiton's Hortus Kewensis; and Lamarck in his Illus- trationes Generum has copied Jacquin's figure of it, apparently as the principal example of the genus Calea. | 5 Itis certainly now too late to recur to the name of Amellus, un- der which Browne, as I have already attempted to prove, first pro- posed this plant as a distinct genus; Linneus having soon after given that generic name to two very different plants, to one of which it is still applied ; and the real plant of Browne having till now been mistaken, owing in part to his having entirely over- looked the pappus which is deciduous. Bidens nivea, however, as long ago as 1784 was described by Von Rohr, and published by him in 1792 in the second volume of the Transactions of the Natural History Society of Copenhagen, asa distinct genus, under the name of Melanthera: and in 1803 by Richard, in Michaux's Flora Boreali-A mericana, where it is called - Melananthera, and where the two species included by Linneus * Act. Paris. 1720, p. 327. in natural Family of Plants called Composite. 117 in his Bidens nivea are for the first time distinguished: and lastly this genus, as named and determined in the work of Michaux, is adopted by Persoon in his Synopsis. = But as both Von Rohr and Richard have given only the natural character of the genus, and the essential character proposed by Persoon is not altogether satisfactory, I have added the following, and adopted the more generally received name of MELANANTHERA. ( Richard) in Michaux Amer.ii.p. i06. Melanthera Von Rokr in Kio- — benh. Naturhist. Selskab. bind. ii. hefte 1. p. 213. Amellus cafa Browne Jam.317. Bidentisspecies Linn. Calezespecies Jacquin. Involucrum duplici serie polyphyllum, subæquale. Receptaculum paleaceum, convexum, paleis foliaceis. Flosculi tubulosi, uni- formes, hermaphroditi. Achenium turbinatum angulatum ver- tice depresso. Pappus e setis (2—18) scabris, distinctis, deciduis. Herbæ (Americe equinoctialis et temperate) pubescentes, scabra. Folia opposita, indivisa v. sublobata. Capitula terminalia, pe- dunculis unifloris, elongatis, ternatis, geminisve. Involucrum foli- aceum. Receptaculr hemispherici paleæ foliolis involucri subsi- _ miles, Corolle albide. Anthere nigricantes, appendicibus apicis albidis, basi mutice ; paulo post expansionem corolle exserte, dein ( contractione filamentorum ) fauce incluse. Stigmata appendice acuto hispidulo, post retractionem tubi antherarum exserta ; de- . mum subinclusa*. | Oss. In Von Rohr's natural character of Melanthera the E. rium, or gland ular body sheathing the base of the style, is intro- duced, * [n the extensive collection of plants made by my lamented friend Dr. Smith, on the banks of the Congo, I have observed a Syngenesious genus, which, though belonging to Polygamia superflua and having yellow flowers, is in other respects so nearly related to Melananthera, that had it been found with ripe seeds only, it would certainly have been referred 118 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the duced, which is the earliest notice I have yet found of this - organ in Composite, except in Batsch's Analysis Florum, pub- lished in 1790, where it is both described and figured in Coreopsis tripteris. "The merit, however, of establishing its nearly univer- _ sal existence in the hermaphrodite florets of this extensive class belongs to M. Cassini. | Both Von Rohr and Richard in their characters of Melananthera have described the antherz as shorter than the corolla, which is- indeed the case in a particular state of the flower; immediately after its expansion, however, they project considerably, and again become inclosed in the more advanced stage. This fact has been noticed by Jacquin*, who considers the final inclo- sure of the antheræ to be owing to the elongation of the corolla. But the actual increase in length of the corolla is very slight, and by no means sufficient to account for the appearance; the real cause of which is a considerable, and I believe a gradual, contraction of the filaments. This ceconomy is not unfrequent referred to it. The following charaeters, however, prove it to be sufficiently distinet. It may be named LirorricHe. Involucrum duplici serie imbricatum, subæquale. Receptaculum convexum, paleis folia- ceis, distinctis. Capitulum radiatum. Ligule (simplici serie) femineæ. Flosculi her- maphroditi, stigmatibus appendice acuto hispidulo. Achenia subuniformia, turbinata ;. Pappo setaceo, caduco. | Herbæ (Africæ æquinoctialis) Folia opposita, indivisa. Pedunculi terminales, terni. Invo- lucra brevia, foliacea. Paleæ receptaculi carinatæ, nervosce, acute. Corollule Slave. Ligulæ elongate, 3-dentatæ. Antheræ nigricantes, subinclusæ, basi mutica. Achenium oltusé tetragonum. Pappus, in disco verticis depressi, brevis, e setulis simplici serie, numerosis (8—10), distinctis, denticulatis, caducis vel deciduis. Melanantheræ proximè accedit: affinis quoque Ecliptae Linn. Wedeliæ Jacq. et Diome- deze Cassini (in Journ. de Phys, tome Ixxxii. p. 145.) sed ab his omnibus satis distincta. videtur. * Collect. ii. p. 291. Ic. Rar. iii. t. 583, in natural Family of Plants called Composite. 119 in Composite, especially in the tribe of Helianthee, to which Melananthera belongs. In M. Cassini's Memoir on the Stamina of Composite the retrac- tion of anthere is not ex pressly noticed. This appearance, how- ever, can hardly have escaped so accurate an observer; and his opinion respecting its cause may perhaps be inferred from an observation he has made on the stamina of the tribe in which it is most remarkable, namely Heliantheæ ; whose filaments below the joint, he says, wither very soon after foecundation*. To this withering, which he does not mention as occurring in any other tribe, the phenomenon in question may be supposed to be ascribed. | But it appears to me, that the contraction or collapse of the fila- ments, from their previous state of extension, is a vital action, and not the effect of withering or decay, which, however, speedily - follows it. For the contraction may in great part be prevented by the separation of the floret, when the filaments are in the state of extension : and in many genera of Composite the antheræ are never retracted, but continue to project till they fall off with the corolla. This contraction is also analogous to the' more evident motion or irritability of the filaments long ago noticed by Borelli and Alexander Camerarius in certain Cinarocephale ; and more fully described in the same tribe by Dal Covoloi; whose observations are confirmed and extended to other subdivi- sions of Composite by Koelreuter§. A similar contraction and * Journal de Physique, tome Ixxviii. p. 278. + Ephemerid. Acad. Nat. Curios. cent. ix. et x. p. 194. f Discorso della Irritabilita d' alcuni Fiori. Firenze 1764. $ Von Einigen das Geschlecht der Planzen betreffenden versuchen. 3. fortsez. p. 125. irritability 190 Mr. Browx’s Observations on the irritability of the style has been lately described by Mr. Ker in certain species of Arctotis*. The second species added to the genus by Willdenow is Calea lobata, which Linneus, from the general appearance, I conclude, rather than from actual examination of the plant in Clifford's Her- barium, had referred to Conyza ; and having no specimen in his own Herbarium, the twofold error of supposing it to belong to Polygamia superflua, and to have a naked receptacle, remained. uncorrected in all his subsequent works. Its real structure was first pointed out by Professor Swartz, who consequently referred it to Calea, with the character of which it exactly agrees. - This alteration is adopted in the first edition of Hortus Kewensis, where the generic character of Calea is modi- - fied, to admit those species that are without pappus; and by Gertner, who limits the genus to C. lobata and C. Jamaicensis, as the only species that correspond with the Linnean cbaracter. But as C. jamaicensis, the original species of Calea, has been shown to have a pappus of a very different kind, it becomes necessary to give a new name to Calea lobata ; and some additions being also wanting to its generic character, I propose the following, i the name of s NEUROLENA. Calea Gert. Involucrum imbricatum, foliaceum. Receptaculum paleaceum, planiusculum. Flosculi tubulosi, uniformes, bermaphroditi. An- there inclusæ, basi muticæ (emarginatæ). Stigmata acuta, re- curva. Pappus capillaris, denticulatus, persistens. Frutex (Americæ æquinoctialis) erectus. Folia alterna, indivisa, et lobata. Corymbus terminalis, compositus. Involucri subovati fo- * Botanical Register, i. 34. lola natural Family of Plants called Composite. 121 hola obtusa, nervosa. Paleze receptaculi involucro subsimiles. Co- rollulæ flave*. The third species, Calea pinifolia, is adopted from Forster's Flo- rule Insularum Australium Prodromus. The specimen of this plant in George Forster's Herbarium (now forming part of the extensive collection of Mr. Lambert) is very imperfect ; it evidently, however, belongs to the same species with a more complete specimen received, without a name, from Forster by Sir Joseph Banks, in whose Herbarium I have examined it, and ascertained that it has a naked receptacle. It therefore cannot be a species of Calea, which I have no doubt Forster considered it merely from a certain degree of resemblance to his Calea leptophylla. From the structure of its stigmata, antheræ, and involucrum, Ca- lea pinifolia belongs, indeed, to a very different tribe, and might even be referred to Gnaphalium as it at present stands. But this extensive and ill defined genus evidently requires reformation : * There are two other genera in many respects agreeing with the character here given of Neurolæna, which it is necessary to point out. The first is Carphephorus of M. Cas- sini (in Bulletin des Sciences 1816, p. 198), sufficiently distinct in having the stigmata of . Eupatorium or Liatris with the habit of the latter, from some species of which it differs only in its receptacle having paleæ. The second, not yet described, may be named PrPTOCARPHA. Involucrum imbricatum, turbinatum, scariosum. Receptaculum: paleis distinctis. Flosculi tubulosi, uniformes, limbo revoluto. Anther@ exsertæ, basi bisetæ. Stigmata filifor- ə Mia, acuta, hispidula, Pappus pilosus. Frutex (Brasiliensis) ramosissimus, decumbens ? Folia alterna, integerrima, subtus incana. . Involucra axillaria et terminalia, fasciculata, glabrata, squamis sessilibus obtusiusculis enerviis, textura uniformi. Paleæ receptaculi squamis intimis involucri subsimiles, et una cum iisdem deciduæ. Corollule glabræ. Sete antherarum integerrime. Pappus albus, radiis simplici serie, : Ogs. Ihave not seen perfect seeds; and as even in the unripe state they fall off along with the inner squamæ of the involucrum, and the anther project in a remarkable degree, it is possible the plant here described may be only the male of a dicecious species: it cer- tainly, however, belongs to a genus not before published. VOL. XII. R and 199 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the and if the necessity for its subdivision be admitted, it will also, I believe, be found most expedient to apply the name Gnaphalium to that section to which G. luteo-album, sylvaticum, and uliginosum belong, and which is characterized by its naked receptacle, its involucrum connivent at top and of equal height with the truncated capitulum, which consists of numerous filiform female florets in the circumference, with a smaller number of hermaphrodite florets in. the disk, both of them ripening seeds and a a sessile capil- lary deciduous pappus. To Gnaphalium so limited Calea pinifolia, a shrub with pearl y acerose leaves, and in which all or most of the flosculi are her- maphrodite and the radii ofthe persistent pappus somewhat thick- ened upwards, cannot be referred. It seems, however, to approach more nearly to Antennaria, a genus separated from Gnaphalium by Gertner, but which, as he has proposed it, consists of three tribes of plants sufficiently dissimilar in habit and structure to justify a further subdivision; and, what is remarkable, none of them entirely agreeing with his generic character. | The first tribe consists of herbaceous plants, natives of Europe and North America, having the male and female flosculi in di- stinct involucra and on different individuals. To this genus the name ANTENNARIA* may remain, though descriptive of the ; pappus ANTENNARIA. Antennariæ species. Gaertner. Gnaphalii species. Linn. Jussieu. Involucrum imbricatum, scariosum, coloratum. Receptaculum epaleatum, scrobiculatum. Flosculi dioici. Masculi: antheris basi bisetis : stigmatibus truncatis; Pappo vel peni- - v. apice incrassato. Feminei filiformes, limbo parvo: staminum rudimentis nul- : Pappo capillari. 1 ; nas perennes, tomentosee, incanæ. Folia plana, adulta scepe super glabriuscula ; radi- calia in plerisque latiora. Inflorescentia corymbosa rar solitaria. Involueri turbi- nali vel quandoque hemisphærici squamae e basi calycina superne colorate (albæ v. pur- purascentes). Corollulæ flave, Antheræ semiexserte. Pappus marium niveus, opacus. Ons, natural Family of Plants called Composite. 123 pappus of the male flower only. Its species are Gnaphalium dioi- cum Linn., alpinum L., carpaticum Wablenberg, plantagineum L., and G. margaritaceum L. The second tribe, consisting of Gnaphalium Leontopodium and Oss. Gnaphalium margaritaceum, which l have referred to this genus, was first described by Clusius ; from whose account it appears to have been introduced i into the English gar- - dens from Ainerica towards the end of the sixteenth century, It has ever since been very generally cultivated, as an ornamental plant, both in this country and on the continent of Europe; and has a place in several of the European Floras, . as well as in those of North America. It is surprising, therefore, that hitherto the male plant only should have been observed, uniformly, however, considered as hermaphrodite, except by M. Cassini, who in his first memoir on Synantheræ (in Journal de Physique, tome Ixxvi. p. 200) suspects it to be male, from the imperfect appearance of the ovarium. That this species of Gnaphalium is really dicecious, I learned several years ago from the inspection of a specimen of the female plant in the Herbarium of Sir Joseph Banks, who found it on the banks of the Rymney in Glamorganshire, where the plant was first observed by Lhwyd. I have since received several specimens of both sexes from Mr. Bi- cheno, to whom 1 had mentioned this fact, and who obligingly undertook to observe the different states of the plant in the same place, where it seems to be really indigenous. I have never been able to discover any female florets in the circumference of the capitu- lum of the male plant; but in the centre of the female capitulum I have always found two or three imperfect male florets, whose antherze, although cohering and of the usual form, appear to be destitate of pollen. The separation of sexes in a still more common plant of this class, namely, — tinctoria, has been equally overlooked. All the authors who have noticed this species, which —— in almost every is pean Flora, as well as in more than one recent Monograph of the genus, have considered. it as hermaphrodite, while it really belongs to Polygamia dicecia, or has its perfect sexual -organs on different plants. The hermaphrodite plant, apparently perfect, but which I believe very seldom ripens sced, is well figured by Schkuhr (in Botanisches Handbuch, tab. 234); and the female, whose stigmata are remarkably developed and undulated, while the antheræ are evidently imperfect, and which generally produces ripe seeds, is represented in English Botany (tab. 38), in Flora Danica (281), and probably also in Svensk Botanik (170). For my knowledge of this fact respecting Serratula tinctoria I am indebted to the Rev. Robert Bree of Camberwell, who pointed out to me both its states, which he was then disposed to consider as distinct species, R 2 Leonto- 124 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the Leontopodioides, which may be called LeonropopiuM, is in affi- nity intermediate between Antennaria and Gnaphalium as here limited, but has sufficient characters to distinguish it from both. The third tribe has been found only in South Africa, and con- sists of shrubs with small rigid heath-like leaves, of which the margins are incurved, the upper surface tomentose, and the un- der convex and nearly smooth; but by a remarkable twisting they are in most of the species resupinate; a character which seems to have been overlooked in all the described species ; namely, Gnaphalium muricatum, mucronatum, and seriphioides. In this tribe, or genus, which may be named MzraArasrA, the invo- lucrum is generally cylindrical, and in most of the species has a short radius formed by the spreading coloured lamine of the inner scales; the flosculi are few in number, and all hermaphrodite ; and the radii of the pappus, which fall off separatel y, are either thickened or more strongly toothed at top. Calea pinifolia does not even belong to this genus, though it has a nearly similar habit; but the margins of its leaves are revo- lute, and their tomentum chiefly on the under surface. In these respects, as well as in the principal characters of fructification, it agrees with several shrubs, chiefly of New Holland and Van Diemen’s Island ; among which are Eupatorium ferrugineum, Eu- patorium rosmarinifolium, and Chrysocoma cinerea of M. Labillar- diere. Part of these have the inner squamæ of the involucrum simple, as seems to be the case in Calea pinifolia ; while in others, as the two species referred to Eupatorium by M. Labillardiere, they form a short radius. ‘These I am inclined to consider merely sections of one and the same genus, which may be distinguished by the following character, and named OzoTHAMNUSs, natural Family of Plants called Composite. © 125 OzorHAMNUS. Involucrum imbricatum, scariosum, coloratum. Receptaculum epa- leatum, glabrum. Flosculi (pauciores quam 20) tubulosi, vel omnes hermaphroditi, vel paucissimi feminei angustiores in ambitu. Anthere (inclusæ,) basi bisetze. Stigmata apice obtuso subtruncato hispidulo. Pappus sessilis, pilosus, nunc penicilla- tus, persistens. Frutices(Novæ Hollandiæ et Nove Zelandiæ, vix Africae australis,) graveolentes, tomentosi. Folia sparsa, integerrima, marginibus sæ- pius recurvis. Inflorescentia terminalis, corymbosa v. congesta. Involucra alba v. cinerea : squamis intimis nunc conformibus et con- niventibus ; nunc laminis patulis niveis radium brevem obtusum ef- formantibus. Corollule lutee. Pappus albus. The fourth species added to Calea by Willdenow is Calea lepto- phylla of Forster, whose specimens I have examined in Mr. Lam- bert’s Herbarium. Amongst Forster's drawings, formerly referred to, there is a coloured figure of this plant, by which it appears that he originally considered it to belong to Gnaphalium. From this genus he afterwards removed it, probably on finding it referred to Calea in the collection of Sir Joseph Banks, by whom it was discovered in New Zealand in a more perfect, at least in a more luxuriant state. | | This plant, though agreeing with Calea in every part of the Linnean essential character, differs remarkably from it in other points of nearly equal importance, as well as in habit; and along with Calea aculeata of M. Labillardiere, and several other species also natives of New Holland and Van Diemen's Island, constitutes a genus very nearly related to Ozothamnus, from which it is to be distinguished chiefly by the palez of its receptacle. I propose 126 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the I propose to name this genus in honour of M. Henri Cassini, whose well conducted investigation of Compositæ has already thrown much light on the structure and economy of the more im- portant parts of fructification of this difficult class: and espe- cially of those organs from which the distinguishing characters of Cassinia are here derived. — I shall add the characters of the species of this genus, which, like Ozothamnus, admits of subdivision into two sections; and I have appended to it Calea spectabilis of Labillardiere, a plant cor- responding with it in character, but differing very much in habit from all the other species. CASSINIA. Caleæ sp. Labillardiere. Involucrum imbricatum, scariosum, pauciflorum. Receptaculum : paleis distinctis, squamis intimis involucri subsimilibus. . Flosculi tubulosi, vel omnes hermaphroditi vel paucissimi feminei an- gustiores in ambitu. Antherz (inclusz) basi bisetæ. Stigmata apice obtuso subtruncato hispidulo. Pappus pilosus v. penicil- latus, persistens. | Frutices. Folia sparsa, sepius angustata, marginibus recurvis. In- florescentia terminalis, corymbosa rariusve paniculata. Involucra alba nunc cinerea raro aurea ; squamis intimis sepius apice conni- ventibus, nunc patulis et radium brevem obtusum efformantibus. T Involucrum radiatum (squamis intimis apice patulis). 1. C. leptophylla, foliis lineari-lingulatis subter ramulisque inca- nis, corymbis terminalibus, involucris turbinatis. - Calea. leptophylla. Forst. Prodr. n. 287. Willd. Sp. Pl. iii. cx p. 1796. Persoon Syr ii. e - a Poiret Enci ycl. Suppl. ii. p. 28. dns ; E. natural Family of Plants called Composite. — 197 Loc. Nat. Nove Zelandiæ campi arenosi prope Tolaga, &c. D. Banks. Prope Queen Charlotte's Sound J. R.et G. Fors- ter. (v.s. in Herb. Banks et G. Forster). TT Involucrum connivens. A. Fruticose. ` C. denticulata, foliis ovalibus oblongisve acutis spinuloso-den- ticulatis subter tomentosis, corymbis compositis, involucris hemisphæricis. . Loc. Nat. Nove Hollandiæ ora orientalis prope Port Jackson. David Burton. (v.s. in Herb. Banks.) | C. longifolia, foliis lanceolato-linearibus elongatis levibus sub- ter tomentosis, corymbis decompositis,involucris turbinatis. - Loc. Nat. Nove Hollandis ora orientalis prope Port Jackson; in dumetis. (v. v.) C. aurea, foliis lanceolato-linearibus elongatis levibus subter glandulosis, corymbis decompositis, involucris ovalibus: squamis apice aureis. Loc. Nat. Novæ Hollandiz ora orientalis prope Port Jackson; in sylvis et dumetis. (v. v.) . C. aculeata, foliis angusto-linearibus margine revolutis super hispidulis subter ramulisque incanis, corymbis compositis decompositisve congestis, involucris turbinatis. . Calea aculeata. . Labill. Nov. Holl. ii. p. 41. t. 185. Persoon Syn. ii. p. 406. Poiret Encycl. Suppl. ii. p. 28. Loc. Nat. Insula Van Diemen; in dumetis et ad ripas fluv. (v. v.) C. affinis, foliis angustato-linearibus margine revolutis super hispidulis 128 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the _hispidulis subter concoloribus, corymbis decompositis con- - gestis, involucris turbinatis. Loc. Nat. Noyæ Hollandiz ora orientalis prope Port Jack- son; in dumetis. D.G. Caley. (v. s.) Oss. C. aculeatæ nimis affinis. 7. C. levis, foliis angustissime linearibus margine revolutis super lzevibus subter ramulisque incano-tomentosis, corymbis . compositis, involucris congestis cylindraceis. Loc. Nat. Nove Hollandiz ora australis; in campis ad ra- dices montium prope ortum Spencer's Gulph. (v. v.) 8. C. arcuata, foliis angustissime linearibus margine revolutis. super lævibus subter ramulisque incano-tomentosis, pani- cula pyramidata, involucris spicatis cylindraceis arcuatis. Loc. Nat. Nove Hollandiz ora australis ; in campis elevatis prope ortum Spencer’s Gulph. (v.v.) NO 9. C. quinquefaria, foliis angustissime linearibus super ramulis- que glabris, panicula decomposita, involucris turbinatis : squamis 5-fariis. Loc. Nat. Nove Hollandiz ora orientalis prope Port Jack- son; in montosis. D, G. Caley. (v. s.) Tt B. Herbacea. 10. C. spectabilis, panicula decomposita, foliis lanceolatis decur- rentibus subter ramisque lanatis. Calea spectabilis, Labill. Nov. Holl. ii. p. 42. t. 186. Per- soon Syn. ii. p. 406. Poiret Encycl. Suppl. ii. p. 28. Loc. Nat. Nove Hollandiz ora australis; in sylvis dumetis- que prope Memory Cove, Port Lincoln, &c. legi. In Insula Van Diemen a D. Labillardiere detecta. (v. v.) | Since natural Family of Plants called Composite. 129 Since the publication of Willdenow's Species Plantarum very few alterations have been made in the genus Calea. In Persoon’s Synopsis two of the species are excluded : namely, Calea scoparia, which, following Swartz, he has referred to Bac- charis; and Calea aspera, adopted from Richard as a species of Melananthera. The additional species in the work referred to are C. cordifolia of Swartz, already noticed as a genuine Calea ; C. acu- leata and spectabilis of Labillardiere, which -belong to Cassinia ; and C. cordata, adopted from Loureiro, of whose plant nothing is ` known except from the short description in Flora Cochinchinensis, which is only sufficient to render it probable that it neither belongs to Calea as I have proposed to limit it, nor to any of the genera hitherto confounded with it. | M. Poiret, in the Supplement to the Botanical Dictionary of the Encyclopédie Méthodique, has under the article Calea retained all the species of this genus given by Persoon ; and also Calea aspera; which, however, he has in a subsequent article correctly referred to Melananthera. Connected with the proper subject of this paper, I shall describe and add some observations on a plant lately sent from Brazil by Mr. Sellow ; which, though not strictly referable to Composite, probably belongs to a genus at present included in this family; and conclude with a few remarks on the structure and affinities of Brunonia. | I have named the Brazil plant ACICARPHA SPATHULATA. Herba annua? glaberrima, ramosa, diffusa. Rami adscendentes, angulati. Folia sparsa, petiolata, exstipulata, spathulata mu-. cronulo brevissimo, sesquiuncialia, crassiuscula ? glauca? sæ- piùs integerrima ; inferiora quandoque estra medium dentata. OZ XII. * Petioli 130 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the Petioli lineares basi parum dilatata semiamplexicauli; infe- riores elongati ; superiores plerumque folio aliquoties breviores. Capitula solitaria, nunc oppositifolia pedunculata, nunc ter- minalia subsessilia, basiflora, ovata, flava. Involucrum sim- plici serie pentaphyllum, capitulum floridum superans, folia- ceum; foliolis inaequalibus spathulatis sessilibus integerrimis ipsa basi connatis. Receptaculum subulato-conicum, palea- ceum. Palee lanceate mucronulatæ, inter flosculos herma- phrodito-masculos magis manifeste, inter hermaphroditos pas- sim abortientes. Flosculi tubulosi, uniformes, glabri. | Flosculi ambitás, duplici triplicive serie, hermaphroditi, utroque organo perfecto. Corolle Tubus gracilis cylindraceus, cum ova- rio continuus, basique stylo accretus, per lentem 10-striatus. - Limbus infundibuliformis, 5-fidus, æstivatione valvata ; laciniis | semilanceolatis, planis, trinerviis; nervis lateralibus margine ~ parallelo-approximatis, indivisis, apice confluentibus, e nervis alternis tubi infra sinus furcatis ortum ducentibus. +. Stamina 5 epipetala, limbi laciniis alternantia. Filamenta inferne cum tubo arcte connata, superne libera, fauci quasi inserta, invicem cohærentia in tubulum 5-dentatum, ipsis - apicibus,subito mutatione texture, articulatis; basi intus incras- satum arcis 5 oblongis cum filamentorum axibus alternantibus. Anthere continuæ, lineares, dimidio inferiore arcte coherentes, superiore liberæ ; biloculares, loculis longitudinaliter dehiscen- tibus, valvula interiore angustiore, receptaculo pollinis utrius- que loculi longitudinali septiformi: basi emarginate, lobulis posticis acutiusculis brevibus polliniferis ; apice simplices con- nectivo ultra loculos haud producto. Pollen subglobosum, per lentem pluries augentem obsolete angulatum. Ovaria-connata, singula coronata calyce 5-fido dentibus spinescen- tibus cum laciniis limbi corollæ alternantibus; monosperma, ovulo natural Family of Plants called Composite. 13} ovulo ovato pendulo, paulo infra apicem affixo funiculo crassi- usculo ex ipso apice angustato cavitatis orto; chorda vascu- lari a puncto insertionis ad extremitatem inferiorem ejusdem lateris attingenti. Stylus filiformis glaber, inferne cum basi tubi corollæ connatus. Stigma simplex obtusum hispidulum. Flosculi superiores numerosi hermaphrodito-masculi, paulo minorés hermaphroditis, calycis laciniis submembranaceis ; ovariis (pari- ter connatis) imperfectis, sæpius absque ovulo. Pericarpia (flosculorum ambitüs) : Achenia conferruminata, sin- . gula..coronata. calyce aucto 5-spinoso, spinis patulis conico- _ subulatis e substantia suberosa axi solidiori rigida. Fees pendulum, ovatum extremitate superiore acuminato : testa membranacea: membrana propria nucleo adherens. Albumen figura seminis, carnosum, copiosum, album. Embryo axilis, subcylindraceus, longitudine fere albuminis, albus, dicotyledo- neus. Cotyledones lineares, obtuse, plano-convexæ, vix longitu- dine Radicule cylindraceæ, supera. Notwithstanding the great difference between my account of this plant and that given by M. de Jussieu of his Acicarpha tribu- loides, Y have very little doubt that they both belong to the same genus; though from the above description it is evident that Aci- carpha spathulata is not referable to Composite. To this plant Calycera of Cavanilles, in the seeds of which M. Correa has found albumen, seems to be very nearly related; and a third genus, probably referable to this group, is Boopis, described by M. de Jussieu in the same Memoir with Acicarpha; The important characters, however, of the pendulous ovulum and inverted em- bryo remain to be ascertained in all these; and the presence of albumen in Acicarpha tribuloides (in Acicarpha lanata of La- gasca in Pers. Syn. ii. p. 488, if it really belong to this gentis), and s 2 in 132 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the in both species of Boopis. Another question respecting the lat- ter genus is, whether its capitulum be simple, as it certainly is in Acicarpha spathulata; or compound, as Jussieu's figure of Boopis anthemoides seems to indicate. 3 | In the mean time, with the necessary knowledge of structure of Acicarpha spathulata only, I shall venture to propose this group as a distinct natural family to be placed between Composite and Dipsaceæ ; though upon the whole somewhat more nearly ap- proaching to Composite. This family, if my conjectures respect- ing Calycera and Boopis should be hereafter verified, may be called CatycerEem; Acicarpha even as a generic name being barely tenable, provided the original species agrees with that here described : for on this supposition, M. de Jussieu has mis- taken the laciniæ of the perianthium for palez of the receptacle, deriving the name of the genus from their form ; and has entirely overlooked the real paleæ, which, though they could not have suggested this name, may however sanction its being retained, if it be not still better to change it to Acicarpa. It will be attended with similar advantage to form a separate family of [e Brunoyia, | as a link of equal importance, connecting Composite with Good- enoviæ, but from both of which it is in many respects very distinct. As I have formerly described this genus, and made several obser- vations on its principal affinities*, I shall here only state the more important relations and distinctions between it and those families to which it appears to me most nearl y to approach. Brunonia agrees with Goodenovie in the remarkable indusium of the stigma ; in the structure and connexion of the anthere ; in * Prodr, Flor, Nov. Holl; p. 589. the natural Family of Plants called Composite. 133 the seed being erect; and essentially in the æstivation of corolla. It differs from them in having both calyx and corolla distinct from the ovarium ; in the disposition of vessels in the corolla; in the filaments being jointed at top; in the seed being without al- bumen ; and in its remarkable inflorescence, compatible, indeed, with the nature of the irregularity in the corolla of Goodenovie, but which can hardly coexist with that characterizing Lobeliacee*. With Composite it agrees essentially in inflorescence; in the æsti- vation of corolla; in the remarkable joint or change of texture in the apex of its filaments; and in the structure of the ovarium and seed. It differs from them in having ovarium liberum or superum ; in the want of a glandular disk; in the immediately hypogynous insertion of the filaments; in the indusium of the stigma; and in the vascular structure of the corolla, whose tube has. five nerves only, and these continued through the axes of the laciniæ, either terminating simply (as is at least frequently the case in Brunonia sericea), or (as in B. australis) dividing at top into two recurrent branches forming lateral nerves, at first sight resembling those of Composite, but which hardly reach to the base of the Jaciniæ. It is a curious ciscpmatance that Brunonia should so completely differ from Composite in the disposition of vessels of the corolla, while both orders agree in the no less remarkable structure of the jointed filament; a character which had been observed in a | very few Composite T only before the publication of M. Cassini's second Dissertation, where it is proved to be nearly universal in thbeorder.. . In the opposite parietes of the ovarium of Brunonia two nerves . or vascular cords are observable, which are continued into the style, where they become approximated and parallel. This struc- * See Flinders’s Voyage to Terra Australis, ii, p. 559. + Batsch Anal, Flor. p. 107; et Schkuhr Handb. tab, 236 et 244, ° ture, 134 - — Mr. Brown’s Observations on the ture, so nearly resembling that of Composite, seems to strengthen the analogical argument in favour of the hypothesis advanced in the present paper—of the compound nature of the pistillum in that order, and of its type in pheenogamous plants generally ;— Brunonia having an obvious and near affinity to Goodenovie, in the greater part of whose genera the ovarium has actually two cells with one or an indefinite number of ovula in each ; while in a few genera of the same order, as Dampiera, Diaspasis, and cer- tain species of Scevola, it is equally reduced to one cell anda single ovulum.. | Sir James Smith, in establishing Brunonia as a genus, is disposed to refer it to Dipsacea. To certain species of this order it, indeed, bears a striking resemblance in habit; it also very nearly agrees with them in its remarkable inflorescence ; and one great objec- tion to its union with them may be supposed to be removed in adopting M. Decandolle’s account of their ovarium. = = But as Brunonia differs from the whole order in the following characters, all of which are of primary importance ;—namely, in the origin and estivation of corolla ; in the insertion and whole structure of stamina; in the indusium of the stigma ; in the ovu- lum being inserted at the base of the cavity of the ovarium ; in the erect embryo and want of albumen ;—1 continue to think that its proper place in the natural method is between Goodenovie and Composite. ! ; | - 4 shall conclude this subject, by proposing a few queries re- specting the indusium of Brunonia and Goodenovie. Is this remarkable covering of the stigma in these families merely a process of the apex of the style? or is it a part of di- stinct origin, though intimately cohering with the pistillum ? On the latter supposition, may it not be considered as analogous to the glandular disk surrounding or crowning the ovarium in many . other natural Family of Plants called Composite. 135 other families? And, in adopting the hypothesis I have formerly advanced* respecting the nature of this disk in certain families, —namely, that it is composed of a series of modified stamina,— has not the part in question a considerable resemblance in appa- rent origin and division to the stamina of the nearly-related family Stylidee ? | | To render this supposition somewhat less paradoxical, let the comparison be made especially between the indusium of Brunonia and the imperfect antheræ in the female flowers of Forstera. Lastly, connected with this view, it becomes of importance to ascertain whether the stamina in Stylidee are opposite to the segments of calyx or of corolla. The latter disposition would be in favour of the hypothesis. This, however, is a point which will not be very easily determined, the stamina being lateral. In the mean time, the existence and division of the corona faucis in Stylidium render it not altogether improbable that they are opposite to the seg- ments of the corolla. LE Since the preceding paper was submitted to the Society, M. Cassini has published + the substance of a Memoir, which he read to the Academy of Sciences of Paris in August last, on a new family of plants named by him BooPrpzEz, and consisting of Calycera, Boopis, and Acicarpha. I have also, through the libe- rality of Messrs. de Jussieu, Desfontaines, and Baron Delessert, had the opportunity of examining specimens of Acicarpha tribu- loides in flower and fruit, of both species of Boopis in flower, and detached flowers and pericarpia of Calycera. In allof these I have found the ovulum pendulous; and in Acicarpha and Caly- cera an inverted embryo occupying the axis of a fleshy albumen. * Linn. Soc, Transact. x. p. 159, t Bulletin des Sciences, 1816, p. 160. My 136 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the My conjectures, therefore, on their structure and relation to Aci- - carpha spathulata of the preceding paper, are completely verified by this examination, as well as by the observations of M. Cassini, who with his usual acuteness has detected the principal charac- ters distinguishing Boopidee from Composite and Dipsacez, be- tween which he has also placed them. As M. Cassini's Memoir, though read subsequently to mine, is already published, the name Calyceree, which I have proposed for this family, is superseded by that which he has given it. But as his account of the order is by no means complete, seve- ral characters of considerable, though not primary, importance being entirely omitted, I may be allowed to add to my paper some remarks on the more essential points of resemblance and difference between it and the two families to which it is most nearly related. ion | | | The principal characters distinguishing Boopidee from the whole of Composite are the pendulous ovulum and the albumen inclosing the embryo, of which the radicle points to the apex of the pericarpium. It appears to me necessary to state all these characters, and nearly in the terms in which they are here given : for, Ist, A pendulous ovulum most frequently, indeed, is not, however, invariably connected with radicula supera, though that direction of radicle might here, as well as in Composite, with con- fidence have been inferred from the vascular structure of the ovu- lum*. 2dly, Where the insertion of the ovulum is, as in this fa- mily, evidently below the upper extremity, the radicle which * Some of the indications in many cases afforded by the structure of the unimpregnated ovulum, of the position and direction of the parts of the future embryo, have hitherto been overlooked : the subject, however, for its elucidation requires details incompatible with the limits of the present communication, I have in another place (Flinders's Voyage to Terra Australis, ii. p. 601.) thrown out a similar hint, which has probably attracted no attention, aud must reserve the explanation of both for a separate essay, points natural Family of Plants called Composite. 137 points to this extremity cannot in strict propriety be described as directed towards the umbilicus. M. Cassini has not noticed the direction of the radicle; either from supposing it constantly con- nected with that of the ovulum, or, which is more probable, from not having ascertained it. _ These distinctive characters may be considered as fully sufficient to authorize the separation of Boopidee from Composite ; yet the same differences exist between certain genera referred and really belonging to Rubiacee and the principal part of that order. . There are, however, three other characters unnoticed by M.Cas- sini, which distinguish the flowers of Boopideæ from the herma- phrodite flowers of the whole of Composite; namel y, the accretion of the base of the style with the tube of the corolla; the absence of the epigynous disk or nectarium ; and the longitudinal subdivision of each cell of the anthera by a “receptaculum pollinis,” as in most - . other families,and of which, indeed, there seems to be the rudiment in the syngenesious genus Petrobium, described in the preceding paper. In the partial cohesion of the anthere, in which they resemble Jasione, they certainly differ from all known Composite: but as in certain Composite the anthere are very slightly connected or entirely distinct ;—this, though a remarkable circumstance, can hardly be employed as a distinguishing character. ‘The principal characters in which Boopideæ differ from the greater part, though not from the whole of Compositæ, are the corolla being continuous, or not jointed, with the ovarium ; the antheræ having no membranaceous appendix at top; and the un- — divided stigma. : Boopide« differ from Dipsaceæ in the vascular structure and val- vular estivation of corolla; in the estivation, insertion, and con- VOL. xtti. T nexion 138 Mr. Brown’s Observations on the nexion of anthere; in the absence of the partial involucrum ; and in having alternate leaves. In adopting M. Decandolle's description of Dipsacee*, they would differ also in the important character of *ovarium inferum." This distinction, however, is neither universal, nor I believe abso- lute in any case. x j M. Auguste Saint Hilaire in his excellent Memoir on Primula- cee t, while he admits the correctness of M. Decandolle's account with respect to great part of Dipsaceæ, has at the same time well observed, that in several species of Scabiosa the ovarium is entirely united with the tube of the calyx. But neither of these authors has remarked the curious, and I believe peculiar, circumstance, of the base of the style cohering with the narrow apex of the tube of the calyx, even in those species of the order in which the dilated part of the tube is entirely distinct from the ovarium. “This kind of partial cohesion between pistillum and calyx is - directly opposite to what usually takes place, namely, the base of the ovarium being coherent, while its upper part is distinct. It equally, however, determines the apparent origin or insertion of corolla and stamina, producing the unexpected combination of * flos superus” with ** ovarium liberum." In the vascular structure of the corolla Boopidee may be con- sidered as essentially agreeing with Composite, in many of whose genera the middle nerves of the tube and segments are equally manifest. In stating the character derived from this source in either of these orders, it is not sufficient to describe the nerves of the laciniæ only as M. Mirbel has done in his character of Com- posite}, and M. Cassini in that of Boopideæ : but it is also neces- * Flor. Frane: o ed. vol. iv. p. Et. + Mem. du Mus. d’Hist, Natur. ii, p. 47. f Elemens de Physiol, Veget. et de Botan. ii. p. 885. | sary natural Family of Plants called Composite. 139 sary to give their disposition in the tube or undivided part of the limb; there being instances in both families where the lateral nerves of the segments do not unite at top; and, as has been formerly . remarked, several examples in other families of a nearly similar disposition in the segments, accompanied by a different dispo- sition in the tube. To the examples of this kind formerly given, Globularia cordifolia may be added, in the segments of whose lower lip there are three simple nerves, of which the lateral do not unite at top, and continue distinct nearly to the base of the tube, where they converge and appear to unite with the middle nerve. ; | | Eo In Acicarpha and Boopis the filaments appear to me jointed as in Composite ; a character I have not been able to observe in the very few flowers which I have examined of Calycera. In Acicarpha the florets of the circumference are hermaphro- dite and apparently complete, the antheræ containing pollen and the ovaria producing seed ; while those of the disk are male with an incomplete pistillum. Such an arrangement has not hitherto been observed in Composite, in which, wherever the central flo- rets are male with an imperfect pistillum, those of the circumfe- rence are female with or without the rudiments of stamina. The regularity in the order of expansion of flowers from the base to the top of the capitulum in Acicarpha tribuloides and spa- thulata, and the irregularity, approaching to the inverted order, which I have found to exist in both species of Boopis, seem to prove the capitulum to be simple in the former genus and com- pound in the latter, notwithstanding the great resemblance be- tween theirinvolucra. ‘The exact nature of its composition, how- ever, in Boopis can only be satisfactorily determined in recent specimens. ` T 2 This 140 | Mr. Brown’s Observations on the This irregular expansion in Boopis, which renders even the gc- neric name improper, and at present the want of satisfactory cha- racters to distinguish it from Calycera, are objections to the name M. Cassini has chosen for this family ; while thatof Calyceree, which I have proposed, derived from the genus first described, and appli- cable to all the genera of the order, appears to me unexception- able: especially as there seems no reason to doubt that the part which I have considered as calyx in Boopidee is really such; its divisions being generally in equal number, and alternating with those of the corolla. It may be observed that a like alternation of the divisions of the pappus with the segments of the corolla obtains in those genera of Composite where both parts are in equal number. But in some cases, where the division of pappus is still further reduced, the same alternation does not exist, espe- cially in those genera having verticall y compresscd pericarpia and two aristæ, as Spilanthus and Salmea. 6005 uei The absence of * discus epigynus" in Boopideæ is a necessary consequence of the accretion of the base of the style with the tube of the corolla. It seems to me, however, that a modification of the same organ may be traced in the five thickened areolæ observa- ble within and near the base of the tube formed by the filaments in Acicarpha spathulata; and much more distinctly in the same situation in Boopis balsamitifolia, where they have the appearance of five adnate fleshy bodies alternating with the filaments. This apparent decom position of the glandular disk in Boopidee, compared with its state in Composite, as well as its transposition and the alternation of its parts with the stamina, seem to give some additional support to the conjecture I have formerly ha- zarded in the paper on Proteacee, published in the Society’s Trans- actions (vol. x. p. 159); namely, that in several families—for the | hypothesis natural Family of Plants called Composita. 141 hypothesis not meant to be extended to all—this part, even in its simplest state, may be considered as formed of a series of modified stamina: Or, merely to state the facts from which the conjecture originates, that there are certain families in some of whose genera this organ exists in its simplest form, that of an undivided fleshy ring; while in other genera of the same families it consists of several distinct bodies alternating with the stamina, and in some cases putting on the appearance of barren filaments. This hypothesis is chiefly applicable to families in which the number of stamina is equal to the divisions of one floral envelope only, the nectarium being supposed to be formed of the second series: but it receives its principal support from Scitaminee*, where the glandular bodies belong actually to the same series with the perfect stamen. I am aware at the same time of several objections to its gene- ralization. Thus, the nectarium or glandular disk exists in fami- lies where, though the stamina are definite, they are equal in num- ber to the divisions of calyx and corolla united ; and moreover, in such families where it consists of distinct parts, these parts are placed where an addition to the number of stamina is least likely to take place, as in Crassulacee. Here, however, as in many other cases, the divisions of the disk are opposite to the ovaria ; they may therefore be supposed more intimately connected with the pistilla than with the stamina; an opinion which is I believe held, though not yet published, by the ingenious M. Decandolle with respect to Ranunculacez. In support of this opinion it may be noticed that in Paonia Moutan, where the disk or urceolus is in the state of the greatest development, when a multiplication of the pistilla takes place, which in the double-flowered varieties of this * See Flinders's Voyage to Terra Australis, ii. p. 574. B species 142 Mr. Brown’s Observations on Composite. species it not unfrequently does by the addition of one or more inner series, tbe rudiments of an analogous disk are produced along with each of the additional series. | Yet, in opposition to this view, I have in a single instance found one of the divisions of the urceolus in P«onia Moutan changed into an anthera; and the divisions of the apparently analogous organ in Aquilegia, which in their usual state resemble barren filaments, have sometimes been observed with perfect antheræ*. * Schkuhr Handbuch, tab. 146. ( 143 ) XII. On some remarkable Deviations j^ the usual Structure of Seeds and Fruits. By Robert Browh, Esq. F.R.S., Lib. L.S. Read March 5, 1816. Tur principal part of the following paper was read to the So- ciety in March 1813. It was then withdrawn with a view of rendering it more perfect by additional facts, which I hoped I might be able to collect. Since that time I have not had it in my power to pay much attention to the subject. As, however, the facts formerly stated appear to me of some importance, and are as yet unpublished, I take the liberty of again submitting them to the Society, along with a few additional instances of anoma- lies in the structure of seeds and fruits, hardly less remarkable than those contained in the original essay. sp It is, I believe, generally admitted by physiological botanists, that the seeds of plants are never produced absolutel y naked :—in other words, that the’ integument through some point or process of which impregnation takes place, cannot properly be considered as part of the seed itself. AES That such a covering, distinct from the seed, really exists, may in most, perhaps in all, cases be satisfactorily shown by a careful examination of the unimpregnated ovarium, to a part only of whose cavity the ovulum will be found to be attached. There are, however, many cases where soon after foecundation, and more remarkably still in the ripe fruit, this integument ac- quires 144 Mr. Brown on some remarkable Deviations quires so complete and intimate a cohesion with the proper coat of the seed as to be no longer either separable or distinguishable from it. : * i But systematic botanists have generally agreed to term a naked seed not only this kind of fruit, but every monospermous pericar- - pium bearing a general resemblance to a seed, and whose outer. covering, though distinct from the nucleus, is only ruptured after germination commences. ; For the purposes of an artificial arrangement this language may perhaps be sufficiently accurate; but in determining, the aftini- ties of plants, it is necessary.to express by appropriate terms those differences which are no less important than real. Of the fruits improperly called naked seeds, there are two prin- cipal kinds: The first, in which the pericarpium is distinct from the seed, is termed Akena by Richard in his excellent Analyse du Fruit; the second, in which the pericarpium coheres with the seed, is the Caryopsis of the same author. : An Akena (or Achenium), even in a separate state, may in ge- neral be readily determined. But it is not always equally easy to distinguish a Caryopsis from a seed. It may indeed be done in certain cases, as in Grasses, by attending to its surface, in which two distinct and distant cicatrices are observable; the one indi- cating the point of attachment to the parent plant, the other that by which it was fæcundated. In certain other tribes, how- ever, this criterion cannot be had recourse to, the surface of the Caryopsis exhibiting but one areola or cicatrix, which includes the closely approximated points of attachment and i impregnation: in such cases, the true nature of the fruit can onl y be determined by its examination in an earlier stage. : But although it must be adiblited that an ovulum is never produced without a covering, through some part of which it is im preg- | from the usual Structure of Seeds. 145 impregnated; it is still possible to conceive a case in which a ripe seed may be considered as truly naked while retaining its at- tachment to the parent plant; and this not subsequent to germi- nation, but even preceding the formation of the embryo. For if we suppose, as the immediate effect of impregnation, a swelling of the ovulum without a corresponding enlargement of the ova- rium, the consequence will obviously be a premature rupture of the ovarium, and the production of a seed provided with its pro- per integuments only. i À I am not aware that such an economy has hitherto been de- scribed ; I have observed it, however, in several plants belonging to very different families, and of essentially different structures. - The first of these is Leontice thalictroides of Linneus, Caulophyt- lum thalictroides of Michaux, who has founded his new genus on a difference of fruit, the nature of which he has entirely misunder- stood. It is remarkable that its real structure should have escaped so accurate an observer as M. Richard, through whose hands it is: generally understood Michaux's work passed previous to its publication; but the fact may at least serve to show how entire! y unexpected such an economy must have been even to that excel: lent carpologist. dcr * Porn eas es : My observations were made in the summer of 1812, on à plant of Leontice thalictroides, which flowered and ripened fruit in the royal gardens at Kew. A in examination of the unimpregnated ovarium proved it to be in every respect of the same structure with that of the other species of Leontice; and essentially the same with the whole order of Berberides, to which this genus be- longs. A careful inspection of the fruit, in different states, proved also that the ** Drupa stipitata" of Michaux is in reality a naked seed, that in a very early stage had burst its pericarpium, VOL. XII. : U : the 146 Mr. Brown on some remarkable Deviations the withered remains of which were in most cases visible at the base of the ripe seed. The first error of Michaux naturally led to a series of mistakes; and the naked seed being considered by him as a drupa, the albumen, which is of a horny texture, is de- scribed as a * nux cornea crassissima," and the embryo itself as the seed. But although this account of the fruit of Leontice thalictroides be in no respect similar to that given by Michaux, it may perhaps be considered by some as still differing sufficiently from Leontice to authorize the establishment of a distinct genus; and that, there- fore, the name Caulophyllum mtay be retained, and its character derived from the remarkable circumstance described, namely, the early rupture of its pericarpium. I believe, however, it will be found more expedient to reduce it again to Leontice. For, in the first place, its habit is entirely that of the original spe- cies of the genus. And secondly, though the pericarpium of Le- ontice Leontopetalum, which is the type of the genus, remains shut until the ripening of the seeds, and attains a size more than suffi- cient for the mere purpose of containing them; yet in Leontice al- taica, a species in other respects more nearly approaching to L. Le- ontopetalum than to L. thalictroides, the pericarpium, though it en- larges considerably after impregnation, is ruptured by the seeds long before they have arrived at maturity. ' | The accompanying drawing, for which I am indebted to my friend Mr. Ferdinand Bauer, will materially assist in explain- ing the singular economy now described; and may also per- haps render more intelligible the account I proceed to give of the second instance in which I have observed an analogous structure, but to illustrate which I have at present no drawing prepared, Tac gt. ai This from the usual Structure of Seeds. — 147 This second instance occurs in Peliosanthes Teta of Andrews's Repository and the Botanical Magazine: ; In this monocotyledonous plant, which in 1812 nearly ripened seed in Mr. Lambert's collection at Boyton, the ovarium coheres with the tube of the perianthium or corolla, and has originally three cells, each containing twoovula. Soon after impregnation has taken place, from one to three of these ovula rapidly increase in size, by their pressure prevent the deyelopment of the others, and rupture the ovarium, which remains, but little enlarged at the base of the fruit, consisting of from one to three naked berry-like seeds. In the Botanical Magazine Mr. Ker, in describing a second species of Peliosanthes *, takes the opportunity of altering in some respects the character of the genus he had previously given, and of adding a description of its supposed pericarpium, from an in- spection, as it seems, of the unripe fruit of Peliosanthes Teta. It is evident, however, that he is not aware of its real structure; and consequently does not succeed in reconciling its appearance with the unquestionable fact of its having ** germen inferum." "There are some cases in which this early opening of the ova- rium, instead of being, as in the preceding instances, an irregular bursting, apparently caused by the pressure of the enlarged ovula, is a regular dehiscence in the direction of the suture. Of this Sterculia platanifolia and S. colorata are remarkable examples; their folliculi after opening, which takes place long before the maturity “of the seeds, acquiring the form and texture of leaves, to whose thickened margins the ovula continue firmly attached until they ripen. Another exampleof this early and regular dehiscence occurs in an undescribed genus of the same family, which differs from Sterculia platanifolia in its pericarpium having a terminal wing and a single seed. | E * Botan, Magaz. 1532. U 2 In 148 Mr. Brown on some remarkable Deviations Tn the specimens of a plant lately sent from Brazil by Mr. Sel- - low, I observe a similar economy. In this case the ovarium, which is originally unilocular with five parietal placentz, soon after fe- cundation opens regularly into five equal foliaceous valves, to the inner surface of each of which an indefinite number of ovula are attached. ; ! The genus Reseda, whose capsule opens at top at a very early period, may be considered as affording another instance, though much less remarkable, of the same anomaly. And it is possible this may be the real structure in certain cases of which a very dif- ferent view has been taken. > In the instances of naked seeds now given, the bursting of the pericarpium precedes the distinct formation of the embryo, while the proper coats of the seed remain entire till after its separation from the parent plant, and germination has commenced. | It may not be uninteresting to contrast this economy with that of the Mangroves and other plants of tropical countries, which grow on the shores, and within the influence of the tide. In many of these the embryo, long before the seed loses its original attach- ment, acquires a very considerable size; and the first effect of this unusual development is the rupture, in most cases succeeded by the complete absorption or disappearance, of the proper integu- - ment of the seed. In some instances the development proceeds still further, and the pericarpium itself is perforated by the embryo, which, while preserving its connexion with the parent plant, often attains the length of from eighteen inches to two feet. This hap- pens in Rhizophora and Bruguiera, or the Mangroves properly so called. In some of the spurious Mangroves, as Avicennia and ZEgiceras, a lesser degree of development takes place, and in ge- neral their pericarpia remain entire till they have dropped from the tree. In both cases the final cause of the economy is suffi- ciently |» from the usual Structure of Seeds. — 149 ciently evident; a greater than ordinary evolution of the em- bryo being necessary to ensure its vegetation in tle unfavourable circumstances in which it is unavoidably placed. But an analogous structure exists in other plants, where the ' final cause is less apparent, as in certain species of Eugenia, in which the integument of the seed is completely absorbed. before its separation from the parent plant, and while the pericarpium remains entire. | An economy no less remarkable than that of the Mangroves, but of a nature diametrically opposite, takes place in the bulb- like seeds of certain liliaceous plants, especially of Pancratium, Crinum and Amaryllis; in some of whose species the seed separates from the plant, and even from the pericarpium, before the embryo becomes visible. ‘This observation respecting some of these seeds was, | believe, first made by Mr. Salisbury ; and in such as I have myself examined, I have found the fact connected with one no less interesting, namely, an unusual vascularity in the fleshy sub- stance. ! | - I have in another place*, in speaking of this substance, which constitutes the mass of the seed, and in a central cavity of which the future embryo is formed, stated it to be destitute of vessels, and entirely composed of cellular texture. Buton a more careful inspection, of those seeds at least in which the separation precedes the visible formation of the embryo, I now find very distinct spi- ral vessels :—these enter at the umbilicus, ramify in a regular. man- ner in the substance of the fleshy mass, and appear to have a cer- tain relation to the central cavity where the embryo is afterwards formed, and which, filled with a glairy fluid, is distinctly visible before the separation of the seed. It is a curious consequence of this tardy evolution of the embryo, which in some cases does not * Prodr. Flor. Nov, Holland, p. 297. become 150 Mr. Brown on some remarkable Deviations become visible unless the seed be placed in a situation favourable to germination, that very different directions may be given to its radicular extremity, according to circumstances which we have it in our power to regulate. There is a fourth kind of anomaly in the structure of certain - seeds, which, as I have formerly described it*, I shall here notice in few words. It is that which takes place in certain Aroidee, especially in some species of Calladium. In these, the nucleus of the seed is not properly a monocotyledonous embryo, but has an appearance and economy more nearly resembling those of the tuber of a root ; for, instead of being distinguishable into a coty- ledon, a plumula and radicula, and of germinating in a determi- nate manner and from a single point, it is composed of a mass whose internal structure is uniform, and on the surface of which frequently more than one germinating point is observable. None of these anomalies appear to me materially to lessen the importance of the characters derived from the seeds of plants; but they evidently render a minute attention to every circum- stance absolutely necessary in all attempts either to deduce affini- ties or establish genera from this source; and they especially de- monstrate the necessity of carefully ascertaining the state of the unimpregnated ovarium; for, while its structure remains unknown, that of the ripe fruit can never be thoroughly understood. * Prodr, Flor. Nov. Holl. p. 335, EXPLA- from the usual Structure of Seeds. 151 EXPLANATION OF PLATE VII. A.—A branch of the panicle of LrowTicE THALICTROIDES Linn. (Caulophyllum thalictroides Michauz), of the natural size. B.—The same magnified, to show at 1, the early rupture of the ovarium, the ovula as yet but little enlarged and only in part protruded: at 2, the same parts in a more advanced state ; one seed being nearly ripe, supported by its elongated and thickened umbilical cord ; a second ovulum considerably increased in size, but abortive; and the remains of the rup- tured ovarium somewhat enlarged. C and D.—T wo longitudinal sections of the nearly ripe seed ; ex- hibiting the vascular cord continued from the axis of the funiculus umbilicalis to the apex of the seed ; the remarkable process of the inner integument at the umbilicus (of which another view is given separately at E); and the unripe em- bryo nearly in contact with this process, and as yet undi- vided. | XIII. Re- sie aies. T 152 ART. Remarks on two Genera of Plants to be referred to the Fa- = mily of the Rosacee, in a Letter Jrom Mr. A. P. De Cahdolle, Professor of Natural History in the Academy of Geneva, Corresp. R. Acad. Sc. Paris, $c. to Sir James Edward Swith, President of . . the Linnean Society. Read April 2, 1816. Moxsizun, St les descriptions des espèces nouvelles sont les acquisitions les plus évidentes de la botanique, les. rectifications des descriptions anciennes ne laissent pas d'avoir aussi quelqu'intérét : elles en ac- quiérent surtout lorsqu'elles sont rélatives à des plantes que leur beauté a rendues populaires, et lorsqu'elles ont pour résultats de faire classer avec quelque précision des objets connus au paravant ; ce sont ces motifs qui m'engagent à vous faire part de quelques ob- servations sur le Corchorus japonicus de Thunberg, et le Tigarea bidentata de Pursh ; je vous en dois l'hommage à d'autant plus juste titre que vous avez déjà étudié le méme sujet, et que c'est à la complaisance avec laquelle vous avez bien voulu me permettre d'étudier l'herbier de Linné, que je dois d'avoir pu éclaircir une partie importante des difficultés qui m'arrétoient. Occupé ey plusieurs années de quelques recherches sur les fleurs doubles, j’ j avois analysé avec soin le Corchorus japonicus de nos jardins, et je m'étois assuré, 1. que dans cette plante les- pé- tales naturelsetles pétales accessoires qui représentent les étamines sont to be referred to the Family of the Rosacea. 153 sont insérés non sur le réceptacle comme dans les vrais Corcho- rus, mais sur le calice même ; 2. que l'ovaire n’y est pas unique comme dans les Corchorus, mais composé de 5 à 6 ovaires distincts: 3. que le mode de végétation et d’inflorescence de ce prétendu Corchorus diffère beaucoup des autres espèces de ce genre :.j’avois conclu de ces observations que le joli sous-arbrisseau cultivé dans nos jardins sous le nom de Corchorus japonicus n'appartient ni au genre ni à la famille oà il a été placé, mais qu'il fait partie de la famille des Rosacées. = | ; ; Depuis lors j'ai eu, graces à vous, Monsieur, l'occasion de voir ce prétendu Corchorus à fleurs simples, et je me suis assuré que les soupçons déduits de l'analyse des fleurs. doubles étoient fondés, et que cette opinion, quoique en apparence nouvelle au- Jourd'hui, se trouve déjà consignée dans plusieurs livres. Vous avez déjà fait connoître par une notte de l'excellente mo- nographe des Rubus que vous avez insérée dans la Cyclopzedia du Dr. Rees, que le Rubus japonicus de Linné n'est autre chose que notre Corchorus; Linné dit que les fleurs en sont blanches, et cette circonstance a sans doute éloigné les botanistes de toute re- ‘cherche à cet égard ; mais l'échantillon de l'herbier de Linné que vous avez bien voulu me permettre d'étudier, montre des pétales pales et décolorés il est vrai, mais qui ont pu être jaunes ; il est probable que Linné, entrainé par le sentiment et le tact exquis qu'il avoit sur les rapports naturels, a cru qu'une plante si voisine des Rubus et des Spirea devoit avoir la fleur blanche ; cet échan- tillon avec celui de Thunberg ne m'a laissé comme à vous aucun doute sur l'identité des deux plantes, et sur la sagacité avec la- quelle Linné l'avoit rapportée à sa famille; en voyant méme les rapports de foliation des Rubus corchorifolius, elongatus, pyrifolius, acuminatus, &c. avec celle de notre plante, on concoit facilement comment sur un échantillon sec elle a pu étre rapportée à ce genre. YOL. XII. X Le 154 M. Dr Canpotte’s Remarks on two Genera of Plants Le savant et respectable Président de la Société Royale, qui, comme on s¢ait, a fait une attention particulière à la botanique du Japon, m'a fait remarquer lorsque j'ai eu l'honneur de lui parler de cet objet, que les Japonois paroissent avoir senti le rap- port de leur plante avec les Rosacées, car ils donnent àu Pyrus ja- ponica le nom de Buke, et au prétendu Corchorus celui de Jamma Buki. Keempfer dit méme en décrivant cette plante, “ flore sim- plici luteo Ranunculi, Rose canine facie ac magnitudine;" depuis l'époque de Thunberg les premiers doutes sur la légitimité de sa classification se trouvent consignés dans le Botanist’s Repository; | la figure représente trés bien la position perigyne des étamines et le nombre des ovaires; on lit de plus dans la description ; all the flowers that we have seen are from 5- to 8-gynous; which with the sin- gular form of the capsule makes us consider it as a very doubtful spe- cies of Corchorus. et o REE, eae Sil est facile d’affirmer que le Corchorus de Thunberg n'est point de ce genre, et qu'il appartient, comme Linné l’a pensé, à la famille des Rosacées, il l'est un peu moins de décider sa place dans cette famille; il ne peut étre un Rubus, parceque ses fruits ne paroissent nullement destinés à devenir charnus, et que d'ailleurs son port et la couleur méme de sa fleur s'y opposent trop forte- ment; il paroit avoir plus de rapports avec les Spirées ; mais il s'en éloigne encore par l'unité des graines de chaqu'ovaire et par cette méme couleur de la fleur; je crois donc que cette plante doit former un genre nouveau ; j'aurois voulu pouvoir faire hom- mage de cette espèce élégante, et qui devient tous les jours plus populaire au botaniste qui m'a donné l'occasion de m'assurer de ses Caractères, et qui a tant contribué à populariser la botanique en Angleterre: mais votre nom étant déjà consacré dans.la science des fleurs, j'ai donné à ce nouveau genre le nom de Kerria, d'après celui de William Kerr, jardinier, qui d’après le témoignage de M. | Robert to be referred to the Family of the Rosacea. ` | 155 Robert Brown a introduit en Europe un trés grand nombre de plantes de Chine, et auquel nous devons en particulier celle qui nous occupe. Il est un autre végétal rapporté par le seul botaniste qui l'a dé- crit à une famille trés différente de celle-ci, et qu'on doit selon moi non seulement rapporter à la famille des Rosacées, mais pla- cer trés prés du Kerria; je veux parler du Tigarea tridentata de Pursh; dés l'inspection de la figure et de la description, javois pensé que cette plante n'étoit point un Tigarea*, n'appartenoit point aux Dilleniacées dont le Tigarea fait partie, et devoit être ‘reporté dans les Rosacées auprès des Spirea. M. Lambert, qui a bien voulu me permettre d'étudier les richesses de sa belle collec- tion, m'a donné l'occasion de changer ce soupçon en certitude; je puis donc d’après l'examen de l'échantillon méme de Pursh.af- firmer que sa plante est un genre de Rosacée, que je désignerai sous le nom de Purshia, en l'honneur du botaniste qui l'a le pre- mier fait connoitre, aussi bien qu un grand nombre de plantes de r Amérique septentrionale. Le Kerria et le Purshia ont entr'eux des rapports très intimes; - r un et l’autre sont des sous-arbrisseaux de pays tempérés et ana- loguesf, munis de bourgeons écailleux, et dépourvus d'épines et d’aiguillons ; leurs feuilles sont simples, alternes, dentées, rap- prochées sur de petits rameaux latéraux ; leurs fleurs naissent le plus souvent solitaires, et pedonculées au sommet de ces petits ra- meaux ; elles sont composées de 5 pétales jaunes arrondis, attachés au calice, et d’un grand nombre d'étamines perigynes; leurs ovaires * Le Tigarea d'Aublet est lui-même un get qui a été sag: et réuni au Teiracera par Willdenow. ; + Les botanistes savent qu'il existe un grand nombre de genres, et méme de ceux qui sont composés d'un petit nombre d’espéces, qui ont une partie de leurs espèces dans r ’Amé- rique septentrionale, et l’autre dans l'Asie orientale : tels sont les genres Magnolia, Tilli- cium, Cimicifuga, Panax, Platanus, Thuya, &c. &c, x 2 ne 156 M. Dr CaNwpnorrz's Remarks on two Genera of Plants ne renferment qu'une seule graine, et leur fruit n'est pas charnu: ces deux genres se placent donc assez-bien entre la tribu des Spi- rées et celle des Dryadées. Malgré l'intimité que ces deux genres présentent dam Pensem- ble de leurs caractères, et la possibilité qu'on soit un jour forcé de les réunir, j'ai cru qu'il étoit plus convenable de les considérer comme distincts ; leurs différences, quoique legeres, me paroissent suffisantes pour autoriser cette séparation: 1. Le Kerria a.tou- jours de 5 à 8 ovaires au moins; le Purshia n'en a qu'un d'après Pursh. M. Robert Brown y a vu 2 ovaires dans une fleur qu'il a analysée ; je n'en ai vu qu'un dans celle que j'ai observée ; ainsi le nombre, quoiqu'un peu vague, est fort inférieur à celui du Ker- ria. 2. La graine du Kerria est attachée latéralement vers le mi- lieu de l'ovaire; celle du Purshia est attachée à sa base. 3. Les styles du Kerria à fleur simple sont longs, filiformes, bien distincts des ovaires, tandis que celui du Purshia est court, et semble n'étre qu'une simple sommité d'ovaire retrecie et atténuée ; oserai-je méme ajouter que les ovaires sont glabres, peut-étre indehiscens . dans le Kerria, velus et susceptibles d'une legére dehiscence dans le Purshia; que le Kerria a des stipules axillaires trés distinctes, tandis que celles du Purshia manquent; ou que du moins, si elles existent, elles y sont très petites et à peine perceptibles ? D’après ces considérations, je crois pouvoir établir les carac- teres de ces deux genres, comme suit: KERRIA. Rubi Sp. Linn. Corchori Sp. Thunb. Can. Calyx 5-fidus, lobis ovatis, 3 obtusis, 2 apice calloso-sub- mucronatis, æstivatione imbricatis : Petala 5 orbiculata calyci | inserta, ejusdem lobis alterna: Stamina circiter 20 filiformia calyci inserta: anthere ovate: Ovaria 5-8 libera glabra globosa, ovulo to be referred to the Family of the Rosacee. 157 ovulo unico lateraliter adhærente fœta : styli totidem filiformes. Capsulæ (ex Thunb.) globosæ. Vec. Suffrutex inermis ramosus cortice levi virescente, ramulis lateralibus brevibus è gemma squammosa ortis, floribus in ra- mulis szepiüs solitariis pedunculatis; folia ovato-lanceolata acu- minata. penninervia grosse dentata, dentibus serratis serraturis acutis subaristatis, Spire: opulifoliæ nervatione et vernatione "Similia: stipule 2 lineari-subulatæ rigidiusculæ : flores lutei facillime pleni, staminibus in petala oblonga obtusa basi angus- tata substipitata mutatis, ovariis elongatis effetis sed seepius persistentibus nec omnino cvanidis. . Kerria Japonica. . Teito vulgo Jamma Buki. Kempf. Minn 844. Rubus Japonicus. Linn. Mant. p. 245. Corchorus Japonicus. Thunb. FI. Jap. 227. Bot. Rep. t. 587. Bot. Mag. t. 1996. Hab. in Japonia circa Nagasaki et alibi. Thunb. 5 (v. v. C. fl. pleno. v. s. c. fl. simpl. in herb. Smith.) Pursnatia. | Tigareæ Sp. Pursh. Can. Calyx 5-fidus, lobis ovatis obtusis: Petala 5 orbiculata ca- lyci inserta : Stam. circiter 20, calyci inserta: Ovarium 1 (2 ex _ Brown) ovato-oblongum pubescens apice in stylum brevemsim- plicem attenuatum, ovulo unico basi inserto : Capsula ovario conformis rima laterali dehiscens. Vea. Frutex ramosissimus inermis, cortice cinereo, ramulis late- ralibus brevibus è gemma squammosa ortis: folia in ramulis conferta basi cuneata apice grossé bidentata supra villosa sub- tus cano-tomentosa: stipule nulle aut minime: flores pænè lutei. 3 Purshia 158 M. De CanDoLLeE’s Remarks on two Genera of Plants. Purshia tridentata. Tigarea tridentata. Pursh Ft. PR Am. 1. $::939. 4, 15. Hab. in pascuis.secus flumen Columbia in America boreali. Lewis. »,(v.s.s. inh. Lamb.) - Je désire, Monsieur, que ces observations puissent vous offrir quelqu'intérét, et en publiant cette note prise en grande partie dans votre Herbier et dans ceux des autres botanistes de l'An- gleterre, je m'estime heureux d'avoir une occasion de les remercier publiquement, ainsi que vous, de l'accueil obligeant par lequel ils ont bien voulu faciliter mes recherches. J'ai l'honneur d'étre, Monsieur, avec la considération la plus distinguée, votre très humble ct devoué serviteur, A. P. nr Caxporrr. XIV. 4 XIV. A Synopsis of the PN Species of Rosa. By- Joseph Wood$, Esq. F.L.S. Read April 16 and June 4, 1816. Tur beauty of the Rose is so trite a theme, that it would be al- most impossible to praise it in any other terms than have already been used for the same subject:—but beautiful as it is, the genus has long been involved in confusion and obscurity. Born with the same senses, the same tastes as other men, the botanist will feel its beauties even more strongly than they do, in proportion as those tastes and senses have been more exercised towards simi- lar objects. But the difficulties attending the investigation of these plants are at least equal to the charms of their appearance and fragrance: even their commonness has perhaps contributed to our ignorance of them. Educated with Roses always before our eyes, it is long ere we learn to consider them as objects of science; and the excitement of novelty is lost while we are yet incapable of accurate examination. For my own part, if I had not been stimulated by the strikingly different appearance of the genus in the hedges of Westmoreland from that which it assumes in the southern counties, I should probably never have exposed my insufficiency in this attempt to discriminate the species: but the almost uniformly villous leaves and the colour of the flowers, generally either a white (sometimes almost pure, sometimes with a spot or two of full red), or else a much deeper red than in any of the Roses in the neighbourhood of London, attracted my atten- tion, 160 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. tion, and urged my endeavours to find fixed and distinct charac- ters, to distinguish plants marked by such differences in the ge- neral appearance. ‘Though I feel that I have little reason to con- gratulate myself on the success of these attempts, and have indeed been successively obliged to relinquish many of the characters on which that general difference of appearance depends, yet I ven- ture to offer their imperfect results to the notice of the Linnæan Society. In an obscure or intricate subject, the faithful record of observations is always valuable. With views no more exalted, it may be considered as incon- sistent to attempt a Synopsis of the British Roses; but in fact I did not perceive any other mode in which the remarks I had col- lected could be so well arranged ; and the attempt once made, I exerted myself to give some consistency and value to the essay, by putting in systematic order the materials within my reach. That it is still imperfect I am aware; but I flatter myself it will not be found useless by the future investigator of this most interesting genus. : | . It appears to me that the principle to be attended to in the subdivision of genera, is to keep together those species which are most nearly allied in nature. In the formation of the genera themselves, it may be necessary to attend exclusively to the or- .gans of fructification, as the most important parts of the plant ; but in their sections we must find a character in any part which: will keep similar plants together. With all this latitude of choice, the accomplishment of the object will be found often of very difficult attainment; and after all our labours, the best arrange- ment which can be made may still present some important aber- rations. à | On examining by this general rule the usual division of the ge- nus Rosa into those ** fructibus ovatis" and “ fructibus subglobo- sis,” Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 161 sis," the following observations will sufficiently show that it is extremely defective. The existence of prickles, or rather of setze, on the fruit or on the peduncle, will not serve for this purpose much better, though these characters have hitherto been much insisted on ;—the setæ on the peduncle are, I believe, more con- stant than those on the fruit, but they are by no means implicitly -to be depended on. I have no intention, as I have no means, to enter in this essay on any examination of foreign Roses; but in endeavouring to form an arrangement of the British plants, it became necessary to pay some attention to the general appearances, and to the more striking characters of the foreign species. 1f the whole genus were spread out before a botanist, he would separate them, ac- cording to the habit or general appearance of the plants, into several leading divisions; but in proceeding to distinguish each of these families in description, he will feel the want of some pre- cise language to discriminate certain peculiarities not yet suffi- ciently attended to. Indeed, in analysing the differences among any tribe of plants more minutely than has been done before, we shall probably find it necessary either to adopt new terms, or to use with more precision some to which a more lax or more gene- ral interpretation has been affixed. This privilege I have ven- - tured to assume in a few instances, where it seemed to me indis- pensable; and particularly with respect to the arms (arma of Lin- neus) of the Roses, which have hitherto been called by the general term aculei, except in a few instances, where weak pedicellated glands have supplied their place; and this latter appearance has been designated by the word hispid. Something of the necessity of more accurate distinctions seems to have been felt by Sir J. E. Smith in his account of the genus Rosa in Rees's Cyclopedia, by - VOL. XIL Y | his 162 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. his having used the words aculeatus, setosus, and hispidus, as applied to the fruit and peduncle; but he extends the difference no further, and has given no explanation of the particular meaning he attaches to these terms. © = = on 15 Roses are furnished with aculei, sete, glands, hairs, chaff, and pubescence. Aculei or prickles are sometimes hooked, and gene- . rally more or less curved; but in some species they are quite Straight. They have an expanded oblong base, and occuron the stems, petioles and nerves of the leaves, and perhaps in one or two instances on the fruit and fruit-stalk ; at least one variety of R. spinosissima is either furnished with aculei, or with setze so strong that they are very liable to be mistaken for aculei. Acute are either straight, as in R. spinosissima ; straightish, with a very slight curve downwards, as in R.villosa ; falcate, or bent as a scythe, as in the large prickles of R. gracilis, and in some varieties of R. tomentosa ; and hooked or uncinate, like a — claw or sickle, as in R. canina. : Those of R: arvensis and of some neighbouring species are frequently a sort of obtuse elliptical cone, with a straight or curved mucro. This peculiarity of form is not found in R. systyla, and is no where sufficiently constant to enter into the character of any species. In the descriptions of the species, the form of the aculei must be taken from those which grow on the strong parts of the plant, and from those which are largest and with the most extended base. Ha raf ‘Ser# are always straight, and tipped with a gland ; this gland sometimes falls off, but vestiges of it can generally be perceived. Setæ are always smaller than aculei occupying the same situa- tion; that is, the sete of the stem are smaller than the aculei of the stem ; the sete of the petioles are smaller than the aculei of the petioles; but the sete: of the stem are often larger than the „aculei Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 168 aculei of the petioles. Sete are found on the same parts as the aculei, and are besides frequent on the peduncle and fruit, and sometimes on the leafits of the calyx: they differ, in being longer or shorter in proportion to the size of the gland " which they are terminated. The Guanps of Roses are almost songé on dittle footstalks, which however being weak, and seldom of length greater than the diameter of the gland, may in general be Pabcsditd separated from the sete above mentioned. Glands rarely occur on the stems ;- but they are found on the stipulæ, which are frequently fringed with them ; on the petioles and nerves; in some Roses on the under, and in some also on the upper side of the leaf, and sometimes on the edges, tipping the serratures, or giving the appearance of secondary ones; on the fruitstalk, receptacle, and calyx. The latter part is not unfre- quently furnished with set: at the base, which, gradually dimi- nishing in length and strength, pass insensibly into glands to-- wards the termination of the phyllus. To these glands the odour of the leaves of Roses seems to be invariably owing.: They are generally most abundant on the early and imperfectly-formed leaflets, and sometimes fall off or dry up towards autumn. . Some Roses are furnished with only one sort of these arms, others have two, others again all three. In some, one sort is confined to one or two parts of the plant, as the sete of R. villosa; in others it occurs generally, as the sete of R. rubella. Some species, as Rosa Eglanteria, proceed by almost insensible gradations in one part or other of the plant from hooked to straight prickles, to sete, and to glands; others again, though furnished with all these, display them perfectly. distinct. In some the aculei, though always distinct from setze, vary very much in size and character; ¥ 2 in 164 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. in others, though somewhat different on different parts of the plant; yet on any given part they are nearly similar. Some further obser- vations on this head will be found in the description of the surculi. Some Roses in the place of sete exhibit white warns, weak, but not very fine: in R. Borreri the peduncle has sometimes weak setw, sometimes these white hairs, and sometimes, though more — rarely, a fine pubescence: hairs also occur on the upper side of the axillz of the foliole, and occasionally also along the channel on the upper side of the petiole in most Roses; and sometimes the petioles and the nerves on the underside of the leaf are covered rather with hairs than with down ; but from this. point the hairi- ness passes insensibly into pubescence, with which it is even in- terchangeable. On the upper side of the-leaf likewise a few straggling along the nerves may occasionally be observed in all the smooth-leaved Roses ; the seeds also and the styles are gene- rally hairy or villous. ‘The weak white hairs occur in every part - of the plant on which glands or sete are found, being a produc- tion apparently of a similar nature. ` oradi Cuarr may be observed occupying the place of hairs at the axillæ of the folioles of R. spinosissima and some others of that tribe. I have not observed it elsewhere. Punzscrwcz is found on the stems, reeeptacles, calyces, sti- pulæ, and folioles. The presence or absence of hirsuties, whether. of coarse or fine hairs, on the petiole and on the veins beneath the leaf, appears to me of considerable importance; and it is observ- able that these always accompany each other. Individual leaves may doubtless be found in which the petiole is downy and. the nerve naked, or perhaps sometimes just the reverse; but a more extended examination will assuredly demonstrate their connexion. To the pubescence of the inferior and superior paginas of the leaf | | i attention. i: hairs which occupy the place of glands are always more or less + Mr. Woons on the British Species of Rosa. 165 attention must be paid, although the former. perhaps always in some degree accompanies the hirsuties of the footstalk. On the stem, peduncle and fruit, pubescence is too rarely exhibited in British Roses for me to form any estimate of its value. On- the other hand, R. arvensis is the only British Rose of which the styles are smooth, and the seeds in all of them are villous. The white interchangeable with them ; the hairs on the axillz of the leaflets, and those which are occasionally to be met with along the upper surface of the midrib, are I believe.common to all Roses; and can therefore be of no use in distinguishing the species. The chafliness 3s only met with in one tribe, where it is somewhat uncertain, and which is besides characterized by much more important distinc- tions. The appropriate name for the wre of a Rose during the inflo- rescence has been long a subject of contention among botanists; a circumstance which may be considered as a proof of the insuf- ficiency of the Linnean terminology in this respect. Linnæus himself called it the germen. Sir J. E. Smith, aware of the im- -propriety of this term, drew all his specific characters of this part from the fruit, not adverting to its appearance in an earlier stage: 4n the detailed description he still preserves the word germen. Willdenow continues the use of this word, although he censures Linnæus for adopting it. Jussieu and Gærtner call it simply calyx, describing the genus as having calyx urceolaris. © ‘The French botanists. call it the tube of the calyx: but, according to general apprebension, the calyx would consist merely of those five leaves which form the outer envelope of the flower; and even after a ‘strict attention to botanical terms, a student would be apt to.con- clude the fleshy body separated by its substance, and. apparently + by 166 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. by its functions, from the five small leaves, to be a germen, till the circumstance which alone distinguishes it—the small orifice through which the styles pass—is pointed out to him. Under these circumstances I have ventured to call the part in question a receptacle, understanding by this term the thickened substance occurring between the summit of the peduncle and the leaves of the calyx in the natural order of Rosacea, supporting not only the latter, but also the stamina and petals, and confining it. to the period of inflorescence :—the outer covering of the flower I have - therefore exclusively called calyx, and its divisions Jeafits instead of laciniz. | | 5d The only objection to this arrangement arises from that part of a strawberry and of one or two other genera, which has usuall y been called receptacle. Considering this term as only applied to the edible part of the strawberry, Gærtner says that the Rose has no receptacle: the difference, however, seems to me only this, that the inner series of vessels in the receptacle is dilated into a spongy body; in Fragaria soft and juicy ; in Comarum harsh and dry; while in Rosa and Potentilla no such expansion takes place. If this be a correct view of the subject, the fruit of the straw- berry ought not to be considered as the true receptacle, but as a spongy body attached to the receptacle and immediately sup- porting the seeds. sé TE dn calling the calyx simple, sub-simple, or compound, I have perhaps taken a less excusable liberty with the common language of botany ;—by simple, I mean to express that the leafits are undivided or without any offsets. These offsets of a leafit when they occur have the appearance of a proliferous growth, which renders the term offset particularly applicable; and the term would perhaps be better than that of pinne, which I have adopted, if E Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 167 ifit were as usual. In a regularly-formed calyx they are always very narrow at the point of junction, and go off at a considerable angle; and when they take their commencement from a wide base, or lie nearly parallel to the line of the leafit when the flower is open, the calyx must be rejected as a monster. On this sub- ject some further observations will be found in the course of this introduction. This character (of a simple calyx), like all. others in the genus, must be determined with caution; aseven in some of those Roses whose calyx is generally simple, a small offset may sometimes be observed, even putting monstrosities out of the question. Another circumstance to be attended to is, that the proper offset or pinna always occurs before the contraction of the calyx leafit at the point of the flower; after that contraction many Roses have a strong tendency to produce more or less of a leaf. The five leafits of the calyx of a Rose, dnited before the expan- sion of the flowers, present five lines of junction, each of which in the compound calya is furnished with a row of offsets; two of the leaves having pinnæ on each side, one on one side only, and the remaining two are uniformly entire. ** Quinque sumus fratres, sub eodem tempore nati, Bini barbati, bini sine crine creati, Quintus habet barbam sed tantum dimidiatam,” This arrangement I express by the term compound : in the sub- simple calyx every flower offers one or more of these offsets, but the whole provision is never found in any one. In all Roses these calyx leafits are liable to become monstrous two ways: sometimes one or two, or sometimes even the whole number will grow out into leaves (folia), and sometimes the off- sets are entirely wanting even in species where they usually are the 168 Mr: Woops on the British Species of Rosa. the most numerous. In the first case the divisions mostly take place after the contraction of the leafit, which in the bud marks the termination of the petals; orif it occur in the lower and broader part, it carries the appearance of a division not of an offset, being wide at the hase and contracted upwards ; whereas the legitimate offset is uniformly contracted at the base and ex- panded upwards, except in the few instances where it is capillary. In the second case the receptacle is generally small, and the leaves are expanded towards the apex. In both the receptacle is but little contracted at the summit, and assumes somewhat of a tur- binate form ; but the best security for the student will be to ex- amine many examples, and to judge by comparison of their pro- per form. | | . Another word, which perhaps may require some explanation,— rather, however, from a peculiarity in the mode of growthin this ge- nus than from any singularity in the use of the term,—is Su ncurvs. In many roses, perhaps in some degree in all, two appearances may be observed ; and, if I may be allowed the expression, every species under different circumstances has two distinct habits. A seedling Rose of the family of R. canina, for instance, where this . property is very remarkable, usually comes up a small and feeble plant; it soon puts forth branches, weak like the parent from which they spring. ‘he aculei are few, small, weak, and but slightly hooked ; the flowers pale and solitary ; or, if in a favour- able soil, two or even three flowers may be seen together; and the plant for several years probably will not exceed the height of four or five feet. If in this state it be cut down, a strong shoot pro- ceeds from the root or from the base of the stem, which in one year will rise eight or ten feet in height, armed with abundance of strong hooked prickles, whose base is nearly equal to their : | length ; Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 169 length; and bearing in the following summer bunches of six or eight flowers; or in Rosa surculosa, which affords an excellent example of these modes of growth, perhaps even of twenty-four flowers. In R. arvensis, and still more in some foreign species of that tribe, these shoots frequently bear cymes in the same year in which they are produced; consisting in R. arvensis of fifteen or sixteen flowers; in R. indica of twenty or thirty; in R. moschata, as I am informed by my friend Mr. Borrer, who has taken the trouble to count them, sometimes as many as two hundred and sixty-five. As branches are yearly produced from these surculi, their strength diminishes, and the original character of the plant returns till new root-shoots make their appearance. "These are produced when the plant is partially destroyed; nor do I know that they ever occur except in consequence of some injury to the original growth. ‘They do not indeed always vary to the extent I have described ; but they constantly differ in this manner from the other parts of the plant, though not in equal degree. In the Latin descriptions no ambiguity can possibly occur from the use of the term “foliolum,” as applied to the parts of the calyx and those of the leaf. In the English observations I have endeavoured to avoid confusion, by calling the first /eafit and the latter leaflet, a distinction I did not adopt till I felt the want of it. The shape of the leaflet is taken principally from the ter- minal one, which I consider as the most perfect; all those of the earlier leaves are uncertain in their shape, always rounder than the others, sometimes retuse: these are to be rejected, and the shape of the leaflet deduced from those PAM later in the season. ! The stipulæ of all British kor: are linear-decurrent on the petiole of the leaf, and generally edged with glands; in some VOL. XII. Z species 170 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. species these continue unchanged, or nearly so, in those leaves which accompany the inflorescence, and -no stipulae are found unaccompanied by leaves; in others the leaflets gradually dimi- nish in number, till at last they are entirely deficient, and the two stipule unite and form a bractea; in others, again, before this process is complete, the stipulæ increase very remarkably in breadth, and the first bractea formed is perhaps subrotund, though arising from an alteration of strictly.linear stipulæ ; but in the cymes of flowers the bractez are repeated, growing gradually smaller and somewhat narrower; still, however, retaining traces of their original increase in width. The description of the bracteæ is therefore taken from the usual form of the first, which are found entirely devoid of leaflets; and the circumstance affords a very good distinction between two tribes of Roses, the family of R. cinnamomea possessing them in a remarkable degree, which I therefore describe as bracteate ; and those of the family of R. spi- nosissima preserving the stipule nearly unaltered, which I have therefore called ebracteate. _ This appropriation of terms is not the only liberty for which I have to apologize in this essay. I must acknowledge that I have described plants as species, of which I can hardly say that I really believe them to be distinct; but when this is the case, it is be- cause I did not know with what species to join them. In enu- merating them as species, I hope likewise to provoke the at- tention necessary to rectify the error; while, if placed as varie- ties, they would have less chance of being attended to. Another circumstance in which I have deviated from the usual practice of British botanists, though in this I am supported by the au- thority of Willdenow, is, that I have given names to many of the most remarkable varieties; and this practice has been adopted Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 171 adopted on the same principle of exciting the attention of other observers. The drawing out into a table the specific characters of a ge- nus possesses a double advantage; it brings them to a test, by which the writer will inevitably discover if unfortunately some of his specific characters should be drawn up without inclu- ding any peculiarities to separate it from others, a fault of which even good botanical works afford too many examples ; and it is of great assistance to the future investigator, as it leads him step by step to the species which is the object of his examina- tion. But in order to accomplish this end, it is necessary that the characters which are most important and most permanent should occupy the first places: it is desirable that the arrange- ment of the table should of itself divide the genus into its most natural families. ‘lo combine these advantages is no easy task. To discover characters which shall be permanent, always ca- pable of clear description and determination, and which at the same time shall uniformly bring together the most similar plants, and separate those comparatively dissimilar, is perhaps beyond the power of the human mind. Mr. Brown's arrangement of Proteacee, in the tenth volume of the Society's Transactions, is an excellent specimen of what may be done in this way. La- marck and De Candolle in their analysis of the genus Rosa in the Flore Francaise, have proceeded on a similar notion, though they have adopted a much inferior form, and seem to have had no higher ambition than to assist in some degree the investigation of the species. Even in this they have effected very little; because in taking first the colour of the flower, then the snape of the fruit, and then the prickliness of the peduncle, they have adopted for their leading divisions characters which are very variable. The : z 2 yellow- 112 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. yellow-flowered Roses are perhaps constant in their colour; but this is by no means the case with the other species. ‘The globu- lar fruit in some divisions of the genus appears to be important ; in others it is extremely uncertain. If the bristly fruitstalks are ever of any value, it can only be when they are used very cau- tiously to separate one or two allied species in particular subdi- visions. > | | The characters which appear to me most constant in this genus are the presence or absence of setæ on the stems; the prickles straight or hooked, equal or unequal; the tendency towards the formation of the upper stipule without leaves, or at least with leaves of fewer folioles, and expanding into bractez. Next to these are the simple or compound form of the leafits of the ca- lyx, and the simple or compound serratures of the leaves. In the latter subdivisions 1 have made use of the shape and flatness or hollowness of the leaflets; and sometimes, though un willingly, I have been obliged to depend on the pubescence, not finding any other describable character to discriminate plants whose difference of habit seemed to announce the necessity of sepa- ration. This arrangement is not without its disadvantages, principally on account of the deciduous nature of the setz in two, or perhaps in three, families of the genus. Of these, however, R. cinnamomea is the only British plant; and a moderate attention to the descrip- tion will easily teach the difference between this plant and Rosa villosa, the only species with which a specimen devoid of setae is in danger of being confounded. ` ROSA. Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 173 ROSA CHARACTER GENERICUS. Receptaculum carnosum urceolare, fauce contracta. Calyx 5-phyllus paullum infra faucem receptaculi insidens. Fo- liola plus minus triangularia, tomentosa, æstivatione imbricata. Petala 5, obcordata, disco faucis receptaculi basi angustissimá affixa, venosa. Stamina plurima, disco receptaculi affixa. Germina numerosa, superficiei interne receptaculi affixa; inferiora pedicellata. Styli tot quot germina per faucem receptaculi transeuntes. Stigmata obtusa. Fructus: Receptaculum auctum baccatum, semina includens. Semina numerosa, angulosa. OBSERVATION. I have already explained the reasons which have determined me to consider the young fruit of the Rose as a receptacle. In the abortive attempts to produce flowers, which so frequently occur in Rosa sulphurea, this part is flat as in Potentilla. In R. turbinata and a Rose called R. caroliniana in the gardens about London, it is cup-shaped; and some- times even in our single English Roses a tendency to this form may be observed, but never without being accompanied by other circumstances of monstrosity. In addition to the above characters, it may be observed, that all British Roses have weak stems furnished with prickles; pinnate leaves with serrated leaflets ; and linear stipule ge- nerally furnished with glands on the edges, decurrent on the petiole of the leaf, Synopsis 174 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. SYNOPSIS SPECIERUM. A. Setigeræ (aculeis sæpius rectis) l. bracteata, setis deciduis « . 1 a 2. subebracteatæ, setis persistentibus æ. serraturis simplicibus a. fructu suburceolato, aculeis paucis subæqualibus b. fructu globoso, aculeis confertis valde inzequalibus B. serraturis serrulatis a. foliis supra glabris . , . b. foliis utrinque hirsutis * ]aciniis calycinis integris T aculeis rectis : : T aculeis falcatis E 5 ** laciniis calycinis divisis . . B. Setis nullis, aculeis rectiusculis 1. calycibus simplicibus : ; . . 2. calycibus subsimplicibus æ. bracteis ellipticis : . e B. bracteis lanceolatis E $ à : 3. calycibus compositis a, serraturis serrulatis a. petalis margine crenatis E . b. petalis margine integris DUX B. serraturis simplicibus . . a a C. Setis nullis, aculeis uncinatis l. stylis distinctis æ., serraturis serratis a. foliolis hirsutis à * pagina tota inferiore glandulosa T aculeis confertis, surculorum inæqualibus TT aculeis sparsis, sureulorum subaequalibus ** pagina inferiore subeglandulosa. T pinnis calycinis confertis latissimis tt pinnis calycinis raris angustissimis b. foliolis glabra. s- a f. serraturis simplicibus a. foliolis subtüs venulis hirsutis * pagina superiore hirsuta T bracteis fructum superantibus TT bracteis fructu brevioribus ** pagina superiore glabra T aculeis subæqualibus à tt aculeis inæqualibus : b. foliolis utrinque glabris * aculeis petiolorum falcatis . : * aculeis petiolorum uncinatis . 2 a stylis unitis S æ. surculis suberectis ; aculeis confertis ^ B. surculis decumbentibus ; aculeis sparsis . LJ Ld ^ cinnamomea. rubella. Spinosissima. involuta. Doniana. gracilis, Sabini. * villosa. scabriuscula. heterophylla, pulchella. tomentosa. nuda. Eglanteria. `- micrantha. Borreri. casia. sarmentacea. bractescens. dumetorum. collina. hibernica. canina. surculosa. systyla. arvensis. 1. Rosa Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. ,276 E Rosa CINNAMOMEA. R. bracteata, receptaculis globosis, calycibus simplicibus, caulibus setigeris, foliolis lanceolato-oblongis simpliciter serratis. R. cinnamomea. Linn. Sp. Pl. i. 703. Willd. ii. 1065. Eng. Dot. xxxiv. t. 2388. Lam. et Dec. Flore Fr. iv. 439. Frutex quinquepedalis. Rami vagi, atropurpurascentes, setis tenerrimis deciduis, acu- leisque rectis, sub-binato stipularibus muniti, Petioli tomentosi, inermes.. Stipulee lineares, undulatæ, purpurez, glanduloso-serratæ ; ez quæ floribus propiores foliis defi- cientibus in bracteas latissimas acuminatas immutatæ, — Foliola 7, par superius et foli- olum impar ceteris majora, omnia lanceolata, molliter pubescentia, quod. praecipue in pagina inferiore accidit; supra cinereo-viridia, subtus pallidiora. Pedunculi 1 ad 3 bracteas superantes, glabri. Receptaculum globosum, glabrum, fuscum. Calycis fo- liola simplicia, elongata, petalis longiora, inermia, margine tomentosa, Flores [cya- thiformes rubescentes Sm.] Styli planiusculi. Fructus globosus [aurantiacus Sm.]. Found by R. A. Salisbury at Aketon pasture near Pontefract. Smith in Eng. Dot. : R. cinnamomea of Roth’s Fl. Germ. i. p. 217, and i1, 554, appears to be R. lutea (à bicolor. The above description was taken from a garden specimen (with single flowers), for which I am indebted to my friend Mr. Borrer. On comparison we found it to agree exactly with the figure and description of English Botany. Will- denow quotes R. fluvialis Fl. Dan. t. 868, as a variety of this plant; but this appears to me very doubtful. R, colliniola Ehr., R. majalis Hermann., and R. fecundissima of some German writers, are usually, and I believe rightly, considered as synonyms of this species; but I have not had sufficient opportunity of investiga- tion to decide upon the subject: and Roth describes R. facun- dissima with hooked prickles; which certainly causes consider- able doubt. Perhaps, too, we must place here R. fraxinifolia of Gmelin, Fl. Bad. Alsat. ii. 413. The long leaflets with simple serratures would alone be suffi- cient 176 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. cient to distinguish this from every other British Rose; indeed it belongs to a family of which we have no other example in these islands, distinguished principally by setose stems, straight prickles, globose germens, entire calyx leafits, lanceolate or oblong leaflets, and large distinct bracteæ. The sete and even the aculei are very apt to be deficient on the upper part of the plant; and in this intricate genus it is necessary to examine the whole plant, - and even many individuals of the species wherever it is possible. In all parts of the plant the setze are apt to fall off entirely; but the little papillæ, to which they were originally attached, are in general observable. This family includes R. Banksia and R. blanda, and perhaps we may unite with it R. parviflora, R. nitida, R. lucida, R. gemella, R. Lyoni, R. setigera, R. caroliniana, and R. caucasica, of the catalogue in Rees's Cyclopædia, to which I refer, as the work of a botanist of the highest authority, and as the most com- plete list of the genus hitherto published. I must, however, take this opportunity to declare that my knowledge of the foreign Roses is exceedingly slight and confined ; and that in this attempt to mark the subdivisions of the genus, I have drawn my notions of the plants almost entirely from the characters given in the above-mentioned work. The object of these enumerations is to make my ideas intelligible respecting the natural affinities of the several species. In all this tribe the setze are deciduous, and the aculei few and nearly equal, never passing by almost insensible gradations into setze, as they do in Rosa spinosissima, R.involuta, &c. This plant having hitherto been observed only in one place in these islands, I have no British varieties to enumerate. In coun- tries where it is plentiful it varies very much in appearance, if we may judge from the different names it has received, and the discordant opinions as to what ought to be included in it as varieties, f 2. Rosa Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 177 2, Rosa RUBELLA. R. ebracteata, caulibus setigcris, receptaculis suburceolaribus, serraturis foliolorum simplicibus, aculeis perpaucis gracil- -limis subæqualibus. Ţ -R. rubella. Eng. Bot. xxxvi. t. 2521. Frutex erectus, 3—4-pedalis; in sabulosis maritimis vix sesquipedalis. Rami breves, fusci, aculeis rectiusculis, gracillimis, setisque confertis instructi, Petioli glandulosi, foliorum ad ortum superne subacerosi, cetera nudi. Stipule lineares, margine glan- dulosæ, subæquales, Foliola 7 ad 11 paria, quorum duo vel tria summa ejusdem cum foliolo impari magnitudinis, reliqua sensim minora; omnia elliptica, obtusa, simpliciter serrata, utrinque glabra, supra viridiora, subtus pallidiora. Pedunculi so- litarii, filiformes, setis longiusculis tenerrimis vestiti. Receptaculum basi globosum, superne aliquantulum urceolatum ; nunc glabrum, nunc setis sparsis instructum, atro- rufum, nitidum. Calycis foliola triangularia, subulata, simplicia, setosa. Flores rubelli, aut interdum rubri, vel variegati. Styli inclusi ; stigmatibus planiusculis. Fructus sub- globosus, superne receptaculi instar ad formam urceolatam accedens [coccineus, Sm.]. Mr. Winch finds this species on the sands of the sea-shore in Northumberland, mixed with R. spinosissima : it is also said to have been brought som Scotland. The ripe fruit I have never seen. The resemblance of R. rubella to R. spinosissima may perhaps have occasioned it to have been so long overlooked ; though the stems and branches covered with setze, intermixed with a very few _slender aculei, sufficiently distinguish it. The simple serratures of the leaflets will not suffer it to be confonaded with R. involuta or R. Doniana.’ - The specimen of n. pimpinellifolia i in the nan Herbarium considerably resembles this species; but it is not sufficiently perfect to enable me to pronounce with confidence: I have there- fore preserved the name given to itin English Botany. Perhaps some other authors may also have intended this plant by R. pim- pinellifolia; but I have not been able to unravel their synonyms from those of R. spinosissima. VOL. XII. 2 À Rosa 178 | Mr. Woops on the British Species of. Rosa. Rosa rubella is an interesting species, as it is so exactly between the families of R. alpina and R. spinosissima, that it might almost indifferently be referred to one or the other. The aculei are few and frequently wanting, as in the former tribe ; the setze, though not uniformly deciduous, are yet very apt to fall off; and the fruit, though not properly urceolate, is distinguished from that of R. spinosissima and its affinities by a very evident neck. Of the family of R. alpina we have no British Rose; it includes besides that species R. pendulina, R. lagenaria, and R. pyrenaica. Mr. E. Forster has a plant raised from seeds which were sent from Ireland for R. hibernica, and which, if not a distinct species, must be referred to R. rubella. The receptacle during the inflo- rescence is very long, and the leaves of the calyx are furnished. with small offsets. The prickles are extremel y slender, and more curved than is usual in the tribe, and the leaflets are narrower than their general form in this and the following species. There is a specimen closely resembling it in the Banksian Herbarium, where it is referred to R. pimpinellifolia, and marked Hort. Pit- cairn. 1781. : | 3. Rosa SPINOSISSIMA. R. ebracteata, caulibus setigeris, receptaculis globosis, serraturis foliolorum simplicibus, aculeis confertis valde inæqualibus. © R. spinosissima. Linn. Sp. Pl. i. 905. FI. Brit. ii. 537. Eng. 3 Bot. iii. t. 187. Willd. ii. 1067. Roths FL Germ. i. 217. ii. 555. R. pimpinellifolia 8. Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. iv. 438. R. pumila spinosissima, foliis pimpinellæ glabris flore albo. Raii Synop. 455. Frutex erectus, in apricis bipedalis, quandoque in umbrosis multo elatior. Rami breves, interne fusci, aculeis reclinatis vel horizontaliter patentibus, rectiusculis, confertis, valde inzequalibus, tandem in setas immutatis, muniti, Pe/ioli nunc glabri, sæpius glandu- losi, interdum aculeis rectis instructi, acerosi, rarius pilosi. : Stipulæ lineares, glandu- loso-serratæ, glabra, equales. Foliola 7-11, foliolum impar, et paria duo superiora reliquis majora, inflorescentiam versus subpauciora, simpliciter serrata, hic illic ser- ratura Mr. Woons on the British Species of Rosa. 179 - watra minore, plerumque . glabra, interdum pilis raris ad nervum instructa, saturate . . Viridia, nitoris expertia, subtus pallidiora. Pedunculi solitarii, superne incrassati, .* glabri. Receptaculum. globosum, glabrum. Calycis foliola triangulari-lanceolata, acuminata, simplicia, petalis breviora. Flores planiusculi, petala alba, basi lutes- centia, rarius pallide rubescentia, vel venis rubescentibus, vel alba gemmá rubellà. Styli inclusi ; stigmatibus planiuseulis. Fructus glaber, globosus vel depressus, ni- _ tidus, atro-purpureus, demum niger, interdum etiam maturus, sanguineus, In borders of fields and bushy places in a gravelly or sandy soil; frequently abundant on sand-hills by the sea-shore. . In old specimens growing in barren and exposed situations, the branches are occasionally destitute of prickles. The flowers are sometimes red, and sometimes with veins of that colour. I have a specimen of the latter variety, gathered near Cartmell in Lanca- shire, with elliptical acute folioles. In the R. ciphiana of Sibbald they are variegated with red and white. The ripe fruit is in some countries preserved, and brought to table in that state. In its natural state it is every where eaten by children. It has a grateful sub-acid taste. The juice of it di- luted with water, dyes silk and muslin of a peach-colour; and with the addition of alum, of a deep violet: but it has very little effect on woollen or linen.” With. ii. 4.65. | B. Fruit-stalk rough, with pedunculated gumas The flowers are sometimes very large. - — R. pimpinellifolia æ. moe et — F1. Fr. iv. 450: Sussex, Mr. Borrer. — iy i 2 aculeatissima. Fruit very large; peduncles and Fruit sometimes smooth, sometimes armed with aculei rather than seti: both appearances may be seen on the same plant: the fruit is generally attenuated at the base. Sussex, Mr. Borrer. _ R. pimpinellifolia y. Desvaux Journ. de Bot. ii. 119. 3. pusilla. Peduncle very short; fruit large, depressed, 2st buried among the leaves. Ireland, Mr. Sabine. 242 s Pe- c- 180 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. s. Peduncle setose; fruit somewhat ampulliform, dark. Found by Mr. Robertson near Newcastle. I have never seen any specimen: it may perhaps be a dark-fruited variety of R. rubella. | R. spinosissima may be easily distige from R. involuta by its simple serratures. The only other British plant with which it could be confounded is R. rubella; but in R. spinosissima the aculei are numerous, strong, and expanded at the base, and gradually di- minish into sete, those of an intermediate size being as nume- rous as those wbich are larger or smaller. In R. rubella the prickles are few, very slender, little expanded at the base, and nearly of a size; while the setze are much more numerous and crowded than in R. spinosissima : the sete of the peduncle e also. in R. rubella are long and ‘slender; whereas the peduncle of. R. spinosissima is biher naked as in z, or with the glands on short peduncles as in B, or with arms, which are rather aculei than setze, as in y. But perhaps the existence of such variations in this species ought to induce us to place but little dependence on this character. Both the colour and shape of the fruit of R. spinosis- sima vary considerably ; but it is probably never either so red or so long as in R. rubella. | R. myriacantha, Lam. et Dec. F "j. Res iv. A59, &.vi..583, ap- pears to be allied to R. spinosissima ; but the footstalk and the - under surface of the leaves are covered with glands. Lamarck and Decandolle also mention that there is a difference in the ser- ratures of the leaves and in the leaves of the calyx, but they do not point out in what it consists. Desv aux, Journal de Botan. ii. 118, says the serratures of R. myriacantha are compound; but in a specimen of this species from Decandolle, in the Herbarium of Mr. D. Turner, they are simple. I am by no means confident that the figure in the Fl. Danica, t. 398, is intended for this plant: it differs in the aculei, which are Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 181 are represented as all equal; and being variously bent, look rather like hairs than prickles: their length, however, gives them a different appearance from those of R. rubella, and I have never observed smooth fruitstalks on that species. In all the Roses of the llora Danica there is an unnatural curvature and laxity of habit, which was probably introduced by the artist from the no- tion that it would render them more beautiful as drawings. No small degree of confusion bas arisen between the names of R. spinosissima and R. pimpinellifolia, originating apparently witli Einnæus himself. In the Flora Lapponica he says of R. sylvestris pomifera minor, which has usually been considered the same as R. spinosissima, * In desertis passim prope tuguria vel fluviorum ripas obvia fuit, licet nullibi copiose." In the Flora Suecica he describes a species under that name, with a reference to the Sp: Plant. but not to the Flora Lapp., and says of it, ** Habitat ad agrorum margines, eorumque acervos passim." Again, in the Fruticetum Suecicum (Amen. Acad. v. 220,) he writes, ** Per totam Sueciam crescit, precipue in acervos lapidum et ad agrorum mar: gines, adeoque in sabuletis et montibus." In the second edition of the Sp. Plant. i. 703, R. pimpinellifolia is first introduced, “ ger- minibus globosis, eaule aculeis sparsis;" and it is added, “ Habitat forte in Europa:" but nosynonyms are given. In the same edi» tion R. spinosissima is described. “ germinibus ovatis glabris, pe- dunculis caule petiolisque aculeatissimis ;" and in the Syst. Veg. edit. 13, the character “ germinibus globosis" is equally given to. both. | à | Sir J. E. Smith considers the specimen of R. pimpinellifolia in the Linnzan Herbarium as undoubtedly R. spinosissima ; and very naturally concludes, that when Linnæus added R. pimpinellifolia; he did not recollect the plant to which he had previously given another name. Dr. Wahlenberg, Fl. Lapp., quotes R. spinosissima of Fl. Suec. of Linnzus, but with a mark of doubt, as a pue | o 182 = Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa, of his R. majalis, of which he declares, * Rami ramulique in ma- turo frutice sæpius toti inermes, rarius aculeis stipularibus paucis rectis gracilibus armati." The principal, or rather, I believe, the only ground on which this reference is supported is, that the place of growth of R. majalis agrees with that pointed out by Linnæus for R. spinosissima, and that no other Rose grows in simi- lar situations. : | Dr. Afzelius, in his Tonteimin primum de Rosis Sine, p: 3, remarks, * that Linnæus himself was at last inclined to unite R. spinosissima with R. pimpinellifolia ; but that in earlier times he certainly was of a different opinion: because R. pimpinellifolia is not a native of Sweden, much less is it a idis growing * ad agrorum margines eorumque acervos passim; nor has it soft fruit. Therefore,” continues he,“ we cannot doubt that Linnaeus at first intended some other species, which he afterwards seems to have forgotten; at first substituting in its place a Rose * ger- minibus ovatis, and afterwards confusing both with R. pimpinet- lifolia." A little further on, Dr. Afzelius adds, that from an exa- mination of the places pointed out by Linnæus, it a ppears clearly that the species of Rosa called by him spinosissima, is one of the many varieties of Rh. cinnamomea, ff rene he mn rt Shee . dulces, rubidos." This account, if 1 Br right, agrees with that of Dr. Wahlenberg: but if this is the case, some diffi- culty is introduced by the expression “ caulibus junioribus spino- sissimis;" as the young stems of R. cinnamomea are sometimes densely covered with sete, and in the usual language of bo- tany, as applied to Roses, might be called rough; but it seems a considerable license to call them thorny. Another unfortu- nate circumstance with respect to this passage is, that we do not know x de deo! Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 183 know what Rosa Dr. Afzelius means to indicate by the name of R. pimpinellifolia; and still less is it possible to conjecture what is the Rosa “ germinibus ovatis," which was according to him first confounded by Linneus with R. spinosissima, and afterwards with that species blended into R. pimpinellifolia: but I have only been able to procure the first, second, third, fifth, sixth, seventh, eighth, ninth, and tenth of his Tentamina ; in the last of which he resumes the consideration of this species, as described in the works of the Swedish botanists previous to Linnæus, and no further. Per- haps, if 1 had been able to consult the eleventh Tentamen, I might have found all difficulties resolved. Be that as it may, the R: spi nosissima of the Linnzean Herbarium is certainly the English plant, and no variety of R. cinnamomea. I can have therefore no doubt in retaining the name, which would be very reluctant] y tratisterred to a plant almost without prickles or thorns. | Willdenow describes R. pimpinellifolia as distinct from R. spi- nosissima ; as also does Gmelin, Fl. Bad. Als. ii. 415: but I can- not understand from either of them in what the difference con- sists, except in the “ aculei sparsi," which is the essential cha- racter given by Linnzus, in opposition to the * aculei conferti? - of R. spinosissima, and is retained by both these authors. Dr. Roth, Fl. Germ. i. 217, and ii. 556, seems nd acknowledge E eine to ro ded the qe dips i Hit £ "AE PE b 4. Rosa INVOLUTA. — R. ebracteata, caulibus setigeris, receptaculis globosis, foliolis du- | plicato-serratis supra glabris, aculeis confertissimis. R. involuta. Fi. Brit. 1398. Eng. Bot. xxix. t. 2068. Frutex 'ereetusy ddtigesife.. Rami stricti, fusci, aculeis confertis, strictis, reclinatis vel horizontaliter patentibus, valde inæqualibus, tandem in setas immutatis, muniti, . Pe- tioli aculeis reclinatis instructi, glandulosi, sparsim pilosi, Stipudee lineares, glandu- loso-ciliate, subæquales, sed interdum ez floribus propiores ceteris aliquantulum latiores, 184 Mr. Woo»s on the British Species of Rosa. Jatiores, et etiam in bracteas parvulas immutate. Foliola 9; par superius et fo: liolum impar ceteris majora, omnia elliptica, duplicato-serrata, subtus venulis hir- suta, supra glabra, nisi interdum nervo quandoque petioli instar pilis sparsis, glandulosa. Pedunculi solitarii, rarius binati, setis inzequalibus obsiti. Receptaculum globosum, atro-fuscum, setis ut pedunculus munitum. | Calycis foliola triangulari-lanceolata, in- tegerrima, petala plerumque zequantia, glandulosa, receptaculo pallidiora. Flores cyathiformes ; petala obcordata, rubescentia, basi albida. Styli inclusi; stigmatibus planiusculis, Fructus globosus, setosus : maturi colorem nescio. Scotland, principally on the western coast. Glen Lyon, Rev. J.Stuart, D.D. Isle of Arran, Mr. G. Don. This Rose is easily distinguished from R. rubella and R. spino- sissima, by the double serratures of the leaflets. From R. Doniana it is known with more difficulty ; for though I have uniformly found the upper surface of the leaf without hairs in this species, with the exception already noticed in the description, and as uni- formly pubescent in the other, yet I feel that it would be un- wise to place an entire dependence on this character. Still, how- ever, the expanded flower and comparatively scattered prickles of R. Doniana seem to denote an essential difference between the two plants. The root-shoots of R. Doniana are indeed very full of aculei, though less so than those of R. involuta ; and it must carefully be observed as a general rule in the comparison of these and of all other species of Rosa, that we must draw the pa- rallel between similar parts :—for instance, in the present case we must compare the strong surculi or root-shoots of R. involuta with the surculi of R. Doniana, and the branches of the one with the branches of the other; and not conclude that there is no diffe. rence if the surculi of R. Doniana are as thorny as the weaker branches of ft. involuta ; for in almost all Roses these strong shoots are decidedly more prickly than the rest of the plant. If the distinctive character between this famil y of Roses and that of R. cinnamomea be drawn from the bracteæ, as I conceive must necessarily be the case, the young botanist may possibly be led by Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 185 by it to seek this speciesof Rose among the last-mentioned family ; the permanence of the setze, and their insensible gradation into aculei, which never occurs among that tribe, will serve to correct the error. | "n Rosa Doniana. R. ebracteata, caulibus setigeris, calycibus simplicibus, foliolis duplicato-serratis utrinque hirsutis, aculeis strictis inæqua- libus sparsis. Frutex bipedalis; in sepibus Sussexie interdum etiam quinquepedalis. Rami subdif- fusi, fusci, aculeis rectiusculis horizontaliter patentibus, insequalibus, gracilibus, spar- _sis, tandem in setas immutatis instructi. Petioli villosi, glandulosi, atque interdum aculeis minimis muniti. S/ipulæ lanceolato-lineares, glanduloso-serrate, tomentose, subgequales, sed interdum ez floribus propiores aliquantulum latiores, atque etiam in bracteas parvulas immutate. — Foliola 7 vel 9, elliptica, inflorescentize propiora sub- pauciora, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora duplicato-serrata, utrinque villosa, eglandulosa. Pedunculi solitarii, cylindracei, setis inæqualibus muniti. Re- ceptaculum globosum, fusco-viride, setis fortibus armatum. Calycis foliola subulato- lanceolata, elongata, simplicia, vel tantum hic illic lacinia filiformi instructa, petala æquantia, villosa, setosa, receptaculo viridiora, Flores expansi; petala alba, obcor- data. Styli iuclusi, — penses Fructus globosus, setosus: maturum + pon vidi. eit catrehel by Mr. G. Don of Forfar, on the mountains of Clova, and by Mr. Borrer by the water of Leith near Mii also near Albourn and Henfield in Sussex. lam very happy in the name of this species to have an oppor- tunity of commemorating Mr. G. Don of Forfar, whose ability as an indefatigable investigator of our indigenous botany is well known, unfortunately now exerted no more. Mr. Don first ga- thered this plant, and distinguished it from R. involuta: and it merits observation, that though he relied entirely on the habit of the plant, all his specimens agree precisely with the artificial character I have adopted. Besides the particular differences pointed out under R. involuta, Mr. Don observed that the present VOL. XII. 2B species 186 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. species runs less at the roots than the other. This I have not had an opportunity of examining; but the roots of the Sussex plant appear to extend themselves considerably. The mode of growth is certainly much looser and more diffuse. From R. gracilis this species is distinguished by its mucb smaller size, both in the whole plant and in each part; by its peduncles, almost invariably solitary, and by the total want of the large curved aculei so characteristic of that plant —From R. Sabini by the leafits of the calyx, which in that species are uni- formly divided. No other British Rose can be confounded with it. 6. Rosa GRACILIS. R. bracteata, sahil setigeris, calycibus simplicibus, foliolis photos ueque pun aculeis uota: fal- catis. - i R. villosa. Engl. Bot. ix. t. 583. (excl Syn n. et Tij. fructus) - Frutex 8—10-pedalis. Rami vagi, intense fusci, heolia, setigerique ; aculei majores faleati, subbinato-stipulares ; minores recti, sparsi, setas forma referentes et in has demum sensim transeuntes. Petioli villosi; glandulosi, aculeis parvis subfalcatis mu- niti. Stipulz lineares, acuminate, glanduloso-serratæ, glabriuscule, ex floribus pro- piores latiores, et interdum, foliis deficientibus, in bracteas parvas ovatas acumina- tas immutate. Foliola 7 vel 9, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, omnia elliptica, duplicato-serrata, utrinque hirsuta, margine glandulosa, quod interdum etiam subtus in nervo, sed nunquam, ut credo, in superficie paginæ inferioris accidit, Pe- dunculi 1 —3, plerumque binati, setis inæqualibus obsiti, hoc qui prior evenit erecto, illo graciliore, longiore, nutante. Receptaculum globosum, nunc setis pedunculi instar munitum, nune totus glaber. Calycis foliola triangulari-lanceolata, petala æquantia ; rarissiime in his conspicitur pinnula filiformis. Flores subcyathiformes, petala ob- cordata, pulcherrime rubescentia, basi alba. — S/yli inclusi, stigmatibus hemisphe- ricis, Fructus globosus: maturum non vidi. The specimen figured in English Botany was sent by Mr. Robson, . probably from the vicinity of Darlington ; and | have received it from the same place under the name of R. villosa. In 1808 I observed Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 187 observed one or two plants of this species at Pooley-Bridge in Cumberland ; and again in 1814. At the latter time I likewise gathered specimens from a plant in the neighbourhood of Kes- wick: but as I have neither seen nor heard of it elsewhere, I conclude it to be a rare plant. I can hardly have any doubt as to the correctness of the syno- nym I have quoted. In the Rose figured in Engi. Bot. the prickles on the stem, by their number, scattered disposition, and slender- ness, appear to indicate what I have called setæ, or at least the small aculei approaching to sete. This point established, it must belong to the setigerous tribe; and we have only to determine between R. Doniana, R. gracilis, and R. Sabini. Un- fortunately the large falcate prickles, the strongest character of R. gracilis, are wanting; but this is a circumstance which I conceive may occasionally occur in a single specimen; while on the other hand the size and habit of the plant, the binate pe- duncles, and the form of the calyx-leaves, induce me to refer it to this species rather than to either of the others, and the place of its growth strengthens this supposition. I am much more con- fident that the plant of Engl. Bot. is not the R. villosa of Linnæus, or that of Hudson, or even of the Flora Britannica: The descrip- tion “aculei caulini rariusculi” pointedly disagrees with the figure; and all authors unite in attributing to R. villosa ** aculei sparsi;” and in this genus Linnzus, from whom the term is borrowed, opposes “ sparsi" to * conferti," and uses it to express the com- paratively small number of aculei. The term would therefore be quite inapplicable to this plant and to the figure in Engl. Bot., sup- posing, as would necessarily be the case, the setae (never before distinguished from the aculei) to be included under the same term. The figure of the fruit, in which the calyx is remarkably compound, appears to have been drawn from a different plant, 2522 probably 188 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. probably owing to none having been sent by Mr. Robson with his specimen. Besides the marks enumerated under R. Doniana by which these species may be distinguished, the peculiar length, slender- ness, and apparent weakness of the second peduncle of R. gracilis may be mentioned. From R. Sabini it mé be known by the simple leaves of the calyx. 7. Rosa SABINI. R. ebracteata, caulibus setigeris, receptaculis globosis, pa per compositis, foliolis duplicato-serratis. Frutex 4—6-pedalis. Rami vagi, fusci, aculeis sparsis, inæqualibus, rectis, tandem in setas immutatis muniti. Petioli villosi, glandulosi, aculeati ; aculei minimi, recti. Sti- pulæ lineares, glanduloso-ciliatæ, ex fic or ibus propiores aliquantulum latiores, his fo- lia interdum desunt et bracteæ parvae ovate fiunt. Foliola 5 vel 7, quorum par superius et foliolum i impar ceteris majora, omnia elliptica, duplicato-serrata, subtus venulosa, venulis hirsutis, interdum etiam nervo et margine glandulosa, superficie quoque supe- riore pilis sparsis hispida. Pedunculi 1—3, filiformes, setis inæqualibus obsiti. Re- ceptaculum globosum, olivaceum, setis sicut in peduneulis munitum. Calycis foliola composita, pinnulis angustissimis, nec raro capillaribus setosa, glandulosaque. Flores ruhescentes, expansi, magni. S/yli subinclusi, stigmatibus villosis. Fructus globo- sus: qui sit in maturo color nescio. Mr.Sabine received this Rose from Mr. Vere’s garden, where it was introduced by Mr. Jackson from Scotland. Mr. Borrer found it in the neighbourhood of Dunkeld ; and I have noticed it near Hawes-Water in Cumberland. The sete will always readily determine the family to which this Rose belongs, if examined on the living plant or in good spe- cimens; but I know no way by which to determine with any certainty specimens of Roses exhibiting only the flowering shoot and two or three leaves. From all other British setigerous Rose R. Sabini is distinguished by the divided leafits of the calyx: the segments Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 189 segments may I believe always be observed if examined with at- tention ; but they are sometimes so strictly capillary as hardly to be distinguished from very large and long sete. This Rose does not seem to have been before noticed ; I have therefore given to it the name of a gentleman who has long culti- vated and investigated the characters, principally of the foreign Roses, with the greatest care. "The result of his labours will not I hope be long withheld from the public. It is by his assistance that I am enabled to distinguish this species from all others. This species and the five preceding form the English portion of the family of R. spinosissima. R. rubella, R. spinosissima, R. invo- luta, R. Doniana, R. gracilis, and R. Sabini, all agree in having persistent setæ on the stems and branches, the stipulæ not in- creasing in breadth towards the inflorescence, or only in a slight degree, the flowers few together, and the fruit nearly round. I have already mentioned how slight my knowledge is of the exotic species; and perhaps in this subdivision I have fewer materials of comparison than in any other; but considering that the more completely I exhibit my ideas on the subject of the arrangement of the genus, the better chance I have of making my principles understood, I venture to mention R. kamschatica as the only foreign addition to the tribe at present known. | LA 8. Rosa VILLOSA. R. receptaculis subglobosis, calycibus simplicibus, acujeis rec- tiusculis subæqualibus, foliolis rhombeo-ellipticis, bracteis ellipticis. R. villosa. Linn. Herb. Linn. Sp. Pl. i. 704? Willd. ii. 1069? R. mollis. Engl. Bot. xxxv. t. 2459. . pomifera. C. Gmelin Fl. Bad. Alsat. ii. 410? R. glandulosa. Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. vi. 539? R. helvetica. Romer's Arch. b. i. st. 2. p. 6? Frutex - 190 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. Frutex 6—8-pedalis. Rami vagi, fusci, juniores glaucescentes, aculeati; aculei recti, graciles, subæquales, plerumque binato-stipulares. Petioli tomentosi, glandulosi, aculeisque parvis faleatis muniti. Stipulee lineari-lanceolatze, glanduloso-ciliatæ, eæ floribus etiam solitariis propiores latiores, et demum foliis deficientibus in bracteas. . late ellipticas acuminatas immutate. — Foliola 5, rarius 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, rhombeo-elliptica, duplicato-serrata, utrinque hirsuta, superne mollissima, subtus rugosa, et precipue marginem versus glandulosa, Pedunculi 1, 2, setis inæqualibus armati, bracteas superantes. Receptaculum subglobosum, setis for- tioribus, sed paucioribus quam quz in pedunculo, munitum. Calycis foliola simplicia, triangulari-lanceolata, vix petala longitudine æquantia, glandulosa, setosa; fructüs reflexa. Flores concavi, saturate rubentes, rarius albi maculis sanguineis, vel ru- bescentes. S/yli inclusi, stigmatibus convexis. Fructus globosus, setosus, ruber. * Gathered by the late Mr. G. Jackson in Scotland, and by the Rev. Hugh Davies in Wales; also between Edinburgh and Ravelston-Wood. It appears to be not very uncommon in ES England and Wales.” Engl. Bot. pore The specimen in the Linnean Herbarium marked Rosa villosa is undoubtedly this species, though the aculei are shorter, stronger, and more curved than I have generally observed them. It is probable that the plant of our gardens which is generally known by that name, and R. tomentosa, were included by Linnzus under the same species; but as the existing specimen agrees with the description, as far as that defines any one Rose, I have preferred assigning the name of R. villosa to this species, instead of retain- ing that of R. mollis, given in English Botany. We may be cer- tain that Linnæus intended the present plant—that he would have included the others is matter of supposition ; and when it is found neccssary to subdivide an original species, the Herbarium is the best authority to determine which plant shall retain the name at first intended to include the whole. In this case a further argument arises from the uncertaint y of the plantintended under this name by other authors, and our inability to distinguish most of them from the numerous varieties of R. tomentosa. On Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 191 On examination of the original specimens of R. mollis in the Herbarium of Sir J. E. Smith, it appears to me that, of the places of growth mentioned in Engl. Bot. Mr. Jackson's only can be safely quoted for this species, and that the others belong to R. tomentosa, to which I must also attribute the ** Rosa sylvestris, folio molliter hirsuto, fructu rotundo glabro, calyce et pediculo hispi- dis" of Dillenius in Rai? Syn. 478. The Rev. Hugh Davies ob- serves, that in the plants he finds, the fruit varies from perfect smoothness to every degree of roughness; butas R. villosa and R. tomentosa have been hitherto described “ fructu hispido," and both species are liable to vary in that respect, I do not perceive that this observation can at all tend to determine the synonym. It is far more likely to be a smooth-fruited variety of R. tomentosa (which certainly occurs in Middlesex and Surrey), than the pre- sent species, which we have no reason to suppose was ever found in those counties. I have drawn up the description of this plant from a specimen gathered in Mr. Vere's garden at Kensington, in September 1814, and from another gathered in Mr. Sabine's garden at North Mims in June 1815. ‘These two plants proceeded originally I under- stand from the same root. 1 3 I have already observed, that in most of our Roses the earlier leaves of each sort are obtuse: this species seems to havea gener quantity of these leaves than most others. A plant agreeing closely with these specimens is sold ir Lee and by Loddiges under the name of R. villosa, except that the aculei are stronger and slightly curved, approaching therefore more closely to the plant of the Linnean Herbarium: but though - the general character of the aculei is of the greatest consequence, ] do not find these minute differences much to be depended upon. Though 192 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. Though very downy, the leaves of this Rose are generally green above; but I have specimens which are considerably gray. Mr. Sabine has a plant from Mr. G. Don, which differs from this only in a harsher pubescence. B. cerulea. Fruit and peduncle nearly smooth ; flowers blush- red. The glaucous waxiness of the young shoots is very conspicuous and very beautiful in this variety :. the leaves are more glandular, the bracteæ are in general smaller, and the habit is more slender than ine. The plant from whence I have taken this account was sent from Scotland, by Mr. G. Jackson, to Mr. Vere's garden, and from thence received by Mr. Sabine ; but I have specimens nearly similar collected by Mr. Robertson near Newcastle, and by Mr. D. Turner at Killin; and I have met with it myself in Friars Wood, near Ingleton. | y. concavifolia. Leaflets remarkably concave, or conduplicate and hoary. Bracteæ lanceolato-ovate; receptacle globose. Scotland, Mr. Borrer. à. suberecta. Fruit globose, that and the petiole furnished with strong sete; flowers deep red. Stems stiff and upright ; leaflets 7, sometimes 9, elliptic, concave; stem, petioles, sti- pule, young prickles, and midrib, of a vinous red. The general appearance of this variety is such as to make me wish to consider it as a distinct species; but I have not been able to fix on any good character. In smell, in the abundance of glands underneath the leaves, and even in habit, it ap- proaches somewhat to R. Eglanteria; it is not however en- tirely free from the turpentine flavour which accompanies all Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 193 all this family ; and the straight prickles render it impossible to mistake it for thatspecies. If distinct, its place would be before R: villosa, as nearer to the family of R. spinosissima, The stipulz are almost membranous, which would form an . excellent character if it should be found constant. I have only seen it in one place, on a rocky limestone bank at Ingle- ton in Yorkshire ; and at that time I was so puzzled by the multifarious appearance of thie specimens I had collected, and which I had not had opportunity to arrange, that I did not pay it the attention it merited, and only preserved a single — specimen. | It is with considerable doubt that I have quoted R. pomifera, Fl. Bad. Alsat., as a synonym of this species. The author says, that sometimes two of the calyx-leafits are divided, which might have induced me to refer it to R. scabriuscula ; especially as the name seems to indicate a large-fruited Rose; and the fruit of R. scabriuscula is occasionally very large; but in other respects it does not agree with that plant. | - I hesitate still more whether R. glandulosa, Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. vi. 539, ought to be considered as a smooth variety of tbis plant: it certainly approaches FER near to it, except in the P bescence. £ . Rosa helvetica, Rômer’s Archiv. für die Botanik, is perhaps. a dwarf variety of this species. Here again the descriptor * foliolis glabris inodoris" renders it ad doubtful. 9. Rosa SCABRIUSCULA. R. receptaculis ellipticis, calycibus subsimplicibus, bracteis ellip- © ticis, aculeis rectiusculis subæqualibus, foliolis ange z lipticis duplicato-serratis. | VOL, XII. 2c R. sca- 194 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. R. scabriuscula. Engl. Bot. xxvii. t.1896. Winch Bot. Guide, ii. Pr. p- à Frutex 4—6-pedalis. Rami vagi, fusco-olivacei, aculeati; aculei recti, gracilis omnis qui in situ eodem ejusdem fere magnitudinis, plerumque binato-stipulares, sed sparsi quo- que inveniuntur. Petioli tomentosi, glandulosi, aculeisque minimis rectis muniti, Stipule lineares, glanduloso-ciliate, ez floribus propiores latiores, et demum foliis de- - ficientibus in bracteas ellipticas acuminatas immutate. Foliola 5 rarius 7, par superius et . foliolum impar ceteris majora, elliptica, vel potius in meis.speciminibus oblongo-ellip- tica, duplicato-serrata, utrinque hirsuta, mollissima, subtus precipue marginem ver- sus glandulosa. Pedunculi 1—3, setis debilibus plerumque armati, interdum toti gla- bri, bracteas longitudine subequantes. Receptaculum ellipticum, nunc setis aliquot .. fortioribus quam qua in pedunculo munitum, nune glaberrimum. Calycis foliola suh- pinnata, triangulari-lanceolata, petala vix æquantia, glandulosa, fructüs erecta. Flores concavi ; petala alba, maculis sanguineis gemmæ persistentibus, Styli inclusi, stigmatibus convexis, Fructus magnus, subglobosus, ruber, Found by Mr. Winch in hedges in Durham and Northumber- land. Engl. Bot. Banks of the Dee, and on the side of Loch Tay, Mr. G. Anderson. Friars Wood, near Analeion a odi If I were not fortified by the authority of Sir J. E. Smith and of Mr. Borrer, I should hardly venture to describe as a distinct spe- ciés a plant so nearly approaching to some varieties of R. tomen- tosa. The calyx-leafits, indeed, though always in some. degree pinnate, are never, as far as I have observed, completely fur- nished with offsets on each division as they are in that plant. In this respect it varies exceedingly, approaching however nearer to the compound calyx of R. tomentosa than to the simple one of R. villosa. On this character, such as it is, the specific distinc- tion must principally rest; for the shape of the receptacle and leaflets, though sufficiently distinct in some specimens, still va- ries so much in this tribe of Roses that I dare not place much reliance on it. Still less can I depend on the greenness and harshness of the pubescence, the characters by which this Rose is more Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 195 more particularly pointed out in Engl. Bot.; as the specimens which I have received from Mr. Winch, the original discoverer, are hoary with a velvety down, and exceedingly soft on both sides—perhaps even more so than is usual in any other spe- cies; and those which I have gathered myself agree with them in this as in every other particular. Mr. Winch also in his Botanist’s Guide describes the leaflets as densely covered with down. I have reason to believe that the plants gathered by Sir J. E. Smith near St. Edmund's Bury, which in Engl. Bot. are attributed to this species, rather belong to R. tomentosa » of this essay. The extreme variableness of this latter species (the Rose I have had the most opportunities of examining under different circum- stances) induces me however to attach very little importance to this peculiarity in the pubescence. 10. Rosa HETEROPHYLLA. R. receptaculis subglobosis, calycibus subcompositis, aculeis rec- tiusculis subzequalibus, bracteis lanceolatis. Frutex 7—9-pedalis. Rami vagi, pallide fusco-olivacei, aculeati ; aculei subfalcati 1, 2, v. 3 singula ad internodia caulis, plerumque ad basin foliorum. Petioli tomentosi, glandulosi, rarissime hic illic aculeo minimo recto muniti. Stipule lineares, acutae, tomentose, glanduloso-serrate, interdum pagina inferiore glandulosæ ; ew floribus proximæ vix ceteris latiores, quanquam interdum deficiant folia, — Fo/iola 5 v. 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, nunc elliptica, nunc forma obovato-oblonga, basi rotundata, insigniter variantia, duplicato-serrata, utrinque molliter hirsuta, glan- = dulosa. Pedunculi 1 v. 2, nunc glabri, nune setis inæqualibus obsiti, bracteas æquantes vel eas superantes. Receptaculum subglobosum, nunc glabrum nunc setosum, setis fortioribus quam quz in pedunculo inveniuntur munitum. Calycis foliola pinnata vel _subpinnata, petalis longiora, basi setosa, sursum glandulosa. Flores expansos non vidi; petala alba sanguineo-maculata, Styli inclusi, stigmatibus convexis. Fructus Found by Mr. W. Borrer at Collington near Edinburgh, and else- where in that neighbourhood ; also at Finlarig. i 2c2 I do 196 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. I do not find any description to which this Rose can be referred. It seems to be called R. villosa by the Scotch botanists; but that - name being appropriated to another species, I have given to the present plant the name of R. heterophylla, expressive of a charac- ter which it usually presents, and which gives to it a certain pecu- liarity of habit when compared with any other British species. The Roses most nearly allied to this are R. villosa, R. scabrius- cula, and R. tomentosa. From the first and last of these a proper attention to the leafits of the calyx will distinguish it; and from R. scabriuscula, as well as from the two others, the remarkable shape frequently occurring in the leaflet, and the narrow bracteæ. 11. Rosa PULCHELLA. R. receptaculis obovatis, calycibus compositis, aculeis rectius- culis subæqualibus, petalis margine crenatis. Frutex 11—2-pedalis. Rami ‘subflexuosi, erecti, fusci, aculeati ; ; aculei subfaleati, graciles, subæquales, plerumque binato-stipulares. Petioli tomentosi, glandulosi, aculeisque gracilibus falcatis muniti, S/ipulæ lineares, glanduloso-ciliatæ, pagina inferiore glandulosæ, ez floribus propiores latiores, sed bracteam perfectam nondum vidi, . Foliola 5 v. 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, On cencava, dupli- cato-serrata, utrinque hirsuta, subtus glandulosa. Pedunculi pauci, setis inæqualibus obsiti, stipulas proximas superantes. Receptaculum obovatum, glabrum. Calycis foliola pinnata, petalis breviora, glandulosa. Flores concavi, petala saturate ruben- tia, margine glanduloso-crenata. Styli— Fructus : Has partes non potui satis exami- nare. On limestone banks at Ingleton in Yorkshire. Like the foregoing, this Rose seems to have been unnoticed by preceding authors. It is easily discriminated by its crenate petals from all other British Roses: but this character it may be difficult to determine in the Herbarium, as the petals of Roses are apt to fall off, and when preserved generally shrivel very much in drying. The shape of the receptacle and the shortness of © Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. — — 197 of the calyx-leafits appear also to be characters worthy of atten- tion; but I have seen too little of it to be able to point out the variations to which it is most subject. The size and habit of the plant, the shape of the receptacle and that of the leaflets, will distinguish this from the common Apple Rose of the gardens; a species with which it would be ridiculous to compare it, were it not for the singular circumstance of the crenate petals—a cha- racter which, as far as my knowledge extends, is not to be met with in any other species of this genus. 12. Rosa TOMENTOSA. R. calycibus compositis, aculeis rectiusculis subzequalibus, petalis integerrimis, bracteis ellipticis, foliolis duplicato-serratis. R. tomentosa. Fl. Br. ii. 539. Engl. Bot. xiv. t. 990. Lam. et, > Dec. Fl. Fr. iv. 440. R. villosa. Huds. Fl. Angl. ed. ii. p.219. Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. iv. 440. Roth Fl. Germ. i. 217. & ii. 556. R. Reynieri. | Rómer's Archiv. D. i. St. 2. p. T. Rosa sylvestris pomifera major nostras. Raï Synop. 455. — Frutex 6—S-pedalis. Rami vagi, fusco-olivacei, aculeati; aculei rectiusculi, graciles, subbinato-stipulares: sparsi quoque hic illie inveniuntur. — Petioli tomentosi, setosi, _ aculeisque leviter falcatis muniti. Stipule lineares, tomentose, glanduloso-ciliate, paginaque inferiore sæpius glandulosæ ; ex floribus etiam solitariis propiores latiores, et demum foliis deficientibus in bracteas ovatas acuminatas immutate. Foliola 5 v. 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, elliptica, apice triangulari-acuto, utrin- que tomentosa, duplicato-serrata, subtus nune tota superficie, nunc margine, venisve tantum glandulosa, Pedunculi 1—4, setis inæqualibus obsiti, bracteis breviores. Re- ceptaculum plus minusve ellipticum, subfuscum, setis laxius sparsis quam sunt calyx et peduneulus munitum. Calycis foliola triangulari-elliptica, acuminata, setosa, pinnata, pinnis inciso-serratis, glandulosis, foliolum semipinnatum, pinnam solitariam tantüm plerumque habet. Flores planiusculi ; petala basi alba, margine integerrima, nunc in- tense rubella, saepius rubescentia, nune tota alba, nunc alba maculis sanguineis externe notata, gemma sanguinea. Styli inclusi, stigmatibus planiusculis vel parum convexis. - Fructus late ellipticus, ruber. Comnion 198 Mr. Woons on the British Species of Rosa. Common in hedges and bushy places throughout Great Bri- tain. -I rely upon the se of the leaflet and the entire margin of the petals, to distinguish this Rose from the R. villosa of the gardens, whose petals are crenate, a character pointed out to me by Mr. W. J. Hooker; and somewhat also on the smaller and less globular fruit: on the bracteæ, and on the shape of the leaf- lets, to separate it from R. heterophylla: on the entire margin of | the petals, to mark it from R. pulchella; and on the very pinnate leafits of the calyx, to divide it from R. villosa and R. scabrius- cula. The plant thus discriminated includes so many varieties, or perhaps species, that it is certainly the most intricate of the genus. It undoubtedly embraces the R. villosa of Hudson, and the Rosa sylvestris pomifera major nostras of Ray, which has usu- ally been quoted as a synonym of R. villosa. I should also feel confident that it included the Rosa villosa of the Flora Britannica, if the learned author had not assured me that that description was drawn up from the plant commonly known under the name of R. villosa in our gardens:—that, however, we have no reason to suppose a native of this country, though perhaps in the present state of our — we should find it difficult to trace it to any other. The characters proposed by British botébisfe to distinguish R. villosa from R. tomentosa, viz. the small ovate fruit and hooked prickles, do not by any means regularly go together. The size and shape of the receptacle and fruit vary much, as may be sufficiently seen in the ensuing catalogue of varieties ; and even under that appearance from which I have drawn my descrip- tion, indeed on the same bush, they may be observed large or small, more or less elliptic, more or less covered with sete, or quite naked. "The average mape in « is however wider than in some Mr. Woops on the British us of Rosa. 199 some of the varieties; and perhaps » and £, in which they are re- markably elongated, might be taken for the Rosa tomentosa of the Fl. Br.; and the figure in English Botany is not very dif- ferent from those varieties. Ray, however, says nothing of the curved aculei of his R. sylvestris fructu majore hispido, the sy- nonym quoted by Sir J. E. Smith; while, on the contrary, he describes the fruit of R. sylvestris pomifera major “ fructus pyri parvi forma et magnitudine"—a description which appears exag- gerated if applied to R. tomentosa n of this essay, but which agrees with that variety better than with any other; but perhaps still better with an appearance sometimes met with in R. scabriuscula, Ray adds * spinulis obsiti;" a description which altogether does not agree with any fruit-I have seen; but which we may easily perceive cannot indicate the same thing as the “ germen glo- bosum" of Linnwus; especially if we sonido that in this fa- mily the fruit is uniformly rounder than the immature recep- tacle. Hudson bas merely joined the synonym of Ray to his R. villosa B, without adding any remark of his own to either variety. Lightfoot, F/. Scot. i. 261, has added, that the fruit is black when ripe; a — which renders his preise, very doubtful. In such a labyrinth what is the course to be pursued? I have already mentioned in the account of R. villosa, that in the appro- priation of that name I have followed the Linnean Herbarium. R. tomentosa is therefore left for this; and as the name cannot reasonably be objected to in a genus where it is so difficult to find names at all characteristic, and as some of the varieties are already well known under this name, I cannot hesitate to pre- serve it. The synonyms above quoted do not appear to me at all doubtful as to the species; but I have not attempted the dif- ficult, or rather impracticable, task of determining the correspon- dence 200 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. dence between my varieties and the varieties or species of pre- ceding authors. I have made several attempts to form such an arrangement of the varieties of this Rose as might keep together those plants whose natural character would point out the probability of their constituting distinct species, and separate those whose habit seemed to announce important differences. "This attempt has failed ; but I believe in the following list the order adopted is not far from a natural series. If the botanist who knows the species be able to assign to the specimens he collects their place among these varieties, my object will be attained. I have here been obliged to use the word hirsutus rather than setosus to the arms of the peduncle and receptacle, in order to in- clude the variety o, which has a downy peduncle without either glands or sete, while yet it is characterized by a receptacle smoother than the peduncle. B. differs from « only in having the upper pagina of the leaf en- ! tirely smooth. Ambleside, Westmoreland. y. Leaves smooth on both sides. By the road on the north side of Loch Tay, Mr. W. Borrer. à. has a rounder leaflet than æ, with scattered Miu the upper surface, and scattered hairs and glands on the under; the nerves on the underside of the leaf are thickly clothed with hairs somewhat spreading; petals white. ‘The earliest flow- ers in this variety frequently have the leafits of the calyx entirely simple, nearly linear, and expanded at the end: the latter peculiarity, where it exists in a remarkable degree, though pointed out in English Botany as a character of the R. mollis of that work, appears to me a sure indication of an unnatural or imperfect state " inflorescence. Dunkeld, "as W. Borrer. — s. Fruit Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 201 e. Fruit subglobose ; receptacle frequently elliptical; peduncles sometimes extending beyond the bracteæ, from one to eight or nine in a cyme; petals blush-coloured, white at the base ; prickles falcate ; leaflets very soft, without glands, except on the nerves and serratures. Near Newcastle, Mr. Robertson. Tunbridge Wells, Penshurst, Stoke Newington, and Ulver- stone. £. hybrida. The leaves of this plant are green, not white with - down, hairy underneath, and rough with glands; receptacle as setose as the peduncle ; aculei falcate. Pointed out to me by Mr. Sabine under the name of R. hybrida. I have ob- served a similar Rose near Keswick, and also in the neigh- bourhoood of Godstone in Surrey. Mr. Borrer has speci- mens much resembling it from Scotland, in which the recep- tacle is globose. z- Receptacle large, olive-coloured, attenuated at the base, less setose than the peduncles; peduncles one to four, furnished with weak setz ; leaflets rough, with glands on the underside, except those on the young shoots which are very soft and downy; the aculei vary very much, some even on the strong stems being quite straight, while in general, even on the young branches, they are considerably curved; whereas in this genus the root-shoots have usually the prickles stronger and more curved than the branches. This variety of R. tomentosa bears a considerable degree of resemblance to two other very di- stinct species, It. micrantha and R. Borreri, and at the same time in general appearance is not very different from the variety s; I have only seen three plants; two between Down and Holwood in Kent in July 1815, both of which at first sight I took for R.micrantha, until the thorns, which are never VOL. XII. 2D uncinate 202 Mr. Woops on the British Species of. Rosa. uncinate as in that plant, and the downiness of the young leaves undeceived me; and one near Potter’s Bar in Hert- fordshire, in the autumn of 1814, which I supposed at that time to be R. Borreri. The latter had eight ripe fruit, having probably had at least twelve flowers in a cyme ; on the others - I could not find more than four. 3. Receptacle elliptical, as setose as the flowerstalk ; peduncles often longer than the bractez ; leaves densely villous, glan- dular underneath. Sent by Mr. G. Don to Mr. Sabine under the name of R. mollis. 4 sylvestris. Receptacle along ellipsis, as setose as the peduncle ; peduncle shorter than the bracteæ ; aculei falcate ; leaflets narrower than in a, slightly pubescent above, hairy and rough with glands on the under side; surculi dark. purple. Received by Mr. Sabine from Mr. Donn of Cambridge. x. canescens. Receptacle broadly elliptical, nearly smooth ; aculei slender, but slightly curved ; leafits elliptic, oblong, concave, very soft, white, with down on both sides, glandular beneath. The calyx-leafits of this variety are very much divided, and have a strong tendency to grow out into leaves; in some of the early flowers they are, however, nearly simple, with onl y a few laciniz, broad at the base, lying in a direction parallel to that of the leafits. Stock Gill and Kentmer, Westmore- land, and Pooley-Bridge, Cumberland. | ; A. Receptacle broadly elliptical, somewhat attenuated at the | base, less setose than the peduncle ; aculei falcate ; has much the habit of the following variety. Gathered by Mr. Borrer in Scotland in 1810. p. Peduncles as long or longer than the bracteæ ; receptacle as setose as the peduncle, and generally somewhat attenuated at Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 203 at the base ; offsets of the calyx-leafits remarkably short and broad; petals white with red blotches; leaves somewhat concave. Highlands, Mr. W. Borrer. » Receptacle elliptical, attenuated at each end; peduncle longer than the bractez ; aculei falcate ; leaflets narrower than in æ, with a few hairs above, hairy and glandular beneath like the variety 7. ‘This seems to have some affinity with R. micrantha, but in a different way. ‘The principal peculiarities are in the long peduncles, in the aculei, which, though never uncinate as in R. micrantha, are yet more constantly curved than in most of the preceding varieties of R. tomentosa, and in the narrow leaflets. It sometimes approaches in scent to R. Eglan- teria; and the first time I gathered it in this state I did not doubt that I had found the American sweet-briar, R. suaveo- lens of Rees’s Cyclopedia. The upper surface of the leaves is sometimes almost smooth, at others quite soft and downy ; both sides are occasionally densely pubescent. Near Hen- field in Sussex, Mr. W. Borrer. Kent, Surrey, and Middlesex. £. differs from » only in the want of glands on the under surface of the leaves, excepting occasionally onthe nerve. Like that ` variety it is sometimes almost smooth, sometimes densely pu- bescent. Near Durham, Mr. Robertson. Lancashire, West- moreland, and Middlesex. o, incana. Receptacle elliptical, smooth; dali ien bts co without glands; peduncle with only a. few hairs; aculei fal- cate ; young shoots purple-gray ; leaflets narrower than in a, with a hoary pubescence, without glands ; but the colour is less striking than that of the variety z. Stipule also downy and without glands. Sent from Scotland by Mr. G. Don to 2D2 TT Mr. 204 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. Mr. Sabine, in whose garden is the only plant I have ever seen. Perhaps of these varieties č may be a distinct species ; $ and « may possibly form another; 7 a fourth; and » and £ a fifth; and o a sixth: this would seem a very great multiplication of spe- cies, and it would be extremely difficult to find for them any spe- cific characters. Another obstacle to considering these as six. species, arises from the great number of other varieties, which after repeated examinations I found myself unable to class with any one of them, and of which the distinctions are nevertheless exceedingly trifling. I have therefore above detailed the account of these, in hopes of exciting the attention of some botanist whose talents and opportunities. will enable him to do more jus- tice to the tribe. . | To some one or other of these varieties we must probably attri- bute the Rosa mollissima, Gm. Fl. Bad. Als. ; but in a genus so in- tricate, and with descriptions so defective as have hitherto been . given of the Roses, I find the difficulty exceedingly great of assign- ing the synonyms of preceding authors to the proper species, and utterly impossible to trace them to their corresponding varieties. The description of R. montana, Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. vi. 232, would induce me to join it to this species; but Willdenow, Sp. Pi. ii. 1076, refers the original plant of Villars, which is quoted also by Lamarck and Decandolle, to a Rose with hooked prickles (* aculeis uncinatis"), and which would agree tolerably well with R. Borreri. Among these inconsistencies I pretend not to decide what Villars intended, or what plant was meant by the French and German authors. R. fetida, Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. vi. 534, may perhaps be R. to- mentosa B ; but the authors compare it at once with R. collina and their Mr. Woops on the British Species of. Pos 205 their own R. tomentosa, two very different plants. * Aiguillons un peu courbés” is a character hardly inconsistent with any variety of this plant; though in some they are frequently to be met with quite straight. The fruit is said to give a feetid smell when rubbed ; a quality I have never had the opportunity of observing. 'l'o the same variety, or to y, we may perhaps refer Rosa ande- gavensis of the same work, vi. 539. It agrees very well with the usual appearances of this species, except in the pubescence. 13. Rosa NUDaA. R. receptaculis globosis, calycibus compositis, aculeis rectiuscu- lis, foliolis simpliciter serratis. te Frutex 5—7-pedalis. Rami diffusi, e fusco glaucescentes, aculeati; aculei subæquales, rectiusculi, sparsi, vel binato-stipulares. — Petioli nunc glabri nunc glandulosi, abs- que aculeis vel tomento ; pili tamen, ad axillas foliolorum siti, sunt in hac specie per- conspicui. Stipulæ lineares, apice serrate, ec floribus etiam solitariis propiores cete- ris multo majores. Foliola 5 vel 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora ellip- tica, acute et irregulariter sed simpliciter serrata, utrinque glabra. Pedunculi pauci, "breves, glabri. Receptaculum globosum, viride, glabrum. Calycis foliola divisa, pinnis integerrimis. Flores rubescentes. Styli vix inclusi, stigmatibus in conum col- leetis, Fructus globosus: maturum non vidi. | Near Ambleside in Westmoreland. No Rose hitherto published can be quoted as a synonym of this species ; or at least its most remarkable peculiarity, ‘the union of straight aculei unmixed with sete, with smooth leaves fur- nished only with simple serratures, has never been noticed. Per- haps, however, I shall hardly be considered justifiable in ad- mitting it in the enumeration of species, since I have only one specimen, which was gathered without particular notice among others from the hedges on the side of the road between Amble- side and Clappersgate. Had I known with what species $9 join - it, 206 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. it, it would not have obtained a place by itself: its nearest aff- nity is probably R. tomentosa, from which however the peculi- arities above remarked separate it widely. The petiole and the midrib of the leaflets are usually of a reddish or purplish hue; and in these circumstances, and perhaps also in habit, it is somewhat allied to the R. rubrifolia of Villars. That Rose, however, claims a nearer affinity with R. cesta; but I should suppose, from the descriptions I have met with, that the aculei are straighter and the serratures more simple than in that species. This Rose concludes the account of the British Roses of this family, consisting of six species; viz. R. villosa, R. heterophylla, R. scabriuscula, R. pulchella, R. tomentosa, and R. nuda: itis cha- racterized by the want of setæ on the stems; the stipulæ chan- ging more or less into bracteæ ; and by aculei nearly straight, or at least not uncinate. | : 14. Rosa-ÉGLANTERIA. => - i: R. fructibus obovatis, aculeis inæqualibus majoribus uncinatis, - foliolis hirsutis subtus glandulosis du plicato-serratis. R. Eglanteria. Sp. Pl. ed. i. 491. Hudson, 218. Encycl. Métho- dique, 286. | | R. rubiginosa. Mant. ii. 564. Willd. ii. 1073. Flora Br. ii. 540. Engl. Bot. iv. t. 091. Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. iv. 445. Roth Fl. Germ. i. 218. & ii. 558. Jacq. Fl. Aust. i. 31. t. 50. R. suavifolia. FL. Dan. t. 870? R. sylvestris odora. — Raii Synops. 454. Frutex 4—7-pedalis. Rami suberecti, virides, juniores fuscescentes, aculeati; aculei valde inæquales, majores uncinati, minores rectiores, minimi rectissimi, sed nun- quam ut credo in setas immutati; aculei majores interdum binato-sti pulares, ceteri sem- per sine ordine sparsi, Petioli tomentosi, glandulosi, aculeis falcatis instructi: defi- ciunt sete, Stipulæ lineares, glandulis tenerrime serratæ, vel potius ciliatæ, eæ flo- ribus Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 207 _ ribus propiores foliis deficientibus in bracteas immutatæ, quarum forma incerta. Fo- ` liola 5 vel 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, elliptica, suprà hirta, subtus pilis glandulisque odoriferis vestita, serraturis serrulatis glanduliferisque, | Pedun- culi 1\—11, setis inæqualibus obsiti, quarum pauce interdum faciem aculeorum æmu- "lent. Receptaculum primitivum obovatum, cetera plerumque elliptica, omnia fusca, setis sparsis munita; sete longiores fortioresque aculeos simulantes receptaculi ad basin inveniuntur. Galyció foliola triangulari-ovata, longius acuminata, pinnata; pinne . lineari-lanceolate, glanduloso-dentatæ. Flores concavi; petala rubella. Styli in- clusi; stigmata convexa, villosa. Fructus primitivus obovatus, ceteri obovati vel elliptici, omnes setis fortibus basi armati, rubri, demum maturitate sanguinei, In bushy places on a dry soil in Kent, Sussex, and Surrey. Some- times very abundant on the chalky banks in those counties. _ B. is a variety in which the larger aculei are falcate, not unci- nate; and which seems to want the character arising from the increased magnitude of the setæ at the base of the ger- men. ‘This may possibly be a distinct species. The only Rose of our country which can be confounded with this is R. micrantha; and occasionally, when the latter grows in exposed situations, or when R. Eglanteria is found (which is rarely the case) in moist hedges, the eye will not immediately distinguish them. In general, however, R. Eglanteria is a stiff, compact, up- right bush ; R. micrantha, a loose straggling briar. In all cases the central flower of the cyme, the one which is first expanded, is followed by an obovate or pyriform fruit in the former species ; while in the latter the fruit is at most only elliptical, and almost always terminating in something of a neck,—a distinction first pointed out in Engl. Bot., and well marked in the figures of the two plants. Another equally constant character is derived from the aculei, which in R. micrantha are in general merely binato- stipulary, with a few others scattered without order on the branches —all aga of a size, and never intermixed with a multitude of smaller 208 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. smaller ones. In R. Eglanteria the aculei of the shoots, and frc- quently those of the branches, are mixed with scattered prickles of all sizes; though in small specimens this character may some- times be wanting. In both species a few sete may occasionally be noticed on the stem immediately below the inflorescences. but these seem to be merely accidental. Mr. Borrer found a Rose in Normandy nearly allied to this, and most resembling the variety 8 ; and Mr. Hooker brought spe- cimens of the same from the South of France; but it has not been described by the French botanists, or at least I cannot ap- propriate to it any of their descriptions. This Rose has been very unfortunate in its name; it is called eglantina, eglentina, and esglentina, by Bauhin and the early bo- tanists. Linnzus in his first edition of the Species Plantarum called it R. Eglanteria; but in the second he transferred that name to the single yellow Rose, still however quoting the same synonyms, all of which clearly belong to this plant. And this species is not given, nor does the name of R. rubiginosa occur, until the publication of the Mantissa Plantarum altera : indeed it seems as if Linnœæus at one time confounded the two species, misled merely by the circumstance of the glandular and fragrant leaf, which is almost the only character not common to the whole genus, in which these two Roses agree. Notwithstanding R.rubi- ginosa has been adopted by most of the modern botanists, I have ventured to restore the name originally given by Linnzus, in which I am supported by the authority of Hudson and of Poiret, Encycl. Nat. The yellow Rose, which is not a British plant, has latterly been more properly named R. lutea, from the hue, which is very rare in flowers of this genus. 15. Rosa Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 209 ET 15. Rosa MICRANTHA. R. fructibus ampullaceo-ellipticis, aculeis aduncis subaequalibus, foliolis hirsutis subtus glandulosis duplicato-serratis. R. micrantha. Engl. Bot. xxxv. t. 2490. Frutex 5—8-pedalis. Rami diffusi, virides vel fusco-virides, aculeati; aculei adunci, ' nunc sparsi, nunc binato-stipulares. — Pe?ioli tomentosi, glandulosi, aculeisque rec- tiusculis vel faleatis muniti, — S/ipulce lineares, glanduloso-serrate, interdum subtus :glandulosze, ex floribus propiores solitariæ vix ceteris latiores, cymarum tandem foliis deficientibus in bracteas lanceolatas acuminatas immutatæ, Foliola 5 vel 7, par supe- rius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, elliptica, duplicato-serrata, supra vix hirta, subtus pilis glandulisque odoriferis vestita. Pedunculi 1—11, setis obsiti, quarum nonnulle, rarissime tamen, aculeiformes. Receptaculum ellipticum, fuscum, setis sparsis præ- . cipue basi munitum. Calycis foliola glandulosa, pinnata, pinnis lanceolatis glandu- loso-ciliatis. Flores cyathiformes, rubescentes, Styli inclusi; stigmata planiuscula. Fructus parvus coccineus, interdum ellipticus, sed sæpius si minusve urceolatus, Hedges and bushy places in the southern and midland counties. This species was first established by Sir J. E. Smith in English Botany. Its closest affinity is certainly to R. Eglanteria ; and I bave already: pointed out under that Rose i- characters by which these species are best discriminated. I may add, that the present plant uniformly wants the strong seta at the base of the fruit, which I have constantly found in R. Eglanteria, except in the rare variety B, which in most other respects assumes an ap- pearance directly opposite to R. micrantha. "The habit of this species is indeed so loose and. straggling, that an inattentive ob- server might pass it over as a variety of R. canina. "The fruit is always small, and never has the pear-shaped form of the primor- dial fruit of R. Eglanteria; the flowers are also generally smaller, but this is an uncertain mark. The scent varies exceedingly, being sometimes very weak, at other times not to be distin- uished from that of R. Eglanteria, and once or twice I have ob- served the turpentine flavour which is generally to be perceived VOL. XII. | 2E t 210 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. in the family of R. tomentosa. R. micrantha has also considerable affinity with R. Borreri: it may however be distinguished from that species by the much stronger and more numerous setze of the | peduncle generally extending on the fruit, by the narrower pinnæ of the calyx, and by the glands covering the whole under surface of the leaf; the general colour of the plant is also a paler and yellower green. R. sempervirens, Roth Fl. Germ. 1. 218. ii. 556; R. umbellata, Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. vi. 532, seems to be allied to this plant, but can hardly be identified either with this or with R. Eglanteria. It might be expected that the Rose mentioned in the account of R. Eslanteria as having been gathered by Mr. Borrer and Mr. Hooker in different parts of France, would be found among the descriptions of the French botanists; but I cannot refer it with confidence either to R. sepium or R. umbellata. If distinct, we may consider this subdivision of the large family of R. canina, | distinguished by compound serratures and glands under the whole surface of the leaf, as composed of four species; R. Eglanteria, R. micrantha, R. umbellata, and one yet unnamed. I dare not at present admit R. sepium among the number. 16. Rosa BORRERI. R. receptaculis ellipticis, pinnis calycinis confertis, abnuit unci- | natis subæqualibus, foliolis hirsutis eglandulosis duplicato- serratis. : R. dumetorum. Engl. Rise xxxvi. t. 2579. Frutex D Rami diffusi, olivacei, aculeati; aculei uncinati, subæquales, umque stipulares, binati vel solitarii. Petioli tomentosi, glandulosi, aculeisque fortibus .wneinatis muniti, Stipulc lineares, glanduloso-serrate, pagina inferiore haud glandu Si, ege floribus etiam solitariis propiores latiores, cymarum demum foliis deficientibus in br cteas ovato-lanceolatas acuminatas immutate, Foliola 7, intense viridia, lucentia, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, impar quoque foliolis paris Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 211 paris superioris semper latius ; nunc ovato-elliptica, nune rhombeo-elliptica, plana, du- i plicato-serrata, serrulaturis glandulosis, paginis ambabus plerumque hirsutis sed sem- per inferiore. Pedunculi 1—16, modo setis debilibus, nunc pilis albis sparsis, et nunc pubescentià densâ, instructi, bracteis breviores. Receptaculum ellipticum, obscure fuscum, glabrum. Calycis foliola triangulari-elliptica, composita, pinnis confertis, lanceolatis, vel ovato-lanceolatis, incisis, glanduloso-serratis. Flores incarnati vel ru- bescentes. Styli inclusi; stigmata planiuscula, Fructus ellipticus, rarius subglo- bosus, intense ruber. Hedges and thickets, not uncomnion. B. Leaves hoary, with pubescence on both sides. Near Edin- burgh, Mr. Borrer, The leaves of this species are generally of a very dark colour, and always remarkably flat; the young leaves are tender at the edge, and frequently tinged with purple. This character it has in common with R. dumetorum and R. surculosa ; bút both these plants have simple serratures; and these marks, as well as the peculiar breadth of the terminalleaflet, may assist the investi- gator, in addition to the specific character and to the particula- rities already pointed out under R. micrantha, in distinguishing it from that species: from which, notwithstanding its affinity, it also strikingly differs in general habit. "The irregularity of the serratures in R. collina may sometimes create a difficulty be- tween this and that species. The calyx-leafits, the dark-green flat leaflets; and the broad terminal one, may help to decide in doubtful cases; yet some specimens I have been obliged to join to R. Borreri merely on account of the double serratures of the leafléts: and in the autumn of 1814 I observed a plant near Southgate, which, with all the other characters of R. Borreri, had nevertheless simple serratures: in 1815 the same plant had com- pound serratures. I have examined perhaps a hundred plants of this species, and my friends Mr. W. Borrer and Mr. E. Forster 272 | —5 212 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. probably as many more, without meeting with any other instance: of such an anomaly ; nor has a similar one been observed in any other species. | | The artificial character which separates this from R. cæsia seems to be slight; yet it is I believe constant; and as there is no ap- proximation in habit, there will be no difficulty in distinguishing the plants. No synonym of any foreign author can be referred: with certainty.to this species. | 17. Rosa czsia. R. receptaculis ellipticis, pinnis calycinis raris, aculeis uncina- tis subæqualibus; foliolis hirsutis eglandulosis duplicato- - serratis. i Rosa cæsia. Engl. Bot. xxxiii. t. 2367. Frutex densus, 5-pedalis. Rami suberecti, fasco-purpurei, glaucitie conspieuá induti; _ aculeati ; aculei uneinati, subæquales, plerumque binato-stipulares, Petioli tomen- , tosi, glandulosi, plerumque inermes. Stipulce lineares, glanduloso-serratæ, tomen- _ tose ; eæ floribus etiam solitariis propiores latiores, et demum foliis deficientibus in bracteas ellipticas acuminatas immutate. Foliola 5 vel 7 > par superius et foliolunr | impar ceteris majora, elliptica, venulis subtus prominentibus hirsutis ;. pagina inferiore hirsuta et interdum quoque superiore, serraturis glandüloso-serratis. Pedunculi sub» solitarii, glabri, bracteis breviores. Receptaculum eilipticum, primo glaucitie indu- tum, dein fuscum, glabrum. Calycis foliola eglandulosa, lanceolata, acuminata, pinnata; pinnz rare, lineares, nunc glanduloso-dentate nune integerrimæ, Flores rubescentes, Sty/i inclusi; stigmata hemispherica. Fructus ellipticus : maturi faciem. nescio. - At Taynuiltin Mid Lorn, Argyleshire; and in Strath Tay, between .. Dunkeld and Aberfeldie, Mr. Borrer. Side of Loch Tay, Mr. G. Anderson. : A I have endeavoured in the description of R. Borreri to show the differences between that species and the present. R. collina is still nearer in character; and I fear that in the prese - eee à nt state of our knowledge I can only point out the few and smal l pinne of the Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 213 the calyx-leafits as a decided mark of separation ; for the double serratures of the leaflets are sometimes rather ambiguous, and al- ways less strongly marked than those of R. Borreri; and the simple serratures of R. collina, though I believe never strictly compound, are yet frequently so irregular and unequal as to produce some- thing of the same appearance. From R.hibernica R.casia is arti- ficially distinguished by the total want of the smaller scattered aculei. I have neverseen this plant in aliving state; but Mr. Bor- rer assures me that the dense mode of growth, glaucous shoots, _ and hoary blueish gray foliage, contribute to give it an Le pere vi _ Very different from that of any other Rose. Rosa rubrifolia of Villars, Dauph. iii. 549, seems late between this species and R. nuda. Baron Fr. X. Wulfen, in Romer's Archiv. fur die Botanik, mentions a Rosa glaucescens which in some respects resembles this ; while i in others it seems to unite better with R. collina. The Rose with leaflets pubescent on the underside, mentioned by Afzelius in his Tent. de Ros. Suec. as confounded in Sweden with R. canina, is supposed by Sir J. E. Smith in Engl. Bot. to be- long to this plant; it seems to me to be decidedly my R.collina B. 18. Rosa SARMENTACEA. R. stylis distinctis, receptaculis ovatis, aculeis uncinatis, foliolis | duplicato-serratis glaberrimis. F5 eee R. canina. Roth FT. Germ. i. 218; ii. 560. — es Frutex 8—10-pedalis. Rami diffusi, olivacei, saad? aculei adunci, nune > rari, sparsi, . nunc solitarii vel binato-stipulares. : : Petioli absque pubescentia, hic illic glandulosi, 5 du falcatis basi expansis muniti. _ Stipule spatulatæ, glabra, serrate, serra- turis interdum glanduliferis; ex floribus propiores etiam solitariis multo latiores, tandem foliis deficientibus in bracteas ovatas acuminatas immutate ; ad florum eymas bractez illae numerosiores, sed basi angustiores. Foliola 5 vel 7, elliptica, par superius et. foliolum impar ceteris majora, subacuminata, glabra, supra cerea, subtus interdum nervo aculeata, 214 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. aculeata, serraturis inæqualibus, plerumque divaricatis, irregulariter serrulatis, Pe- dunculi 1—8, glabri, bracteis breviores. Receptaculum anguste ellipticum, fuscum, glabrum. Calycis foliola glabra, triangulari-elliptica, acuminata, pinnis lanceolato-li- nearibus, inciso-serratis, Flores rubescentes, planiuseuli. Styli inclusi, stigmatibus planiusculis. Fructus ellipticus, coccineus, nitidus. Common in hedges and bushy places. B. nitens.. The leaves, instead of the gray waxy appearance they generally have, are of a shining green : this variety has fre- quently a few setæ on the fruitstalk. Mr. Borrer finds this character also in æ. I have observed one specimen further remarkable by its straggling habit and small leaflets, with long ragged-looking serratures; perhaps it ought rather to be considered as belonging to the variety y. In hedges. 2. i dwarf variety of very lax and feeble growth, which is occa- Sion: dy met with in waste ground and on way-sides: the leaf- lets are rarely more than five, elliptico-lanceolate, or even sometimes lanceolate; the serratures are narrower and longer. It is remarkable that in this variety, while the leaflets are always narrower than in æ, the leafits are generally wider. à. is a very large plant, which has the fruit and even the imma- ture receptacle nearly globose ; the calyx-leafits are also fre- quently glandular. At Settle and other places in the moun- tainous district of the North of England. =s A variety with very small flowers, and a habit not unlike that of R. cesia. At Settle. € A large but slender plant, with flowers alwaye solitary. Re- Ceptacle broadly-elliptical. Road-side near Furness Abbey. I am disposed to refer to this species R. micrantha, Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. vi. 587. The name I have adopted is derived from the Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 215 the manuscript observations of Professor Swartz, communicated by him to Mr. Robertson of Newcastle. "The setz which are occasionally met with on the peduncle of this tribe of Roses have a very different appearance from those of the straight-thorned Roses and of R. Eglanteria and R. micrantha $ they are extremely feeble, hardly even stiff enough to support the gland by which they are terminated, and frequently passing into : mere bairs without any gland: indeed in the former tribe the sete seem to indicate an attempt to produce aculei ; and it is sometimes difficult to say whether the latter name would not be more appropriate : in this they have the appearance of an endea- vour to form hairs; and as they gradually diminish in strength and in the size of the terminating gland, till at last it entirely disap- pears, it is not always easy to decide to which sort of arms they belong. Thus, extraordinary as it may seem, we have in this genus hairs and prickles passing into one another by steps almost insensible. | The plant most nearly allied to this is undoubtedly R. canina, from which itis to be distinguished by its double serratures: by the smooth leaflets without either hairs or glands on the under surface, it may be easily known from R. micrantha; and the want of hairs will readily distinguish it from R. Borreri and R. cesia ; - but as I am always unwilling to rest upon this character alone, - when the difference of habit is supported by any other, I will observe that the shape of the leaflet, and its being always more or less carinate in this species, will be a decided mark of separa- tion from the former of these plants ; and the same character, though the difference is less distinctly marked, and the pinnæ of the calyx leafits, will make it known from the latter. | 19. Rosa 216 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 19. Rosa BRACTESCENS. R. receptaculis globosis, aculeis uncinatis, foliolis simpliciter ser- ratis subtus tomentosis, bracteis fructus superantibus. Frutex 6—7-pedalis. Rami diffusi, nunc fusci, nunc olivacei, aculeati ; aculei falcato-unci- nati, binato-stipulares. Petioli tomentosi, nec glandulosi, aculeisque falcatis muniti. Slipule lineares, subintegerrimæ, vel apicem versus serrulate, subtus tomentose ; ez floribus propiores multo majores, demum foliis deficientibus in bracteas magnas ova- ' tas, acuminatas, fructus superantes immutate. Foliola 5 vel 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, elliptica, supra hirta, subtus tomentosa, interdum nervo aculeata, simpliciter serrata. Pedunculi 1—4, plerumque glabri; rarius setis sparsis debilibus ar- mati. Receptaculum globosum, olivaceo-fuscum, glabrum. | Calycis foliola triangu- lari-elliptica, pinnata, pinnis integerrimis. Flores incarnati, concaviusculi. Styli sub- inclusi ; stigmata in conum porrecta, villosissima. Fructus globosus : maturi colorem nescio, Hedges about Ulverston, Lancashire. B. Stipulz nearly smooth ; sens lents glandular. At Ambleside in Westmoreland. — Tam not aware that this ces though Dréscnitg n very yatriking character, has been noticed by any preceding botanist: from - that character the present name is adopted; but my choice was confined by the use of names previously introduced from charac- ters somewhat similar. R. bracteata is the well-known name of a very different species ; and Thuilliers has given the name of sti- pularis, which would have been the most appropriate, to a Rose with which I am unacquainted, but which cannot be confounded with the present. ays -From R.dumetorum, independently of ce marks "hd will bé painted out in the description of that species, R. bractescens may be known by the rounder receptacle, the mass of woolly styles, and theimmense bractez. This latter is an important cha- racter by which it may be distinguished from the other Roses with hooked prickles and simple serratures; from most of which it also E Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 217 also differs in having the leaves pubescent on both surfaces: to this may be added, that the aculei are more slender and less curved than is usualin this tribe, though quite enough so to show that they belong to it; and they are also more numerous, and tlie petioles are very rarely unarmed. ‘The entire pinne of the calyx seem to be constant in this Rose, a circumstance seldom to be met with in those which resemble it most nearly. Its closest affi- nity is certainly with R. collina; but a careful attention to the above marks will be sufficient to distinguish it. _ 20. Rosa DUMETORUM. dee R. stylis distinctis, receptaculis ellipticis bracteas superantibus, aculeis uncinatis, foliolis simpliciter serratis utrinque hirsu- tis. R. dumetorum. Thuilliers Fl. des Env. de Paris, 250. R. canina £. Desvaur J. de Bot. ii. 115. Frutex 4—96- pedalis. Rami debiles, diffusi, olivacei, aculeati; aculei parviusculi, unei- nati, subbinato-stipulares sparsique. Petioli pilis aculeisque uncinatis, interdum - etiam glandulis instructi. Stipulæ lineares, apicem versus glanduloso-serratæ, mar- -gine pilose, ez floribus propiores ceteris paullàm latiores, denique foliis deficientibus in bracteas lanceolatas parvas, latitudine parüm, longitudine nequaquam, stipulas superantes, immutatæ. Foliola 5 vel 7, sublucentia, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, impar quoque etiam foliolis paris superioris semper latius, nunc ellip- tica acuta, nunc subrotunda acuminata, simpliciter serrata, subtus nervo-pilosa vel , juniora sericeo-pilosa, pagina utráque hirta. Pedunculi 1—3, glabri, pilisve sparsis .. tantum instructi, bracteas plerumque subæquantes, interdum superantes, Receptaculum me ellipticum. vel ovatum, nunc fuscum, nunc floribus decidentibus olivaceum, glabrum. © Calycis foliola triangulari-elliptica, acuminata, } I plen 'rumq e glabra, rarius pilosa, com- posita ; pinnis confertis lanceolatis hic illic incisis, , margine ssepius integerrimis. Flores planiusculi, petalis rubescentibus. Styli subinclusi, stigmatibus in globulum villo- sum congestis, Fructus late ovatus vel | subglobosus, glaber, ruber. Hedges in the southern counties occasionally ; clones in any abundance. 57159 VOL. XII. 2 # This 218 Mr. Woops.on the British Species of Rosa. This is generally a weak straggling Rose, which, in the instances which have fallen under my notice, does not flower very freely. Mr. Borrer, however,—to whose accurate observations this essay is in many instances deeply indebted,—finds a plant in the neigh- bourhood of Henfield in Sussex, which, agreeing in other respects with this, is yet neither of feeble growth nor unwilling to flower. Even under this appearance the aculei are usually smaller and weaker than in the neighbouring species. B. has a stronger growth and larger aculei than are usual in @; the pinne of the calyx are also narrower, the flowers in a cyme, much more numerous; and both in appearance and character it approaches very near to R. surculosa. 7. has a leaflet of a very dark shining green, much longer than usual in R. dumetorum. 1 have seen very little of it, and have therefore for the present joined it to this plant on ac- count of the small bracteæ, small aculei, weak growth, and . the pubescence of the leaves, which are decidedly hairy on - the veins and on the surface beneath, and exhibit some scat- “tered hairs on the upper surface: but it must be confessed, that in the shape of the leaflet and the general appearance . of the plant it has little affinity with this species, If we except the doubtful variety y, the flat leaves of this Rose (a considerable portion of which in every plant is either subro- tund and acuminate, or at least very much rounded at the base) will distinguish it, without reference to the pubescence, from R. sar- mentacea, R. collina, and R. canina. This form and expansion of the leaf it has in common with R. Borreri and R, surculosa ; but the first has its leaves doubly serrated, in the latter they are al- ways entirely smooth on both sides. I have already recorded an observation which throws some doubt on the former character ; | and Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 219 and the latter is in so many instances in other families known to be variable, that I am unwilling to depend upon it entirely in this. Yet the three Roses are dierent in habit, and I have not been able to fix on any more permanent distinction. 21. Rosa COLLINA. R. stylis distinctis, aculeis uncinatis subzqualibus, foliolis sim- pliciter serratis subtus tantum hirsutis. æ. R. collina. Jacq. Fl. Austr. ii. 58. t. 197. Willd. ii. 1078. Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. iv. 441. Segre setosis, | B. pallescens. - | | Frutex 6—8-pedalis. Rimi subdiffusi, olivacei, seul; aculei uncinati: aifid, sæ- pius debiles, subæquales, solitario- vel Bitiákó stipitaics; Petioli tomentosi, incani, aculeisque faleatis muniti. Stipul@ lineares, apicem versus serrate vel glanduloso- serrate, supra glabra, cx floribus propiores majores, et tandem foliis deficientibus in bracteas ovato-lanceolatas immutate. ^ Foliola 5 vel 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, elliptica, enormiter (sed nunquam duplicato) serrata; serra- turis apice pallide eartilagineis, subtus hirsuta, supra glabra, glauca, et nitoris ex- pertia. Pedunculi 1—5, glabri, bracteis breviores. Receptaculum ellipticum, gla- brum, olivaceum. Calycis. foliola ovato-lanceolata, apicem versus pilosa, pinnata; pinnis lineari-lanceolatis incisis, plerumque margine integerrimis, Flores planiusculi, . pallide rubescentes. Styli inclusi, stigmatibus convexis. Fructus ellipticus : matur colorem non observavi. Hedges i in the southern counties occasionally. y. R. canina y.. Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. iv. AAT... ai age À FES R. dumetorum, Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. vi 594. Stems stronger but more diffuse , brown; aculei Paen brown- ish, and much more hooked than in R. collina B; leaflets of a bright. shining. green on the upper surface, generally somewhat carinate, while in 8 they are rather slightly cam cave; tips of the serratures fusco-cartilagineous. Flo stalks one to nine. Receptacle broader than that of B. " 2r2 Flowers 220 Mr. Woops on the British Species of. Rosa. Flowers sometimes white, sometimes of a full blush-colour. Fruit often m Hedges throughout. England very common. . vedo e205 3. A compact bush three or four feet iat thick with leaves, the leaflets small, very acute, silky underneath. Near Dovedale, Derbyshire. MIPS | |j There is no species of Rosa in which my endeavours have been more unsuccessful than in this. Iam neither satisfied in what I have joined together, nor in the marks by which I have attempted to discriminate it from other species. The variety « is adopted merely from Jacquin; and, as far as is at present known, is not à British plant. I have therefore drawn up my description from the variety B: an examination of the specimens of `R. collina possessed by Sir J. E. Smith, and of those in the Herbarium of Sir Joseph Banks, and a comparison of these with the figure in the Flora Au- striaca, enable me to state that this x variety differs only : from. L in the want of hairs or giands on the peduncle. | Tn this state it ap- proaches very nearly to R. bractescens, being scarcely distinguish- able, except by the somewhat smaller bractéæ and the entire nakedness of the upper surface of the leaf; and as tbat species has frequently a glandular, or rather a weakly setose peduncle, exactly like that of Jacquin's figure, I have doubted whether T ought not rather to have attributed the name and synonym to that plant. Jacquin, however, could hardly have passed unno- ticed the remarkably enlarged bractescent stipulæ accompanying the inflorescence of R. bractescens ; he describes the prickles as * validi," although in the figure they are represented as much weaker. than is the case with most Roses of this subdivision of the genus, and the folioles as ** atro-virentia," whereas they are figured pale and. glaucous ; both figure and description attri- bute a dark cartilagineous summit to "e serratures. These cir- cumstances Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 221 cumstances induce me to believe that Jacquin would have in- cluded in his species most, if not all, of those different ap- pearances which I have united into mine. "The glandular foot- stalk varies in `R. bractescens, R. canina, and other neighbouring species; which will justify us in rejecting it from the essential character in this instance, though a most diligent search bas not succeeded in bringing to light a single instance of glands or setae on the peduncle of any variety a native of this country :—once, indeed, on one plant | found a few hairs on that of the variety y. This last-mentioned variety is certainly a very different plant in. appearance from either « or B, and may perhaps be a distinct spe- - . cies; but Ihave found myself unable to find any character by which | it might be separated; and it besides varies greatly in. itself both in habit and in character. The leaflets are sometimes almost as. broad, but I believe never as flat, as those of It. Borreri and. R. du- metorum ; and the calyx-segments sometimes approach in shape and number to those of these plants; the serratures too, though. never double, become sometimes exceedingly unequal. At other times the long leaflets and equal serratures. might lead one, with- out the inflorescence, to refer it to R. systyla. ‘To this variety I should refer the Rose which is mentioned by Afzelius as a hairy, variety of R. canina, and. quoted by Sir J. E.Smith under R.cesia: some further observations on Afzelius’s varieties of R. canina will be found in the account of that species. ‘The genie fringe of the serratures sometimes passes into hairs. — a zt |. Of the variety à I have only seen one plant. ads that. before its fow were open: it was a compact bush, between three and four feet high, abounding in flower-buds; and the numerous small and very acute leaflets gave ita peculiar appearance. In Römers Archiv. fur die Botanik, Band i. p. 6. Auc. A. ab Haller, R. collina is described as having the upper surface of ee Uae 222 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. the leaves shining, with a silky pubescence. The author refers to Jacquin ; but. he must È hiik sama have mistaken the plant. . Rosa arvensis, Roth Fl. Germ. i. 217, & i. 554; R. corymbifera, Gmel. Fl. Bad. Als. ii. 424, resembles in some respects the va- riety y; but the isis are said. by the latter writer to be hairy on both sides. It is not explained whether the serratures of the leaves are double or single; Roth describes his plant as a robust shrub ten feet high, with leaves attenuated at both ends; a character which rather belongs to this than to any other of the pubescent-leaved Roses of the canina tribe. ` Perhaps to this species we must refer R. leucantha, Lam. et Dec. FI. Fr. vi. 535, which has whiteflowers, and occasionally a few hairs on the upper surface of the leaves. R. fastigiata (of the same work and page)may likewise be a sub-variety of R.collina y, with flowers more numerous than common : the shape « of. the leaves will not permit me to join this latter to R. surculosa, with which therwise the flowers ** disposés en corymbe assez large” might indicate am affinity. All Roses with hooked thorns of nearly equal size, having the leaflets smooth above, and the petiole and midrib on the under surface hairy ; the styles distinct and included, or nearly included, in the germen,—must be considered as belonging to this species. I must leave it to future investigators to decide on the one hand, whether these characters are sufficient to distin- guish it as a species from R. canina; and on the other, whether with so much difference of habit it ought not itself to be further divided. 29. Rosa HIBERNICA. R. receptaculis globosis, aculeis uncinatis inæqualibus, ipuem simpliciter serratis. R. hibernica. Engl. Bot. xxxi. t. 2196. Frutex Mr. Woows on the British Species of Rosa. %93 Frutex tripedalis, ied stricti, fusci, aculeati; aculei uncinati vel faleati, sübbinato- sstipulares, hic illic minoribus rectioribus sparsim intermixtis. Petioli pilosi, aculeis -glandulisve plerumque expertes. — Stipulee lineares, subglanduloso-serratæ, ez flori- bus propiores etiam solitariæ, ceteris multo latiores; cymarum tandem, foliis deficien- tibus, in bracteas ovatas acüminatas immutate. Foliola 5 vel 7, par superius et folio- lum impar ceteris majora, elliptica, simpliciter serrata, supra glabra glaucescentia, subtus precipue nervo pilosa. Pedunculi 1—5, glabri, bracteis plerumque breviores, Receptaculum subglobosum, fuscum. | Calycis foliola triangulari-elliptica, acuta, peta- lis breviora, pinnata, pinnis lanceolatis i integerrimis. Styli subinclusi ; stigmata villosa, conica. Fructus nunc globosus, nunc fauce parum elongatà : maturum non vidi. In Ireland, Mr. Templeton. Engl. Bot. I haye never seen this plant in a wild state. The curvature of the aculei is generally less than in other Roses of this tribe,—a character in which it agrees with R. bractescens; but the simple serratures will readily distinguish them both from all the varie- ties of R. tomentosa; and the aculei rest on a longer base than is found on that plant. From R. bractescens and R. collina this spe- cies may be known by its dwarf rigid habit; but the most im- portant character is derived from the mixture of small straight prickles on the branches. It is true that R. Aibernica has this character in common with R. Eglanteria ; but the entire want of. glands, the simple serratures, and the shape of the fruit, render it impossible that any mistake should arise between them. 23. Rosa CANINA. R. inia duiisictiad subi caulinis: uncinatis. peti -= = foliolis carinatis simpliciter serratis. glabris. . i R. canina. Linn. Sp. Pl. i704. Willd. ii. 1077. Fl. Brit. . 540. Engl. Bot. xiv. t. 992. Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. iv. Me Fl. Dan. t. 555. Rosa sylvestris res seu canina. Raw Syn. 454. Frutex laxus, 6—8-pedalis. Rami diffusi, ue. aculeati; aculei uncinati, subbinato- «ind Petioli pubescentes ; aculeis falcatis, atque hic illic glandulis sparsis mu- od niti, 994 | Mv. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. niti. Stipulæ lineares, serratæ, glabræ, ese floribus propiores latiores, et demum fo- liis deficientibus in bracteas ellipticas acuminatas immutate. Foliola 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, anguste elliptica, carinata, acumine parvo torto, ju- niora lucescentia quasi fucata, glaberrima; serraturze acuminate, inæquales, sed nun- quam serie duplicé. Pedunculi glaberrimi, in ramulis solitarii vel binati rarius terna- ti, in sureulis plerumque quaterni. Receptaculum ellipticum, fuscum, glabrum. Ca- lycis foliola triangulari-ovata, glabra ; pinnæ lineari-lanceolatæ, hic illie glanduloso- incise. Flores plerumque rubescentes, rarius albi, gemma flore expanso aliquantu- lum rubrior. Styli inclusi, — — Ltée Dur ellipticus, ay nitidus, coccineus. Common in hedges and -bushy places. Under this name our early botanists seem to have included (besides the present species) R. sarmentacea, R. Borreri, R. dume- torum, R. collina, R. surculosa, and R.systyla of this essay. After all these reductions it must still be considered as a very variable Rose. I will attempt to enumerate the principal differences of appearance to which it is v ed | | B. cerea. The young: leaves are uiis x a Ex substance, and till rubbed are of a glaucous green entirely without gloss. Root-shoots are more freely produced in this variety than in #, and I have sometimes met with as many as eight flowers in a cyme. "The plant is eight or ten, and sometimes even fifteen, feet high ; the leaflets are broader, and the little point at the end is alwaysa little twisted ; a character which may be observed in a slight degree in «, but is more conspi- cuous here. "This is a very beautiful Rose, and more com- = mon than the preceding variety, from which I have drawn = my description, because R. canina has been almost always described with shining leaves. These two varieties form the chief subdivisions of the spe- cies, and are marked by a. difference of habit as well as co- lour; Mr. Woows on the British Species of Rosa. 225 Jour; and it is remarkable that R. collina and R. sarmentacea "are not unfrequently to be observed.of a habit somewhat in- termediate between these varieties; so that if at first sight the young botanist should doubt whether he has the waxy or shining-leaved variety of R. canina, it is highly probable that a closer investigation will prove it to be one or the other of those species. y. glandulifera. Peduncle, receptacle, and calyx furnished with glands, or rather with weak setae, which are most abundant on the latter.—Near Potter's Bar, Hertfordshire ; at Pound’s- Bridge, near Penshurst in Kent; near Ambleside in West- . moreland. Mr. Borrer gathered a Rose nearly resembling these specimens, and which must be referred to this variety, but with the calyx-leafits narrower and less divided, at the Pass of Lanrick. à. Branches, stipule, and petioles of a vinous red. Not rare in hedges and bushy places, generally in a barren soil. T ibecontauit subglobose; leaflets bd or lanceolato-ovate, acute, with very little appearance of the small twisted acu- men. This Rose certainly does not accord well with the other varieties of R. canina : the shape of the leaflets, and their very irregular glandular serratures, united with the general habit, would almost justify an observer in attributing it to. R. col- lina; and with this notion the subglobose fruit i is not incon- sistent; but the petiole veins and inferior surface of the leaf- — lets areentirely without hairs. In some respects it resembles R. surculosa ; but the leaflets are not flat, and the aculei of the petioles are rarely more than falcate. Near ‘aa Wells. YOL. XII. 26 E sim- 226 . Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 3. simpliciuscula. Calyx-leafits nearly simple. A slight difference . in the general habit induced me to gather this plant when I observed it near Betchworth in Surrey; but I did not then notice the character by which I now distinguish it. Among the British Roses with uncinate prickles and leaves entirely without pubescence, R. canina may be distinguished from R. sarmentacea by the simple serratures ; from R. surculosa by its carinate leaves, and by the weak and slightly-hooked prickles of the petioles ; from R. arvensis by its distinct and woolly . styles. R: sempervirens is in habit and even in family quite a distinct plant; yet it is difficult to express any decided marks of difference, except in the styles, which, though sometimes slightly porrect in R. canina, are never lengthened out as in that species. Afzelius, De Rosis Suecanis Tent. viii. 46, describes seven varie- ties of Rosa canina, which he considers only a portion of the. num- ber of species into which this plant must be divided. "The first seems clearly to be the R. collina y of this essay. The second also I should probably have enumerated among the varieties of that species, but it is remarkable for a large globular hip as large as a plum—a very uncertain mark of comparison. The third plant is R. canina Ê; the fourth, R. canina y; the fifth, R: canina « ; the sixth appears to belong to my R. surculosa. R. rubifolia of Vil- lars is quoted under the seventh of this list of Roses; but Dr. Af- zelius. does not seem to be of opinion that the Swedish Rose is of the same species as that of Dauphiné; the former is perhaps rather the R. canina ò of this essay. Besides these, he mentions many other Roses of this tribe as existing in his collection, which not having seen alive he does not venture to describe. The various appearances. of this. Rose are therefore probably as numerous in Sweden as in this country. Desvaux, Mr. Woons on the British Species of Rosa. 29T Desvaux, Journalde Botanique, ii. 114, has noless than twenty-one varieties which he attributes to this species; but in respect to some of them he is certainly mistaken: his £ is the « of this essay, and y is theB; while hise seems to beintermediate, or rathertoapply equally to either when the first appearance of the young leaves is passed off; à seems to be my R.collina y, and « R.collina a; X perhaps is to be referred to R. canina «; n must be placed with my R. canina y: à the author has borrowed from Lejeune, and, as he says himself, without understanding it: +, x, 4, I suppose all to belong to R. ca- nina y of this paper; wis R. tomentosa, adopted from the botanists of this country. The description of the aculei might indeed mis- lead Desvaux; but he must be totally ignorant of our plant, as in the essential character of the species he describes the serra- tures simple: » 2, are to be attributed to R. dumetorum ; o proba- bly to R. collina: and here also I should put z, 2, v, : vis R. ca- mina È; ® may be R. canina y: but all these references must be ` considerably uncertain, as the descriptions are very short; and it is not at all improbable that one or two of them ought to be quoted as R.surculosa. I have detailed them chiefl y to show the ex- treme uncertainty which exists as to this species. Of the twenty- one varieties, there are at the most only ten which appear to me to belong to R. canina, and some even of these are very doubtful. A conserve is made from the hips of this Rose, and probably of all those which have been hitherto confounded with it, which, as Sir J. E. Smith justly observes, would be brought to table as a sweetmeat if it were not in such frequent: use as a vehicle for medi- cines. It is sometimes met with on the tables of the Continent. The Tartars, according to Pallas in the Flora Rossica, drink instead of tea a decoction of the shoots and especially of the roots of this plant: this beverage has been adopted by some of the Russians, particular] y in Siberia, who highly praise the agreeable and exhi- 262 larating 228 ^ Mr. Woons:on the British Species of Rosa. larating effects of it. Thé Russians of the Volga prepare a spirit from the flowers; they likewise preserve them with sugar and ho- ney. The leaves dried and infused in boiling water have been re- commended as a substitute for tea. — 24. Rosa sURCULOSA. à; R. stylis distinctis, aculeis caulinis petiolinisque uncinatis, folio- lis planis simpliciter serratis glabris. uH Frutex octo-pedalis, laxus, habità Rosam caninam vel potius R. Borreri inter et R. arvensem referens, Rami diffusi, atro-purpurei vel intense fusci, juniores glaucescentes, nune copiose aculeati nunc fere inermes; aculei fortissimi, uncinati, nunc binato-stipu- lares, nunc solitarii, sparsi. — Petioli supra tantum sparse pilosi, alioquin glabri, acu- leis fortibus uncinatis muniti. Séipulæ spatulatæ vel lineares, nunc serratæ, nunc basi glanduloso-ciliatze, nunc nisi apicem versus integerrimz, glabra, interdum mar- gine pilose, ez floribus propiores latiores et demum foliis deficientibus in bracteas ellipticas, acuminatas, immutat, — Foliola 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris - : . majora, acie supraque nervo tantum pilis raris instructa, elliptica, vel subrotunda, acu- minata, impar basi cordatüm vel ovatum, serrata, subtus glabra, obscura, juniora pur- purascentia, Pedünculi 1—24, hie illic setis. sparsis, tenerrimis, pilisve muniti. Receptaculum. ovatum, fuscum, glabrum, disco convexo. Calycis foliola triangulari- elliptica, acuta fere usque ad basin divisa, pinnis lanceolatis vel lineari-lanceolatis, nervosis, integerrimis. Flores rubescentes, Styli subporrecti, villosi ; stigmata in globulum congesta. Fructus late ellipticus, ruber, About Albourne, Henfield, West Grinstead, and elsewhere in Sussex.. Mr. Borrer. Road-side between Hayes and Bromley in Kent. ! Ge B. Surculi not so strong, redder; bush more compact ; disk of the receptacle flat. Near Stoke Newington. Only one bush of this Rose has ever been observed ; but the habit of the plant is very remarkable, and I had noticed it several years before I began to pay any particular attention to this genus, i EA | The only British species which can be mistaken for R. surculosa are Mr. Woows on the British Species of Rosi. 220 are R. canina, R. systyla, and R. arvensis; and from each of these it may perhaps be difficult to give a description which shall accu- rately distinguish it, while in habit it is considerably different from either. From the first it may however, T think, always be known by the porrect styles, the entire pinne of the calyx-leafits, the peduncle almost always furnished with hairs or sete, the shape and flatness of the leaflets, and the strong and hooked aculei of the footstalk. ‘These marks seem indeed amply sufficient, but I am afraid they are all more or less uncertain. I have never seen the glands of the peduncle extending themselves on the re- ceptacle or calyx ; in R. canina, when glands are found on the pe- duncle, they are also generally to be observed on the fruit, and still more on the calyx; but this character likewise sometimes fails, A better distinction in the living plant is found in the enormous surculi covered with beautiful blue wax, and bearing great cymes of flowers. In the most favourable circumstances it is only by accident that R. canina has more than four flowers. In this plant if any surculi are produced, and it is rarely without them, the ob- server will not often be disappointed in searching for eight or ten, . and he will sometimes find double that number; but even this mark is not very decidedly exhibited in the variety 8, which seems however to unite better with this species than with any other. From R. arvensis it may be known by the styles, which are here hairy and but just protruded, not smooth and collected- into a long cylinder, as in that plant. It is also a much more up- right plant, the surculi being rather erect than decumbent. From R. systyla also a due attention to the styles will distinguish it; and the shape and flatness of the leaf give a decidedly different appearance to the present plant. 25. Rosa 830 | Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 25. Rosa sysTYLA. R. stylis unitis, receptaculis oblongis, aculeis uncinatis subæqua- libus surculorum confertis, foliolis simpliciter serratis. R. systyla. Bastard Flore d' Anjou, as quoted by Desvaux, Journ. ... de Bot. ii. 113. | R. stylosa. Lam. et Dec. Fl. Er. vi. 586. Desv. Journ. de Bot. li. 113. pl. 14. | = =e R. brevistyla. Lam. et Dec. FI. Fr. vi. 537. R. leucochroa. Desv. Journ: de Bot. ii. 113. pl. 15. R. collina. Engl. Bot. xxvii. t. 1895. Frutex gracilis, 8—12-pedalis. Rami vagi, olivacei, aculeati ; aculei uncinati, subæquales, ramulorum minores plerumque binato-stipulares, sureulorum maximi instar Psitta- corum rostri. Petioli tomentosi, sape glandulosi, aculeisque parvis falcatis muniti. Stipule lineares, serrulatæ, glabriuscule, ez floribus solitariis propiores vix ceteris . Jatiores, ad cymas, foliis deficientibus, tandem in bracteas lanceolatas acuminatas x immutatæ. -~ Foliola 5 rarius 7, par superius et foliolum impar ceteris majora, el- liptica, vel lanceolato-elliptica, carinata, acuminata, simpliciter serrata, supra gla- bra, subtus venulis hirsuta. Pedunculi 1—8, glandulosi, elongati. Receptaculum oblongum vel elliptico-oblongum, fusco-olivaceum, glabrum. Calycis foliola ovato- -triangularia, pinnata; pinnæ inciso-glandulosæ, Flores cyathiformes, petala pul- cherrime rubescentia, basi parum in aurantiacum vergentia, sed interdum flores pal- lidiores et etiam albi inveniuntur. S¢y/i in columellam porrecti ; stigmata in conum . congesta. Fructus elliptico-oblongus, glaber, coccineus, ; ; At New-Timber, Henfield, and many other places in Sussex abundantly. Mr. Borrer. At Walthamstow and Quendon in ... Essex, and at Clapton in Middlesex. Mr. E. Forster. At Don- . nington-Castle in Berkshire. Mr. Bicheno. Near Penshurst in Kent, and near Hornsey in Middlesex. B. Leaves entirely smooth on both sides. I cannot hesitate in referring to one species the synonyms above quoted. R.brevistyla and R. leucochroa are said to differ in having a shorter column of styles than R. stylosa; but this circumstance | I have Mr. Woops-on the British Species of Rosa. 231 I have observed to vary considerably. R. debracteata, Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. vi. 537, ought also probably to be referred to this species: it has the styles connected, and differs from R. arvénsis in its greater size and upright stem. The * flore d'Anjou” of Bastard I have not been able to meet with, I therefore trust to Desvaux: but the character of the plant is so distinct, as ap- plied to a Rose having nearly the habit of R. canina, that there can be no doubt of the accuracy of the reference. Desvaux has thought proper to alter the name ; but I have preferred retaining that originally proposed by Bastard, not only as being prior to the other, but also very decidedly better. ‘I'he name in English Botany was given with the idea that this species coincided with the R. collina of Jacquin; from which, liowever, it may readily be distinguished by its elegant habit, cup-shaped flowers of a much more glowing hue, long fruit and peduncle, narrow bracteæ, and: above all by its connected styles, which separate it from all Roses of the canina family. The difference in the size and strength of the aculei of the branches compared with those of the surculi. may sometimes also be a useful character. The habit of R. systyla will to. the practised eye keep it abundantly separate from R. arvensis. In artificial character they are more nearly allied ;. butin R. s syst yla the surculi, though weak and gracefully bending,. rise upwards, unlike the long, rambling, decumbent. shoots of R. arvensis: they are also thickly covered with large. prickles ;. whereas those of the latter Rose have the aculei ipeioen very large nor very numerous, but rather the contrary. - In some states this is a Rose of no very conspicuous appear- ance ; but when it produces its root-shoots long and gently curved downwards by the weight of the numerous clustered flowers, it is. hardly possible to conceive any thing more beautiful. 26. | E. 232 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 96. Rosa ARVENSIS. R. stylis unitis, aculeis uncinatis surculorum sparsis, foliolis ellip- ticis inæqualiter serratis. | | R. arvensis. Willd. ii. 1066. Fl. Brit. ii. 538. Engl. Bot. iii. t. 188. Lam. et Dec. FI. Fr. iv. 438. R. canina B. Fl. Germ. i. 218. & ii. 560. R. repens. Gmel. Fl. Bad. Als. ii. 418. R. sylvestris. .Rómer's Archiv. B. i. st. ii. p. 33. R. sylvestris minor flore albo. Raï Syn. 455. Frutex altitudine 2—4-pedalis ; surculis longissimis, decumbentibus, flagelliformibus, juni- oribus glaucescentibus, senioribus viridibus. Rami vagi, debiles, glauco-virides e luce purpureo-fusci, aculeati; aculei surculorum sparsi, basi latissimi, mucrone plerumque adunco instructi, ramorum graciliores. Petioli nunc hirti nunc glandulosi, rarius utrumque aculeati. Svipule lineares, apicem versus nunc serrate nunc glanduloso- nunc piloso-ciliatæ, glabræ, ez floribus cymosis propiores foliis gradatim deficientibus, : demum in bracteas lanceolatas, vix stipulis latiores, immutate. Foliola 5, par in- ferius ceteris minus, elliptica vel subrotundo-elliptica, plana, crenato-serrafa, interdum apicem versus inciso-serrata, nervo interdum subtus pilosa, sepius utrinque glaber- rima. Pedunculi 1—8, interdum etiam usque ad 15, elongati, glandulis subsessili- bus induti. Receptaculum plerumque ovatum, rarius in locis sterilibus subglobosum, fuseum, glabrum. Calycis foliola ovata vel subrotundo-ovata, nunc hirta nune- glandulosa, pinnulis parvis lanceolatis integerrimis hic illic instructa, Flores albi, expansi. Styli in columellam glabram persistentem porrecti ; stigmata in globulum congesta. Fructus formå multum variat, ab elliptico- oblongo etiam ad accurate globosum, posterior tamen vix nisi in pedunculis solitariis invenitur: maturi color san- guineus, Hedges and bushy places in the southern and midland counties ; rare in the mountainous districts. B. Fruit glandular as well as the peduncle. At Shermanbury in Sussex. Mr. Borrer. By the high rocks at Tunbridge-Wells. Mr. Borrer has communicated to me specimens remarkably long in the leaves and fruit. ‘This approaches in some degree to the Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. 233 the R. prostrata, Lam. et Dec. Fl. Fr. vi. 536, which scems to be a variety of this species with shining persistent leaves; but the latter circumstance has not occurred to me in any English speci- men. This Rose has hitherto been separated from its nearest affini- ties on account of the shape of the fruit: but this has been done erroneously ; for though the full-grown fruit is sometimes nearly globular, the receptacle, while the plant is in flower, is decidedly ovate, except occasionally in starved specimens: it is generally longer in the cymes of flowers than when solitary, differing in this respect from R. canina and its allies, which have usually among the cymes rounder receptacles than those of tlie solitary flowers. | i — The midrib of the leaflet is sometimes furnished with hairs: this peculiarity will occasionally occur on some branches and not on others of the same plant. The habit of this Rose is a low bush with long trailing shoots frequently covered with a profusion of flowers opening quite flat. The buds are faintly tinged with red, but the expanded petals are I believe always white. Mr. Sabine has what he considers as a double variety of R. arvensis, which retains the blush coloür in the flowers, and is extremely beautiful. In this the serratures of the leaves are furnished with glands which have the appearance of double serratures, as in R. provincialis, R. gallica, R. damascena, and R: alba, «°° : 1350.98 3E ge ^ erg on . In the long shoots of this plant the aculei frequently appear to consist of a short mucro on an expanded base. As the ramifica- tions are repeated, it often happens that the expanded base die minishes in proportionate size, and the mucro becomes a hooked prickle more round and'slender than in the family of R. canina ; the smallest prickles are even sometimes quite straight. á — VOL, XII. 2 H The 234 Mr. Woops on the British Species of Rosa. The distinct, smooth, lengthened column of styles is alone suf- ficient to distinguish it from every British Rose except R. systyla, froin which it may be known by its decumbent shoots and ex- panded flowers; the leaflets also are flatter, the serratures wider apart, and the whole plant of a grayer colour. When once known, their general appearance is so different that it is impossible to confound them. Among the exotics, R. sempervirens comes near to it in habit, while in essential character it is easily separated by its shining leaves and villous styles. R. sempervirens of Roth, Fl, Germ. i. 218. ii. 556; R. umbellata of Gmelin, Fl. Bad. Als. ii. 4253 Lam. et Dec. FL. Fr. vi. 532, appears to me a very different spe- cies: it is not an evergreen ; the fruit is globose or nearly so, and the leaves are doubly serrated and glandular beneath. Gmelin lc, remarks that it is allied to R. Eglanteria. It is perhaps as near to R. Borreri as to any British Rose; but it is scarcel y possible _ to conceive how this could have been mistaken for £. 246 of the Hortus Elthamensis, the only plate referred to by Linnæus, and clearly pointing out his plant. | R. semperflorens is another plant of this family, and, unless the distinct styles of these Roses should make it necessary to separate them, R. indica. It will also contain R. moschata, R. multiflora, and R. sinica. Some Roses from China, of which specimens exist in the Banksian Herbarium, will probably form another family allied to this. The hip of this species has a finer flavour than that of us other British Rose ; that of R.s ystyla does not much differ in this respect, XV. 4 "(€ 935 ) XV. A Botanical History ef the Genus Tofieldia. By Sir James Edward Smith, M.D. F.R.S. P. L.S. Read January 21, 1817. NorwirusrANDING the assiduous labours of so many acute and learned men in the field of Botany for three centuries past, much still remains to be done in the mere determination of spe- cies. All our care and watchfulness are still requisite, to keep the science clear of confusion, even in the history and discrimi- nation of Europæan plants. No accurate and scientific student will find any want of employment, or of well-deserved credit, in the exclusive cultivation of this field. The more familiar the plants, the less carefully have they, often, been studied, and the more numerous their synonyms, the greater is the chance of ac- cumulated and intricate mistakes. ‘Those who are competent to devote themselves to this branch of scientific inquiry, will wisely avoid all loss of time about matters of opinion, concerning which, men more learned and experienced than themselves have differed, but which are in general sufficiently settled for all practical uses, though they might be debated upon for ever, ‘without any incon- trovertible conclusion. Such are many of the genera in dispute between Linnæus and other authors; in alluding to which, I by no means wish to deter young botanists from the study of genera, one of the most instructive that they can pursue. But to learn and to teach are very different things. I cannot too often pro test against those more tempting roads to immortality, gratuitous 2H2 changes 236 Sir J. E. Suirrn's Botanical History changes of names, and speculations in classification. Tle former can only be permitted, if at all, to the most eminent leaders and reformers of botanical science, who may be capable of acquiring supreme authority in ihe latter. The writer of this paper has never thought himself more di- rectly pursuing the best objects of that Society, now so eminent, and so extensively useful, to whose service he has so long been devoted, than when employed in those practical investigations and criticisms, by which its * Transactions" are particularly distin- guished. "These subjects are so far from being exhausted, that scarcely any considerable genus of plants could be taken at ran- dom out of the Linnæan herbarium, without affording matter for an ample dissertation. . The genus Tofieldia is known to have been involved in much confusion, as to its name and character ; but no one seems aware of the still. greater confusion, and intricate misapprehensions, which concern its species. - ak: shall attempt to unravel both these subjects. The late Mr. Dryander has well pointed out, in die second edition of Mr. Aiton’s Hort. Kew. v. ii. 324, that our present Tofi- eldia was the real and original Anthericum of Linnzus, in his Ge- nera Plantarum, ed. i. 106. Accordingly it there stands in the Herandria Trigynia. But in the second edition of the same work, published five years afterwards, the author combines, or rather confounds, with this genus his own Bulbine, Gen. Pl. ed. i. 95, as Tournefort had done before him. In the first edition of the Species Plantarum therefore Anthericum is a most heterogeneous assemblage ; and so it continued in all the subsequent publica- tions of the great Swedish botanist. Some things have been done in England still further to embroil, and some to reform it. The Hortus Kewensis, and Mr. Brown's Prodromus, stand emi- nently ' of the Genus Tofieldia. — 237 nently conspicuous among the works which have conduced to the latter object. Their authors have, in this instance, wisely exercised that discretionary paramount authority, which belongs only to the leaders-in Botany, of overruling a prior claim of no- menclature. Instead of setting up the original Anthericum, they have retained that name for the numerous species to which it is popularly applied, and which make the bulk of the genus as Linnzus and his followers have subsequently understood it. Hence a very troublesome degree of perplexity is avoided ; espe- cially as these writers must otherwise either have invented a new name, or have restored Bulbine, already differently applied by Gertner. They certainly knew better than to take up with Tournefort's Phalangium, which is appropriated to a genus of insects. The author of the Flora Britannica indeed, aware of the above- mentioned confusion and pretensions respecting Anthericum, had exercised the same discretionary power, following Mr. Hudson in his name of Tofieldia. Under this is commemorated Mr. Tofield, a country gentleman in the neighbourhood of Doncaster, who there discovered the Vicia bithynica, a plant which had escaped the notice of Ray and the botanists of his time, though since ob- served in other parts of England. The herbarium of Mr. Tofield came, in 1793, after his decease, into the pum of Dr. À aa of Sheffield, F. L.S. | AT wi Jussieu, led by Gerard, has feansierred Meriiig’s n. name of E- thecium to our Tofieldia ; from an idea, as it appears, that the real Narthecium of that author belonged to this genus, though nothing can be more distinct. We believe it to be no less di- stinct from Anthericum, though retained in that genus, after Willdenow, in the Hortus Kewensis The able M. Decandolle z not wishing perhaps to clash with Jussieu, has called this. last plant 238 Sir J. E. Surrn's Botanical History plant Abama; but the prior right of Narthecium, published in 1742, is irrefragable. The genus whose illustration is the object of the present disqui- sition, may therefore be considered as now established beyond the reach of controversy, under the following name and characters. ToFLELDIA. Huds. Fl. Angl. 157. Sm. Fl. Brit. 397. Dryand. in Ait. Hort. — Kew. v. ii. 324. Pursh Amer. Sept. 216. Decand. Fr. v. iii. 198. ‘Anthericum. Linn. Gen. Pl. ed. i. 106. Hall. Hist. v. ii. 98. Narthecium. Ger. Gallopr. 142. Juss. Gen. 47. Lamarck Illustr. t. 268. Isidrogalvia. Ruiz et Pavon Peruv. v. iii. 69. Dryand. Cuar. Ess. Calyx trifidus. Petala sex, qualia. "Styli verti- cales, breves. Capsule tren super | bagi ven Dee Anthere subrotunde. Se CHAR. pcm Cal. Perianthium inferum, remotiusculum, monophyllum, mem- branaceum, trifidum, parvum, persistens. Cor. Petala sex, oblonga, concava, æqualia, patentia, persisten- tia, calyce multoties longiora. * Stam. Filamenta sex, petalis opposita, subulata, simplicia, gla- bra, longitudine corollæ. Antherz incumbentes, cordato-sub- -` rotundae. Pist. Germina tria, supera, conniventia, acuminata, desinentia _ in stylos brevissimos, verticales, distantes. Stigmata capitata. Peric. Capsulz tres, basi connexæ, gibbosæ, carinatæ, membra- nace®, uniloculares, bivalves, intüs præcipuè dehiscentes. Sem. Numerosa, elliptico-oblonga, angulata, valvularum mat- gini internæ utrinque inserta. sa Né cum, of the Genus Tofieldia. | 239 Narthecium, which agrees most in habit with the genus before us, is distinguished from it by the want of a calyx; as well as by having a simple germen and single style; hairy filaments; and a membranous tunic, tapering at each end, to the seeds. Anthe- ricum, including the PAalangium of 'Tournefort and Jussieu, dif- fers from Tofieldia in having no calyx; a simple germen and style; and angular seeds. Helonias, to which Willdenow refers our T. palustris, confounding under that solitary species nearly the whole genus, has a simple germen and capsule, though three styles; very few seeds in each cell; and wants the calyx. The species of Tofieldia have hitherto been even less understood than its generic characters, as the following exposition will show. 1. T. palustris, capitulo ovato, caule glabro filiformi aphyllo, pe- talis obovatis obtusis, germinibus subrotundis. T. palustris. Huds. Angl. 157. Sin. Brit. 397. Engl. Bot. t. 536. Ait. Hort. Kew. v. ii. 324. T. pusilla. Pursh Amer. Sept. 246. Anthericum calyculatum. Linn. Sp. Pl. 447. Fl. Lapp. ed. ii. 106. ¢.10. f.3. Fl. Dan. t. 36. Lightf. Scot. 181. t. 8. f. 2. Helonias borealis. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. ii. 274. Narthecium pusillum. Michaux Boreali- Amer. 9. i. 209. Phalangium scoticum palustre minimum, iridis folio. Rai Syn. 875. Tourn. Inst. 369. — eni Native of the black boggy margins: “of pools | and M anti rills, "E on the mountains of Lapland, Scotland, Durham, and North . America, p rticularly 1 lake Mistassins, flowering from June to August. = This is a perennial P ieee inei; of SE ds stature, entirely smooth i in every part. The root is horizontal and somewhat tu- berous, or — but slender, with very long, tough, white, zig- zag 240 Sir J. E. Surrn's Botanical History zag fibres. Leaves composing numerous radical tufts, dark green, equitant, sword-shaped, ribbed, two inches long. Stem erect, from four to six inches high, solitary, simple, round, quite smooth, . naked ; triangular at the base, where it often bears one small leaf, not rising above the others. Flowers pale green, very small, in a little oblong, obtuse, generally very dense head, from a quarter to half an inch in length. -The partial flower-stalks are entirely want- ing, the calyx being crowded close to the main stalk, with hardly any perceptible bractea. The base of the flower within the calyx is however elongated, assuming, as the fruit advances, the appear- ance of a thick stalk, swelling upwards, half a line in length. Calyx very deeply divided into three acute segments, small, mem- branous, and whitish. Petals hardly a line long, obovate, gene- rally quite obtuse, concave, greenish-white, longer than the sta- mens.. Germens combined into a nearly globular form, with three furrows. St yles extremely short, spreading, with abrupt, slightly capitate, stigmas. Capsules converging, roundish-obovate, each about the size of mustard-seed, obtuse, with a minute spreading point crowned by the style. | ` Such is the original Lapland plant of Linneus, exactly agree- ing with specimens from Scotland and the county of Durham, as represented in Engl. Bot., and answering precisely to the T. pusilla, adopted by gem from Michaux. With this has all along been . confounded a Swiss species, which we are next to describe, and which is the only plant known to botanists of the South of Eu- rope as the Linnæan Anthericum calyculatum. Dillenius caused this confusion, as appears by the Flora Lapponica ; where Linnæus, who strongly suspected these two plants to be different, but never, to the day of his death, saw more than one of them, was induced by his learned rs pensent to consider them as varieties of each other. 2. T. al. of the Genus Tofieldia. / 241. 2. T. alpina, racemo cylindraceo, bracteis pedunculo subæqua- libus, caule glabro diphyllo, petalis obovatis, germinibus oblongis. T. palustris. Decand. Fr. v. iii. 193. Redout. Liliac. t. 256. Anthericum n. 1205. Hall. Hist. v.ii. 98 ; excluding the syno- nyms of Moering and Gorter. A. Pseudoasphodelus. Jacq. Enum. 59, 233. Narthecium iridifolium. Villars Dauph. v. ii. 225. N. calyculatum. Allion..Pedem. ©. ii. 165. Lamarck Franc. w. iii. 298. | Scheuchzeria Pseudo-asphodelus. Scop. Carn. v. i. 263. Phalangium alpinum palustre, iridis folio. Tourn. Inst. 368. Segu. Veron. v. ii. O1. t. 14. Scheuchz. It. v. i. 139. Pseudo-asphodelus alpinus. Bauh. Pin. 29. Pseudo-asph. pumilus, foliis iridis. Clus. Pan. 261. t. 262. Pseudo-asph. secundus. Clus. Hist. v. i. 198. Pseudo-asph. quibusdam. Bauh. Hist. v. ii. 624 ; the descrip- . tion, not the figure, which represents a Pancratium. Asphodelus Lancastriæ verus. Ger. Em. 96. Very common in moist grassy pastures on the alps of Europe, throughout Austria, Switzerland, the south of France, and north of Italy, flowering in August. Scheuchzer says it grows on the shady dry ridges of hills, and he therefore wonders at 'Tournefort's epithet of palustris. I have gathered this plant in the boggy margins of alpine rivulets, on the plain of mount Cenis. Seguier, Villars, and Allioni speak of it as an inhabi- tant of rich, moist, or spongy soils, among grass. Notwith- standing what is said in Gerarde's Herbal, there is no auth rity for its ever having been found in Britain. it This VOL. XII. CUM T 242 Sir J. E. Su1Tn's Botanical History This species is, in every part, twice the size of the foregoing, of which it has, till now, been considered as a variety, whose greater luxuriance, or more dilated habit, was attributed to its situation in a more favourable climate. Into this error I have been led in the Flora Britannica, where therefore a number, of erroneous synonyms are accumulated; but the description be- longs precisely to the T. palustris, except perhaps what regards the bracteas and fruit. So much are we frequently disposed to see with the eyes of others, that it was not before I had compared the figure in English Botany with that of Redouté, both cited together in Hort. Kew., that I was obliged to correct my opinion. After making all imaginable allowance for possible inaccuracy in the two artists, however excellent; and for the one plate being taken from a wild specimen, the other from a most luxuriant garden plant; nothing seemed to justify a conclusion of their belonging to one species. A more close examination of the plants - themselves immediately removed all uncertainty. Besides the difference of size, as above mentioned, the root of what I have now named T. alpina is much thicker in proportion, and more woody. The stem bears two distant leaves, of which the upper- most especially is much smaller than the radical ones, and if si- tuated more than half way up the stem, it diminishes in propor- tion. But the most satisfactory differences exist in the flowers. The inflorescence is a cluster (racemus), from one to two inches long, frequently interrupted or scattered. The partial stalks, though short and thick, are always distinctly present, having a concave permanent solitary bractea, about their own length, at the base; and as the fruit advances they become more evident, a line or more in length, and curved upward. The calyx is close to` the rest of the flower, cup-shaped, unequally and rather slightly : three- Linn, frans. Vot. XII. Tab.8. p. 245, d » . 7 editii - » E / of the Genus Tofieldia. . 2 | 948 three-cleft. Petals rather more yellowish, scarcely so long as the stamens. They are represented too narrow and acute in M. Re — douté’s figure.» Capsules combined almost all the way up, making - together a roundish-elliptical three-lobed figure, larger than a cori- ander seed, of a light brown, transversely corrugated, their point: widely spreading, crowned with the short thick styles, and ca pitate stigmas. The seeds are extremely numerous. The wooden cut of the old authors above cited, is quite as expressive as the copper-plate of Seguier, commended by Villars, and copied by Lamarck. & T stenopetala, racemo cylindraceo, bracteis calycem superan- tibus, caule glabro diphyllo, petalis lanceolatis acutis. Gathered by Kalm in North America, but in what part we are unable to determine. Three of his specimens are preserved in the Linnean herbarium. : This, which Linnæus did not distinguish from his Anthericum calyculatum, is most akin to our Tofieldia alpina, with which it accords in size and habit, as well as in bearing two, sometimes three, alternate distant leaves on the stem. The inflorescence is a dense obtuse cluster, one inch and a half long, interrupted in the lower part. The bracteas however afford a clear specific difference, being lanceolate, and extending not only to the summit of the short and thick partial flower-stalks, but often reaching much beyond the calyx, which latter is very broad and shallow, unequally three- cleft, sometimes with a few supernumerary teeth ornotches. The petals are very different in shape from both the preceding species, being lanceolate and acute. Their colour seems a greenish white. Anthers pointed. Germens ovato-lanceolate,. Styles twice as long as- thelaébe. u^ 4. | of the natural size, with the separate parts of fructification mag- P 2123 nified. c TA». VIII. Fig. 1 represents a dried specimen of T. sten j ret NE 1 * $ t & $ L4 * t 244 Sir J. E. Suirü's Botanical History nified. A is the calyx with its flower-stalk and bractea, B, a petal. C, Stamen. -D, Germens and styles. 4, T., cernua, racemo cylindracco, floribus cernuis, bracteis brevis- simis, pedunculis glabris longitudine corollæ, caule aphyllo. Anthericum filamentis levibus, perianthio integerrimo. Gme- lin Mss. — A.n.89. Gmelin Sibir, v. i. 73. t. 18. f. 2; the synonyms al- : together erroneous. Native of mountainous woods, near the river Lena, in Siberia, flowering about the end of July. Specimens in flower and fruit, sent by Gmelin, are preserved in the Linnæan herba- rium; and we find with astonishment that when the first edi- tion of the Species Plantarum was written, they were con- founded with the genuine Lapland Anthericum cal; lyculatum, even by Linnzus himself. 'The present most distinct species is as different from T. palus- tris as two plants of one natural genus can well be. It is more akin to our second and third species, with which it accords in ge- neral aspect, but the roofs are of a more creeping nature, and the stem is taller, a foot or more in height, quite leafless, except at the very base, cylindrical throughout, glaucous in the upper part. Leaves narrow, near three inches long, with a small oblique point ; their edges rough toward the extremity. Cluster erect, many- flowered, from two to four inches in length, rather lax, but scarcely interrupted. Partial flower-stalks nearly horizontal, slen- der, angular when dry, quite smooth, about one eighth of an inch long, and as the fruit advances becoming still longer. Bracteas solitary at the base of each stalk, and about a quarter as long, ovate, keeled, a little recurved. Flowers white, drooping, about twice the size of Convallaria bifolia. Cale dilated, with three shallow, of the.Genus Tofieldia. — — 245 shallow,obtuse segments. Petals obovate, obtuse, slightly pointed, concave, the length of the flower-stalks, and keeping pace with them in their subsequent elongation, when the petals become very narrow at the base, Stamens shorter than the corolla; the anthers, according to Gmelin, yellow. Germens and styles much like T. stenopetala. Capsules quite pendulous, shorter than the per- manent corolla, obovate, very thin and brittle, combined nearly all the way up, but easily separated, each crowned with a straight spreading style, and capitate stigma. Seeds very numerous, small, slender, prismatic. - Gmelin mentions, on the authority of Steller, a variety with leaves upon the stem, which we should suspect to be a different species ; but without seeing specimens, we can determine nothing respecting this point. 5. T. pubens, racemo cylindraceo interrupto, pedunculis fascicu- latis scabris longitudine corolle. T. pubens. Dryand. in Ait. Hort. Kew. v. ii. 325. T. pubescens. Pursh Amer. Sept. 246. ; Narthecium pubens. Michaux Boreali- Amer. v. i. 209. Melanthium racemosum. Walt. Carol. 126. Anthericum filamentis levibus, perianthio trifido. Linn, Hort. Cliff. 140. Gron. Virg. ed. i. 39. | A. foliis ensiformibus, perianthiis trilobis, filamentis. glabris. Gron. Virg. ed. ii. 51. e 2 Asphodelus minor albus. Pluk. Man t. 29. Phyt. t. 342. #5. Native of moist meadows, swamps, abd mossy boggy woods, in Virginia and Carolina, flowering in July. Clayton, Pursh. Having no specimen of this, I postpone its description, till I - can examine the Banksian herbarium. It makes the last of five species, which have been confounded together under the” Lin- nean Anthericum calyculatum. | 6. T. 4 246 Sir J. E. Surru's Botanical History 6. T. elutinosa, racemo ovato coarctato, pedunculis glutinosis scabris longitudine corolle, antheris orbiculatis exsertis. T. glutinosa. Pursh Amer. Sept. 246. | Narthecium glutinosum. Michaux Boreali-Amer. v. i. 210. Native of North America, from Quebec to lake Mistassins, ac- cording to Michaux. Ourspecimen was gathered by Mr. Men- zies, on the west coast of North America, and is the same with what Mr. Pursh saw in the Banksian herbarium. We have no reason to suspect the plant of Michaux to be different. He says it has “the habit of the Linnean Anthericum ossifragum,” and that * the spike consists of a few alternate fasciculi ; the capsule is ovate, twice as long as the calyx." By calyx, he means corolla, and by spica, racemus, as is evident from the rest of his account. Mr. Pursh therefore is inaccurate in copying his phraseology, which contradicts his own generie character of Tofieldia. Mr. Menzies's specimen has a — tuberous hertzontal root, with long simple brown fibres, being undoubtedly perennial, like the rest of the genus. Stem erect, a foot high, angular, at least when dry, roughish all over with short glandular hairs; more densely hairy for the space of two inches from the top, where it bears a small leafy bractea, possibly not constant. - Leaves rather few, all radical, except one or two on the very lowest part of the stem, which do not rise above the others; they are all erect, four or five inches long, narrow, ribbed, bright green, smooth, except a slight roughness towards the point. Cluster scarcely an inch in length, ovate, obtuse, of twelve or fourteen flowers, on hairy _ stalks, sometimes in pairs, hardly a quarter of an inch long, erect or slightly spreading, having at the base one or two membranous acute bracteas, one-third their own length. Calyx not deeply lobed. „Petals yellowish, obovate, about as long as the flower- stalks, 7 of the Genus Tofieldia. 247 stalks. Stamens equal, thread-shaped, quite smooth, a little longer than the corolla, Anthers purplish, nearly orbicular, point- less. Germens ovate-oblorg, taper-pointed. Styles rather elon- gated, with small stigmas. Having seen nothing of the capsule, we cannot compare it with Michaux’s description. | This is unquestionably very different from the Narthecium glu- tinosum, described by Mr. Gawler in Curt. Mag. t. 1505, the lat- ter being a real Narthecium, called by Pursh N. americanum ; see his Flora, p. 227. | Tas. VIII. Fig. 2 is taken from Mr. Menzies's specimen of T. glu- tinosa. A, Calyx magnified, with its flower-stalk and bracteas. B, Petal. C, Stamen. D, Germens and styles. Norwich, Jan, 20, 1817. J. E. SMITH. XVI. A ( 248 ) j 1 H i XVI. A Monog graph of the Genus Paonia. By the late George Anderson, Esq. F. L.S. 4c. Read February 4 and 18, 1817. Tus male and female Pæonies of Theophrastus, Pliny and Di- oscorides are ascertained to be the plants that were known by those names after the revival of letters. Clusius, of the sixteenth century, seems to have been the first who made any addition to these. That truly original writer describes the plants he saw du- ring his travels with a clearness which, considering the infant state of science at the time, deserves more praise than seems to have been bestowed on him. A number of botanical authors towards the close of the sixteenth and throughout the seventeenth century, chiefly copying him and each other, increased the cata- logue; but their descriptions are in general so ill defined, and so replete with inaccuracies, that much information cannot be ob- tained from them. John Bauhin and ourcountryman Morison are the principal writers, after Clusius, who can be depended upon, till the days of Linné ; gnd his opinions upon Pæonies were singular and erroneous. In the Hortus Ch liffortianus, his earliest publication, in 1737, he discloses doubts on the subject by observing underneath P. offici- nalis—* Qui considerat notas essentiales str ucturamque plante, non potest non palpitare vastum istum apud authores numerum, non nisi meris varietatibus constare." He afterwards makes up his mind ; and i in the first edition of Species Plantarum reduces all the Pæo- nies Mr. Axnpznsox's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. — 949 nies into one species, with this sweeping remark, ** Limites inter species non reperi, hinc conjunxi” Retzius, his pupil, the first who questioned the correctness of this opinion, makes the following just observation thirty years afterwards: * Genus Pæonie nimis contraxit illus. a Linné, character specierum utique difficilis non tamen impossibilis. Si Paonia anomala pro distincta haberi debet specie, non video cur ni etiam relique, nec mihi persuadere potui omnes ab una productas fuisse. Si vero quis aliter. sentiat, per me licebit ; tunc vero bine tantum statui debent Pæonie species, Officinalis nempe et Tenuifolia. Memoratas species sepius € seminibus educavi semper sibi similes.” The truth of this is confirmed by all our experience; for the seedling plants preserve uniformly, as far as we have ob- served, the habits and characters of their parents, But there is great difficulty in discovering sufficient marks of distinction be- tween them ; which, however, we ought not to presume in any case to be insurmountable, though we may have failed in over- coming it in some instances. uod | Linné admits the newly-discovered P. tenuifolia into his second edition of the Species Plantarum, and P. anomala is described as à new species in his Mantissa; but he persists in considering the old male Pæony only as a variety of the female, though they are | distinguished by characters fully as opposite as those by which the two former species are distinguished from either; nor does he ever acknowledge any of those with pubescent leaves to be di- stinct species, although several of those found in the old authors are unquestionably genuine. But even the error of this great man has on the present occasion proved beneficial to science, by re- pressing that prevailing propensity among botanists to increase too much the number of species: for no writer has since pre- sumed to take up any of those rejected by him, without mature consideration and well-grounded proof. u m Retzius, Pallas, and Murray are the principal botanists who VOL. XII. 2K have 250 Mr. Anperson’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. have described Ponies with precision after Linné, and their de- scriptions are excellent as far as they go; but the accession of new species lately discovered, and as yet but imperfectly described, to- gether with the necessity of a thorough revision of those that were formerly known, rendered some attempt like the present requi- site. If it shall be found to possess any merit, it is not to me, but to my much esteemed friend Joseph Sabine, Esq. F. R.S., &c. that it is to be ascribed: that gentleman for several years has collected with indefatigable pains all the P:eonies he could dis- cover both from public and private gardens. Having at length assembled upwards of seventy plants under different names in his garden at North Mimms, he began, by comparing them together, to produce order out of confusion. It was at his particular invi- tation that I first attempted to describe them ; and it has been by the assistance of his information that I have been enabled to proceed in the unde taking. I have, therefore, to avoid the neces- sity for reiterated acknowledgements, taken the liberty of employ- ing the plural number, as including ae in the composition of the following account. + Ido not enter into any examination of the general character, - farther than to repeat what has been hinted by others; that the “genus properly belongs to Polyandria Trigynia, not only because the species more generally exhibit three pistilla than any other number, but also because this is its most natural position: it should stand, in my opinion, between Aconitum and Homalium in the factitious arrangement. The germina tomentosa, will now be expunged from the natural character, there being two species — with smooth germens. The descriptions are made out from an actual examination of each living plant; and it affords no. small satisfaction to say, that very few if any of the plants taken, notice of up to.the present time remain unaccounted for: a few, indeed, which appear to be questionable, Mr. Ax pz nsox's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 251 questionable, are noticed as such in their proper places. I have rejected many synonyms of the old authors, from motives of cau- tion: butI am inclined to believe that every species enumerated by them refers to some one or other of the plants here recorded. It was deemed necessary to be more particular in describing the varieties than is customary in a scientific paper; not only be- cause some of these may hereafter turn out to be distinct species, but also with a view to render the tract useful to cultivators as well as to botanists ; and by referring each plant at present known to the old authors, in all cases in which they can be followed, to guard in future, as much as possible, against the confusion which their inaccuracies have produced. E I have rejected the folium ternatum in the specific characters, as being common to the whole: and for the same reason I have avoided in the descriptions the repetitions of such terms as caulis uniflorus, caulis angulatus, petioli supra canaliculati. The number of stamina is also omitted, as being very indefinite. _ There are two parts, however, in the organization of the Pzonies, which appear to me to deserve more attention than has been paid to them; but they attracted my notice when it was too late for me to avail myself of them: viz. the shape and number of the stipule attached to the caudex, and the form and structure of the perigynous substance which belongs to ‘all the species. These may perhaps hereafter form important objects for specific distinc- Gon Mundi: 04 HR UE Lot ^ie iio. . All the species hitherto known are confined to the northern he- misphere, and no one has yet been found in an y part of America. They belong to cold climates. Some species indeed are indige- nous in the south of Europe; but they grow upon elevated situ: ations. . They are, as far as has yet been tried, sufficiently ha rdy to stand our winter unprotected. use 2x2 . PZEONLE 252 Mr. Anperson’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. . PÆONIÆ SYNOPSIS SPECIERUM. Fruticosa — . : = à . . . s " (01. Mouten. Herbacem ` ss T ; = Folia glabra Fructus glabri caulis multiflorus eae € : ^ . 2. Alliflora. caulis uniflorus $ à ` : à . 3. Anomala, Fructus pubescentes foliola linearia iiir: : . 3 à 4. Tenuifolia. foliola lanceolata. . : . 005.557 Offftinalis. foliola ovata, planiuscula . ` ‘ - 6, Corallina. foliola subrotunda, undulata. * á . +f Daurica, Folia pubescentia i Foliola canaliculata stigmata elongata, erecta T $ . 8. Humilis. ene ovi recurvata >» E E Decora. SSRI RER "ert e ara hens ina areuato-patentia ee ee Nen 10. Arietina. _ ^ foliola xn c eda Ti a dime T iced x ii eur P x regrin 2 — foliola brevissime fissa . ji - . 12. Paradoxa. foliola lateralia subsessilia . -e . 13. Mollis. 1. Pzoxi4 MourTax. ! P. caule fruticoso, foliolis distinctis summo apice trifidis, ger- minibus tomentosis urceolo membranaceo inclusis. e P. Moutan. Hort. Kew. ed. ii. v. 3. p. 315. P. officinalis. Loureiro Flo. Cochinchinensis, 343. Thunb. Flo, » Jap. p. 230. he Moutan. Mémoires des Chinois, v. iii. p. 461. Botan. Kempf. Amen. Exot. p. 862. Radix ramosa. - Caulis 4-pedalis, lignosus (medulla crassa), ramosus, cortice rugosiusculo, fusco. Ramuli annotini simplices, alterni, pedunculis unifloris deciduis terminati, | basi stipulis numerosis cucullatis vaginantibus aucti. Pesioh longissimi, glabri, airopurpurei, axillis nigricantibus, Folia biternata, foliola plana, ovata, basi obtusa, interdum ob- liqua, Mr. Annerson’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. — 953 liqua, supra glabra, saturate viridia, venis atropurpureis: subtus cæsio-glauca, pi- losiuscula. Foliolum intermedium sepius inciso-lobatum, subinde obtuse trifidum ; $ lateralia integriora, minora, subsessilia. Bractece foliaceæ calyci approximate. Ca- lycis foliola numeri incerti, glabra, mucronata. Petala 8—13 palmaria, expansa, obcordata, eroso-crenata. Membrana perigyna tenuis, glabra, rubicunda, primum ovata, apice stigmata effundens, dein germinibus tumentibus rupta. Germina circi- ter 5 parum tomentosa, demum patentia, Stigmata lineari-compressa, recurvata, purpurea. Floret ad finem Maii. A minute account of this species is given in the Mémoires des Chinois by the Missionaries, Paris 1778: from whom we learn that it is the pride and glory of the Chinese, who have cultivated it by their own accounts for upwards of 1400 years ; and its vari- cties, from two to three hundred in number, are cherished with no less consideration than the Dutch florists do their tulips; and that it is a theme for their poets and painters, and prized even by their emperors, not only on account of the beauty but of the sweet perfume of its flowers. ‘The colour of these is represented to consist of difierent shades of purple, crimson, violet, rose, yel- low, white, black! and blue. Their tradition of its first origin is of its being discovered by a traveller on the mountains of Ho-nan : no notice is taken of its being now found there, or any where else in a state of nature; and Loureiro and Thunberg only describe it as being every where cultivated in the gardens of ua and Cc ot The Chinese take credit for rendering it a shrub i means of their superior art in gardening, for which they plume themselves greatly. Iris possible that they might mistake P. albiflora, which is found in China, for the original state of this plant. At this we Eoo not wonder, when two European botanists mistook it for P. officinalis. We cannot for a moment doubt of the shrubby. stem being natural, although it bears a strict analogy to the sub- terraneous 254 Mr.Axpznsox's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. terraneous caudex of the herbaceous plants, of which it seems to be nothing more than a prolongation, each annual shoot being simple and subtended by numerous vaginal stipulæ, which in those rise only to the surface of the ground, and are not wanting in any of the species. ‘The membrane too which envelops the germens, and which some botanists have suspected should re- move this plant to a new genus, is only a more extended example. of the truly perigynous crown which surrounds the base of the germens in all the Ponies. The seeds are represented as being black; we have not seen them matured: its leaves are not shining as in albiflora, nor are they totally divested of pubescence. ‘The woolly germens would sufficiently distinguish it from that species, though all the other marks were removed. bss zisog oum tá Fr E a. papaveracea; petalis 8—13, albis, basi macula purpurea no- wc ^ TX P. papaveracea. Bot. Repos. 463. : Rees's Cycl.. -— — Introduced by Sir Abraham Hume, about the year 1806, from China. This should be considered as the type of the species, the other varieties having double flowers. Its capacity to stand the rigour of our climate is not as yet sufficiently tried, being still too rare and valuable to risk with the full experiment; but we think it will prove to be hardy. Its petals are white, very broad and large, obcordate, with a blotch of deep purple at the base of each. The membrane that surrounds the germens is more en- tire in this than in the other varieties, the united mass of germens is ovato-spherical, and more tapering at theapex than the capsule of the poppy, with only a small orifice at the top to let out the stigmas, which are reflexed and form a star of bright purple: these; m with Mr. Anvernson’s Monograph of the Genus Peonia. 255 with the petals, produce a contrast of fine colours seldom to be equalled in one flower. | | B. Banksii ; foliolis apice fissuris obtusis, floribus plenis, petalis medio rubicundis. | P. suffruticosa var. flo. purpureo. Bot. Repos. 448. P. Moutan. Bot. Mag. 1154. Rees's Cycl. Introduced in 1789 by Sir Joseph Banks ; the first of the spe- cies that appeared in Europe, and which has hitherto been found the most hardy. | The leaves of this variety are more obtuse than those of papa- veracea, not so glaucous on the under surface, and darker green on the upper: these, however, are only distinctions of compa- rison. Calyx composed of eight or ten leaves; corolla of twenty to thirty petals, very large, nearly white in the margin, with an indistinct streak of dull purple along the middle. y. rosea; foliolis apice fissuris obtusissimis, floribus subplenis, petalis roseis. — —€— P. suffruticosa. Bot. Repos. 313. | | This variety was introduced about the year 1794 by the late Right Hon. Charles Greville into his garden at Paddington : it is more tender than the preceding; and has no other claim for pre- ference to it, but in respect to its smell, which is very fragrant, not unlike that of the rose: the flowers, when weak, are fre- ' quently almost single; petals rose-coloured ; léaves more pale ; leaflets broader, more obtuse, and smoother on the upper sur- face than those of Banksii, and the buds push out in the spring of a more ruddy hue. T9 nó Aint | | We may expect new varieties of this interesting species from | China. "1 | | ci n ' 2. PÆONIA 256 Mr. Awpznsox's Monograph of the Genus Pæonia. 2. PÆONIA ALBIFLORA. P. caule subtrifloro herbaceo, foliolis ovato-lanceolatis conflu- entibus laciniatis, germinibus glabris, floribus erectis. P. albiflora. Pall. Ross. v. ii. p. 99. t. 84. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. ii. : p. 1222. Hort. Kew. v. iii. p. 316. Reess Cycl. — P. lacteo flore, foliis utrinque viridantibus et miennes Gme- lin in Amman. Ruth. 11. n. 103. P. fructibus tribus glabris. Gmelin Sib. v. iv. p. 184. Radicis tubera fusiformia, fusca, aggregata. Planta omnino glaberrima. Caulis bi- tripe- dalis et ultra, angulosus, flexuosus, in duos aut tres pedunculos versus apicem de- sinens, interdum simplex, precipue apud axillas (petiolumque) rubescens. Folia biternata, foliola modo lobata, seu incisa, decurrentia, hinc confluentia, lanceolata, latitudine et figura, secundum varietates, valde diversa, acuminata, subtus nitidissi- me viridia, supra saturatiora, venis atro-rubentibus protuberantibus, marginibus scabra. Bracteæ nonnullæ foliaceæ, inferiores partite, superiores in calycis foliola orbiculata . sensim transeuntes. Corolla variat petalis 8—14, colore vario a niveo ad roseum, sub- incisis, erosis, plicatulis, interioribus angustatis. Stamina splendide aurea. Membra- na vere perigyna longior quam in ceteris spe iceis, lobata seu lacera. Ger- mina 3—5, primum erecta demum recürvato-patentia j ; stigmata obtusiuscula reflexa, Floret fine Maii ad finem Junii. | We had almost persuaded ourselves that Besler's two figures in Hort. Eyst. Plant. Vern. ordo vi. no. 12 & 13, belonged to this spe- cies ;—but what can we say for an author's accuracy, who deli- neates P. officinalis with a divided stem supporting two flowers ? Native of a vast range of latitude, from the northern regions of Siberia down to the dominions of China. Pallas found it in Mon- gol Tartary, and on the borders of Lake Baical. Its roots, he says, are used as an article of food by the Tartars, and the seeds reduced to powder mixed with their tea. Discovered also on Mount Caucasus, and in Georgia on grassy hills. : In proportion to the diversity of climate it is found to- vary in form and stature. We have in vain endeavoured to discover any fixed Mr. ANDERSON'S Monograph of the Genus Peonia. 257 fixed marks of distinction between the nine plants enumerated below, and are obliged to conclude that they all belong to one original species. In their relative connexion, the three double varieties from China are the furthest apart, yet they differ from the others only in degrees of comparison; in the essential. points there appears to be no discrepancy whatever. ‘This species is distin- guished from anomala, with which only it can be confounded, by its erect flowers, more obtuse foliage, and above all by its. having - more than one flower on its stem, a property possessed by no herbaceous Pæony but itself. Nor ought we to omit mentioning the seed, the uniform brown colour of which is peculiar to this species, and serves materially to confirm our Opinion, those of all the other herbaceous species being black when ripe. e. vestalis ; foliolis latioribus planis purpurascentibus, corolla albi- cante octo-petala, stigmatibus ochreis, caulibus 2—3-floris. P. albiflora. Andr. Repos. 64, bona. This variety, obtained by Mr. Sabine from Messrs. Lee and Kennedy under the name of albiflora, perhaps more common among our gardens than any other, is to be distinguished by its white eight-petalous corolla, rarely and slightly tinged with pink at the base. Cymes of two or three flowers; the middle flower is the strongest, the earliest, and always the shortest. ‘This observa- tion indeed applies to most of the species. Leaves broader, more flat and shining; and these and the stem, together with the peti- oles, are altogether of a darker hue than most of the others. The stigmas are of a dull yellowusisciictaosoie B. candida ; foliolis latioribus planis saturate viridibus, corolla pal- . lide carnea octo-petala, stigmatibus carneis, caulibus bifloris. Mr. Sabine found this variety at Mr. Knights nursery, in the - King’s-road. He had it from the Liverpool botanic garden under YOL. XII. 2L = the 258 Mr, ANpznsoN's Monograph of the Genus Peonia. the name of sibirica; but it is not the plant which generally gets that name; and it differs from the foregoing in having its lcaves and stalks less of a purple hue, in its disposition to have fewer flow- ers on the cyme, and in the stigmas being flesh-coloured instead of yellow. The plant too seems weaker. The flowers of this as well as the foregoing go off white (a florist's term); but this has rather a greater dash of pink in its opening corolla. y. tatarica ; foliolis latioribus planis purpurascentibus, corolla car- nea 9—14- petala, stigmatibus carneis, caulibus 2—3-floris. - P. edulis. Paradisus Londinensis, 78. P. albiflora. Botanical Register, 42. Mr. Sabine got this variety from Mr. Biggs, who cultivated it in the botanic garden of the late Mr. Swainson of Twickenham. Another plant of the same was presented to him by Sir Joseph Banks, whose hands are always extended to promote objects of science. ‘lhe original, we believe, was imported by the late Mr. Bell of Brentford, to whom we are indebted for the introduction of several Pæonies, by means of his correspondence witli Pallas. It came from Tartary, Its hue, though darker, a good deal resem- bles that of vestalis ; but its flowers are larger, with a greater num- ber of petals, which retain a pale pink colour till they drop. The stigmas are of a pink colour, like those of candida. | The figure in the Botanical Register is from a specimen out of Mr. Sabine’s collection. : 3. sibirica ; foliolis concavis dilute viridibus, corolla omnino nivea .8-petala, stigmatibus carneis, caulibus bifloris. Raised from seed by Messrs. Loddiges and Sons, and said tocome from Siberia through Pallas. Leaves yellowish-green, and flowers quite white even in the bud ; is altogether divested of that purple tint Mr. ANDERsoN’s Monograph of the Genus Ponta. 259 tint in the stalks, leaves, and germens, so observable generally in this species. It also bears the largest flowers, which seldom exceed two on each stalk: in this we suspect, however, it is subject to vary, for Mr. Sabine observed a plant last year at Kew with a . greater number of flowers, which he takes to be this variety. e rubescens; foliolis concavis angustioribus purpurascentibus, corolla rubente 8-petala, stigmatibus ochreis, caulibus tri- floris. This plant was purchased by Mr. Ronalds, nurseryman, of Brent- ford, at the sale of the late Mr. Bell’s collection. Sir Abraham Hume has the same plant, and we believe from the same source, under the name of tatarica. This is the most diminutive variety, and with flowers of the darkest colour. The leaves are small, obtuse, concave or channelled on the upper surface. Perhaps this may be the variety y of the Paradisus Londinensis * petalis roseis." The petals of our plant are pale red, narrow, and small: stigmas of the same colour as those of var. æ. i & uniflora ; foliolis concavisangustioribus, corolla albicante 8-pe- tala, stigmatibus ochreis, caulibus subsimplicibus. P. albiflora. Bot. Mag. 1756. Wen p | We are informed by Messrs. Loddiges that they had s Edad this plant from Pallas. We observe it among the g ardens London under different names. It is to be distinguis 1 d fr other varieties by the narrowness of its leaves, and a disp to produce only one flower on the stalk: in this particular, how- ever, we doubt its constancy.- ‘The’ petals "aré white, slightly tinged with pink at their base. Stigmas dull yellow, like tho: of var. «. JE oe r T 2- Whitleji ; foliolisrugosioribus inæqualiter laciniatis, lori us ple- 212 qs 260 Mr. Anverson’s Monograph of the Genus Pæonia. nis carneo-albicantibus, caulibus tripedalibus sparsis sub- quinquetloris. P. albiflora flo. pleno. Andrews’s Repos. 619, mala. P. albiflora Whitleji. Sabine in Hort. Tr. vol. ii. p. 277. In regard to this and all the double-flowering herbaceous va- rieties, we shall refer to an account drawn up by Mr. Sabine on them, read to the Horticultural Society, and about to be pub- lished in their Transactions. This beautiful plant was imported in 1808, from China, by Mr. Whitley, nurseryman, of Fulham. Stems full three feet high ; leaves rugose and less shining than is usual in the species; flow- ers full double, having the outside petals reddish, and the inside petals pale straw-coloured. the whole becoming nearly white be- fore they drop off, emitting a scent somewhat like that of elder- flowers. It flowers about the middle of June. S. Humes: ; foliolis rugosioribus | inæqualiter laciniatis, floribus plenissimis rubentibus, caulibus 4-pedalibus sparsis 3-floris. P. edulis var. sinensis. Bot. Mag. 1768. E albiflora Humei. Sabine in Hort. Trans. vol. ii. p. 279. Introduced by Sir Abraham Hume, Dart. from China, through the means of Captain Welsted, in 1810. The largest of all the herbaceous Ponies, the stems sometimes exceeding tour feet in height ; flowers extremely double, reddish in colour, somewhat similar to the following, but iarger and almost scentless. Cymes hody of three flowers; leaflets broader than any other of the "rans ; foliis rugosioribus angustioribus pallidis, floribus enis roseis, caulibus 3-pedalibus erectis 1—3-floris. P. albiflora igrans. Sabine je dorée Trans. vol. ii. p. 278. Introduced Mr. Axpxnsox's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 261 Introduced from China in 1805 by Sir Joseph lane; This variety is conspicuous in its upright slender stalks, leaves more pale, and narrower, than those of the other two double ones, sca- brous, and obsoletely serrated on the margin. It flowers the latter end of June, the latest of all the Pæonies, of a pale rose-colour, giving out an agreeable scent similar to that of the rose. The cen- tral petals are longer than the others, and erect. | These varieties are hinted at by Loureiro in his Flora Cochin- chinensis. He states that the Peony is found both wild and cul- tivated over all the Chinese empire, chiefly in the northern pro- vinces; and concludes, “ Sunt aliæ multe varietates (fortasse species) quas non vidi." We may look for an increase to our ac- quisitions from that quarter. 3. PioNIA ANOMALA. P; caule unifloro, foliolis multipartitis, laciniis lanceolatis ger- minibusque glabris, flore nutante. P. anomala. Linn. Mantiss. 247. Retz. Obs. iii. p. 36. Murray y in Act. Soc. Gott. v. vii. p. 90. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. ii. p. 1222. Hort. Kew. ed. ii. v. iii. p. 816. Bot. Rep. 514. Bot. Mag. P. fructibus glabris patentibus. Gmelin Sib. iv. p. 184. t, 72. P. laciniata. Pall. Ross. v. ii. p. 98. t. 85. sub P. sibirica. " Planta tota glabra. Radicis tubera fusiformia, magna, subsessilia. Caulis bi- tripedalis, uniflorus, angulato-cylindraceus, rubicundus. Fo/ia biternata seu ternata, pinnatifida, hinc dissecta laciniis angustis acutis, decurrentia ; subtus nitentia, venis prominentibus. Bractee foliaceæ, corollam subæquantes, calyci connexæ. Calycis foliola orbicu- lata, acuminata, nonnunquam bifida, apice rubentia. Corolle nutantis petala 6—8, inaequalia, apice erosa, emarginata, seu bifida, punicea. Germina plerumque 5, in stellam disposita, glabra, nitentia, aequalia, depressa, demum patentia, vix recurvata. Stigmata plana, erectiuscula, lunata, rubra. Calli fungosi, difformes, coronam circum basin germinum formant, quá nota optime species distinguitur, Semina nigra, ovata, levia, splendentia. Floret ad finem Maii, sai This 262 Mr: Anperson’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. This is a most distinct and well-marked species, being endowed with one unique property, in having its flowers constantly droop- ing to one side. It differs also essentially from albiflora in being supplied with only one flower on the stem ; and from all the other smooth-leaved species by its smooth germens. The earliest no- tice of it appears in Gmelin's Flora Sibirica, published at Peters- burg in 1747. Though Linné does not acknowledge it in either edition of his Species Plantarum, it is at length admitted in the Mantissa. * poH Native of all Siberia, and frequent on the Altaic mountains. It was first introduced into England by the late Mr. Bell, from Pallas, about the year 1788, as P. laciniata, under which name it is described in Flora Rossica, but on its figure in the same work it is called sibirica. Pallas sent seeds of it to Murray as P. hetero- phylla; and it appears as P. quinquecapsularis in the Description of the Russian Empire by Georgi, who found it eastward of the river Ural, for we believe.this to be our plant. We must, how- ever, preservethe original name given by Linné, however objec- tionable. | The roots .grow to a great.size in their native state, and toge- ther with those of albiflora compose part of the food of the Mon- gol Tartars. Gmelin says the roots have a smell similar to that of the Florentine Iris; and Pallas compares it to that of bitter almonds or peach-kernels. 3 The fleshy protuberances which surround the base of the ger- mens are nothing else than the perigynous membrane in another form, an appendage which never is entirely wanting in any of the: species. 4. PxzoNrA TENUIFOLIA. P. foliolis multipartitis glabris lineari-subulatis, pedunculis bre- vissimis, germinibus tomentosis erectis. 23 x P . tenui- Mr. ANpznsox's Monograph of the Genus Pæonia. 263 P. tenuifolia: Linn. Sp. Pl. ed. ii. p. 748. Gmelin Sib. iv. p. 185. t.73. Linn. Fil. Plant. Rar. fase. i. P- 9. t.5. Pall. Ross. ii. p. 95. t.87. Willd. Sp. Pl. ii. p. 1993. Gert. Fruct. i. p. 309. t. 65. f. 1. Bot. Mag. 996. Hort. Kew. ed. ii. v. iii. p. 316. P. laciniis foliorum linearibus... Zinn Cat. Got, p. 127. P. hybrida. Pall. Ross. ii. p. 94. t. 86. Willd. Sp. Pl. ii. p. 1223. Radix tuberum fasciculus, surculis repentibus. Caulis sesquipedalis, valde foliosus, glaber. Folia triternata, multifida, glabra, ad apicem caulis aggregata, quibus flos quasi nidu- latur. Foliola linearia subulata ; radicalia nonnunquam lineari-lanceolata ; hine P, hy- brida Pallasii. Calycis foliola glabra, integra, interiora orbiculata, mucronulata, exte- rioraacuta. Folia apud apicem caulis aggregata. Corolla minima saturate sanguinea, Petala 8, incurva, obovato-lanceolata, obtusa, apice erosa. Germina 2—3 raro 4, recta, approximata, demum patentiuscula, nec revoluta, villis purpureis dense vestita. Stigmata erectiuscula, rubra, Semina oblongo-elliptica, fusco-atra, levia, Floret initio Maii. - Native of the Ukraine, between the Tanais and Volga, on hilly grounds and perpendicular banksof the'Terec. Plentiful in the Tau- rian Chersonesus. It first appeared in Zinn's Gottingen Catalogue, published in 1757, and is adinitted into the second edition of the Species Plantarum by Linné, who indulges in a fancy that one might imagine it was a bastard offspring of Pæonia and Adonis apennina. The linear leaves are alone sufficient to characterize this spe- cies. The creeping surculi of its roots are also peculiar to it; and the small dark but bright. red flower, supported on a very short peduncle and nestled as it were among the finely-divided leaves that crowd around the top of the stalk, together with the purple hairs which cover the germens, all sufficiently distinguish it from any other Peony. It appears to have been introduced into this country by the late Mr. Malcolm, so far back as 1765. P. hybrida of Pallas is not even a permanent variety. The ste- rile or rather the radical leaves in rich ground almost constantly assume.a lineari-lanceolate form; indeed both descri ptions of leaves are frequently produced on the same root. We have exa- mined 264 Mr. Anperson'’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. mined many plants said to be seedlings, but never have discovered any perceptible variation in them. | 5. PEoNIA OFFICINALIS. P. foliolis inæqualiter laciniatis glabris, laciniis ovato-lanceolatis, germinibus rectiusculis tomentosis. i : P. officinalis. Pall. Ross. pars ii. p. 93. Retz. Obs. iii. p. 35. Smith. Prodr. Flo. Grec. i. p. 369. Lamarck et Decand. Flo. | Franc. v. iv. p. 919. Scopoli Carn. v. i. p. 378. Host Syn. p.66. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. ii. p. 1221. Hort. Kew. ed. ii. v. lil. p.315. Bot. Mag. 1784. P. officinalis æ. Linn. Sp. Pl. ed. ii. p. 747. P. communis vel foemina. Bauh. Phyt. n. 4. Pinar, p. 323. Mo- rison Pl. Hist. p. 454. | P. foemina prior. Dod. Pempt. p. 195. . P. femina vulgatior. Joh. Bauhin. v. iii. p. 492. —— j P. fæminea, &c. Ger. Em. p. 981. Lobel. Icones, 682. Park. + Par. p.343. Rau Hist. v. i. p. 098. | P. fcemina foliis difformiter lobatis. Mill. Dict. P. rubra flo. simpl. Besler Eyst. ordo vi. p. 15. 3 La Pivoine femelle. Regnault Bot. Planche. Radicis tubera oblonga, obtusa, e fibris dependentia. Caulis simplex, 3—4-pedalis, flexuo- sus, glaber, nitidus, Petioli glabri, nitidi, Axille foliorum et foliolorum fusca. Folia glabra, interdum tamen subtus pilosiuscula, ternata. Foliola pinnata seu pinnatifida, intermedio quandoque decurrente, varie dissecta, bi- seu tri-partita, hinc integra. _ Lacinie@ lato-lanceolate, modo fisse, plane, subconcolores. Bractea foliacea, ter- nata vel incisa, calyci approximata. Corolla magna, speciosa. Petala 7—8, incurva, obovata. Germina recta 2— 3, tomento albo dense tecta, demum ferruginea. Stig- mata semilunaria, fusca, marginibus flavis. Semina magna, ovata, parum corrugata, - cœruleo-atra, splendentia. Floret medio ad finem Maii. | Nativeof the mountainous woods of Helvetia, Provence, Mont- pellier, Dauphiné, Piedmont, Carniola, the Grecian Islands, and. | ee most Mr. ANDEnSON's Monograph of the Genus. Pæonia. — 965 most of the hilly regions in the south of Europe. Also on Cau- casus.and in Georgia (Pallas). Quer in his Flora Espanola states that it is frequent in Spain, particularly on the mountains of Avila. ; | The history of the present species may boast of a greater anti- quity than that of most plants. There can be no doubt of its being the Paonia of- Pliny, to which sud great medical virtues were attached. Were we to trust to the double varieties, which are by nth the most common in this country, we should conclude that this species was altogether free from pubescence; but on examining the single-flowered sorts, we find two out of three that have come under our observation slightly villous; so little reliance is to be placed on that property. Retzius is the only writer who has fully described this species, and his description is, in our opinion, with- out a fault. He has laboured per haps over-much in defining the divisions of the leaf, which are so apt to vary, from soil and situa- tion, as to baffle any such refinement of description. There arc two specimens.in the Cliffortian herbarium named anomala, which we take to be those of a variety of this species - with narrower leaves than any we have seen elsewhere; they are certainly not specimens of anomala, for they have woolly germens, a a decided mark of distinction between these two species. caer c di We have been obliged to reject many synonyms, _ to prevent swelling the list to an unreasonable length. - All the old herbals have noticed, if not figured, the * female peiony.” We have in- PRE distinct mb Garotas tes Sabini ; floribus atro-purpureis, foliis omnino glabris. A few years ago no person knew that a plant of the si ie flowered P. officinalis existed in this country. Mr. Sabine had. the good fortune to discover one in the corner of an old garden at VOL. XLI. Q Mu Great 266 Mr. Anvenson’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. Great Berkhampstead in Hertfordshire, where it possibly had re- mained undisturbed many years. The flowers are precisely of the same colour with those of the common double-red, but the petals - expand a few days earlier. The leaves are less waved. The petals of all the single-flowered varieties are more inflexed than those of the pubescent species, being formed into the shape of a cup, contracted at the mouth. An abundant supply, of plants of this variety, has been imported from Holland since the peace, not differing materially from Mr. Sabine’s plant. The figure in the. Botanical Magazine was taken from one of those. B. rosea; floribus saturate roseis, caulibus erectis. This variety was observed by Mr. Sabine in the Oxford botanic garden, along with the plant that follows. We cannot obtain any account of their history : they have in all probability been very old tenants of that garden ; perhaps since the days of Morison, in the latter end of the seventeenth century; ; nor do they seem to have found their way out of it, till Mr. Sabine was obligingly presented with roots of them by Professor Williams. This has very broad undulated and obtuse leaflets, of a dark hue, tinged with red on the edges, and with a few slight hairs on the ribs of the under surface. Flowers of a pleasant rose colour; germens 2—3, densely tomentose, diverging at the apex. Stem erect, as tall as var. æ, flowering a fortnight earlier, about the middle of May. y. blanda; floribus saturate roseis, caulibus laxis. Obtained, as before mentioned, from the Oxford garden. 'The leaflets of this variety are likewise broad, though less so than the preceding; also much less undulated, and of a peculiarly pale green colour for a plant of this species: and, like those of the rosea, furnished with a few hairs on the back of the leaf. Stalks spreading ; petioles reddish ; flower of same colour and same time of Mr. ANDEnRSON's Monograph of the Genus Peonia. — 967 of flowering as the preceding; germens generally three, upright at first and finally diverging. " Notwithstanding the partial pubescence observable on this and the preceding, we are in no kind of doubt in considering them mere varieties of the first-described and of the double-flowered varieties enumerated below. ò. rubra; floribus plenissimis atro-purpureis. Double red Peony. P. femina polyanthos; Lobel Ic. 684. P. polyanthos. Camerarius Hort. pi 114. P. flore pleno rubro. Joh. Bauh. v. iii. p. 493. ) 49 7 P. foemina flore pleno rubro majore. C. B. Pinav, p. 324 Mo- vison Plant. Hist. v. ii. p. 455. t. 13. | P. foemina multiplex. Ger. Em. p.981. Tabernem. Ic. p. 184. P. foemina vulgaris flore pleno rubro. Park. Par. :p. 342 & 343. ugs 3. . P. officinalis rubra. Double red Peony. Sabine in Hort. Trans. (V. li. p. 214. | To this variety we may apply the words of Besler; * vulgatis- sima est omnium Pzoniarum ;" and we may add without e geration, the most splendid of all flowers. Even the fine double Pæonies from China, rich and: magnificent as they are, cannot be compared for brilliance with this common inhabitant of almost every cottager's garden in England. Nothing but its extreme vulgarity and the extraordinary foecundity of its roots could: have brought this beautiful plant into the neglect it has suffered for a century past. — ee The first account given of it is in the edition of Lobel’s Icones, 1581. Camerarius writes, in 1588, “id est flore pleno quz ante paucos annos ápud. nos est coepta. coli ;" from which we may conclude that it was at that time a recent discovery.. The gar- 2M2 p dens 068 Mr. Anpersox’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. dens of Europe have been enriched with it, therefore, upwards of two centuries. ma £. carnescens ; floribus plenissimis saturate roseis. Double flesh- coloured Peony. = P. flore pleno incarnato. Moris. Plant. Hist. v. ii. p. 455. P. officinalis carnescens. Double flesh- coloured Pony. Sabine “in Hort. Trans. v. il. p.275. This beautiful variety is not of so old an introduction as the - preceding. Morison gives us the first account of it, in 1699. The flower opens of a fine rose colour, and afterwards becomes pale flesh; it is not so common as the preceding, but never- theless is too well known among the ad eod to require any further description. SO. SA albicans > floribus point roseis. Double white Bana. N foemina polyanthos flore siho. Tabern. Ic. 785. Gos de 982. P. albo flore pleno, sive &c © Joh: Bauh. v. ii: p. 404. P. foemina flore pleno + er Park. Par. p. 342 & 343. f 4. P; foemina flore albo pleno.. Moris. Plant. Hist. on. p. 455. P. officinalis albicans. Double white PERI Sabine in Hort. Trans. v. ii. p.275. - lss N Tabernæmontanus race this variety in 1590; it aiia must have come into notice nearly about the same period as the double red. ‘The flower of this bursts forth of a pale pink, and at length becomes alinost quite white; is very common along with the dou- ble red in most of the old gardens, from which even neglect and bad treatment will not Danish them. 6. PRONIA CORALLINA. Ld foliolis distinctis ovatis planiusculis glabris, intertaed e sub- lobato, folliculis recurvatis tonientosis. s co- Mr. Axvenson’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 269 P. corallina. Retz. Obs. iii. p: 84. Willd. Sp. PE v. ii. p. 1921. Engl. Bot. 1513. Hort. Kew. ed. ii. v. iii. p. 515. De Cand. Fl. Fr. v. v. p.643. Smith Flore Grece Prod. v. i. p- $70: rd P. Mas. Matthioli Comment. lib. ii. c. 151. | Dod. Pempt. p. 194. Lob. Ic. 684... Tabernem. Ic. t. 784. J. Bauh. v. iii. p. 492. Ger. Em. p. 980... Park. Par. p. 3841 & 343. f. 1. Raüi Hist. v.d. p. 693+ Blackwell Herb. t. 245. i . P. Mas flore purpureo. Besler Eyst. Vern. ord. vi. fol. 10. 1. P. officinalis, var. 8 mascula. Linn. Sp. Pl. 747. P. officinalis. Mil. Illustr. T P. mascula. | Miller's Dict. ed. viii. 1. P. folio nigricante splendido, quae Mas. - C. Bauh. dizia, ou. . Idem, Pinaa, p.933. Tournef. Inst. p. 273. t. 146. P. simplex latiore folio. Moris: Ozon. v. ii. p. 454. 1 P. integra. Murray in Commentat. Soc. Gott. 1784 & 1785, v. vii. Radicis tubera numerosa, fusiformia, aggregata. Caulis bipedalis et altior, simplex, glaber, . teretiusculus, rubicundus. | Pe/ioli communes longi, rubicundi ut in caule... Folia bi- - triternata, vel ternata, pinnata, glabra. Foliola omnia distincta, nec confluentia ; lateralia integra; intermedium szepius bilobum, raro tripartitum, nonnunquam inte- grum ; lato-ovata, planiuscula, subinde subundulata, plus minus reticulata, acutius- cula, supra saturate viridia, venis rubicundis, subtus pallidiora. Calycis foliola glabra, exteriora lanceolata, reliqua rotunda. . Petala 5—6, integriuscula, ovata, concava, ex- + pansa; kermesina seu saturate rosea, venis coloris profundioris notata. Germina 3—4 raro 5, mollissime omnium tomentosa, primum. rectiuscula, patentia, demum valde . recurvata. — Follicula matura. aperta, longitudinaliter. revoluta, seminibus atro- mr; ` pureis, plurimis abortivis phœniceis intermixtis, pulcherrime bullata. Stigmata re- : voluta; compressa, rubra, — Dm. -—— ilis F P. zali. minora, pove afine ez f Maii ad initium Junii. > + — i sé id 4 ee: This i is SE P. mas of Pliny ai and other ancient writers : upon. what. was; it obtained this. title we cannot conjecture. It retained it, however, till Retzius, describing it for the first time scientifically, gave it that which it now bears. It is ie that Linné, who must have seen both plants, should persist i in: consi- dering [i 270 Mr. Axpznsos's Monograph of the Genus Pæonia. dering this and P. officinalis as only varieties of the same species, no two plants in the whole genus being more distinctly separated. The leaves of some varieties lately brought from Holland differ in being less or more pitted, but do not display any disposition to intermingle with other species. "The leaves and stem are al- ways quite free from pubescence in all our examples; though Ray, who copies John Bauhin, says that the leaves are “ lanugine quadam aversa parte pubescentibus," owing possibly to the carc-- lessness of old writing. : Native of mountainous woods in the south of Europe, as in the neighbourhood of Alais in Languedoc ; frequent in Switzer- land, and on the Alps generally: also on Mount Ida and in the island of Zante. Our claim to it as a native of Britain is per- haps but slender. It grows apparently indigenous on a small island in the Severn frith, called the Steep Holmes: and Gerard ` his editor Johnson unceremoniously observes that he planted it there himself. ci | 7. Pzonra DAURICA. P. foliolis distinctis subrotundis undulatis obliquis integriusculis glabris, folliculis patentibus tomentosis. j T P. daurica. And. Repos. 486. Bot. Mag. 1441. Hort. Kew. ed. ii. v. iii. p. 317. : : P. triternata. | Pall. Ind. Plant. Taur. in Nov. Act. Petrop. v. x. p.312. Georgi Deschr. des Russ. Reichs. v. iii. p. 1050? . Radicis tulera crassa, oblonga, sessilia, fibrisque adnata. Caulis sesqui- bipedalis, sub- . erectus, rigidus, flavo-virens, glaber. Folia figura praecedentis, persistentia, apice tandem sphacelata. Foliola inzequaliter rotunda, raro lobata, obliqua, valde undulata, supra flavo-virentia, subtus glauca, venis reticulata. Petioli abbreviati. Calycis foliola glabra, duo exteriora foliacea, reliqua orbiculata, cava. Corolla rosea, petalis eirei- ter octo obtusis. Germina 2—4, flavescentia, dense tomentosa, demum patentia, vix reflexa. Stigmata rubra, recurvata, Semina fusco-nigra, sphærica, reticulata, Floret a medio ad finem Maii, DEAE | | We Mr. AN pEnsox's Monograph of the Genus Peonia. 271 We believe this to be a discovery of Pallas, and that it is P. tri- ternata of ‘his Tour, and of Georgi’s Description of the Russian Empire published at Keenigsberg in 1800. The late Mr. Bell received. seeds of it from Pallas prior to the year 1790: it is said to be a native of Siberia, but its native habitat is not precisely known. . éd ia peN EM Though in general habit a good deal resembling P. corallina, it is nevertheless essentially distinct from that species, in having its leaves always rounded, partially cordate, oblique, and much un- dulated ; whereas those of the former are more or less pointed and nearly flat: the spherical, brownish-black, reticulated seeds, and the yellow tint of its leaves, stalks, and germens, would other- wise characterize it. . Its leaves are disposed to wither at the points and to remain Jonger on the stalks than those of the others. Its flower is of a pleasant pale rose colour. Among seedlings it is seen to vary in the degree of undulation of its leaves, but retains ‘its essential character throughout. i 8. PEONIA HUMILIS. P. foliolis tripartito-compositis lanceolatis acutis canaliculatis sub- villosis, germinibus rectis glabriusculis, stigmatibus erectis. P. humilis. Retz. Obs. iii. p. 85. Bot. Mag. 1422. Smith in Recs's Cycl Hort. Kew. ed. ii. v. iii, p. 316. idi: P. hispanico semine nata. Clus. Hist. v. i. p. 279. P. tenuis laciniata &c. Bauh. Pin. p. 823. 4. Morison Hist. v. ii. Biel n Oe oie ocn | P. femina pumila. Ger. Em. p. 982. 6, quoad Iconem. ; P. foemina hispanica pumila. Park. Herb. 1379. Raii Hist. v. i. yf - Radicis 272 Mr. Anverson’s Monograph of the Genus Pæonia. Radicis tubera numerosa, parva, elliptica. Caulis sesqui-bipedalis, flexuosus, angulatus, glaber. Petioli glabri, partialis medius lateralibus duplo longior. Felia biternata vel |. ternato-trifida, valde et inæqualiter incisa seu pinnatifida, supra saturate viridia, rugo- "^o siuscula, glabra, margine rubicunda : subtus glauca, villis obsoletis demum evanescen- tibus tecta, venis prominentibus glabriusculis ; laciniæ lanceolat, apice attenuate, | acutae, incurvo-canaliculate, undulate, transverse reflexæ. Pedunculi sulcati, elon- gati. Bracteæ (una vel altera) integrz.seusimpliciter fisse, calyci approximate. Ca- lyx. glaber, foliis exterioribus planis, interioribus concavis muticis. Petala 6—8, eroso-marginata, parum laciniata, purpureo- sanguinea. Germina 2, raro 3, primo . recta, leviter pubescentia, denique patentiuscula, glabra ; folliculi maturi vix reflexi. - Stigmata persistentia, elongata, erecta, apice reflexa (hujus speciei signum prestantis- '-.. simum). Semina anguloso-ovata, atro-purpurea, levia, splendentia. Floret initio .. Mai. = "This species may be recognised with tolerable precision as that mentioned by Clusius, an acute observer and original writer, who described a um number of. ell then. laser alte which he ob- test 1 century nihi diseovered. iti in ». Spain: which i is. ; happily MÀ sa our. gie yma Shuter lately. ; returned from that country, who says he saw P. humilis grewing abundantly on the mountains. It seems indeed to belong exclusively to Spain, unless it be what De Candolle considers a variety of P. peregrina, observed by him on the Serane mountains with smooth germens, and the segments of the leaves * plus pales et plus allongés," which we think highly probable. P. lusitanica of Miller, ** with flowers of an agreeable sweet scent,” cannot be reconciled with this or - with any species we know. We suspect that Willdenow did not know this species, otherwise he could not have mistaken P. para- doxa var. P. for a double-flowering variety of it in bis Enum. Plan- tarum. | | The ust ct we describe is probably an offspring from the seeds obtained from Spain through Clusius: how or when it came -into Mr. AxDERSON’s Monograph of the Genus Peonia. 273 into this country is uncertain ; possibly from the Dutch, who seem to have retained a taste for Pæonies long after they had got out _of repute in this country. We found it in the nursery of Messrs. Chandler and Buckingham, at Vauxhall, who do not know from whence they obtained it... The figure in the Botanical Magazine is taken from their plant. i | It is characterized by narrower, more subdivided and smoother leaves than those of any other species in the present subdivision. It differs too from the following in its smooth follicles, and from it and all other known species in the stigmas being elongated and almost upright, resembling styles ; an important character, which Retz in his description, otherwise excellent, has altogether over- looked. 9. Pmonta DECORA, P. foliolis tripartito-laciniatis oblongis obtusis canaliculatis sub- tus pilosis, germinibus pubescentibus patentibus, stigmati- bus recurvatis. : P. byzantina prior. Clus. Hist. p. 219. P. peregrina flore saturè rubente. Bauh. Pinax, 324. Raï Hist. v.i. p. 696. Moris. Hist. v. ii. p. 455. P. foemina byzantina. Park. Par. p. 342 & 343. 4.2? | Radix præcedentis, tuberibus tamen paullo majoribus, Caulis erectus, bi- tri-pedalis, gla- ber. Folia biternata, caulina horizontalia, parum reflexa, Foliola (intermedium trilobum) lateralia sub-decurrentia, hine interdum laciniata, oblonga, obtusiuscula, longitudinaliter canaliculata seu inflexa, minime undulata, glauca, non nitida, vix ru- gosa, margine rubicunda, subtus, ut et petioli partiales, parum pilosa. Pedunculi elongati, glabri. -Calyx pracedentis. : Petala circiter octo, parva, angusta, margine crispa, saturate kermesina. Germina 2—3, suberecta, pube albido leviter tecta, de- mum patentissima, rubicunda. Stigmata lunata, pallide-rubra. Semina ovata, atro- purpurea, levia, splendentia, — Floret ad finem Maii, This and the three succeeding species are nearly allied to each other: it is, however, frequently a much easier task to determine | MOL. XII. 2°N _a species 274 Mr. Anverson’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. a species than to describe it. Being satisfied that they are distinct, we have endeavoured to give the: best distinguishing characters that a close examination of three seasons has afforded us. | Our present plant we do not hesitate to refer to that which Clusius obtained from Constantinople ; as the description which he and the succeeding writers give of it agrees with ours, and it also comes from the same quarter. It is remarkable for the elegant stateliness of its habit. Each stalk accompanied by its horizontal leaves, diminishing as they ascend, and terminated by its flower, (which is rather smaller than is usual in the genus,) supported on a long peduncle, exhibits somewhat of a pyramidal figure. Its leaflets are constantly more or less longitudinally inflexed or concave: in this respect it re- sembles the last described, but differs from itin the leaflets being broad and obtuse. The follicles are less pubescent than those of the three following species, but more so than those of- the pre- ceding; they are very large, and at maturity diverge widely, but do not become so much recurved as those of P. arietina. We have only observed two varieties. e. Pallasii ; foliolis anguste oblongis. Seeds of this plant were received by Messrs. Lee and Kennedy - from Pallas, probably from the Crimea, where he spent the latter years of his life. The name he gave it, if any, has been lost ; they called it byzantina : its flower has a fine deep rose colour, in shape and appearance not unlike that of Papaver somniferum ; the seedlings came up without exhibiting any apparent variation. B. elatior ; foliolis lato-oblongis. First observed in the nursery of Messrs. Chandler and Buck- ingham, who believe. they got it from Holland. It differs from the preceding in the leaves. — somewhat broader, and: the plant Mr. ANDERsON’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 275 plant altogether more robust and rather more pubescent; un- questionably a mere variety. | | 10. PxoNraA ARIETINA. P. foliolis trilobatis pinnatifidisque decurrentibus ovali-oblongis planiusculis subtus pilosis, folliculis tomentosis arcuato-pa- tentibus. Radicis tubera ut in precedente. Caulis 2—21-pedalis, suberectus, pilosiuseulus. Petioli foliolis subzequalibus axillis pilosis. Folia pedalia, sub-biternata seu ternata, pinnatifi- da ; foliola sparsim lobata, basi decurrentia, tunc inciso-dentata, integraque, ovata, ob- tusiuscula, rugosa, supra glabra, subtus glauco-pilosa. Bractee foliosæ, acute, Calyx basi pilosus ; foliola duo exteriora acuminata, reliqua orbiculata, cava, obtusa, Petala . mediocriter crispa, vix lacera. Germina 2—3, magna, tomentosa, primo patentia, de- mum arcuata, parum recurvata. Stigmata compressa, lunata, brevia, rubicunda. Semina ovata, nigra, rugosa. Floret a medio ad finem Maii. This species is by much the largest among those of the present division. Its distinguishing characters consist in the leaflets being decurrent, often even confluent, and in the germens being arched and frequently recurved, suggesting a resemblance to rams’-horns : it seems to have been well known to the old authors, as will ap- pear in describing the varieties. a. Andersonii ; floribus saturate roseis, petalis minus crispis. P. promiscua Vormarii folio latiore. J. Bauh. Hist. 0. iii. Eds 493. Rau Hist. v. i. p. 695. Moris. Hist. v. ii. p. 454. , Es byzantina. major, Besler Ey yst. Vern. ordo. vi. p. 14? This pl int, to. which Mr. Sabine gave the cognomen, owing to his having obtained it from me several years ago, though not common about London, probably having been banished with contempt for its single flower, is nevertheless still to be seen in remote parts of the country in the gardens of old baronial man- sions: in such situations we knew it many years ago in Aber- - 2x2 deenshire, 276 Mr. Axpznsox's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. deenshire, where it is still to. be found under the name of the Single Pæony, and the only species with single flowers we ever observed in those parts. | We attach J. Bauhin's synonym without hesitation; his de- scription of it, which Ray and succeeding authors have copied, being so applicable: ** Folia siquidem que imis ramis herent, latiora sunt quam cæterarum, rotundioraque ; aversa parte glauca, hirsuta, adversa saturatius virentia itidemque pilis obsita ; siliqua retortæ, hirsutie alba tote contecta." From analogy we presume it to be a native of the Levant. Its flowers are of a bright but deep rose colour, resembling most those of daurica, and appear very handsome over its abundant dark though glaucous leaves. Morison’s figure, No. 3, is so bad that we cannot quote it. B. oxoniensis ; floribus carneis, petalis lacero-crispis. E RS Plant. Rar. P: 281. ÈS P. cretica. P. folio subtus incano, flore albo vel pallido. C. B. T. D. 323. : Moris. Hist v. ii. p. 454. | P. feemina flore carneo simplici. Park. Par. p. 342. P. mas major flore incarnato. Besler Eyst. Vern. ordo vi. p. 11. This is probably No. 6. Ger. Em. p. 981, as to the description, “ in our London gardens bearing flowers of a pale whitish colour, very single, resembling the female wilde Peiony ;" although the figure of No. 6 is that of another species (humilis). And from Parkinson's notice of it we presume it must have been among the gardens in his days, though no where to be found three years ago in this country but in the Oxford botanic garden, where it seems to have existed unnoticed and unknown since the time of Mori- son, whose description of it is very satisfactory: “ quam in horto alimus, cujus folia latiuscula lanugine alba utrinque obsita sunt. Flores Mr. ANpxnsox's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 277 Flores simplices primo emergentes, subcarnei, deinde in albos transmutantur.” Mr. Sabine was indebted to the liberality of Professor Williams for roots of it from the Oxford botanic gar- den. From Clusius we learn tbat this is a native of valleys on the highest mountains in Crete; which its habit confirms, having all that woolly-like softness in its young stalks and leaves so peculiar to the plants of that island. If it be P. ochranthemos Camerarii, it has been found in Navarre ; but this last authority is not at all . conclusive. . i This is among the earliest of Pæonies ; comes out of the ground of a pale glaucous green colour, destitute of the ruddy tint so common in the genus. Petals of a beautiful pale blush colour, crisp, and lacerated in a greater than usual degree. Follicles almost reflexed when ripe, less woolly and of a lighter colour than those of var. æ. Roots of a Peony have been imported by Messrs. Chandler and Buckingham from Holland which prove to be this plant. 11. PxoNIA PEREGRINA. P. foliolis tripartito-laciniatis integrisque ovato-lanceolatis plani- usculis subtus pilosis, germinibus tomentosis rectis. T P. peregrina. Hort. Kew. ed. ii. v. iii. LA 315. De Cand. Flor. | Franc. v. v. p. 643. | ; F: peregrina flore coccineo. Besler Bit: M ordo vi. p. 9. P. peregrina foliis difformiter lobatis &c. - Mill. Dict. ed. viii. 3 This species is involved in much obscurity among the old au- thors; and since it has been restored by modern writers, no de- tailed description of it has yet been published. For several years successively we have examined three plants, each of them dif- fering considerably from the other, and they prove to retain unchanged ~ 978 Mr. Awpznsox's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. unchanged their respective habits. It is not possible, however, in the present state of our information, for us to pronounce whether these ‘be specifically distinct or not; and we deem it expedient, in order to pave the way for a subsequent decision on this point, to give a separate description of each, as we have observed it. | P. peregrina, De Candolie informs us, is a native of the moun- tains of Provence and Languedoc, chiefly near Montpellier; also abundant on the mountains La Serane and Pic St. Loup, and in the forest of Valene; but which of our plants, (or whether all three together) is intended by him, unfortunately his defective description denies us the means of judging. It also belongs to the Levant, as will afterwards appear. Bulliard, vol. iii. p. 300, we think rofa to it; aang = nn is bad, and his figure bé HOPES S298 QIOUW. PERL ST 5 l P. peregrina. Bot. Mar 1050. P. byzantina altera. Clus. Hist. 279. P. peregrina flore dilute rubente. C. B. Pinar, p. 324. P. pomi aurantii colore. Morison Hist. v. ii. p. 455; exclus. syn. Radicis tubera fibris brevibus adnata, numerosa, teretia, oblonga. ^ Caulis bipedalis et ultra, erecto-flexuosus, pilis albis tectus. Folia biternata, læte seu dilute viridia, pe- tiolis glabriusculis. Foliolum intermedium trilobatum, raro ternatum, hine varie et profunde incisum seu pinnatifidum, basi decurrens. — Lateralia integra nonnunquam bilobata, basiobtusiuscula. Lacinia planiusculz tamen subundulate, ovate, obtusi- uscule, minus rugosæ, sinubus rubentibns; subtus cano-pilose, supra glabra, sed .. monnitide. Bracteæ frondosæ, integræ, calyci approximate. Calycis foliola exte- riora bracteis non distinguenda, inferiora obtusa, glabriuscula, margine rubicunda, à: Petala 8, integriuscula, obovata, apice erosa, kermesina. Germina 2, rarissime 3, ca- no-tomentosa, primo congesta demum divergentia, triplo minora quam P. arietinæ. Semina ovato-oblonga, acuta, nigra, levia, splendentia. Floret medio Maii. |. Clusius received seeds of a Peony from Constantinople in 1588; | “his Mr. Anverson’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 279 his description of which, under P. altera, accords with the pre- sent plant: it may therefore be considered as a native of the Le- vant. If our quotation from Morison be correct, it must have been an old tenant of our gardens, although it is not now com- monly to be seen. Our plant was obtained from Kew, the same from whence the drawing was taken for the Botanical Magazine. This plant is remarkable for the pale grass-green colour of its leaves, which Clusius and Morison both take notice of ; these are much divided, and covered underneath with white hairs. It comes into flower a little later than arietina, from which it differs in the leaflets being more obtuse at the base, seldom decurrent, in the whole plant beiti considerably smaller, and in the germens being straight and erect. If the oblong shape of the seeds be a permanent character, it alone would be sufficient to distinguish it as a separate species. B. compacta. Radicis tubera minora quam a, Caulis sesquipedalis.. Folia biternata, saturate viridia, lato-ovata, plana nec undulata, minime rugosa, crebre laciniata, laciniis apice obtu- sissimis; foliola lateralia trilobata seu ternata, conferto-imbricata, Calyx basi pilo- siusculus; foliola exteriora frondosa, incisa. Germina duo. Semina rotundata, nigra, levia, splendentia. (Cztera ut in precedente.) Found in the nursery of Messrs. Lee and Kennedy under the name of anomala: but we are unable to obtain any account of its origin; nor can any notice of it be discovered among the au- thors, only that, as it corresponds sufficiently with De Candolle’ s description, and having traced the foregoing plant to Constan- tinople, we might conjecture that this comes from the south of France. It is probably a distinct species. It differs from para- doxa, which it much resembles, in the fissures of the leaves being deeper though nearly equally obtuse, petals entire, calyx pu- bescent, and germens scarcely ever more than two, besides its being 280 Mr. ANpEnsoN's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. being nearly a fortnight earlier in flowering. This plant is reż markable at first sight by its general compact bushy habit, and by its broad flat dark glaucous-green leaflets; not yellowish-green nor bordered with red, like the foregoing. y. Grevillei. Radix precedenti similis. Caulis bipedalis, glabriusculus. Folia biternata ; foliola pro- funde laciniata, valde undulata, interdum tortuosa, angustata, acuta, rugosa, glauca, margine rubicunda. Calyx glaber; stigmata acutiuscula; semina rotundata. (Cæ- tera ut in var. a.) Obtained by Mr. Sabine from the garden of the late Mr. Cie: ville, who cultivated it as a new species, but whence it originally came he could not learn. We found the same plantin Messrs. Lee and Kennedy's nursery, without any name; its history is equally ambiguous with the preceding, but it may be supposed to have come pads the same quarter. Itis conspicuous by its deeply and numerously laciniated leaflets, which are glaucous, very much undulated, and sometimes twisted. It comes into flower rather earlier than the other two; petals deep crimson, not so dark as those of var. a. 19. PHONIA PARADOXA. P. foliolis multipartitis obtusis undulatis, subtus glauco-pilosis, germinibus adpressis tomentosis. P. promiscua seu neutra. Lobel Ic. 683. | P. promiscua strictiore folio. J. Bauh. Hist. v. iii. p. 498. P. foemina altera. C. Bauh. Pin. p. 323. P. byzantina minor. Besl. Hort. Eyst. Vern. ordo vi. p. 14.? P. promiscua. Ger. Em. p. 982.5. Raii Hist. v. i. p. 695. P peregrina. Smith in Rees's Cycl.: absque synonymis. Radix ut in precedentibus, tuberibus vero angustioribus et paulo magis sparsis, Caulis vix sesquipedalis, glabriusculus, simplex. Folia biternata, precedente minora, foliola trilobata, varie et inordinate. “incisa, nonnunquam ternata, Laciniæ sepius bifide aut Mr, Axprrson’s Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 981 aut trifide, fissuris brevibus, obtusis, confertæ, imbricatæ, planiuseule, tamen sub- undulatæ, margine rubicunde ; supra glabra, rugose, saturate virides; subtus czesio- pilose. Foliolum intermedium quandoque decurrens; lateralia basi obtusissima, ro- tundata. Pelioli glabri, Bracteæ integra, lanceolate, hinc incisæ, scu bilobe. Calyx glaber, foliolis tribus exterioribus foliaceis, acutis, reliquis orbiculatis parum retusis, Petala 8, obovata, lacera, interdum bifida, patentia, violaceo-kermesina. Germina plerumque duo, rarius tria, erecta, adpressa: folliculi maturi tamen patentiusculi, Styli angusti, hamato-reflexi, Semina nigra, spherico-ovata, exigua, lævia, splenden- tia. Floret initio Junii. E. From a general coincidence we conclude this to be the P; proinis- cua of the old authors. - Both the varieties we believe came ori- ginally from Holland at some early period. . It appears to be a native of the Levant. | TEEN 44 This is the latest in coming into flower of all Ponies, excepting albiflora ; its flowers seldom expand before the latter end of May: it forms a dense tuft of leaves and flowers, more dwarf than humilis, and is the lowest in stature of all the species excepting mollis. From peregrina it differs in the leaves being small, ovate, and anore glaucous; the leaflets more divided, crowded, and imbri- cated ; the ultimate fissures shallow and obtuse; in the germens being close pressed together, and very little separated even in the ripe follicles. - ` | These considerations, together with the uniformity of character in the two varicties, which both flower a fortnight later, have in- duccd us to remove them from peregrina: future observation may decide whether our judgement be correct. Our learned Presi- dent, who must bave had this plant before him in describing P. peregrina in Rees’s Cyclopedia, observes with his usual correct- ness, that it does not accord with P. peregrina flo. coccineo of Besler, the figure of which is that of our peregrina; nor with byzantina of Gerard and Parkinson, which is our decora. dp a, simpliciflora ; caule omnino glabro, floribus S-petalis. a ' To be found in most of the nurseries, under the mistaken name VOL. XII. : 2 0. of 282 Mr. Anperson’s Monograph of the Genus Peonia. of humilis: the follicles are of a paler green than in peregrina; petals a dark purplish-red, often bifid, or a little lacerated. - B. fimbriata ; caule vix pilosiusculo, floribus plenis. P. flore pleno rubro minore. C. Bauh. Pin. p. 324. P. flore pleno rubro, minor. J. Bauh. v. iii. p. 493. taii Hist. . ©. L. p. 090. om P. foliis difformiter lobatis pubescentibus.. Mill. Fig. of Plants, 199: mala. P. flore pleno dran pua Moris. Hist. v. ii. p. A55, et Sect. xii. tab. 1. fig. P. humilis. Willd. Enum. b P. paradoxa fimbriata. Double fringed Pæony. Sabine in Hort. Trans, v. ii. p. 216. Messrs. Lee and Kennedy have long possessed dis plant; and Méssrs. Loddiges and Son imported it from Holland under the name of the double-purple Peony. It is the only plant among the pubescent species with double flowers. These are of a beautiful purplish crimson, smaller in size, and with the inner petals more’ linear and divided than those of the double varieties of P. officinalis, giving it the appearance of a fringed tassel. It accords in every material circumstance with the single-flowered pum | 13. Ponta MOLLIS. D. foliolis ovali-lanceolatis planis lobatis imbricatis subtus cæsio- pilosis; lateralibus subsessilibus; germinibus tomentosis rectis, Radicis fibre longe, tuberibus longis desinentes. Caulis pedalis et ultra, rigidus, stric- — tus, pilosiusculus, dense foliosus. — Petioli breves, supra glabri, subtus pilosiusculi ; _ partiales undique pilosi. Folia dodrantia, inæqualiter subtriternata, complanata, ho- rizontalia, saturate coeruleo-viridia, Foliola lateralia subsessilia extus decurrentia, profunde lobata, lato-lanceolata, plana, obtusa, congregata seu imbrieata, venis fuscis parallelis, subtus dense pilosa, glauca; supra glabra, nitidiuscula. Bracteæ foliaceæ, integræ et incise. Calycis foliola obtusa, exteriora pubescentia, integra, Germina 2—3 rectiuscula, adpressa, apice distantia, molliter pubescentia, pilis ferrugineis, Semina equaliter ovata, rugosiuscula, nitida, — a medio ad finem Maii, This Mr. Axvunxson’s Monograph of the Genus Peonia. — 283 This species is entirely unrecorded. It was raised by Messrs. Loddiges and Sons of Hackney, from seeds obtained from Pallas, and said to be from Siberia; although from its appearance we should rather suspect it to have come from the Crimea, where that respected naturalist spent the latter years of his life. From Messrs. Loddiges it has found its way into the gardens of the curious under the mistaken name of anomala. We distinguished it three years ago in Mr. Sabine’s collection as a truly distinct. species; and it has been reserved for us first to describe it. crowded, overlapping each other, very woolly on the under-side, nowise bordered with red as in most of the others, and the lateral leaflets being almost sessile, the exterior side of each disposed to be decurrent. It is the most dwarf of all our species, seldom reaching eighteen inches in height even in our gardens. The stalks as well as the primary petioles are nearly smooth. "The flower is small, of a dark dull purplish-red, by no means handsome. GRECE re POSTSCRIPT BY JOSEPH SABINE, Ese. — Two days after the preceding account had been brought to its present state, by the diligence and industry of my most valued friend, he was accidentally killed by a fall from a carriage. ‘This me- lancholy event happened on the 10th of January last, near his own house at West-Ham ; and the superintendence of the publication of this paper in consequence of this misfortune has fallen op me alone: thus the gratification I had enjoyed in assisting him in the composition, and which would have been complete had we been 202 2 able 284 Mr. ANpznsox's Monograph of the Genus Pæonia. able to see the result of our inquiry placed in the pages of the Transactions of the Society, was suddenly destroyed ; and that which would have afforded me so much pleasure, has now becn a task, accompanied with the most painful recollections. | To those who had the happiness of being acquainted with Mr. George Anderson, it will not be necessary to recall the recol- lection of his merits and of his goodness; his loss has been most . severely lamented by his friends, and tlie remembrance of his virtues and of his excellence will remain in their hearts to the latest period of their lives. The science of Botany in this coun- try, had he not been so early lost, would probably have been con- siderably benefited by his labours. He had devoted much time and minute attention to the investigation of the genus Salix, the species of which he had examined with the greatest care; and having formed a most extensive collection of them, he had made such progress in their arrangement as would have enabled him, had he lived, ere long to have communicated to the public a very accurate and correct account of the whole. His inquiries were not, however, confined to this subject only ; his knowledge of English plants was accurate and extensive, and his diligence and perseverance in the search after rare and new native species very remarkable. With all the different hardy bulbous plants he was particularly well acquainted, and had acquired a knowledge of the species and varieties of the extensive genera of Crocus, Nar- cissus, Tulipa, Hyacinthus, and Lilium, from the examination of them under cultivation in his own garden, which probably no individual who survives him possesses. I have not ventured to alter or to add to any part of the pre- ceding paper; the examination which I was enabled to make of the Pæonies during the last summer, has given me no reason to . doubt the accuracy of any of the observations for which we were = jointly Mr. ANDERSON's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 285 jointly responsible: it is possible, I think, that new varieties may be discovered, and that future investigation may add to the refc- rences which we have given; the work cannot be considered as complete, whilst any synonym of those authors, who described what they actually observed, remains unapplied ; such additions, if they be thought worthy of notice, shall be given hereafter in a supplemental paper, should health and leisure be allowed me. The first volume of M. De Candolle's Systema Naturale Regni Vegetabilis, which has just arrived from Paris, contains the genus Pæonia; and as that work must, from its peculiar merit and from the great repute of its author, be constantly referred to as autho- rity, it will perhaps be considered not entirely useless to compare the species of our paper with those of M. De Candolle, and to endeavour to reconcile the points of apparent difference. He has not arranged his species in the order which has been adopted in our paper, but placed them in the following succession: X. Moutan ; 2. Corallina ; 3. Officinalis ; 4. Peregrina; 5. Lobata; 6. Daurica ; T. Albiflora ; 8. Tatarica; 9. Humilis; 10. Anomala; 11. IIybrida; 19. Tenuifolia; 13. Laciniata. | In Moutan he has made the double one the type of his species; and under that has referred to our two double varieties; placing P. papaveracea as the second variety, and suggesting the eis By that it may be a distinct species. - Of P. albiflora he makes two varieties only ; his æ, dido by ds reference to Andr. Repos. 64, is our P. albiflora æ. vestalis; his B. flore roseo is our P. albiflora y. Tatarica, as I conclude from his reference to Par. Lond. 78, though the plant there figured is described as having ** petala pallide rosea," whilst that with * petala rosea," therein noticed as another variety, is either our P. albiflora s. rubescens, or one which, if ever it did exist in our gardens, is now lost. - M. De Candolle's reference to the Hortus Kewensis, 286 Mr. Anperson’s Monograph of the Genus Pæonia. Kewensis, 2d edit. in this species is only to the var. B, as if that alone was noticed therein; whereas P. albiflora of the Hortus Kew- ensis is referable to the species itself; and the variety figured in the Par. Lond. is the second variety B. of P. albiflora in the Hor- tus Kewensis. M. De Candolle has no references to the figures in the Botanical Magazine or the Botanical Register ; and I conjec- ture that he is not acquainted with more than the one double va- riety, P. albiflora B. Whitleji, to the figure of which in Andr. Bot. Repos. he refers. | Our two species P. anomala and P. tenuifolia agree with those of M. De Candolle; but he has kept as a distinct species P. hy- brida, adding to the statements of Pallas, the authority of Dr. Fischer, who in his correspondence has assured him he found it growing on the northern side of Mount Caucasus, and that it was not an hybrid plant, but a genuine species. Being fully satis- fied that Pallas's plant, figured and described in the F. "lora Rossica, and which was from a cultivated specimen, is only P. tenuifolia in a state it sometimes assumes, but different from what it usually puts on, I must still continue my opinion of their identity. In Dr. Fischer's Catalogue of the Garden at Gorinki near Moscow, printed in 1808, he does not enumerate P. hybrida. Should this plant, however, after more investigation, prove distinct from P. tenuifolia, I shall rejoice in the circumstance, as our list of spe- cies of this charming genus will thereby be increased; but if P. hybrida be distinct, it cannot be set down as one now culti- vated in this country. P. officinalis, on the authority of several French authors, has been considered hitherto a native of different parts of France: it seems from the personal observation of M. De Candolle, most probable that other species have been mistaken for this; and I should not be surprised, if subsequent examination of specimens from Mr. ANDznsow's Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 287 from the natural habitats, should very much reduce the number of synonyms of modern writers which have been hitherto applied to this species, and- that by this operation the native places of growth of those new species described by us from cultivated plants only, should be discovered. One reference of M. De Can- dolle, viz. that to “Saku Jaku, Kempf. Amen. v. p. 862," I must consider as very doubtful: the result of every inquiry I have made is, that only P. Moutan and P. albiflora, with all their va- ricties, are cultivated in China and Japan ; the Botan of Kæmpfer is the first of these species, and I believe the Saku Jaku is a va- riety of the latter with single red flowers, and that the two double varieties of the same, mentioned by Kæmpfer, are our P. albiflora Whitleji and P. albiflora fragrans. | P. corallina is now so well known that no doubts can exist about it, or the synonyms referable to it. M. De Candolle has confirmed our belief, that P. daurica is the P. triternata of Pal- las and Georgi: and P. humilis is so well settled by the authority and accuracy of Retz, that no difficulty can exist relating to it. The synonyms which we have applied to our P. decora, are all referred by M. De Candolle to his P. lobata; and I am inclined to think they are the same, though from the circumstance of his plant being quite smooth in the leaves, and ours being hairy un- derneath, théy must, if brought together as a species, remain as distinct varieties: in all other points, except this one, they agree. As the P. lobata is cultivated in France, and as Mr. MacLeay has got a plant of it from Paris in his garden, the question will be probably settled in the next summer. | With our P. arietina M. De Candolle seems to be quite unac- quainted ; the synonyms of Bauhin and Morison, applied by us : to P. arietina e. Andersonii, are referred with a mark of doubt to his P. peregrina; whilst those of Clusius and Dauhin, which we have 288 Mr. Axprrsox's Monograph of the Genus P«onia. have quoted as referable to P. arietina B. Oxoniensis, make onc of his unknown Pæonies. The next species, P. peregrina of our paper, I cannot refer to that, to which the same name is applied by M. De Candolle in his present work; relying on the reference in his Flore Française, to the figure in the Bot. Mag., we had considered the P. peregrina of his work as our species ; but in the Systema Naturale Regni Vegetabilis the P. peregrina of the Hort. Kew. and of the Bot. Mag. (of the identity of which plant we are quite certain) is made the variety y. of his species; and this variety must hercafter be referred to as a synonym of our P. peregrina e. Dyzantina : with our two other va- rieties of P. peregrina, viz. compacta and Grevillei, I must suppose M. De Candolle to be unacquainted; it then remains for me to find a place for the varieties &. and £. of his P. peregrina in our arrange- ment. We have concluded that our P. paradoxa is the P. pro- miscua of. the old authors, of Lobel, Gerrard, and John Baubin. To this plant of these writers, as well as to the P. altera sive neutra of Caspar Dauhin, we on examination of the living plant referred that species. M. De Candolle, with his plant (a native of Trance, found by himself,) before him, has referred it to the same authors: our description of the plant exactly accords with his, and particularly agrees in the circumstance of its low growth. The only difference which prevents my coming to a decided con- clusion in the identity of the two is, that M. De Candolle, in his specific character, has ** capsulis tomentosis basi erectis apice di- vergentibus," whilst the corresponding part of our specific charac- ter is * germinibus adpressis tomentosis,” the diy ergence of the germens being one of the points by which our P. peregrina is di- stinguished-from P. paradoxa. Notwithstanding this difficulty, I think it will turn out that our P. paradoaa is the P. peregrina «æ, of M. De Candolle; but we must wait for specimens or plants from France Mr. ANDERSON’S Monograph of the Genus Paonia. 289 France to settle the matter decidedly. Of M. De Candolle’s P: peregrina B. “ ovariis glabetrimis," we have hinted our belief that it might be referred to P. humilis: M. De Candolle, in his Flore Francaise, suspected it to be P. peregrina in an unhealthy state, and not a variety, which I am inclined to think very likely: If it be a distinct variety, I certainly never have had it under examination. | I have now compared all the species described in our paper with those of M. De Candolle, except P. mollis, which being quite a new plant, unknown in France, and not described before by . any author, was not likely to have been noticed by him. His P. Moutan, P.corallina, P.officinalis, P. Daurica, P.albiflora, P.hu- milis, P. anomala, and P. tenuifolia, are the same as our species. so called: his P. peregrina I think is referable in its varieties to our P. paradoxa and P. peregrina; his P. lobata I believe to be our PP. decora; and I am ready to admit P. hybrida as distinct from P.tenuifolia, when the evidence of its existence is confirmed ; our P.arietina and P.mollis are decidedly new. It therefore only remains to notice two additional species enumerated by M. De Candolle as doubtful ones; viz. P. Tataricaand P. laciniata, both of which I conceive must be withdrawn from the list of genije species. He appears to have been induced to notice P. Tiataried welely on the authority of Miller, the plant not being otherwise known to him, for he only refers to Miller's Dict. no. 5, and Miller’s. Ic. t. 199. Miller says this plant was raised from fed obtained from the Levant, and that there is a double and single variety of it, the figure in his Icones being intended for the double one. M. De Candolle, on the authority of Miller, calls it a native of Tartary, but I cannot find any statement in Miller's Dictionary to justify this supposition. Miller's P. Tatarica is however our OL. XII. 2 P P. paradoxa, e 200 Mr. ANDERSON'S Monograph of the Genus Pæonia. P. paradoxa, as such we have referred to his figure, in the syno- nyms of the double variety; and our P. paradoxa I have before stated to be in my opinion the P. peregrina æ. of M. De Candolle. The P. laciniata in like manner is founded on a single autho- rity only, that of Willdenow's Enumeratio. Willdenow's plant came from Siberia; and it might be suspected that he had got Pallas's P. laciniata, which is the P. anomala of Linnzeus and all subsequent writers, and had erroneously considered it distinct, being misled by the name, but that he describes it ** capsulis tomentosis." This circumstance (since it cannot be admitted that it is another species, or it would have found its way to other col- lections from the Berlin garden,) makes it probable that Willde- now's P. laciniata was only a strong-growing plant of P. tenui- folia, perhaps in the very state figured by Pallas as P. Aybrida. M. De Sandla bas described his =. laciniata with * pee to- North Minus: ; 20" December, 1817, $ x OF THE LINNEAN SOCIETY SOLD AT THE SOCIETY'S HOUSE, NO, 9, GERRARD-STREET, SOHO ; ; : i AND BY LONGMAN, HURST, REES, ORME, AND BROWN; PATERNOSTER-ROW, M MDCCCXYIII, CONTENTS XT X I. Some Information respecting the Lignum Rhodium of Pococke's Travels, in a Letter to Alexander MacLeay, Esq. F. R.S. Sec. L.S. By Sir James Edward Smith, M.D. F.R.S. Pr. L.S., 4c. - - eee D. II. Of the Formation of the Vegetable Epidermis. By the Reo, Patrick, Keith, kalama. em nuo uv P III. On the Classification of the Natural Tribe of Insects Noronscripes, with Descriptions of the British Species. ` By William Elford Leach, M.D. F.R.S. and LS op: IV. Some Remarks on the Natural History of the Biack Stork, for the first time captured in Great Britain. By George Montagu, Esq. F.L.S. mere ES p. V. Some Account of the Tantalus Ephouskyca, a rare American Bird. By Benjamin Smith Barton, M.D. F.M.L.S. p. VI. Observations on the Orchis militaris of Linneus. By Mr. J. EF. Bicheno, F.L.S. - - mere p. VII. Gryprnurs and CHIODECTON, two new Gener 1 ; Family of Lichenes, with Descriptions an Figures of the Species hitherto discovered. By Eri x Acharius, M.D. : F.M.L.S. - S. alic. ohm = P - - p- VIII. On the Power of Sarracenia adunca to entrap Insects. In a Letter to Sir J. E. Smith, Pres. Linn. Soc., from James Macbride, M.D., of South Carolina p- X. Observations on the Nature and Formation of the Stone | inerusting the Skeletons which have been found in the Island of Guadaloupe, with some Account of the Origin of those Skeletons. In a Report made to General Ernouf, m 35 48 late iv | CONTENTS. late Governor of the Colony. Communicated by the Right Honourable Sir Joseph Banks, Bart. K.G.C. B. Pres. B.S. Eo | H.M.L.S. Ge. 4. "E. D = = p X. Descriptions of a new Genus of Plants named Araujia, and of a new Species of Passiflora. By Felix de Avellar Brotero, Professor of Botany in the University of Coim- bra, F.M.L.S. - à È = = à p. XI. Some Observations on the natural Family of Plants called Covrosirz. By Robert Brown, Esq. F. R.S., Libr. L.S. p- XII. On some remarkable Deviations Jrom the usual Struc- ture of Seeds and Fruits. By Robert Brown, Esq. F.R.S4 Libr. LS... > - - - - - p. XII. Remarks on two Genera of Plants to be referred to the Family of the Rosacea, in a Letter Jrom Mr. A. P. De Candolle, Professor of Natural History in the Academy of Geneva, Corresp. R. Acad. Sc. Paris, $c. to Sir James Edward Smith, President of the Linnean Society D. XIV. A Synopsis of the British Species of Rosa. By Joseph - Woods, Esq. F.L.S. E p. XV. A Botanical History of the Genus Tofieldia. By Sir James Edward Smith, M.D. F.R.S. ELS, -= P. XXI A Monograph of the Genus Peonia, Dy the late . George Anderson, Esq. F.L.S. $c. Desdr sp. a gre PARTIE X VIT. Observations on the Linnean Genus J uncus, with the Characters of those Species which have been found growing wild in Great Britain. By James Ebenezer Bicheno, Esq., F.L.S. sati uo o e v E 59 235 248 XVIIE INED m new Shells. By Captain Frederic Marryat, R.N. F.L.S ^1) do ba 358 mis: De. CONTENTS: XIX. Descriptions of five British Species of the Genus Tere- bella of Linné. By the late George Montagu, Esq. F. L.S. Communicated by William Elford Leach, M.D. F.R.S. and L.S. - - é a ‘ E p. XX. Characters of two Species of Tordylium. By Sir James Edward Smith, M.D. F.R.S. P.L.S. - E p. XXI. Observations on a Viper found in Cranborne Chace, Dor- setshire. By the Rev.'Yhomas Rackett, F. R.S.and L.S. p. XXII. Description of select Indian Plants. By Henry Tho- mas Colebrooke, Esq. F.R.S. and L.S. - = p. XXIII. Upon the different Species of esculent Strawberries. By Thomas Andrew Knight, Esg. F.R.S. and L.S. Pres. Hort. Soc. - - - - p- XXIV. On the Germination of Lycopodium denticulatum, in a Letter to the Secretary from Richard Anthony Salis- bury, Esq. F.R.S. and L.S. - E ae p- XXV. Some Account of the Lycoperdon solidum of the Flora Virginica, the Lycoperdon cervinum of Walter. By James Macbride, M.D. of South Carolina. Communicated by the President - ym = s b p. XXVI. An Account of Rhizomorpha medullaris, a new Bri- tish Fungus. By Sir James Edward Smith, M.D. F.R.S. P.L.S. ue m - - - - - P- XXVII. A Century of Insects, including several new Genera described from his Cabinet. By the Rev. William Kirby, M.A. F.R. and L.S. ee IN XXVIII. A Description of several new Species of Insects col- lected in New Holland by Robert Brown, Esq. F.R.S., Libr. Linn. Soc. By the Rev. William Kirby, M.A.F.R. and L.S. = - - - - - - p. '. Some Account of the Island of Tristan da Cunha and ‘of its Natural Productions. By Captain Dugald Car- michael, F.L.S. rom o 365 - 368 372 315 454 483 XXX. Some 2s CONTENTS. XXX. Some Account of the Spiral Tubes or Ligaments in the Genus Terebratula of Lamarck, as observed in several Spe- cies of Fossil Shells. By Mr. James Sowerby, F.L.S. p. XXXI. On the Use of the Pedes scansorii of Birds; in a Let- ter to the Rev. William Kirby, F.R.S. and L.S. By the Rev. Revett Sheppard, F.L.S. - - - - p. XXXII. An Account of a new Species of Gull lately disco- vered on the West Coast of Greenland. By Joseph Sa- * bine, Esq. F.R.S. and L.S. $c. - - ^ - p XXXIII. Remarks on the Changes of the Plumage of Birds. By the Rev. William Whitear, of Starston in Norfolk. Communicated by Joseph Sabine, Esq., F.R.S. and L.S., Ge, - . x - UR XXXIV. A Memoir on the Birds of Greenland; with De- scriptions and Notes on the Species observed in the late Voyage of Discovery in Davis's Straits and Baffin’s Bay. . By Capt. Edward Sabine, of the Royal Artillery, FRS. and LS. - à - p XXXV. Characters and Description of LvELLtA,a new Ge. nus of Mosses, with Observations on the Section of the Or- der to which it belongs; and some Remarks on LEPTO- sTOMUM and Buxsaumia. By Robert Brown, Esq. F.R.S., Libr. L.S. - - = Te * alp. XXXVI. Extracts from the Minute-Book of the Linnean So- ciety of London - - a FOR Catalogue of the Library of the Linnean Society. Continued from Page 426 of Vol. XI. of the Society's Transactions p. List of Donors to the Library of the Linnean Society. Donations to ihe Museum of the Linnean Society. 520 524 527 (291 . XVII. Observations on the Linnean Genus J uncts, with the Cha- racters of those Species, which have been fouhd growing wild in Great Britain. By James Ebenezer Bichého, Esq., F.L.S. Read June 18, Nov. 5, and Dec. 3, 1816. Or all the objects to which the pages of the Linnean Transac- tions have been devoted, none has contributed more to the pro- gress of science than the monographs which have appeared of the different genera of animals and plants. With a view, therefore, of contributing a small share to the labours of the Society, I have ventured to communicate a few remarks for the purpose of elu- cidating the obscure and uninviting genus Juncus : for though an inaugural dissertation has been dedicated to the subject by Rost- kov, intitled ** Monographia Generis Junci, cum Tabulis binis eneis,” Berolini, 1801, it is a work not to be found in any of our botanical libraries; and, though containing much useful information, does not supersede the necessity of a further illustration of the genus. His arrangement of the species is indeed altogether unnatural and objectionable, as he has brought together into close connexion some of those which have the most distant relation in the whole genus. The French botanists have commemorated the author by naming after him a new genus, naturally related to the objects of his essay. The old herbalists seem to have had no other character for the than their grassy appearance, and their internal spongy structure. This comprehended an heterogeneous assemblage of YOL. XII. 2q plants 202 Mr. J. E. Broneno’s Observations | plants of various genera, e. g. Scirpi, Scheni, Cyperi, Triglochines, Butomus, Eriophora, and others. Nevertheless, with all this con- - fusion, they divided the real Junci, which are included in the | first subdivision of the genus in the Species Plantarum, into two families, the hard and the soft; the former being all called acu- tus, and the latter levis*. The Gramina hirsuta, which are those Junci described as plane-leaved by Linnzus, were kept entirely distinct, and were arranged among the Grasses. Our systematic countryman Ray gives this description, * de Junco et Gramine Junceo T:7—* Juncus caulibus teretibus, fan- gosis, panicula vel in summo caule existente, vel ex ejus latere inferius exeunte, et multis seminibus majusculis compositá à re- liquis graminifoliis distinguitur. Gramina juncea à juncis distin- guuntur caulibus foliosis articulatis. Folia etiam in his non sem- per teretia sunt, sed in nonnullis speciebus compressa, in omni- bus tamen fungosa." The latter part of this description alludes to such as have jointed leaves: but Ray confesses that he has admitted under his definition, in conformity to the opinion of other botanists, plants which he did not know how to dispose of otherwise. He has placed the Gramina hirsuta in a distinct divi- sion. In the second edition of his Synopsis, the Gramina juncea are said to differ merely in their having a leafy stem. -Ray’s de- finition, it must be confessed, very much lessened the number of plants which were at first admitted, though it still embraced the Eriophora, Triglochines, and some of the Scheni and Scirpi. No improvement of the character appears, as might be expected, in the Methodus Graminum, published afterwards; but on the con- trary, it is more loosely defined. Dillenius, in his edition of the Synopsis, introduced considerable correction both in the racter of the genus and the synonyms, and the true Junc * Bauh. Pin., p. Il. + Historia Plantarum, p. 1302. thus -on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 293 |. thus described: * Calyce hexaphyllo, staminibus totidem, quot sunt calycis folia, et semine multo in vasculo seminali recondito a Scirpo differt *." The species are also divided into those which are leafy and those which are leafless. Scheuchzer and Haller have included the Gramina juncea and the Gramina hirsuta in their Juncoides, rejecting at the same time from the. former family the Eriophora and some other genera which Ray had retained. The real Junci, such as acutus, glaucus, effusus, &c. rank under a separate division, with this definition : * Flosculi hexapetali, rosacei, sex scilicet petalis in orbem posi- tis constantes."—** Vascula seminalia triquetra aut ex triquetro rotundata, trivalvia, septoque per medium cujusque valve lon- gitudinem procedente, in tria loculamenta divisa, seminibusque plurimis plerumque, ac minutissimis repleta, a Juncoide autem spe- cialiter differt, scirpis teretibus, prorsus enodibusT," &c. Tour- nefort, whose attention was chiefly arrested by the corol, has in- cluded in his character all three of these strongly-marked families, because he found their petals, otherwise called the leaflets of the calyx, to correspond. "The penetrating Micheli, however, led more by the internal structure of plants, adopted two distinct genera; the first, Juncus, which he describes as having a trilocu- lar, many-seeded capsule ; the other, Juncoides, with a unilocular, three-seeded capsule. The great Linnæus, guided by Tournefort, re-joined them ; and at the same time adopted in his generic cha- racter the peculiarity of the Gramina hirsuta, as being unilocular; —by which inconsistency the real Junci are all excluded! Jussieu . does not describe the cells in his generic definition ; but at the head of the natural family he calls them trilocular. The Gramina hirsuta seem to have been first taken up by | J. Bauhin under the name of Luzula. Cesalpinus calls the Jun- * Raii Syn, 3d ed, 431, t Scheuchzer’s Agrostographia, p. 987. 2Q2 à cus 294. Mr. J. E. BicueNo's Observations cus campestris, Linn. * Herba Luziola vulgo ;" and the reason, as Gerard informs us, is, that the heads of the flowers shine in the night; ** wherefore in Italy they call it Luciola quia noctu lu- cet." Tabernæmontanus and Ruppius call the family Cyperella ; Scheuchzer, Haller, and Micheli, Juncoides; Willdenow (Hort. Be- rol.), Lamarck and Decandolle (Flor. Franc.), and Désvaux, have established the genus under the name of Luzula. The last-named botanist has published a paper on the subject in the Journal de Botanique, vol. i. p. 131; and the alteration has been recognised by our own learned and indefatigable countryman, Mr. Brown, in his Prodromus Flore Nove Hollandie. The different habit and striking character of the two families would have been enough to have caused their separation; but, sanctioned by these weighty autho- rities at home and abroad, it can no longer be a subject of doubt. In distinguishing the species of Luzule, I have derived great assistance from observing the shape of the seeds, and of what I have ventured to call the Coruncula, attached to them; the figure of which, if well observed, will set at rest any hesitation that may exist about the British species. The same appendage is incident to many of the real Junci, and may be particularly remarked in J. acutus, maritimus, triglumis, castaneus; and in the foreign J. grandiflorus, Linn., now made a new genus by Desvaux, on account of this striking character, under the name of Marsippo- spermum. The seeds of Narthecium ossifragum, which is nearly allied to the plants under discussion, have an integument of the same nature. Besides the attempt to adopt a new genus into the British Flora, I have given in the following pages what I conceive to be : amended characters of all the species of Juncus and Luzula yet discovered in Great Britain; and have added some few new ones, which were either imperfectly known, or regarded only as varieties. on thé Genus Juncus of Linneus. 295 varieties. The synonyms I have introduced are not numerous; but they have been collated with care, and I trust may be relied on. The Linnean genus Juncus includes a great variety of species. In the third edition of the Species Plantarum, eighteen are de- ' scribed, besides a great number of varieties. Murray has twenty- two; Gmelin thirty-five; Lamarck, in the Encyclopedia Methodique, thirty-two; Willdenow, forty ; and Rostkov, fifty-two. Almost all the new ones belong to the true Junci; and it is fortunate for science that so numerous a tribe may be so naturally and easily subdivided: Ist, into those with LEAFLESS sTEMs, including the original and true Rushes, beginning with Juncus acutus and ending with J. filiformis: 2dly, Such as have cHANNELLED LEAVES, embracing among the British species the Linnean bulbo- sus, bufonius, trifidus, and uliginosus; J. squarrosus belongs to this series, but does not follow any other species with a very close affinity ; J. trifidus connects itself with the leafless subdivision by its entire want of leaves in some situations, and in some degree with the Luzude by its fimbriated scales: it is. nearly allied to uliginosus, with which it is linked by the supinus of Hoffman and Don’s Herbarium Britannicum: 3dly, Those with JoINTED LEAVES succeed, a most distinct and natural family, connected with the last subdivision by J. triglumis and biglumis, which have cellular-knotted leaves, and ending in the new species, which were included by Linnæus in his articulatus. This series, in order to connect it with the former, begins with those which are least complete in the joints of the leaves, and ends with such as have the most distinct and perfect articulations. It would seem, in- deed, as if the channelled leaves of this genus were imperfect articulate leaves. It is necessary to add a word or two in explanation of some terms I have used in | my descriptions differently from some other botanists. - 296 Mr. J. E. Bicueno’s Observations botanists. That which they have denominated the leaves of the true Junci, beginning with glaucus and ending with filiformis, I have regarded as barren stems, and for these reasons :—the spe- cies which are most nearly allied to them, having leaves, produce them from a membranous integument sheathing the base of the stem, as in J. acutus and maritimus. They are generall y indeed seta- ceous, channelled, and of a totally different appearance from the culm which they accompany. Examples may be found in their congeners J. bulbosus of Linnæus, squarrosus, and bufonius; and in many plants more remotely allied, such as man y of the Eriophora, Scheni and Scirpi. Of the last genus, some of the species pro- duce leaves constantly, as Scirpus fluitans, acicularis, setaceus, &c.: others sparingly, as cæspitosus; and others none at all, as palus- tris and multicaulis. But the manner in which the leaves are de- veloped in Juncus trifidus and filiformis, shows in a satisfactory manner that the scales and the awns at the bottom of the stem of J. glaucus, and the other leafless species, are of the same na- ture as those in the plants just named. "The scales, which are | first produced at the base of the stem of J. trifidus, are awnless. As the plant advances the new scales become awned, and after- wards the awns of the following scales are successively enlarged, until at last a complete leaf is developed. The J. filiformis pro- duces awns of the same peculiar nature; but they are seldom elongated into leaves. A similar structure is present in some of the Scirpi. The Nardus stricta, and many others of the Grasses, show at first, in the development of their leaves, the same unsuc- cessful attempts. | | Linnæus and his successors have described the panicle of J. acutus and maritimus as terminal, accom panied by a two-leaved, spinous, involucre; while they have called the panicle of J. glaucus, effusus, conglomeratus, and filiformis, lateral, This involves their descrip- on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 297 descriptions in needless obscurity; and especially since no dif- ference of organization is apparent among any of these species. Why the panicle of J. maritimus should be described as terminal, and that of conglomeratus as lateral, is irreconcileable with any theory of inflorescence which the Linnean terms countenance. If the elongation beyond the panicle be an involucral leaf in the one, it ought to hold good in the whole of the leafless subdivision, The more consistent and more natural method seems to be, to describe the panicle as lateral, where a similar structure of the stem is continued above the panicle as exists below it; and to denominate the spinous support at the base a bracte. Its ana- logy to a similar production in J. bulbosus, Linn., squarrosus, tri- Jidus, and many of the Scirpi and Eriophora, where the support is indisputably called a bracte, justifies the opinion. The mem- branous scales at the base of the flowers are for convenience . called flower-scales. i . Specimens of the plants* here described accompany this Me- moir. ~ ! JUNCUS. R vs n. Cal. hexaphyllus. Cor. nulla. Caps. supera, trivalvis, trilocula- ris: loculamenta polysperma. * Culmo nudo. 1: Juncus ACUTUS. | . | Juncus culmo nudo pungente, paniculá laterali, bracteá spinosa, capsulis mucronatis subrotundis calyce duplo longioribus. J. culmo nudo, panicula terminali, involucro diphyllo spinoso, capsula subrotunda acuta, petalis duplo longiore. Rostkov Monograph. 14. ; * These are deposited in te Museum of the Linnean Society. ME J. culmo 208 Mr. J. E. BrcneNo's Observations J. culmo nudo tereti, paniculá terminali, involucro diphyllo spi- noso, capsulis subrotundis mucronatis. Fl, Brit. 374. Engl. Dot. xxiii. 1614. J. maritimus, culmo nudo apice bivalvi, paniculâ terminali subum- bellatà, capsula calyce duplo longiore. Lamarck Encycl. iii. p.258. Flor. Fran. iii. 162. J. culmo subnudo tereti mucronato, paniculá icti ls involucro diphyllo spinoso. Sp. PI. 463. Huds. 148. With. 346. J. pungens, sive acutus capitulis Sorghi. - Bauh. Hist. ii. 520. Moris. s. viii. t. 10. f. 15. J. maritimus capitulis Sorghi. Park. 1193. 4. J. acutus capitulis Sorghi. Bauh. Pin. 11. Raii Syn. 431. Angl. Acure Rusu. Sea Rush, Great sharp Sea Rush, Prick- ing large Sea Rush. | In arenosis maritimis, precipue cumulis, rariüs. Peren. July. Root fibrous, running deep into the sand. Stem three feet high, erect, straight, simple, leafless, cylindrical, even, terminating in a very sharp and rigid point. Leaves like the stem, but smaller and shorter. Panicle lateral, compound, many-flowered, first branch the longest. Bracte membranous, and dilated at the base, very pungent. Flowers clustered. Calyz-leaflets ovate, obtuse. Capsule broad-oval, somewhat three-sided, mucronate, shining, three-celled; each cell many-seeded. Seeds ovate, attached to the dissepiment, shining: Coruncle elongated at each end, This plant and the following, though separated by the old bo- tanists, have been considered as the same species by Linnæus and many of his disciples. The character first applied by La- marck—capsula calyce duplo longiore—is excellent; and: by ob- serving on the Genus Juncus of Linnaeus. 299 serving this, and the large, shining, roundish capsule and blunt calyx, the botanist will be at no loss to distinguish the species. Sir James E. Smith, Eng. Bot. l c., conjectures that Homer, in his Battle of the Frogs and Mice, had this Rush in view as the weapon with which to arm his imaginary champions. It is not so common in England as the next species, and is not found in any country further to the North. It is one of those useful - plants, which Providence has ordained to bind the loose sands of the shore together as a barrier to the ocean, 2. JUNCUS MARITIMUs. Juncus culmo nudo pungente, paniculá laterali subproliferà, bracteâ spinosá, capsulá oblonga acuta longitudine calycis. J. culmo nudo, panicula terminali prolifera, involucro diphyllo spinoso, capsula oblonga acuta petalis equali, Rost. Mono- graph. 16. J. culmo nudo tereti, paniculà terminali prolifera, involucro di- phyllo spinoso erecto, capsulis oblongis. Flor. Brit. 375. Eng. Bot. xxiv. 1725. - | J. acutus, culmo nudo mucronato pungente, panicula involucrata laterali, capsula longitudine calycis. Lamarck Encycl. iii. p.253. Flor. Fran. iii. 163. ; J. acutus B. Sp. Pl. A64. Huds. 148. With. 346. Willd. Sp. Pl. 205. J. acutus maritimus Anglicus. Park.1193.7. Moris.s. viii. t. 10. SJ. 14. Raii Syn. 431. ! Angl. Sea Rusu. Lesser Sharp Sea Rush. English Sea Hard Rush. | In paludibus maritimis copiosè, praecedentis socius. Peren. August. Root fibrous, thick. Stem two feet or more high, leafless, erect, VOL. XII. ! 2 R glaucous, 300 ` Mr. J. E. BrengNo's Observations glaucous, rigid, tapering to a stiff point; sheaths at the base brown, polished, even. Panicle erect, decompound, as if pro- liferous, shorter than the stem; branches very unequal, the first much longer than the rest. Bracte membranous at the base, spinous, subulate. Flower-scales lanceolate, acuminate. Calyx-leaflets lanceolate, acute, zagged towards the point. Capsule linear-oblong, triangular, three-celled, light brown. Seeds ovate; coruncle elongated at each end. The J. maritimus is a slenderer, lower plant, with an oblong and smaller capsule than the last. The panicle is also much more branched, the first branch far overtopping the others, and the calyx-leaflets lanceolate and acute. The two species cannot be © mistaken if seen together when ripe. It is common on most parts of the coast; and, like the last, prevents the sea from making incursions on the land. The flower-scales in this species, and in most of the others, are very much disposed to become foliaceous. j theta est | -+. 8, JUNCUS GLAUCUS. Juncus aphyllus, paniculà laterali erecta angustá, capsulis el- lipticis acutiusculis calyce brevioribus. J. culmo nudo glauco apice inflexo tereti, panicula laterali erecta, capsulis oblongis acutis. Rost. Monograph. 9. J. culmo nudo glauco apice inflexo, panicula laterali effusa, ra- mis elongatis, floribus acuminatis, Willd. Sp. Pl. ii. 206. J. culmo nudo stricto glauco, panicula laterali erecta, capsulis ellipticis acutis. Eng. Bof. x. 665. Flor. Brit. 375. J. culmo striato glauco, basi stipulis fuscis, panicula. laterali sparsa. Sibth. Fl. Oz. 113. . : : ri J. effusus B. Huds. 149. J. inflexus. Leers 88. t. xiii.. f. 3. (char. spec. dub.) — Relh. 141. With. 345. Abbot, T8. Huds. Fl. Angl. 1st ed. 130. J. acutus on the Genus Juncus of Linneus, ; 301 J. acutus vulgaris. Park. 1193. 1. Moris. s. viii. t. 10. f. 13. J. acutus. Ger. Em. 35. Raii Syn. 432. Angl. Harp Rusu. Common Hard Rush. Sharp Rush. Peren. July, August. Root creeping, black.. Stem from one to two feet high, striated, glaucous, rigid, terminating in a sharp, tapering, frequently inċurved summit; sheathed at the base with large, brown, shining scales. Panicle lateral, bursting about one-third the . length of the stem below the top, erect, loose, branched. Ca- lyx-leaflets striated, very acuminate ; three inner leaflets shorter. Flowers hexandrous. Capsule elliptical, three-sided, narrower towards the top, mucronate, shining. However easily distinguished this plant may be on’ examination, - it is uncertain whether it was known to Linnæus, although a pro- duction of Sweden, or he has included it in his J. inflexus, which no botanist since his time has understood. Willdenow has suf- fered the latter species to remain in his edition of the Species Plantarum, and adds from his own observation this remark: ** Culmi suprema pars non est teres, sed folii ad instar compres- sus*." Sibthorp, who seems to have taken the J. glaucus up from Ehrhart (Gram. 85.), first introduced the trivial name into the British Flora, It may be known even at a distance from the soft Rushes, by its rigid stem, of a glaucous hue, and scanty pa- nicle; and, on a closer view, by its pointed capsule. Wahlen- burg (Flor. Lapp. p. 79.) says of those specimens he found in Lapland, that the flowers were larger than those figured in En- glish Botany. * The authors of the Flore Francaise; vol. v. have expressed their opinion that the J. inflexus of their third volume is nothing more than J, glaucus; adding at the same time, that the real J, inflexus, Linn, has but three stamina, 2n2 - PPM 302 ` Mr. J. E. BreneNno’s Observations 4. JUNCUS CONGLOMERATUS. Juncus aphyllus, panicula laterali conglobata, floribus triandris, capsulis retusis. J. culmo nudo stricto, paniculâ laterali conglobatà, capsulis retu- sis, floribus triandris. Flor. Brit. p Eng. Bot. xii. 835. Rost. Monograph. 7. J. culmo nudo stricto, panicula "laterali coarctato-capitata. Willd. Sp. Pl. ii. 205. j J. culmo nudo stricto, capitulo laterali. Sp. Pl. 464. Flor. Dan. 1094. Leers 87. t. xii. f. 1. Huds. 148. Relh. 140. Sibth. 113. J. levis vulgaris panicula compactiore. Raz Syn. 432. J. levis panicula non sparsa. Bauh. Pin. 12. Moris. s. viii. £. 10. F1. Angl. RouND-HEADED Rusu. Clustered Rush. Conglomerated Rush. Common Rush. Soft Rush. In pascuis et ad vias, locis humidioribus. Peren. July, August. Root horizontal, creeping, fibrous. Stem two feet high, sheathed atthe base with large black scales, minutely striated, very acute, but not pungent. Panicle lateral, many-flowered, densely con- glomerate. Calya-leaflets lanceolate, two-nerved. Stamens three. Stigma very much fringed. Capsule obovate, retuse, almost three-lobed, about as long as the calyx. The dénse panicle distinguishes this species at once from its congeners. It is used in common with J. effusus to make the wicks of rush-lights, pith in toys, mats, little baskets, chair- bottoms, ropes and lines. Mr. White in his Natural History of Selborne, (Letter 26.) has given a pleasing account of its uses to the thrifty housewives of Hampshire. Rushes are employed by | the on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 308 the cleanly peasantry to strew their floors; and Shakespeare, whose observation was alive to the most insignificant incidents, has many allusions to this custom. 5. JUNCUS EFFUSUS. Juxcvs aphyllus, paniculá laterali effusâ supradecomposita, cap- sulis turbinatis apice subtruncatis. J. culmo nudo stricto, panicula laterali supradecomposita effusa, capsulis clavatis apice truncatis. Rost. Monograph. 10. J. culmo nudo stricto, paniculá laterali effus4, floribus oblongis. Willd. Sp. Pl. ii. 205. J. culmo nudo stricto, panicula laterali effusá supradecompositá, capsulis obtusis. Flor. Brit. 376. Eng. Bot. xii. 836. J. culmo nudo stricto, paniculà laterali. Sp. Pl. 464. Flor. Dan. 1096. Leers 88. t. xiii. f. 2. Huds. 148. Relh. 141. Sibth.113. J. levis vulgaris, paniculà sparsà, nostras. Rai Syn. 432. J. levis vulgaris, paniculà sparsâ, major. Park. 1191. 2. Moris. s. viii. 4. 10. f. à. J. levis. Ger. Em. 35. Angl. Sort Rusu. Common Soft Rush. Common Rush, Seaves. In pascuis humidis, copiose. Peren. July, August. Root creeping, black. Stem two feet or more high, pale-green, soft, pliable, very finely striated. Panicle effuse, divaricate, very much branched, with numerous flowers. Calyz-leaflets - subulato-lanceolate, acuminate, two-nerved. Flowers frequently triandrous. Capsule small, obovate, slightly retuse, nearly truncate, pale brown, with no persistent style. This. 304 ; Mr. J. E. BrcowEeno’s Observations This plant is better adapted than the last for use in all the little arts of weaving and platting :— ‘¢ Viminibus mollique detexere junco.” It is cultivated in Japan for the purpose of making mats of an extremely delicate texture, which are used in the place of car- pets. Both this and conglomeratus indicate a better soil where they grow than glaucus. From the latter it is easily separated by the absence of the glaucous hue about the stems, and the obtuse capsule: and its effuse and decompound panicle at once distin- guishes it from J. conglomeratus. There are intermediate appear- ances when young, between effusus and conglomeratus, which are most easily disposed of by observing the distance the panicle breaks forth from the summit; the former having frequently one- third of the stem above the panicle, while the latter has not more than three or four inches. When further advanced, the shape of the capsule is a sure criterion. The J. levis alter of Moris. s. viii. 231. 5. is probably nothing more than this ** brevior et crassior." 6. JUNCUS FILIFORMIS. Juncus aphyllus, culmo filiformi nutante, paniculá laterali sub- simplici pauciflorâ, capsulis subrotundis. J. culmo nudo filiformi nutante, umbella laterali subsimplici pau- ciflora, pedunculis subbifloris, capsulis obtusis. Rost. Mono- graph. 12. J. culmo nudo filiformi nutante, paniculà laterali bracteatä sub- ` simplici, capsulis subrotundis. Flor. Brit. 377. Eng. Bot. xvii. 1175. | J. culmo filiformi nudo, paniculd brevissimà pauciflorà laterali. | Lamarck Encycl. iii. 254. n J. culmo on the Genus Juncus of Linnaeus, ` ‘808 J. culmo nudo filiformi nutante, paniculá laterali. ‘Sp. Pl. 465. Leers 89. t. xiii. f. À. Huds, 149. ` Smith Spicileg. t. 8. J. parvus, calamo supra paniculam compactam longius producto. Raii Syn. 432. Angl. Least Rusu. Thread-form Rush. In irriguis alpinis, inque Anglia preecipué ad ripas lacuum bore- alium. Peren. July, August. Root creeping, horizontal, fibrous. Stem soft, generally a few, rarely ten inches high, very slender, tapering towards the sum- mit, frequently drooping, sheathed at the base with scales, which are light-brown, obtuse, remarkably awned. Panicle from three- to eight-flowered, nearly simple, remarkable for bursting from about the middle of the stem. Flowers sessile, supported by a small bracte. Fruit peduncled. —Calya-leaflets lanceolate, acute, very nearly equal; keel three-nerved. Cap- sule globose, about the length of the calyx. This plant has never been found in England, excepting on the margin of the lakes in the North, being a similar situation to that in which it is found on the Continent. Pursh states it to be frequent in boggy mountain-meadows in North America. Its diminutive size, and long slender summit above the panicle, suffi- ciently mark its character; though in habit it approaches very nearly to the two last described. Indeed, I anticipated a closer re- semblance when I found three stamens to be common to both the other soft Rushes conglomeratus and effusus; and 1 examined nume- rous fresh specimens of filiformis, with the view to discover the same numerical structure, but could never observe it. The small awnat the point of the radical sheaths appears to be an attempt towards the 506 . Mr. J. E. BicuaNo's Observations the production of leaves; a circumstance which is seen more completely developed in J. trifidus. The English name, by which it is generally known, is objectionable on account of its having been applied by the old botanists to Scirpus setaceus; but it is better to retain the commonly-received name, if it is at all tole- rable, than to introduce a new one. ** Folia canaliculata. 7. JUNCUS SQUARROSUS. Juncus culmo nudo, foliis setaceis canaliculatis, paniculé termi- nali elongatá, capsulis obovatis. J. culmo nudo, panicula terminali elongata, capsulis obtusis, fo- liis setaceis canaliculatis. Rost. Monograph. 17. J. culmo nudo, foliis setaceis, paniculà terminali composità glo- meratá. Flor. Brit. 318. Eng. Bot. xiii. 933. = J. culmo nudo, foliis setaceis, capitulis glomeratis aphyllis. Sp. Pl. 465. Flor. Dan. t. 30. Huds. 149. Relh. 142. Sibth. 114. à J. montanus palustris. Ra Syn. 432. Gramen junceum palustre humilius, folia et spica Junci. Moris. s: viii. f. 9. f. 13. J. acutus Cambro-britanicus. Park. 1198. 2. Angl. Moss Rusu. Heath Rush. Welsh Rush. Ragged Rush. Goose Corn. In montosis et ericetis sterilibus, praecipue solo spongioso, copiose. Peren. June, July. Root fibrous. Stem a foot or more high, straight, rigid, striated, leafless. Leaves in tufts, setaceous, channelled, rigid, pointed, smooth, dilated and sheathing at the base, not half so long as the on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 307 the stem. Panicle terminal, erect, branched, clustered. Bractes membranous, sheathing, brown, striated, terminating in a stiff sétaceous point. Calya-leaflets chocolate-coloured, scariose at the edge. Capsules obovate, Fu: obscurely three-sided, ob- tuse, mucronate. This plant fully justifies the proverbial worthlessness of the Rush. It indicates a most unprofitable soil, and is well known from the harshness of its herbage. Lime is recommended by agriculturists as the means of destroying it. What relation it has to Geese in Ray's English name I know not ; excepting, in- deed, that they may frequent some places where it grows. . The figures in Ger. 18. 4. Gramen junceum maritimum, which Ray quotes with a doubt, and in Ger. em. 21. 4., copied by Parkinson, p. 1270., although referred to this plant by modern authors, cannot be cited with any certainty, since they have the male spikes of a Carex de- lineated at the top, and the capsules bear little resemblance. The leaves and root, indeed, are faithfully represented. This species has but little affinity with any other; and, when once known, is not likely to be mistaken. 8. JUNCUS COMPRESSUS. Juncus culmo simplici folioso compresso, foliis linearibus mar- gine. incurvis, capsulis rotundis calyce noeh eis ia terminali bracteá breviore. ; ; | | Je foliis upeanbas. Jeune conesvi capiau, piang, culmo esso. Jacq. Vindb. 285. : Bo J: bulbosus, culmo folioso simplici Toi pressiasculo, foliis cana- liculatis, corymbo terminali foliis floralibus breviore, capsula subrotunda obtusa petalis longiore. Rost. Monograph. 23. J. bulbosus, culmo compresso indiviso, foliis linearibus canalicu- latis, corymbo terminali, calycinis foliolis obtusis, capsula sub- - rotunda obtusa brevioribus. Willd. ii. 213. VOU. XII. 28 J. bulbosus, $08 Mr. J. E. Bicueno’s Observations J. bulbosus, foliis linearibus canaliculatis, culmo basi folioso, pa- niculá cymosa, capsulis obtusis. Flor. Brit.381. Eng. Bot. xiii. J. bulbosus, folis linearibus canaliculatis, capsulis obtusis. Sp. ‘Pl. 466. Huds.150. Relh. 143. Sibth. 115. Abbot, 79. -Leers Fl. Herb. 89. t. xiii. f: 7. J..parvus cum pericarpiis rotundis. Raii Syn. 433. Gramen juncoides junci sparsa panicula. Park. 1190. 7.? | Gramen junceum aquaticum. Ger. 11. 2. Ger. Ein. 12.2. Park. 3260; 3. Angl. Rounp-rruitep Rusu. Rushie Water Grass. Habitat in pascuis humidis. Peren. July, August. : Root creeping, horizontal, fibrous, not bulbous. Stem erect, from six to twelve inches high, simple, cylindrical at the base, com- pressed upwards, smooth, leafy, particularly at the base. Leaves linear, channelled, dilated and involute at the base, striated. Panicle inclining to a corymb, compound, many-flowered, the first branch longer than the others. Bractes foliaceous, chan- nelled; the lowermost longer than the panicle. Calya-leaflets obtuse, brown, scariose at the edge, shorter than the capsule, Capsule rotund, very obtuse, mucronate. I have ventured to separate Linneus’s Juncus bulbosus into two species, and to abolish the trivial name altogether, in consequence . of the confusion of synonyms that it has occasioned, and its total want of appropriateness. The plant bearing this name in the first edition of the Species Plantarum, is the uliginosus of Smith and of the present paper (which has a bulbous root), as appears from. the remarks of Ehrhart; and the transfer of it in the succeeding editions to the present plant, seems to have originated in an over- sight of the illustrious Swede. The name given by Jacquin is : very on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 300 very significant ; for which reason I have adopted it. I think there -can be little doubt of the figures which I have quoted belonging to this species, though that in Eng. Bot. has the capsule badly re- presented, and more like J. bottnicus of Wahlenburg. J. .compressus is to be distinguished from J. cenosus, the next species, by its lighter colour, broader and more concave leaves, the capsule be- ing longer than the calyx, and the lower bracte longer than the panicle. The leafy stem and blunt calyx-leaflets are sufficient marks to separate it from the rest of this subdivision. It is ge- nerally an inland plant; whereas cenosus is confined to the shore. The authors of the Flore Francaise seem to have observed the dif- ference of the two plants, and have, I conceive, described the sea- shore species under their bulbosus, and the inland one under J. Ge- rardi, v. 5. p. 308. : : 9. JUNCUS CGNOsUs. Juncus culmo simplici folioso, foliis setaceis canaliculatis, cap- sulis obovatis obtusis longitudine calycis, paniculâ terminali subsimplici. bracteá longiore. - Angl. ‘Mop Rusu. | Habitat in salsis copiosè. Peren. July, August. Root creeping, fibrous. Stem from two inches to a foot high, erect, leafy, simple, smooth. Leaves setaceous, channelled, slightly _ striated. Panicle inclined to a corymb, terminal, erect, few- flowered, longer than. the bracte. — Bracte at the. base of the pa- | : nicle setaceous. Calya-leaftets obtuse, dark chocolate-coloured, as long as the capsule ; three inner leaflets scariose at the mar- gin. Capsules somewhat unilateral, obovate, very obtuse. , I rely principally on the shape of the capsule, the proportion it bears to the calyx, the more rigid nature of the stem and leaves, the length of the bracte, and the altogether darker colour of the 232 plant, 310 Mr. J. E. Brcueno’s Observations plant, as marks to distinguish this from the preceding species. It is very plentiful in those places on the coast subject to be overflowed by the sea, and varies very much in size. Virgil's epithet, *' limosus juncus," applies to most of this family, but to none more forcibly than this. The Flor. Dan. figure 431, and Morison's sect. viii. t. 9. f. 11. resemble this more than the last. The names of Lob. 18., Ger. 18. 1., Ger. em. 21.4., and Park.1270.6., correspond much. better with J. cwnosus than with J. squarrosus ; and indeed Ray, in the first edition of his Synopsis, so applied them: but was afterwards induced to change his opinion by the observations of Dr. Plukenet (vid. Philosophical Letters of Ray, p. 232.), who says, *' I must needs acknowledge that I am not a little entangled in my thoughts about the Juncus parous cum peri- carpiis rotundis, J. B., which though you are pleased to make the same with the Gram. junc. marit. Lob., 1 cannot easily obtain with myself a compliance herein, but do rather accept it as the Juncus acutus Cambro-britannic. Park., and which I take to bea true and genuine Rush, as you most truly have observed. But unto this you are pleased to apply the Junc. Cambro-brit., Park. (h. e.), Gr. junc. maritim., Lob., whose Icon of it (and indeed so do those of all other authors) agrees exactly with our Moss- Rush, the capsules whereof are somewhat elongated and pinched in to- wards the top, resembling more a cone than a globe, the capsules of the former being more accurately round, according as its name imports.” Ray, however, in his second edition of the Synopsis, states, that though he agrees with Dr. P. in rejecting the syno- nyms of Bauhin, which he had before quoted, he could not as- sent to this being the Juncus acutus alpinus Cambro-britanicus, Park. It induced him, nevertheless, to omit this synonym under J. squarrosus, to which, in the first edition, he had appropriated it—a change which I cannot but think was erroneous. If the di- stinction of the two plants J. compressus and cenosus be admitted, the on the Genus Juncus of Linncus. 0. the difficulty, perhaps, may be explained ; since the synonyms of Bauhin are all applicable to the latter species, and the figures of Gerard, C. Bauhin, Parkinson, and Johnson are not to be de- . pended on, seeing that they represent the male spike of a Carer terminating the panicle, and that Gerard's is the only original figure among them, the rest being merely copied from him. Vail- lant (Botan. Paris. 109, 110.) has arranged the syrionyms of the old authors, as far as relates to J. squarrosus and bulbosus Linn. in a more satisfactory manner than any person I have consulted. * 10. Juncus BUFONIUS. Juxcus culmo dichotomo, foliis angulatis, floribus solitariis ses- silibus, calycibus setaceis capsulà duplo longioribus. Baer burg. Flor. Lap. 81. J. culmo folioso subramoso, foliis linearibus 'canaliculatis pani- cula dichotoma, ramis multifloris, petalis acuminatis capsula obtusa longioribus. Rost. Monograph. 20. J. culmo dichotomo, foliis angulosis, floribus solitariis sessilibus. Sp. Pi. 4G6. Flor. Dan. T. t.1098. Leers 90. xiii. 8. Huds. 150, Relh. 144. Sibth.115. With. 348. J. foliis linearibus canaliculatis, culmo dichotomo racemoso, flo- ribus solitariis. Flor. Brit. 381. Eng. Bot. xii. 802. J. palustris humilior erectus. Rai Syn. 434. Gramen juncaum vulgare pepe paleaceis. Moris. s. viii. t. 9. J. 14. Gramen j junceum parvum sive Holostium Matthioli. Park. 1190. Gramen junceum. Ger. 4. Ger. em. 4. B. Gramen juncoides minimum Anglo-britannicum, Holosteo Matthioli congener, aut Bufonis Gramini Flandrico. Rai Syn. 434. Gramen junceum minimum, Holosteo Matthioli congener. Park. 1270. Angl. 512 Mr. J. E. BricuzNo's Observations Angl. Toap Rusu. Toad Grass. Rush Grass. Habitat in humidis et aquosis. Ann. June, July, August. Root fibrous. Stems from an inch to a foot high, numerous, di- chotomous, upright, cylindrical, smooth, striated, leafy. Leaves linear, channelled, acute, dilated at the base, not jointed. Flowers solitary, rarely in pairs, sessile, erect, growing in some- what of a spike on the terminating branches. Calyz-leaflets se- taceous, acuminate, with the keel green and the remainder scariose. Bractes ovate, scariose. Capsules elliptical, rather ob- tuse, shorter by half than the calyx. Seeds very numerous. The solitary flowers and long silky calyx sufficiently mark the character of this species. Like others of its congeners, it is occa- sionally gemmiparous. It is subject to great variation in size, owing to the soil in which it grows. Sometimes it may be ob- served on a sandy coast not an inch high, with a capsule not quite obtuse; at other times, in a richer soil, where water has stood during the winter, it may be seen shooting into a long simple culm teeda a foot in height. The var. @ is thus described by Dil- - lenius: * Priori simili (?. e. the common one), sed multo minus, et minus ramosum, coloris plerumque rubentis : florendi etiam tem- pore differt, nam mensis et sesquimensis spatio illud antecedere solet." I could never perceive that it was worth much attention. The old botanists, from whom Linnæus adopted his trivial name, imagined some affinity to exist between this species and the toad, because this animal inhabits similar places. A seedling plant is figured in Rose's Elements of Botany, A ppendia, t. 2. f. 5. A. and B. The Juncus gracilis, published in Eng. Bot. xxxi. 2174., has an inflorescence and fructification the most like this, but that has broader and emarginate valves to the fruit. 11. Juncus on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 313 | 11. Juncus GRACILIS. í Juncus foliis linearibus planis, caule dichotomo racemoso foliis altiore, floribus solitariis. Compend. Flor. Brit. 56. Juncus gracilis. Eng. Bot. xxxi. 2174. Angl. StgNpxR Rusu. Slender spreading Rush, E. B. J. c. Habitat in paludibus alpinis Scoticis, rariüs. Peren. July. “ The Root consists of woolly fibres, and has the appearance of being perennial. Stem very slender, a foot or more in height, naked, except at the base and summit. Radical leaves but one or two, much shorter than the stem, narrow, flat, slightly thick- ened, or somewhat involute, at their edges, not channelled. The top of the Stem terminates in a few racemose forked branches, with two or three leaves at the base. Flowers solitary, mostly sessile. Calyx-leaves sharp-pointed. Valves of the ane blunt and emarginate. * Found by Mr. G. Dow i in 1795 or 1796, by the side of a rivu- let in marshy ground, among the mountains of Angus-shire, but very rarely. It appears to us to be a nondescript: but we. re- ceived from Mr. Dickson, some years before the above date, a specimen not so far advanced towards sins shied of what. seems to us the same species. “ The inflorescence and fructification of this Rush come nearest to bufonius, t. 802.; bui the fewness of the flowers, taller stem, and flatter leaves, as well as the broader and emarginate valves of the fruit, serve well to distinguish it; not to mention the pro- bably perennial root. Eng. Bot. I. c." This species is unknown to me, except from the description I have here quoted. I may however add, that it is not the gracilis of Roth Germ. i. 155. ii. 402., which is J. capitatus, Willd. ; nor of 314 Mr. J. E. Breneno’s Observations of Brown's Prod. Flor. Nov. Holl. ; and whose name, therefore, being first applied to another species, ought to take precedence of that in Eng. Bot. Plants brought from the Cambridge garden as au- thentic specimens are, I think, a variety of J. pygmaeus of the French botanists; but they are so unlike the figure in English Botany, that 1 cannot persuade niyself but that there is some mistake. _ 12. Juncus TRIFIDUS. Juncus culmo nudo, capsulà oblonga calycem c quante, bracteis foliaceis canaliculatis floribusque tribus terminalibus. J. culmo basi nudo, apice triphyllo subtrifloro. Rost. Mono- graph. 54. J. culmo nudo, foliis floribusque tribus terminalibus. Sp. PI. 465. Flor. Dan. 107. Huds. 149. Lightf. 183. t. 9. f. 1. With. 345. - Flor. Brit. 378. Eng. Bot. xxi. 1482. J. monanthos. Jacq. Obs. 33. t. 4. f. 1. | J. acumine reflexo, minor et trifidus. Bauh. Prod. t. 92. | Angl. Tarne-teavep Rusu. Trifid Rush. Three-cleft Rush. Habitat in paludibus alpinis Scoticis, rariüs. Peren. July. me | Root creeping, fibrous. Stems very numerous, from a few inches to a foot in height, filiform; at the base sheathed with nume- rous awned brown scales, which are terminated abruptly with a membranous and fringed border; awns in the upper scales more or less leafy. Flowers from one to three, terminal, ac- . «ompanied by three foliaceous channelled bractes, two of them near the flower, the third sometimes at a distance, membranous . at their base, fringed at their border. Calya-leaflets scarcely so long as the capsule. Capsule oblong, large, shining, acuminate ; cells few-seeded. 3 | | Lightfoot says that he found the Scotch specimens all with a single flower, corresponding with Jacquiu's J. monanthos. On the on the Genus Juncus of Linnaeus. | 315 the contrary, Wahlenburg informs us that he never met with the one-flowered variety in Lapland. It is also worthy of remark, that Linnzeus’s plant does not produce radical leaves ; whereas ours possesses them more or less, showing at the same time by the awn, which terminates the scales, many fruitless attempts at perfecting them, though they are more completely produced at every new effort. It is the connecting link between the Junci and the Luzule. =“ Mira omnino mihi videtur species,” says Wahlen- = burg, Flor. Lap. 81, ** ad radicem prorsus aphylla. . Radix re- pens cülmos multos fasciculatos exserens squamis tantum brevi- bus interstinctos. : Vaginze culmi basin vestientés brevi mucrone ornate, de cætero in fimbrias partite. - Folium in suprema parte culmi plerumque adest, bracteis simillimum; ligula fimbriata alba. Bractez canaliculatæ,; marginibus serrulatis, Semina in singula capsula pauca: de cætero quoque structura capsule inter Juncum et Luzulam ambigit. Capsula oblonga., J. monanthos, Jacq. differre mibi videtur: foliis. radicalibus ; et capsula ovali, duplo. maigre, caro excedente." 2 18. JUNCUS ULIGINOSUS. Juncus, foliis setaceis canaliculatis, floribus ternis sessilibus, cap- sulà obtusá calycem excedente, culmo bu boso radicante. J. foliis setaceis subnodoso-articulatis, capitulis trifloris su yproli- pet culmo bulboso radicanite. © on ee 380. Eng. — xii. J. XU 5 fol i080, fóribi T ascicu in : . setaceis articulato-nodosis. Sibth. 115. Gramen junceum minimum, capsulis bo rit he es Sy A34. | Gramen junceum capsulis triangulis minimum. Moris. a viii. t. 9. f. 3. sore. B. capitulis foliaceis et gemmiparis. Var. Rai Syn. 434. 1L VOL. XII. ST. | J. uligi- T 4 ar atit ti 283 'proliferis, foliis 316 Mr. J. E. BicuENo's Observations J. uliginosus. With. 348. | Gramen junceum minimum, paniculis foliaceis. Moris. s. viii. t. 9. f. à. G. junceum aquaticum paniculis cum foliis eapillaribus. Pluk. Phyt. t. 32. f. 3. Juncoides calyculis paleaceis, glomeratis folio varians. Scheuch. Agrost. 330. t. 7. f. 30. y. culmo longiore, foliis caulinis subnodoso-articulatis, capitulis proliferis. J. fluitans, culmo bulboso tenui radicante, foliis setaceis sub- nodoso-articulatis, capitulis trifloris subproliferis. Lamarck Dict. iii. 270. Flor. Gal. 152. J. uliginosus. Flor. Dan. 817. Angl. Bursous Rusu. Little bulbous Rush. The least tri- angular-seeded Rush. Peren. July, August. - Habitat in ericetis humidis arenosis, vel turfosis ; y in stagnis. Root fibrous. Stem bulbous at the base, erect, leafy, slender, branched upwards; branches divaricate. Leaves setaceous, smooth, channelled, cellular; cells in a double row, the par- titions of one being opposite to the middle of another in the corresponding series; in y some are articulate. Flowers three . together, lateral and terminal, sessile. Bractes small, scariose, shorter than the flowers, excepting in the viviparous variety as it is improperly called, in which they are lengthened out like the leaves. Cal yx-leaflets all of the same length, scariose at the edge, chocolate-coloured ; keel green. Capsule three-sided, obtuse, opake, somewhat longer than the calyx. + This plant has, till lately, been in a very unsettled state, as may be seen by the numerous synonyms quoted by most authors. It is not readily distinguishable in some states from other species; but on the Genus Juncus of. Linneus. 317 but its blunt capsule will enable the botanist to separate it from J. lampocarpus and acutiflorus ; and, besides the diagnostic marks mentioned under supinus and subverticillatus, the opake chocolate- coloured calyx and capsule are very constant characters. This is Haller's 1320, which he says he received from Dillenius as his Gramen junceum capsulis triangulis minimum ; so that this clears up all doubt about the synonym; and most probably the J. supinus of the Flore Francaise iii. 168. The var. B hás its little flower- heads more or less foliaceous and gemmiparous,—a monstrosity to which this and its near affinities are very liable. Wahlenburg, Fl. Lap. 82., suspects, erroneously, the figure of it in Eng. Bot. t. 801. to be the acutiflorus of Ebrhart, and of the present paper. The var. y, which is not uncommon, is very likely to prove a Tm ! 14. ‘Juncus SUPINUS. Juncus foliis canaliculatis filiformibus, capitulo trifloro tami nali secundo, bracteis setaceis foliaceis. | J. culmo dichotomo, foliis canaliculatis filiformibus, capitulo tri- - phyllo. Manch. Enum. Plant. 296. t: 5. Fl. Dan. 1099. Hof. Germ. 125. Don’s Herb. Brit. f. 4. 85. J. capitatus, foliis setaceis, capitulis terminali alarique subfoliosis, petalis acutis integris pericarpio zequalibus. | Meet Obser. Bot. p. 28. t. 2. f. 5. Schenus minimus, culmo tereti nudo, capitulo dimidiato involu- crato, involucris 3—5-phyllis, 1 valvula alters, subulata flores su- perante. - Symon's. Synop. Plant. 197. J. subverticillatus 8. Willd. ii. 212. Angl. Dwarr Rusu. Habitat in uliginosis. | - | Peren. July. | | p : Root fibrous, bulbous at the base. Stem erect, simple, two or three inches high. Leaves filiform, channelled, cellular. Flowers 272 three 318 Mr. J. E. BiombwUé Observations three together, terminal, clustered... .Bractes setaceous ; one or . more frequently foliaceous, longer than the flowers, and forcing them on one side. Calyz-leaflets lanceolate, chesnut-coloured. - Capsule oblong, rather — nb ne not quite so long as the calyx. : The synonyms I have — may I think e So on. The figure in Flor. Dan. 1099. represents the plant stronger than it usually is ; and in which case it occasionally produces branches of lateral flowers, but in its more common state they are only ter- minal. Bauhin, in his Hist. ii. 523., has probably described and . figured this species under his Juncus foliatus minimus. ‘The syno- nym brought from Symon’s Synopsis is determined by authentic specimens in the herbarium of my friend Mr. Edward Forster, F.L.S., which formerly belonged to Hudson, and from which. the character and description in that little work were drawn up. - Mr. George Don, who has the merit of first pointing out the species as of British growth, makes the following remarks: = “ I observed this plant, in October 1804, by the side of a rial near the summit of Ben Lawers, in a situation where the snow remains the greater part of the year, and not far from the spot where 1 first discovered the Juncus castaneus in May 1794, at which time the first-mentioned. place was covered with snow. I have cultivated the plant, and carefully compared my specimens in their different appearances with the figare in Flora Danica, which I consider as a just resemblance of this variable plant. The leaves which accompany the flowers, where they become terminal, give the plant the appearance of being. viviparous. ‘The plants, which I have cultivated, flowered in July; but in their native place they do not probably show their flowers earlier than — or September.” Dons Herb. Brit. fasc. v. 85. de This plant, to say the least of it, appears very different. Boni the rest. Its near approach to uliginosus, and the strong disposition e there on the Genus Juncus of Linneus’ 319 - there is in the bractes of all the species to become foliaceous, in- duces me to hesitate. The German botanists, however, whose acuteness is not often to be surpassed, continue to admit it as distinct. It is very small, not exceeding generally one or two inches in height. I met with it in boggy ground about Ambleside. RRR I "oliis articulatis. E 4 15. Juncus TRIGLUMIS. In uNcus foliis. subulatis, floribus ternis terminalibus JA LUE capsula obtusiuscula longitudine calycis. Wahlen. Flor. Lap. 84. J. „culmo | basi. folioso, foliis linearibus planis, . capitulo trifloro i in- volucrum subæquanti. Rost. Monograph. 52. mu J. foliis planis, gluma triflora terminali. Sp. PI. 467. “Flor. Tien 132. Huds. 151. Lightf: 186. t. 9. f. 2. | d. floribus terminalibus subternis, bracteis duabus ovatis flores subzequantibus. - Vahl. Act. Soc. Hist. Nat. Haf. i. 1. 38. J. foliis planis, capitulo. trifloro terminali erecto sphaiie brace | . teato.. Flor. Brit. 382. Engl. Bot. xiii, 899. . J. gluma triflora culmum terminanti. Flor. Lap. 115. 1,10, Jf 15. Juncello accedens graminifolia plantula a Armeriæ proli- feræ. Rati Syn. 430. . Gramen cyperoides minus Caryophylli proliferi capitulis, Moris. oak t. 12. f, 40. Angl. THREE-FLOWERED Rusu. _Three-glumed Rush. “Small heads ding Sweet Williams. Habitat in locis uliginosis et inigutis rariüs. : Peren. July, August. | | Root fibrous.. Stems four to six a EN erect, night; cylin- drical, leafy only at the base. Yeu subulate, compressed, sheathing, somewhat jointed ; cells like those of J. uliginos Flowers terminal, erect, nearly sessile, generally three toge Bractes oval, concave, nerved, bright brown, membranous; two outer 520 Mr. J. E. B1cukNo's Observations outer ones largest, not longer than the flowers, and opening so as to let them stand all on the same plane. Calyz-leaflets lan- ceolate, equal, blush-coloured at the tips. Style very short. Capsule elliptical, mucronate, somewhat obtuse, three-sided, scarcely exceeding the calyx. Coruncula elongated at each end of the seed. This is not so rare a plant with us as the J. biglumis, being found in the mountainous districts of Wales and of the North of En- gland, as well as in Scotland. I have met with it on Helvellyn, on Fairfield, and most of the other mountains about Ambleside, and at the edge of Scales Tarn in Saddleback. Dillenius mistook it for a variety of Scirpus cæspitosus. ‘The leaves instead of being flat, as described in the specific character by every botanical au- thor but Haller, Wablenburg, and Brown, are constructed with cells in a similar manner to those of J. uliginosus; and the articu- lations are much more susceptible to the touch on drawing a leaf between the thumb and finger—* Semper tam angusta et tereti- uscula reperi, ut jure meritoque subulata dici possunt.” Flor. Lap. Wahlen. 84. 16. Juncus BIGLUMIS. Juncus foliis subulatis, floribus binis terminalibus altero pedi- cellato, capsulis apice retusis calyce longioribus. Wahlen. Flor. Lap. 84. J. culmo basi folioso, foliis linearibus planis, capitulo subbifloro folio suffulto. Rost. Monograph. 53. J. foliis subulatis, gluma biflora terminali. Sp. PI. 467, Flor. Dan. 120. Huds. 649. Lightf. 1100. J. floribus terminalibus subgeminis, bractea altera floribus lon- giore acuminata. Vahl. Act. Soc. Hist. Nat. Haf. ii. 1. 38. J. foliis planis, capitulo bifloro terminali secundo basi foliato. Flor. Brit. 382. Eng. Bot. xiii. 898. : Angl, Two-rrowrnED Rusu. 'lwo-glumed Rush. | ; Habitat on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 321 Habitat in locis irriguis summarum alpium, rarissime. Peren. August. | Root fibrous. Stem three or more inches high, leafy, simple, stri- ated. Leaves compressed, jointed, erect, sheathing, pointed. Flowers terminal, binate, unilateral, one above the other; upper one on a short footstalk. Bractes two; larger one foliaceous, erect, forcing the fruit on one side. Calyz-leaflets lanceolate; pointed, equal, keeled, chocolate-coloured. Stamens longer than the calyx. Capsule large, turbinate, retuse, chocolate-coloured above, longer than the calyx. Seeds numerous; appendage elon- gated at each end. This rare plant has been found with us only in | Scotland, parti: cularly on Ben Lawers in Breadalbane. The old botanists were - unacquainted with it; and even Lightfoot suspected it might be a variety of J. triglumis. The two species are, however, perfectly distinct, and may be recognised at once by observing that one of the bractes in J. biglumis is much longer than the flowers, and the capsule turbinate. The seeds are remarkably distinguished by their covering. 17. JUNCUS CASTANEUS. Ju uncus foliis planis amplexicaulibus, capitulo terminali subge- mino multifloro basi foliato, bracteis acutis. Flor. Brit. 383. Rost. Monograph. 49. Eng. Bot. xiii. 900. J. Jacquini, folio subulato, e terminali subquadrifloro. Sym. Syn. 87. Hull.76. | Habitat in alpibus Scotiæ, ‘solo micaceo Fido. Peren. July. | Root creeping, with runners. Stem erect, straight, from six to twelve inches high, cylindrical, solitary, leafy. Leaves princi- pally on the stem, alternate, erect, compressed, jointed abi ov sheathing, folded and dilated at the base so as to make a sharp keel. Heads terminal, erect, one above the other, from three to 322 Mr. J. E. Breiugxo's Observations to eight-flowered, shining, nearly black. Bractes membranous, linear-lanceolate, acuminate. Calya-leaflets lanceolate ; outer ones longer and more acute than the inner. Stamens the length of the calyx. Style persistent, of about the same length as the stigmas. Capsule oblong, pointed, three-celled, black, longer “than the calyx. Seeds numerous “a cam ce; a —€— subu- late at each end. no Jit 9d ! "The first botanist of whom we nave heard TT 'took notice of this new species, was Dr. ‘Steuart. He gathered it on Ben Chal- lum. Mr. Dickson brought it from Den Lawers; and it was pub- lished first under the name of J. Jacquini in Symon's Synopsis Plantarum Insulis Dritannicis Indigenarum, &c.. Others have mis- taken it, in the same way ; and I am afraid that the draughtsman of hice Spesi in English Botany has fallen into the error. J. Jacquini s the lower bracte with a long filiform summit, very acuminate y: cleafletey: very short stamens, and one leaf on the stem.’ elt belongs t to that division of the genus which has channelled leaves ; while J. castaneus is an articulate-leaved species. In addition to the habitats before mentioned, I have it sector by Mr. Dani in Fion Glen in Breadalbáne: è 18. JuNecUS SUBVERTICILLATUS. | Juncus foliis caulinis subulatis nodoso-articulatis, paniculá co- rymbosá, capitulis subquinquefloris fasciculato-verticillatis, capsulà obtusa calycem striatum æquante. J. culmo procumbente, foliis setaceis subarticulatis, éciytatidi di- chotomo divaricato, capitulis subquinquefloris sessilibus. Rost. Monograph. 42. dt K J. culmo decumbente, foliis setaceis, &oribu nées vertieil- latis, glomera Ibi foliosis. - Willd. iis 219.8 enol ©: gu. Gramen junceum sylvarum minus articulato folio. Pak 1189. 6. Angl. Wuonrrp Rusu. E. Peren. July, August. | Stem on the Genus Juncus of Linneus: | 323 Stem a little bulbous at the base, decumbent, striking root at the “joints, generally a few inches in height, cylindrical, fistulous. Leaves at the root filiform, articulate; those of the stem larger, subulate, knotty-jointed, brittle, springing from a large scariose sheath. Flowers in a corymb, as if proliferous, fasciculato-ver- ticillate, light-brown. Calya-leaflets lanceolate, acuminate, stri- ated, rigid. Capsule obtuse, light-brown, not longer than the calyx, somewhat shining, mucronate. Though I am not enabled to ascertain many modern synonyms with certainty for this common plant, I feel confident that it will be found on examination to be a good species. ‘The French bo- tanists give it the above name in their herbaria. Rostkov, Will- denow, and most others seem to have considered the J. uliginosus of Smith and this to be the same. Sibthorp’s description of uliginosus corresponds so nearly with it, that I think he had an eye to it in drawing up his specific character—* Floribus fasci- culatis, fasciculis proliferis, foliis setaceis articulato-nodosis." Wi- thering's definition is also applicable to this. Haller’s no. 1321 is most likely intended for it—* Foliis sessilibus articulatis, pani- cula simplici, glumis aristatis.” And Parkinson’s figure 1189 tolerably corresponds. 19. JUNCUS ACUTIFLORUS. Juncus foliis nodoso-articulatis, paniculá terminali supradecom- _posit, calycis foliolis omnibus. lanceolatis acuminatis capsulam acuminatam æquantibus. J. foliis compressiusculis panicula terminali supradecomposita diffusa, calycis foliolis omnibus lanceolatis acuminatis, CERE ovato-oblonga triquetra mucronata, culmo 3—4-folio, Rapes Linn. Trans. x. 13. é VOL. XII. Qv -= " foliis 924 Mr. J. E. BrcugNo's Observations J. foliis nodoso-articulatis subcompressis, culmo enodi paniculá © decomposità dichotomá, calyce omninó acuto. Compend. Flor. Brit. 55. Eng. Bot. t. 238. descrip. 2148. J. sylvaticus, culmo erecto, foliis nodoso-articulatis teretibus, pani- cula composita, foliolis calycinis aristatis interioribus longiori- "bus. Willd. ii. 211. J. nemorosus, culmo folioso erecto, foliis subteretibus, nodoso- articulatis, panicula supradecomposita. Sibth. 114. J. articulatus, foliis nodoso-articulatis, capitulis paniculatis multi- floris. Redh. 138. J. foliis nodoso-articulatis, floribus acutis. Ehrh. Gram. 66. J. foliis teretibus articulatis, panicula repetito-ramosa. Hall. Hist. 1323. i J. nemorosus folio articuloso. Raz Syn. 433. Gramen j junceum articulatum palustre erectum et elatius. Moris. s Nb, à 454 Gramen junceum sylvaticum sparsa panicula. Park. 1189. 5. Gramen junceum aquaticum magis sparsa panicula. Park. 1969. 4 4. Gramen junceum sylvaticum. Ger. Em. fig. 22? Ang. SHARP-FLOWERED Rusu. Sharp-flowered jointed Rush. Greater jointed Rush. Wood Rushie Grass. Habitat in sylvis humidis et aquosis. Peren. June, July. : Root fibrous, creeping. Stems two or three feet high, slender, "erect, compressed, smooth; joints fistulous. Leaves three or four on a stem, sheathing, compressed, smooth, knotty-jointed. Panicle terminal, very much divided, diffuse; branches long, slender, smooth. —Calyz-leaflets all acuminate and of a similar consistence. Capsule three-sided, ovate-oblong, acuminate, light brown, a little shining, about the length of the calyx. This on the Genus Juncus of Linneus: 325 This is unquestionably a good species, and the: Rev. Hugh Davies's remarks leave me nothing to add to the diagnostie:de- scription. “The panicle of this is more branched than that of the last, the branches more slender and spreading, the divisions of the calyx narrower and longer, the capsule smaller, much more taper-pointed and lighter-coloured ; culm of fewer joints, that and the leaves less compressed. It is a taller plant, sometimes above three feet high, and it ripens later." I cannot persuade myself that Ray did not intend this species and not obtusiflorus by his J. nemorosus folio articuloso ; since in his Hist. Plant. he quotes Ger. 20. 10. (a most excellent p of the obtusi Morin) with a doubt. | 20. JUNCUS LAMPOCARPUS. Juncus foliis compressis, paniculà terminali composita erecta, calycis foliolis tribus interioribus obtusiusculis, capsulà acuta triquetrá nitidissima. J. foliis nodoso-articulatis compressis, culmo enodi, paniculà erecta, capsuld colorata nitidissimâ. Compend. Flor. Brit. 55. Eng. Bot. xxx. 2143. J. foliis compressis, panicula composita erecta, calycis foliolis tribus exterioribus ovato-lanceolatis acuminatis; interioribus scarioso-marginatis obtusiusculis, capsula ovata triquetra, stylo brevi terminata fusco-purpurca nitida, culmo 3—6-folio. Da- vies, Linn. Trans. x. 13. J. articulatus, culmo adscendente, foliis nodoso-articulatis com- | presso-teretiusculis, panicula composita, foliolis calycinis æqua- . libus obtusiusculis. Willd. ii. 211. J. articulatus, foliis nodoso-articulatis, petalis obtusis. Sp. PI. A65. Leers, 88. t. xiii. f. 6. Huds. 149. J. compressus, culmo folioso decumbente, foliis compressis nodoso: articulatis, panicula composita. Relh.141. Sibth. 114. Abbot,79. Zu. J. foliis 326 Mr. J . E. BrcueNo's Observations J. foliis articulatis compressis, eic semel ramosa. Hall. Hist. 1322. | à J. foliis articulosis floribus umbellatis. Raii Syn. 433. Gramen junceum articulatum palustre humilius utriculis frequen- ter donatum. Moris. s. viii. t. 9. f. 2. 3 | Gramen junceum aquaticum Bauhini folio articulato et cum utri- culis. Park. 1270. 5. Angl. SHINING-FRUITED Rusu. Lesser-jointed Rush. Shidiüg- fruited jointed Rush. ; Habitat in locis uliginosis et paludosis. Peren. July, August. Root creeping. Stem about a foot high, compressed, many-leaved, slightly striated. Leaves compressed, sheathing, distinctly jointed, rigid, pointed. Panicle terminal, erect ; branches stiff, elongated, nearly simple. Flowers five or six together, sessile. | Calya-leaflets shorter than the capsule; the three inner some- what longer, and with a more obtuse and membranous edge than the outer ones. Capsule larger, oval, triangular, chocolate- coloured, varnished, acute, terminated by the persistent style. This plant in an advanced state is easily known from J. acuti- florus and obtusiflorus by its large, shining, dark capsules. While early in flower, the best marks are the more simple panicle and the somewhat obtuse calyx. It is subject to become foliaceous in. the flower-scales; in which state C. Bauhin has figured it, Prod. 12., and Parkinson has copied it, 1270. Gramen aquaticum, Ger. 19. 1 and Ger. Ein. 13. 1., which are usually referred to this species or the following, are. more likely, judging from tlie panicle, to be Alisma Plantago, drawn asit appears after having seeded. ‘This I have but little doubt is Linnæus’s articulatus; for though his de- uon ** petalis obtusis" is not so applicable to this species as ! to; on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 327 to obtusiflorus, yet, as compared with acutiflorus, it is sufficiently characteristic. His synonyms are quite consistent with this opi- nion. This by the old botanists was called the aquaticus, while the acutiflorus was called sylvaticus. Linnæus himself makes this - distinction in his Systema Nature. We are indebted to the Rev. Hugh Davies for making them intelligible to the English bo- tanist. 21. JUNCUS OBTUSIFLORUS. Juncus foliis teretibus nodoso-articulatis, paniculâ supradecom- posita divaricatá, calycis foliolis ellipticis obtusis capsule lon- gitudine. J lis cauleque sodotovortiauieds teretibus, panicula divaricatá, calyce obtuso longitudine. capsule. Compend. Flor. Brit. 55. Eng. Bot. xxx. 2144. J. foliis teretibus, panicula terminali supradecomposita divaricato- refracta, calycis foliolis elliptieis obtusis, capsula ovato-acumi- nata triquetra, culmo bifolio. Davies, Linn. Trans. x. 15. J. foliis nodoso-articulatis, floribus-obtusis. Ehrh. Gram. 16. J. articulatus B. Flor. Brit. 379. exclus. s ynonym. Gramen junceum sylvaticum. Ger. 20. Angl. BLUNT-FLOWERED Rusu. Blunt-flowered joined Rush. Wood Rushie Grass. | | M dus Habitat i in stagnis et aquosis, non vulgaris. : Peren. J uly, August. m Stem. erect, ‘two or ae feet os M oca nmi arenes; di- vided into cclls between the joints, bearing usually two leaves. Leaves rigid, jointed, cylindrical, smooth, sur joints cel- lular. Panicle terminal, very much branched ; branches re- peatedly compound, entangled one with the other; ultimate branchlets frequently refracted. Flowers small, lateral and - terminal, 328 Mr. J. E. BicuzrNo's Observations terminal, collected into little heads. | Calyz-leaftets elliptic, all obtuse, as long as the capsule; margin broadly scariose; keel brown. Capsule light-brown, shining, small, oval, mucronate, three-sided, three-celled. The pale much branched panicle distinguishes this at first sight; and, upon closer examination, the obtuse cal yx-leaflets, which are as long as the capsule, and the jointed stem having only two leaves, afford further marks for discrimination. This is no doubt what Gerard has figured p. 20. f. 10. and which in Johnson's edition is changed for acutiflorus; and it is what Ray, in his Hist. Plant. p. 1307. 4., has described as a variety of the same plant.—* Cum planta,” he says, “ in aquosis et humidiori- bus nascitur, majis sparsa et pluribus capsularum agminibus com- posita quàm in precedente. Quamvis autem planta ipsa major et elatior sit quàm illa, capsule tamen seminales minores sunt, nec adeó obscure nigricant." It is also Ray's plant, mentioned in his Synopsis, 9d ed. p. 276., where he says, after describing acutiflorus, * Secunda species elatior et major est, paniculà ma- jis sparsá, capsulis tamen minoribus 1ninusque coloratis quàm in illa." Dillenius understood the expression “ secunda species " to refer to the second species of the subdivision in which the plant is placed ; whereas Ray meant the second as following that he was then describing, which was acutiflorus. 'lhus, in the third edition (in which the species are differently arranged,) Dillenius, - speaking of this plant, says, * Priori elatior et major est, panicula majis sparsa est," &c. &c., applying these words to J. lampocar- pus, which was the second species of the second edition, and whieh he in his new arrangement had placed next before acu- “LUZULA. on the Genus Juncus of Linnaeus. 329 LUZUL A. WoonpRUSH. Cal. hexaphyllus. ‘Cor. nulla. Caps. supera, trivalvis, unilocu- laris, trisperma. 1. LUZULA PILOSA. Lvzvura paniculâ cymosá divaricatá, floribus lateralibus sessili- bus solitariis, seminis coruncula uncinati. L. foliis planis pilosis, corymbo terminali subcomposito, pedun- culis unifloris nutantibus, petalis ovatis capsula brevioribus. Willd. Hort. Berol. 393. L. vernalis, foliis pilosis, corymbo subsimplici, pedunculis uni- floris nutantibus, perigonii lobis ovatis acutis, capsulis obtusis. Decand. Flor. Gall. 151. Juncus pilosus, foliis planis pilosis, corymbo subsimplici, pedun- culis unifloris nutantibus, petalis capsula brevioribus ovatis acutis. Willd. ii. 216. Rost. Monograph. 25. J. pilosus, foliis planis pilosis, panicula cymosa divaricata, flori- bus solitariis. Flor. Brit. 384. Eng. Bot. xi. 736. J. pilosus, foliis planis pilosis, corymbo ramoso. Sp. Pl. 468. Huds. 151. With. 349. Relh. 145. Sibth. 115. Curt. Lond. f. 5.1. 25. Leers 90. t. xiii. f. 10. Gramen nemorosum hirsutum vulgare. Raï Syn. 416. Gramen hirsutum latifolium majus. Moris. s. viii. t. 9. f. 1. Gramen nemorum hirsutum majus. Park. 1184. Gramen hirsutum nemorosum. Ger. 17. Ger. Em. 19. Angl. Harry Wooprusx. Small Hairy Woodrush. Hairy Rush. Common Hairy Wood-Grass. Hairy Wood-Grass. . Habitat in nemorosis et dumosis, vulgaris. Peren. Mar. Ap. Root fibrous, stoloniferous. Stem from 6 to 12 inches high, slender, cylindrical, 330 Mr. J. E. BrcuEeNno’s Observations cylindrical, simple, leafy. Leaves linear-lanceolate, plane, nerved, acute; the margin, especially towards the base, clothed with very long, white, soft hairs : : radical leaves very numerous . and large. . Paniclé terminal, cymose, somewhat branched, di- varicate : ultimate branches reflected. Flowers solitary, termi- nal and lateral; lateral ones sessile. Bractes two to each flower, membranous, acute. Calya-leaflets lanceolate, acuminate, dark- brown, with a scariose margin. Filaments very short. Capsule one-celled, three-sided, inversely heart-shaped, obtuse, sud- denly narrower towards the middle. Seeds three, shining, cho- colate-coloured ; coruncula lengthened at the top, hooked, twisted, all three meeting at the insertion of the pistil. Vid,- Ta». IX. f. 1. The peculiar shape of the coruncula will at once enable the bo- tanist to distinguish this plant from all its congeners ; but when that cannot be seen, the divaricate and dark panicle will generally ‘suffice to separate it from L. Forsteri; and the solitary flowers prevent it from being confounded with the rest of the British species. The marginal hairs. of this genus are singularly con- structed, being composed of a number of smaller fibres, which are jointed and twisted; so that upon the application of moisture, in a dry day, as in the case of the awns of Avene, they untwist themselves. . sns This plant has no known medicinal or agricultural use. Its dry tough herbage renders it unfit for cattle in general; though horses, goats, and sheep will eat it; more, however, from its being one of the earliest spring plants than from any other cause. 9. Luzuta FORSTERI. LuzuLa panicula cymosá erectá, floribus solitariis, CADET acu- tis, seminis corunculà subrectà obtusa. L. foliis pilosis, corymbo subsimplici, pedunculis unifloris erectis, perigonii Ann Dans Vol Xl Zab 9 p 250. l Luzula pilosa CY 3 q IL. Sylvatica 1 c d e.a e e. Feed J Curtis sup on the Genus Juncus of Linnaeus. 331 perigonii lobis ovato-acuminatis, capsula mucronato-acuta. Decandoile, Syn. 150. Ib. Icones Plant. Gall. i. t. 2. Juncus Forsteri, foliis planis pilosis, paniculà cymosá erectá, flori- bus solitariis, capsulis acutis. Eng. Bot. xviii. 1293. Flor. Brit. 1395. í - eda ^ Angl. FonsrER's Woonnusm. Narrow-leaved Hairy Rush. Habitat in nemorosis calcareis et glareosis. Peren. May. Root fibrous. Stems from 6—12 inches high, very slender, erect, simple, cylindrical, smooth, leafy. .Leaves linear, narrower than in the preceding species, acute, hairy at the margin; upper oneslargest. Panicle terminal, cymose, erect, spreading, a little branched ; branches never divaricate or refracted. Calyx-leaflets lanceolate, acuminate, light-brown, as long as the capsule. Cap- . sule one-celled, roundish-ovate, acute, mucronate. Seeds three, oval; coruncula straightish, obtuse, all meeting at the insertion of the pistil. Vid. Tan. IX. fig. 2. | No doubt whatever can be entertained with regard to the cor- rectness of this being made a species. It was first discovered by Edward Forster, Esq. F. L.S., whose acuteness in indigenous bo- tany has been rarely equalled, and published in the 18th vol. of English Botany. lts pointed capsule, peculiarly shaped corun- cula, and ascending cyme, are invariable marks to distinguish it. The leaves are not half the width of those of pilosa. The calyx- leaflets are longer, much more acuminate, and of a lighter colour. The solitary flowers are peculiar to these two species. The figure given by Decandolle is very satisfactory, but somewhat stiff. 3. LUvzULA SYLVATICA. LuzvurA paniculà cymosáà decomposita, floribus fasciculatis, co- runcula obsoleta. a VOL. XIL 22 L. maxima, 332 Mr. J. E. BicugNo's Observations L. maxima, foliis planis pilosis, corymbo decomposito divaricato; . capitulis subtrifloris, petalis aristatis lon gitudine capsule. Willd. - Hort. Berol. 393. : Juncus maximus, foliis planis pilosis, corymbo decolnpntito divari- " cato, capitulis subtrifloris, petalis aristatis longitudine capsule. Rost. Monograph. 28. J. maximus, foliis planis pilosis, corymbo decomposito, pedunculis elongatis divaricatis subtrifloris, calycinis foliolis aristatis lon- gitudine capsule. Willd. ii. 217. J. maximus. With. 349. J. sylvaticus, foliis planis pilosis, corymbo decomposito, floribus fasciculatis sessilibus. Huds. 151. Sibth. 116. - Curt. Lond. f. 5. t. 26. : J. sylvaticus, foliis planis pilosis acurniiiatis, Bs cymosá de- composità, floribus ne Flor. Brit. 385. ago! Dot. xi. qao: ouis ifo J. pilosus 3. Sp. PI. 468. Gramen nemorosum hirsutum latifolium maximum. Rai Syn. 416. | G. hirsutum latifolium ipi juncea panicula. Moris. s. viii. £..9..5:2. G. hirsutum latifolium minus. Ibid. G. nemorum hirsutum latifolium minus juncea panicula. Park. 1185. 3. | G. hirsutum angustifolium majus alterum. Ibid. 5. Angl. Great Woopnusu. Wood Rush. Great Hairy Wood Rush. The greatest broad-leaved Hairy Wood-Grass. Habitat in sylvis, nemorosis et montosis. Peren. May, June. Root fibrous. Stems a foot or more high, erect, striated, leafy. "Leaves on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 333 Leaves linear-lanceolate, acuminate, eight-nerved, hairy at the margin; stem-leaves smaller, shorter. Panicle terminal, cymose, |. repeatedly compound, often divaricate. Flowers small, about three together, fasciculate. Bractes linear, hairy, acute. Calyx- leafletsequal,acuminate, somewhat longer than the capsule. Cap- sule ovate, mucronate, three-seeded. Seeds elliptical; coruncula sitting close to the seed, and of the same shape. Vid. Tan. IX. fig. 3. Linnzus comprehended this, with some other real species, in his Juncus pilosus ; but that itis most distinct from every other, no botanist now doubts. It is the largest of the genus, whence the name maximus: but though this be the case, it has a smaller seed. vessel, in proportion, than any of the rest. It differs from L. pi- losa and Forsteri in the circumstance of the flowers growing in. clusters, and the repeatedly compound panicle; and from the campestris, in the absence of the spiked heads. It flowers later than the others by a month. The herbalists Bauhin, Parkinson, and Morison have two varieties of it, a larger and a smaller; but whether this has arisen merely from the different size of the plant, or whether there is really a distinction, as I confess I have sometimes suspected, I cannot at present determine. Parkinson’s 1185. 5. is Luzula albida. His Gramen nemorum hirsutum majus alterum precor tuberosa radice, 1184. 2. is the large variety ; 1185. 3. is the smaller one, copied from C. Bauhin. Morison's Gramen — hirsutum latifolium majus juncea panicula, sect. viii. £. 9. f. 2. is the | larger; and Gramen hirsutum latifolium minus the smaller, and copied also from C. Bauhin. Whether any old botanist besides Bauhin was acquainted with it, is doubtful. Flor. Dan. 441. re- presents the small variety. 9x2 4. LUZULA 334 Mr. J. E. Bicueno’s Observations 4, LUzULA CAMPESTRIS. LuzuLA culmo tereti, spicis umbellatis sessilibus pedunculatis- que ovatis, capsulis muticis. + L. spicis capituliformibus subumbellatis iüieqnakides peduncula- tis; intermedia sessili, perianthii foliolis æqualibus acutissimis. Brown, Prod. Flor. Nov. Holl. 591. L. foliis planis pilosis, spicis pedunculatis umbellatis, intermedia sessili, petalis mucronatis capsula longioribus. Willd. Flor. Berol. 394. Juncus campestris, foliis planis pilosis, spicis pedunculatis umbel- latis, intermedia sessili, petalis mucronatis capsula longioribus. Rost. Monograph. 44. _J. campestris, foliis planis pilosis, spicis pedunculatis umbellatis, intermedia sessili, calycinis foliolis mucronatis prem longio- ribus. Willd. ii. 221. | J. campestris, foliis planis pilosis, spicis iomair sessilibus pe- dunculatisque, capsulis obtusis. Flor. Brit. 385. Eng. Bot. x. 672. l J. campestris, foliis planis subpilosis, spicis sessilibus peduncula- tisque. Sp. PI. 468. Leers 91. t. xiii. f. 5. Huds. 152. With. 350. Relh.145. Sibth. 116. Curt. Lond. f. 2. t. 19. G. hirsutum capitulis Psylii. Moris. s. viii. 9. f. 4. : G. nemorum birsutum minus angustifolium. Park. 1185. 6. Gramen exile hirsutum. Ger. 16. Ger. Em. 17. Raii Syn. 416. B:.congesta, altior, capitulæ oblongz congesta aut longè pedun- culate. Luzula congesta. Forster’s Flor. Tonbridg. 44. Flor. Fran. v. 305. L. erecta « & B, culmo erecto elato, capitulis ovatis inzequaliter pedunculatis strictis; capsulis ovatis perianthio longiori; ra- dice cæspitosa. Desv. Journ. i. 156, 157. : L. multiflora. — on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. 835 L. multiflora. Flor. Fran. v. 306. Juncus erectus. Pers. Enchirid. i. 386. J. liniger. With. Mh ed. 436. — J. campestris y. Sp. Pl. 468. Gramen hirsutum elatius, panicula juncea compacta, Raii Syn. 416. G. hirsutum capitulo globoso. Park. 1186.9. Moris. s. viii. t. 9. f. sinist. G. capitulis globosis. Ger. 16. 1. Ger. Em. 18.3. Angl. Smarz Wooprusu. Hairy Field Rush. Field Rush. -Small Hairy Wood-Grass. Hairy Grass. 8 Globe-headed Rush. . Hairy Grass, with a compact rush-like pani: Round-headed . Silver Grass. Habitat in pascuis siccioribus: f in andis: Peren, April, May. Root fibrous, creeping. Stem four inches or more high, simple, erect, leafy. Leaves linear, plane, five-nerved, hairy at the margin; point rigid. Flowers in spikes, sessile, ten or twelve together; heads ovate, erect, at last nodding; the lowermost sessile, the rest pedunculated. Bractes three or four at the foot of each flower, membranous, fringed, shining, giving a silvery appearance to the flowers. Calyz-leaflets lanceolate, acumi- nate, shining, keeled. Filaments very short. Capsule obovate, obtuse, three-sided. Seeds reniform, roughish, ash-coloured green, opake; coruncula enlarged at the bottom of the seed, and attaching it to the receptacle. Vid. Tan. IX. fig. 4 8. Taller, leaves longer, panicle composed either of many heads clustered into one, or several little ovate heads of flowers stand- ing on long peduncles in somewhat of an umbellate form. Though the real Luzula campestris is not likely to be mistaken, if its spiked flowers and obtuse —— be attended to, yet it va- ries 336 | Mr. J. E. Bicneno’s Observations ries so — according to the soil in which it grows, as to render it difficult to assign the limits between it and £, and some of the foreign species.. Many botanists indeed have considered the bog variety as a distinct species. Ray, Dillenius, Sibthorp, Withering, and the French botanists are of this opinion. On the other hand, Linneus, Willdenow, Curtis, and Sir James Smith regard it only as a variety. To the latter opinion I assent after much examination. Sir James Smith, Flor. Brit. 386. in his 8 has only described that variety growing in bogs with a conglomerate head, composed, as Ray says, * ex pluribus veluti globulis coacervata;" but mine includes not only. this, but another, equally common, the y of Lin- nzus, where the little heads stand on long footstalks, growing something like the one figured by Linnzus, Flor. Lap. t. x. 2., and yettotally distinct from it. Sir James Smith is at a loss to recon- cile Ray's synonyms; but all the figures to which he refers are without doubt intended for the plant in its pedunculated state. Desvaux has made Linnzus's 8 and mine a new species, which he calls Luzula erecta, as above quoted. I cannot, however, agree with this arrangement, being quite satisfied that Linnæus’s plant, Flor. Lap. l.c., is a good species, and is to be known by the leaves being narrower and nearly destitute of hairs, the stems compressed, and spikes umbellated. Wahlenburg, who has given it a place in his valuable Flora, calls it Juncus pallescens, with this definition: “ foliis planis, culmo compresso, spicis umbella- tis oblongis pedunculatis patentibus, bractea foliacea.” I have not observed it in any collection of British plants, though it is very likely to be a native of the northern mountains. 5. LUzULA SPICATA. LuzUuLA spicà racemosa nutante, spiculis sessilibus bracteatis, capsulis acutis. :- PM Juncus on the Genus Juncus of Linneus. $37 Juncus spicatus, foliis planis subpilosis, spica glomerato-racemosa basi divisa nutante, petalis longitudine capsule. Rost. Mono- graph. 46. : | J. spicatus, foliis planis, spicd racemosa nutante basi composita, capsulis acutis. Flor. Brit. 386. Eng. Bot. xvii. 1170. J. spicatus, foliis planis, spica racemosa nutante. Sp. Pl. 469. Fl. Lap. t. 10. f. 4. Flor. Dan. 270. Huds. 650. With. 350. Angl. Seiren Woopnusm. Spiked Rush. Alpine nodding Rush. i Habitat in alpibus Borealibus. Peren. July. | wi Root fibrous, tufted. Stem simple, six or eight inches high, slen- der, leafy. Leaves linear, channelled, hairy at the base; stem- leaves convolute or subulate. Spike terminal, nodding, cylin- drical, oblong, obtuse ; spikelets sessile, many-flowered, brac- teated. Bractes pale, lanceolate, laciniated. Calya-leafletslan- : _ceolate, acuminate. Capsule pointed, one-celled, three-sided. _ This plant approaches. ‘nearer to the Junci than any of the rest of the Luzule here described. Its leaves are not so flat or hairy as most of the rest of the genus, and the capsule shows the rudi- ments of dissepiments. It is not likely to be confounded with any other plant, with the exception, perhaps, of L. pediformis, which is much larger, and has a pointed capsule. It is very rare with us, occurring chiefly in Scotland. on the summits of the highest mountains. I found a single s specimen in the herbarium of my” friend Joseph Woods, Esq. F. L.S., gathered by him on Fairfield, near Ambleside; and this is the only instance that has come to my knowledge of its being found in England. XVIII. De- ( 888 ) XVIII. Beseriptions of two new Shells. by Captain Frederic M Marryat, R.N. F.L.S. — Read February 18, di : MITRA. aa Mitra ZONATA. a. Tas. X. Fio.i, x ' be ide luteA fromai nigris, columella quinque-plica 7 Habitat in mare Mediterraneo. Anfractus basi nigri, crenato-striolati. tà, anfractibus inferne This shell was taken up near the port of Nice in the Mediter- ranean, adhering to a sounding-lead, in very deep water. I have- no hesitation in pronouncing it to be a new species, as I cannot find it described by any author. CYCLOSTREMA. CHARACTER GENERICUS. Testa depressa, perspectivo-umbilicata ; apertura circularis. CYcLosTREMA CANCELLATA. Tus X. FOS > C. testa alba, lineis longitudinalibus et transversis elevatis decus- santibus, inde cancellata. Habitat Zinn. Trans Void X Captain F. MannvaTY's Description of two new Shelis. 339 Habitat - i A pertura labiis cancellatis, cancellis transversim striatis. I found this beautiful little shell among a collection of chiefi y West India shells. ` According to the Linnæan system, it would come under the genus Turbo; but with the advice of Dr. Leach, ] have distinguished it as a genus, under the title of Cyclostrema. Helix- depressa and serpuloides of Montagu are referable to the same genus. VOL. XII. gv XIX. De- ( 340 ) XI Descriptions of five British Species of the Genus Terebella of Linné. By the late George Montagu, Esq. F.L.S. Commu- nicated by William Elford Leach, M.D. F.R.S. and L.S. Read March 4, 1817. TEREBEL. A. Gen. Cuar. Body long and annulated, furnished on each side with pedunculated feet terminated with bristles, which are retractile: head with numerous long simple capillary appen- dages: three small ramified branchiæ on each side behind the head. l The animals of this genus either prepare a sheath from the te- nacious secretion of their- bodies mixed with adventitious matter, or reside in prepared perforations at the bottom of the sea. The tubes which are prepared by them are in general so extremely delicate, that they are very easily destroyed, and they are then found lurking beneath stones, or forming a new habitation by connecting together sand or mud with the slimy secretion of their bodies. Some species form a tube in old shells or stones, to which they adhere by the whole length; others fix a tube per- ` pendicularly in the sand, with two or three inches projecting above the surface. Many are gregarious, and so numerous, that we have seen the shore covered with the fragments of théir tubes after m pn Trans. Voc. IL TZL p.341. Mr. Moxrac v's Description of Terebella, 4c. 341 after a storm : thus, from the fragility of their tubes, these animals are often found at P “When in their tubes, generally but a small part is protrude ting the capillary tentacula, with which they seem to bër food in every direction by thrusting them int r stones, &c. The branchial app red whilst the animals as they become wea guid circulation. The mouth is ir to make the opening upwa All the ~— inhabit Spec. t. pes GIGANTEA. j Tas. XI. T. with seventeen pairs of exserted fasciculi and eight dorsal plates. Body long, with - numerous. articulations furnished de whole length with peduncles, and a few with fasciculate bristles; but the seventeen anterior joints have the fasciculi most conspi- cuous, being always erected, and remaining so after death: the first eight joints have a broad plate on the back different in structure from the rest; they are of a rufous-brown colour, shaded with purplish-black, continuing down the back in a de- - creasing line. The general colour of the other parts is yellow- ish. Beyond the seventeen first joints the peduncles are very small, and appear to be destitute of fasciculi ; and they incline gradually from the sides to the back, till towards the extremity they almost meet, forming two dorsal lines: near the mouth originate numerous capillary appendages, that are five or six earo inches 3 342 Mr. MoNTAGv's Descriptions of. inches in length : the three pair of branchiæ are much ramified, E 1 i E and red. à | soc Ta + P sixteen inches. PURE T. gigantea is th yest of t ex E ecjes ; it inhabits the soil at the bo sea, and seems to be destitute of | i n ary of Kingsbridge at low water: it discharged an oured fluid from its mouth in great abundance. ^ | Spec.2. TEREBELLA CIRRHATA. Tas. XII. Fro. 1. ah CT. with eleven oral dorsal plates on the anterior articulations. Body long, with numerous orange-coloured articulations, fur- nished with small peduncles, and at the anterior end with fas- ciculi of bristles: branchiæ large and red: mouth with a frill- like membrane beneath, and ciliated above. Capillary appen- dages four or five inches in Sn cu Length nearly twelve inches. = Diameter near the head half an inch. The tube (which is described in Testacea Britannica under the ` name Sabella cirrhata) is very fragile ; it is composed of sand and clay, and is lodged in the ground, with half an inch projectag above the surface. This species is gregarious, and is not uncommon on the south- ern const of Teton: Bi Lob nbus ¢ VE 7 S ] Sp S e d "i © s x * p», si K Lem, — J Curtis. suip five British Species of Terebella. 343 Spec.3. TEREBELLA NEBULOSA. : Tas. XII. Fie. 2. T. with its body spotted with white, having thirteen dorsal plates, Body long, orange-red, spotted all over with white. Anterior extremity very tumid, defended by the dorsal plates: anterior peduncles very small, with the fasciculi pointed. The other peduncles and fasciculi are broad. The posterior end is ab- ruptly smaller than the other, as if it had been lost by acci- dent, and afterwards reproduced. | The capillary tentacula are numerous, and of a pale orange-colour spotted with white. - Branchiæ red with white spots. Length six or seven inches. — Diameter of the largest part half an inch. . j Inhabits the southern coast of Devon rarely, being taken only by deep dredging. Its case is composed of slimy matter, covered with gravel and broken shells. Spec. à. TEREBELLA CONSTRICTOR. ; | LAR III. Fio. 1. T. with twelve broad plates on the back: capillary appendages i pale. Body orange-red, with about one hundred and twenty approxi- mate articulations furnished with small fasciculi ; those behind the dorsal plates are divided down the middle by a sulcus: mouth with an expanded lower lip, surrounded with capillary appendages longer than the body. _ Length three or four inches. Inhabits the coast of Devon, and is rare. The very closely-connected articulations discriminate this spe- cies from any of the others. Its case or tube.is unknown. Spec. 944 Mr. Montacu’s Descriptions of Terebella, $c. Spec. 5. TEREBELLA VENUSTULA. Tas. XIII. Fre. 2. T. with orange-red body, thickly and minutely marked with ' white spots. First seventeen or eighteen joints furnished with short peduncles and fasciculi: other joints with long peduncles and no visible bristles.’ Capillary appendages whitish, very slender, numerous, and nearly double the length of the body. We have observed this animal fixing its tentacula, and by contracting them draw- ing its body forwards. Length rarely more than three or four inches. Taken by RE on the southern coast of Devon at Tore cross. . XX. Cha- ( 345 ) ad " XX. Characters of two Species of Tordylium. By Sir James Edward Smith, M.D. F.R.S. P.L.S. Read March 18, 1817. I wave lately had occasion to remark, in preparing for the Lin- nean Society a botanical essay on Tofieldia, that scarcely any considerable genus could be taken at random, which would not afford matter for such a dissertation. I had not proceeded far in the alphabetical course of my botanical labours for Dr. Rees's . Cyclopedia, before an instance of this presented itself, in the long- established and well-known genus Tordylium, some of whose spe- cies have hitherto never been clearly determined. Our popular guides, such as Willdenow, have left the subject in the same state in which they found it. The details into which I find myself obliged to enter, are beyond the scope of the work above men- tioned, and may not prove unworthy of the notice of the learned body whose attention I shall now, for a few minutes, solicit. The species of Tordylium which will come under our examina- tion at present, are chiefly officinale and apulum, with the humile of Desfontaines ; except some incidental notice of the Linnæan peregrinum, and of Scopoli's si/folium. — T. apulum is mentioned by Linnzus in his Hortus Cliffortianus 90. 2. 3, under the following character and synonyms. T. umbellalis remotis, foliis pinnatis, pinnis subrotundis lacini- ' atis. T. apulum. Rivin. Pentap. Irr. t. 2. | T. apulum 346 Sir J. E. Smitu’s Characters T. apulum minimum. Column. Ecphr. p. 1. 192. t. 124. Tourn. Inst. 320. Raï Hist. 412. Moris. Hist. v. 3. 316. sect. 9. t. 16. 7.6. | : A^ Seseli creticum minimum. Bauh. Pin. 161. A variety is subjoined from Boerhaave's Hort. Lugd. Bat. con- cerning which nothing can be ascertained ; and as Linnæus never again adverted to this supposed variety, we must leave it unde- tétitibed. | In the first edition of Sp. PI. 239, the Tordylium in question appears with the specific name apulum, and the above essential characters, with a reference to Hort. Cliff. and to: Van Royen’s Prodr. Lugd. Bat. 94. But its other synonyms are limited to ' Columna and Bauhin, as above cited. Now it appears that the synonyms of Columna and Rivinus belong to two very different plants. Which of these is to be taken for the T. apulum of Linneus? There being no specimen in his herbarium, the specific character must be resorted to as our safest guide, and this agrees with the plant of Rivinus, not of Columna ; ** pinnis subrotundis laciniatis.” Such was doubtless the plant of the Hortus Cliffortianus, which appears by the Viridarium Clif- fortianum to have been cultivated at Hartecamp, and was there- fore seen alive by Linnæus. Such likewise is T. apulum of Jac- quin, Hort. Vindob. v. 1. t. 58, which that author afterwards find- ing not to answer to the synonym of Columna, he thought he had mistaken the Tinnæan name, and in the 3d volume of the same work, p. 2, he refers his plant to the Linnean T. officinale. . On the contrary, it appears to me that Columna's figure repre- bd merely a starved variety of officinale, under which species I have long ago quoted it, with a mark of doubt, in Fl- Brit. ; and that Jacquin has described the genuine apulum of Hives and Linnzus. These of tto Species of Tordylium. 347 These species are clearly distinguishable by a character which, though faithfully indicated by Rivinus and Jacquin, has not been fixed upon by any botanist as a specific mark. In T. officinale the radiant or dilated part of the marginal flowers consists of two . neighbouring petals, each of which has one large, and one very small, lobe; in T. apulum there is only one radiant petal to each ` flower, whose two very large lobes are equal. I would therefore propose the following definitions of the two species in question : T. officinale, involucellis longitudine florum, foliolis ovatis incisis crenatis, petalis radiantibus geminis inæqualitèr bilobis. T. apulum, involucellis flore brevioribus, foliolis laciniatis ; supe- rioribus angustatis, petalis radiantibus solitariis ED bi- . lobis. a The synonyms of the former are pasrantly given in both edi- tions of Sp. Pi. as well as in FI. Brit. 294; to which are to be added Engl. Bot. t. 2440, and the unpublished figure in Fl. Grac. t: 967. There is every reason to suppose this the original Togdvasor of Dioscorides. 1f Columna had been as exact as usual, his figure would have left us in no doubt respecting the character of the petals. But asit is, enough may be discerned for our purpose ; and the form of the leaves, the length of the partial involucrum, and the figure of the seed, all agree with T. officinale, not with apulum. — To the latter belong the synonyms of Rivin. Pentap. Irr. t. 2 and Jacq. Hort. Vind. v. 1. 21. t. 53; which last is quoted in MSS. by Linnzeus in his own copy. of Sp. Pl. This is likewise T. apulum of Prodr. Fl. Grec. n. 631, from which however must be removed the reference to Columna, and consequently the synonym of "Tournefort depending thereon; Jacq. Hort. v. 1. t. 53, being in- troduced in their stead. Bauhin’s Seseli creticum minimum also, being adopted from — belongs to T. officinale. VOL. XII. 2z I cannot 348 Sir J. E. Smiru’s Characters of two Species of Tordylium. I cannot but consider T. humile of Desfontaines, Fl. Atlant. v. 1. 325. t. 58, as indubitably T. apulum. It accords exactly in size and habit with Dr. Sibthorp's Greek specimens. Willdenow, by some accident, has not adverted to this plant. | i Scopoli's T. sifolium, Fl. Carn. ed. 2. v. 1. 194. t. 8, comes very near to our apulum, agreeing in the solitary radiant petal, with two equal lobes. But the flowers are red, not white; the leaflets broader, less divided, and more uniform; and the fruit bristly, which last may afford a good specific character. The general invo- lucrum moreover is said to consist of only one or two small leaves. I cannot conclude these remarks without adverting to T. pere- grinum, Linn. Mant. 55. Sm. Prodr. Fl. Grac. Sibth. n. 633. This is Conium dichotomum of Desfontaines, Fl. Atlant. v. 1. 246. t. 66, who seems not aware of its being a Linnzan plant. Its seeds indeed bear some resemblance to those of a Conium; and. the flowers, which the able author just cited never saw, are uni- form, scarcely radiant. The habit and foliage agree with Conium rather than with Tordylium. But, on the other hand, the charac- ter of the involucella dimidiata is not observable, and the crisped margin of the seeds answers better to Tordylium, though their - strongly 3-ribbed disk is adverse, and rather belongs to Conium. 'To the latter genus I should perhaps consent to remove this spe- cies. Professor Sprengel, in his Prodr. Plant. Umbellif. 12 & 21, refers it to Cachrys; but I cannot discover any peculiar coat to the seed, which, according to that learned writer's own principles, might justify such a measure. It is remarkable that he distin- guishes the plant of Linnæus from that of Desfontaines, though certainly without any foundation. | Norwich, Feb, 10, 1817. J. E. SMITH. XXI. O6- ( 949 ) XXI. Observations on a Viper found in Cranborne Chace, Dorset- shire. By the Rev. Thomas Rackett, F.R.S. & L.S. Read April 15, 1817. Tue Viper which accompanies this paper does not appear to have been noticed by any British naturalist. It is probably Co- luber Chersea of Linnæus. Coluber Chersea. Linn. Syst. Nat. i. 377.184. Gmel. iii. p. 1091. Fn. Suec. 285. Act. Stock. 1749. p. 246. t. 6. fig. 1.2. Laur. Reptil. p. 9(. n. 214. Weigel in Abh. der Hall. Naturf. Ges. i. p. 12. * Habitat in Sueciæ presertim Smolandiw, Scanie, Uplandiæ, * coryletis et fruticosis depressis, etiam in Pomeraniæ dumetis. * Bero satis affinis, et citius funesta nisi P morsa statim rese- * cetur. 9$ poll. longus. * Bero minor, color obscurius spadiceus, caput ovatum, truncus — Linnæus has described this species in the Swedish Transactions for the year 1749, and has given a figure which nearly resembles our specimen. The heart-shaped spot on the head is apparent. The belly is quite plain, and has not the appearance of steel ob- servable in the common viper. Linnzus lays great stress on a dark spot near the extremity of the tail, as a distinguishing cha- racter of the species: this mark is very evident in the one under examination. 1 NT 222 I received 350 The Rev. T. RAckETT's Observations on a Viper, $c. I received the viper from the Rev. John Tregonwell Napier, Rector of Chettle in Dorsetshire, who killed it in Cranborne Chace. It is extremely rare, but known to the gamekeepers under the name of “Tne Rep Viper.” Linn. Frais. Vol XI. Lab.27. p. 359. sup. J. Curtis gegen : À. | ^ c \ X V UE ff Ne HH - py : $ VS 22 ieu 7 | SS E E of select Indian Plants. 359 such an umbel by elongation of the ramifications; which, scat- tering the rays of what should form an umbellet, converts the inflorescence into a panicle. | MACROLOBIUM sisvcum. Tas. XVII. Flowers triandrous. Six sterile filaments. Leaves two-paired. Whence or how introduced into the botanical garden at Cal- cutta, where a solitary plant has long been, is uncertain. It flowered there for the first; and, so far as is known, the only time, in 1813; in the hot season; the tree being about eight feet high; and ripened a single legume in September. Trunk arborescent, erect. Bark gray, smooth. Branches spread- drooping towards the extremity. Leaves | | Leaflets obliquely elliptic, fal- ches long; 2—24 broad. Pe- annelled. Stipules none. ry ramifications dichoto- ing, adic alternat Leaflets rosii - concave, door Corol "bun Petal o one, vexilliform, round-cordate, wavy. Claw linear, downy on both surfaces. Wings and Keel none. Filaments nine: three anthe- : riferous, filiform, thrice as long as the corol, incurved : six ste- rile, (a pair on either side of the vexillum, and solitary ones al- _ternating with the fertile 3) less than a quarter of the length of the fertile ones: all united at the very base, and free above, dark chesnut-coloured, beset towards the lower end with thinly- scattered: white hairs : tips of t the sterile filaments hooked, white. inear, incumbent. Germ linear-oblong, compressed, villous, containing a few ( bout eight) globular ovula. Style length F i . > 360 Mr. Coresrooxe’s Description length and situation of the stamina, filiform. Stigma headed, two-lobed. Legume broad-falcate, compressed, few-seeded. Seed black, immersed in lateritious meal: unequally reniform or nearly three-cornered, compressed. This is seemingly a plant of the same genus with the Vouapa and Simira of Guiana described by Aublet; from the first of which a genus was constituted by Lamarck (Ilust. Genres, i. 96). Schreber, followed by Willdenow, has united them with the Outea of the same author, in a genus of which the character is taken from the plant last mentioned *. In deference to their autho- rity, the Indian plant is here described under the name assigned by them to the genus; qoos nevertheless an opinion, that, with the Vouapas, it sho e Me sabe from. that, and formed into a distinct genus wit — by Lamarck: “ Calyx guiculate petal. Three Legume compressed, fe plant now described to . the natural order of Ca disjoined even in the | filaments seem to MR that its proper place is i in the Decan- dria class. PYGEUM. te Gartner de Fruct. 1. p. 218. t. 46. f. m ei ICOSANDRIA MONOGYNIA. Calyx inferior, six-toothed. Frail six. Drupe dry, transversely vitu age ans vibe without p dt dw [P -PYGEUM ACUMINATUM. | x ab std) Tama VE ME, A ck | A large tree, native of mountainous — ort on * Gen. Plant; uo. 62. Spec. Plant.no.78 A EG Silhet. KM. aqui Ment a aa rag, Linn. Trans. Vol XII. Tab.id.p. 560. AIT y Zp | Pygeum eL ne phu lt nme 361 Silhet. Flowers in the rainy season, and fipens its seed in the cold season, about January. Beng. (at Silhet) Ghorma. Trunk arboreous. Leaves alternate, short-petioled, ovate to broad lanceolate, (sometimes unequal, acuminate, entire, smooth, shining ; 4—6 inches long, 11—3 broad. Petioles 4 inch; round beneath, channelled on the upper edge. Racemes length. of the leaf, erect, simple, cylindric. Peduncles four-cornered, slender, villous. Pedicels as long as the flowers. Flowers yel- lowish-green, inodorous. Perianth cyathiform, six-toothed, de- ciduous, leaving a small entire ring at the base of the fertilized. germ. Teeth subulate. Petats six, on the margin of the caly-. cine cup, ovate, villous. Filaments numerous (30—40) on the margin of the calycine cup, capillary. Anthers round. Germ. above, roundish, villous. Style filiform, length of the stamina.. Stigma truncate. Drupe transversely oblong, juiceless at ma- turity, size of an olive, dark-purple. Nut subreniform, con- - tracted in the middle; lobes subequal ; crustaceous. Seed con- form to the nut, attached dorsally a little below the apex. ne, ‘tegument single, chartaceous. Perisperm none. Embryo c con-. form to the seed, inverse, yellowish-white. : Cotyledons thick, flat on the contiguous. ends, and hemispherical on the outer; amygdaloid. .Radicle superior, vety small, conical. A + Xen constituted the genus, saw: neither dm nor any other part of the plant besides the fruit: consequently, until his Ceylonese plant has been further examined, it must remain doubtful, as I apprehend, whether the species be distinct: and, at all events, the specific character cannot be yet determined, as but one species is fully described. | XXIII. Upon XXIII. Upon the differgnt Species of esculent Strawberries. By Thomas Andrew Knight, Esq. F.R.S. 4 L.S. Pres. Hort. Soc. Read May 6, 1817. Bsrore I enter upon the immediate subject of the following communication, it will be necessary that I define precisely the meaning which I annex to the word species; as that appears to me to be often used somewhat vaguely and licentiously by writers upon botanical subjects. By a species of plants, I mean all plants which can be made to breed together without producing mules; that is, without producing plants which are incapable of affording offspring by seeds: and I consider all plants to be of distinct and different species which cannot be made to breed with each other (if capable of breeding at all), or which, if they inter- mix, produce mule plants. The peach and nectarine tree have, under my care, bred very freely with the bitter-almond tree; and the offspring do not appear to be mule plants: and I am there- fore disposed to question the specific difference of the Amygdalus communis and 4. persica. Similar experiments have led me to doubt the specific difference of the cultivated plum and sloe; and I possess several varieties of the willow, which are not mules, and which appear to have derived their existence from seeds of the Salix Russelliana, and the pollen of the S. alba; and therefore Iam much disposed to question the claims of many of the it inter- mediate supposed species to their present titles. - Many plants of the following species and varieties of straw- berries Mr. T. A, KNIGHT on, esculent Strawberries. 363 berries were planted in pots, in different successive seasons, for the purpose of experiment :—the common wood, the white alpine, tbe Duke of Kent's, or wood-strawberry of Canada, the common scarlet, the Bath scarlet, the pine, the black, the white Chili, and the hautbois, with some others which proved to be varieties of the common scarlet, but to which no particular name had been. given. The pollen of the Wood-strawberry was introduced into blossoms of the White alpine, from which the stamina had some days previously been extracted in an immature state. Abundant seeds were produced, which afforded offspring generally similar to their male parent in taste, flavour, and colour. 'l'he wood-straw- berry of.Canada, the common scarlet, the Bath scarlet, the pine, the black, and the white Chili afforded under similar circumstances abundant offspring, however crossed, and the offspring presented every intermediate shade of character between these varieties ; but none of them would intermix with the wood or white alpine. The Hautbois did not breed with any of the preceding varieties, except in one instance with the Bath scarlet, from the seeds of which 1 obtained plants which proved apparently to be mules. . I preserved these several years, in which they made feeble and always abortive efforts to produce blossoms. In external charac- ter all of these a good deal resembled the hautbois in foliage and general habit; and two of them were not readily distinguishable from plants of that species. — _ The preceding results, therefore, lead me to conclude that our gardens contain three, and three only, distinct species of straw- berry, one of which has sported very widely in varieties. = ] much wish that some members of this learned Society would make experiments, similar to those above stated, upon the diffe- rent species and varieties of plants now comprehended within the - genus Rosa, Salix, Pelargonium, and others. Many of the sup- VOR Ait. 3B posed 364 Mr. T. A. Knicur on esculent Strawberries. posed species of each of the preceding genera would, I am very confident, be found. capable of breeding with, and being trans- muted into, each other, as to their external characters; and if botanical writers still choose to call such species, they ought cer- tainly to distinguish them from others, as secondary or trans- mutable species. The external form and character of each plant, as it came from the hand of nature, was probably sufficiently peculiar to render it readily distinguishable from those of every other species: but varieties of soil, of climate, and of culture ap- plied for other purposes, have so far mixed and confounded the primary characteristics of many species, that experiments, such as those above described, now afford probably the only source of decisive evidence. | XXIV. On [3 ny UO a) XXIV. On the Germination. of Lycopodium denticulatum, in a Letter to the Secretary from Richard Anthony Salisbury, Esq. F.R.S. and L.S. : Read June 3, 1817. Dear Sir, E Pnorssson Brorero’s description of the Lycopodium denticu- latum agrees so exactly with the plant of which I send you some figures, Tan. XIX., that I have nothing to add to it, except that I have never found the capsule three-lobed, as he says it is, but invariably four-lobed: in some positions, however, it appears three-lobed, and he himself mentions that it always contains four seeds. | PSU | Notwithstanding I have examined many flowering branches, I have not been able to detect the manner in which the seeds are feecundated, or to find any thing like an Embryo in them, though they come up in abundance spontaneously under the parent plant, and on the adjacent moist parts of the shelf, where it stands in Mr. Joseph Knight's greenhouse. | ! The seeds contain at an early period of their formation a' clear liquor, which quickly evaporates, and flashes when applied to a candle: this liquor soon becomes milky, and is finally converted into what appears to me grumous albumen.—I am not certain how the seeds are inserted, and believe that I have not yet been so lucky as to meet with a single fæcundated seed, though perfect in all other respects; for this occurs in Cycas, when there is no male plant to foecundate its seeds. In one capsule, in which the 382 : seeds 3606 Mr. R. A. SALISBURY on the Germination seeds had ceased to swell, apparently from their earliest formation, they adhered together to something like a central placenta: in all the other capsules I found them loose, and suspect the pla- centa had been absorbed by the liquid remaining in the capsule. A very minute hilum remained always visible, and the three- radiated mark originating there appears to me to be only three stronger ribs of the reticulated cuticle of the seed. The germination of this plant approaches much nearer to that of Dicotyledones than to that of Monocotyledones, especially if that part which Brotero calls vitellus be considered a radicle. I am, however, inclined to think that it is true albumen, though it does | adhere to the embryo; and till we can succeed in getting plenty . of perfect seeds, or to catch them in a still earlier stage of germi- nation than the first figure. I now send you represents, this point will remain dubious. au In the mean while, a comparison of the seeds of this Lycopo- dium with those of Isoetes and Pilularia, which they exactly re- semble, will assist us ; and as Brotero says that be has.seen the easy he describes for stigma ** liquore unctuoso diutissime perfu- sum,” I have little hesitation in believing that itis so: before I read his account, I took the suture at the i top, where the capsule afterwards splits, for the stigma, and it is not very unlike the stigma of Stylidium. I remain, &c. 8, Queen-Street, Edgeware-Road, R. A. SALISBURY. June 3, 1817. REFE- of Lycopodium den ticulatum. 367 REFERENCES TO THE FIGURES. Tas. XIX. Fig. 1. adada. 10. 11,12. ders 2M. A seed in the earliest stage of germination yet observed. The same more advanced. Its seed-coat removed to show the vitedlus of Brotero adhering. Still more advanced. An anther. The same splitting and discharging its yel- low pollen: I find no difference between this pollen and that of other Lycopodiums, which has been regarded as seed. . Upper and under surfaces of a capsule, the latter showing its pedicellus. The ‘part described for stigma by Brotero: it is thinner and. more transparent than _ the rest of the capsule. A capsule burst naturally, with its four seeds. Two views of a seed more magnified, the latter showing its hilum and E mark. ; À transverse section, filled with white gru- — mous albumen? — - : One of the reticulated - areas of the cuticle, highly magnified, in the centre of which, while young, there is a succulent bristle green at the point. XXV. Some € 368 `) XXV. Some Account ft the ee arin solidum of the Flora Vi ~ ginica, the Lycoperdon cervinum of Walter. By James Mác- bride, M.D. of South Carolina. Communicated by the President. Read dine. S. 1817. T urs fungus is most frequently — up in lands w hich have not been clones: of their original wood more than three or four years, in the preparation for planting. It is found at various depths, from a féw inches to two feet, and is sometimes met with partly above ground. I have seen it in every variety of soil, except swampy ; but it is found in greatest abundance, and appears to attain to the greatest size, in loose rich, lands, the forest-trees of which were. different species of oak, Juglans alba, Linn., and Pinus Tada. It is very common in the southern states; but is rarely seen further north than Maryland. Its shape is irregular ; the largest specimens approach the globular form, or the cylin- drical with globular ends. I have seen a specimen which weighed fifteen pounds; and I am credibly informed a single tuber has weighed thirty or forty pounds. The common opinion entertained of this substance is, that it is the root of the Erythrina herbacea or Convoloulus panduratus, both of which bave large roots, and that of the latter penetrating the earth to a considerable depth. "The usual appeliation of it is Indian Potatoe or Indian Bread. It was used by the Indians as an article of food, as their name for it (Tuckahoe) is said to imply. -= Fugitive Dr. Macnauinr's Account of the Lycoperdon solidum. 369 Fugitive negroes sometimes subsist upon it. Deer, the wood-rat (a Sorez ?), and probably squirrels, feed upon it when it grows sufficiently near the surface of the earth. From the abundance in which it grows, and its nutritious quality, it must have been to the aborigines a considerable source of subsistence, had they known any method of detecting it. The discovery of it now is always accidental. | This. fungus is parasitic at first, growing out of the living roots of various trees. It appears at first, in most instances, between the wood of the root and liber; but in some. of the smallest spe- cimens accompanying this paper it can be seen only between the lamellz of the outer. bark. It may, like other fungi, emanate from — dead wood, but the smallest specimens which I have seen were attached to living roots. During its growth it detaches the bark - from the roots, incorporating it with its coat, surrounds the ligneous portion, and gradually assimilates it with its own pe- culiar internal substance. If during the expansion of the fan: gus it comes in contact with the root of another tree, it is also assimilated with it. In large specimens no traces of the bark or wood of the original root are discernible. Nothing is known respecting the progress or duration of the growth of the Tucka- hoe; it has been dug up in — cleared of wood. more than: a century. The outer coat of this — is of a hainig colour, iod roughened by irregular fissures ; the inner, if I may be allowed to make this distinction, is coriaceous, resembling that portion of some of the Boleti which is used as touchwood ; and when a part of the fungus grows exposed, the inner coat of that portion is thickened, and when properly dried is very combustible. The ‘internal substance is insipid, inodorous, of an uniform white, compact, and not disposed i in any regular. manner; but in fresh specimens, 370 Dr. MACBRIDE’S Accoùnt of the Lycoperdon solidum. specimens, divided transversely, it uniformly cracks in lines per- pendicular to the surface. In a solitary specimen, which was very large, I observed something like a disposition of the inter- nal substance in concentric laminæ ; but I have macerated many specimens in water, and corroded them by acids, without disco- vering that such a structure really obtains. The Tuckahoe newly dug up contains little moisture, and soon becomes very hard if kept in a dry place; but in a situation un- favourable to evaporation, a fine white byssus issues from it and envelops it. I have seldom, if ever, seen it undergo any change resembling putrefaction. When exposed a long time to the weather, it crumbles, assumes a ferruginous colour, and becomes acidulous to the taste. The internal substance moistened with - water feels slippery. When dried particles of it are pressed be- tween the teeth, they have a cohesive effect ; when moistened w ith water and spread over a hot surface, they form a tough elastic pellicle, which, if exposed to a. greater degree of heat, blackens, froths, and emits a smell resembling that of burning bread. When an infusion of galls is added to water in which the tuber has been macerated, a copious white precipitate is thrown down. Sul- phuric acid dissolves it, and Acquires a purple colour, which in a few days deepens into a black. Water added to this solution causes a dark, flaky precipitate. | From such experiments as I have made with this fungus, I am led to believe its internal part is chiefly composed of gluten, but differently modified from that which we obtain from the Cerealia. Ihave not succeeded in procuring from it any starch or fibrous matter. In some specimens I have pba portions of the internal substance loose and friable. "These were always saccharine and acidulous to the taste. MÉ Iam Dr. MacnnriDz's Account of the Lycoperdon solidum. 371 I am sorry that I am unable to give any information as to the following particulars : | 1. How long the fungus continues to derive support from the juices of the roots out of which it grows, and whether it causes the death of the inferior portion of the root. 2. Whether the Indians knew any method of finding it similar to what is practised by the truffle-hunters in Europe. Tradition says they did. .8. The probable quantity of the fungus produced by a given portion of ground. T Chudeiton: March 28, 1817. 7E ESS BE. ^ VOL. XII. 3c XXVI. An 6 972.) XXVI. An Account of | Rhizomorpha, medullaris, a new British Fungus. By Sir James Edward Smith, M.D. F.R.S. P.L.S. . Read June 17, 1817. "Tuis, which appears to be a nondescript species of Rhizomorpha, was communicated to me by Mr. Francis Boott, an American botanist, who met with it during his visit to Derby, in the course of last spring. It was first observed, many months before, by Mr. Bainbrigge, house-surgeon to the Derby Infirmary, and seems to have excited attention as a troublesome intruder into the re- servoir destined to supply the baths. That gentleman thus de- scribes the appearance and situation of the fungus in question. - * The reservoir in which it was found is a kind of circular cel- lar, with an opening at the top. Itis situated in the shrubbery, and contains water to supply the baths, which is conveyed by leaden pipes. As the water is sent by a forcing-pump, a piece of timber was fixed across the upper part, to support a perpendicu- lar pipe that admitted the water. From this timber, which was deal, and not in the least decayed, the plant hung, and as the depth of the water varied, a greater or less quantity floated on the surface. I believe the whole of it would be seldom immersed ; but the wood, and every part of the plant, would be always wet, in consequence of the water goingin with considerable force. Isaw the joiner measure the fungus immediately on our getting it out, and he says the length was 12 feet. This I have quite forgotten, | | but Sir J. E. Suiru's Account of Rhizomorpha medullaris. 873 = fa pot am inclined to think him mistaken. The plant had a beautiful _ appearance in the water, from the fibres diverging in every direc- tion, and its whiteness, which was lost when it became dry. The extremities were peculiarly brittle. Even the agitation of the water broke off large quantities. This produced great inconve- nience, and several attempts were made to destroy the plant, by clearing it away; which not succeeding, the timber was, at length, removed. Oak has been substituted, smeared with tar, pitch and tallow, which has hitherto had the desired effect. The old beam has been used for other purposes."—Such is Mr. Bain- biigges very accurate account. Mrs. Hardcastle of Derby, to wi al bted for the drawings now laid before the Lin- nean tas tha she only. heard of this curious vege- table production by accident, after it had Jain by ten months in a dry state. Her drawing therefore represents this state only, and is here accompanied by a very small portion of the original spe- cimen. This, in its brown and shrivelled appearance, much re- sembles the roots of willows or poplars, such as often find their way under ground into some adjacent river, or water-course. These have often been brought for my inspection, and I must confess they have led me to doubt the existence of some reputed Rhizomorphe ; but I shall in future be more precise in my exa- minations, lest I should inadvertently confound with them genuine fungus. That the present is really of the latter descrip- tion, appears from its history, as well as from the texture of the dried plant, whose internal substance does not, like a root, con- sist of concentric circles, but of an uniform congeries of longitu- dinal parallel tubes, in the dried specimen at least, of a yellowish my colour. There is nothing like a central pith. And yet the brown d external coat, though not separable like the bark of a root, so great a resemblance to that part, as almost to sta 3c2 | | 374 Sir J. E. SuiTn's Account of Rhizomorpha medullaris. opinion. The taste of the dried plant has nothing of a fungus- — like flavour, but in its slight astringency agrees with many, almost - tasteless, roots. ‘The above history of the origin of the plant, from a piece of wrought: , and its copious growth, must pre- clude all idea of its bein; ng any thing else than a parasitical fungus. The specific character may thus be given: | RHIZOMORPHA, medullaris, teres ramosissima nivea ; intus cel- lulosa flavescens. — E - Sa T m 3 REFERENCE TO PLATE XX medullaris. 2. Terminatiôn of-a principal Bench, Lu À transverse section of the stem magnified. T E Lui d dna + : HE : J. E. SMITH. XXVI. A Cen- * ig: AAYE: - À Conti i A NAP several new Genera de- scribed from his ip By the Rev. William Kirby, M.A. FR. and L.S, = Read November ^ 1817. | po host et apr ae insects occurring in the ento- mological cabinets of this country, is rather disgraceful to us: and what is more so, we permit foreigners to do that for us which we are fully competent to do ourselves. Witness the numbers described by Fabricius, Olivier, and others from British col- lections. ; Tue i nih Pudet hze opprobria nobis. — Et diei potuisse et non. potuisse refelli.. I am not, however, so illiberal as to wish that the entomologists. of the continent should be excluded from our cabinets : if we our- selves are too idle, or too busy, to give the public some account of our entomological treasures, it is for the interest of science that they should do it for us. s . To remove, in some degree, this opprobrium, I offer to the Linnean Society descriptions ofa century of s the non- cript insects of 1 my own. cabinet. Should this a tem with approbation, I may be induced, perhaps, to dec mainder; and I wish tbat my example may stimulate other gen- tlemen to do the same with respect to their own collections. In my general arrangement I have followed that of my kind and > Ss = found that. s. * e m Mr. Kies Century of Insects. and learn it | y wes, contained many insects that could not well be p laced in any of his Tz ED These I have named EE (Cicindelide) a i Mrcacernara Latreille. — — brasiliensis. 1. M. viridis, elytris dorso nigro: macula apicis, ore, pedibusque rufescentibus, Ed. Long. corp. lin. 81—9. s Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. | M. Caroline simillima, sed minus nitida. Thorax dorso nigrescit. — Elytra nigra: margine laterali tantum viridi; macula apicis | lineari rufa, nec apex ipse pallidus ut in illa. E" The comparative length of the maxillary and labial palpi, upon which this genus is built, seems to me, in this case especially, to indicate a family rather than a genus. The labrum, however, is of a different shape from that of most other Cicindelide. CICINDELA Linn. nivea. d ænea niveo-pilosa, labro elytrisque glabris albis. E Long. corp. lin. 7. Habitats in Brasilia. D. Hancock. decumbentibus, vestitis. Labrum album glabrum. Elytra glaberrima, punctulatissima, alba: scutello suturaque æneis, prope basin lineis duabus; interiori longiori; punctorum im- pressorum e, “in adhering Cow I have — st | C. capensis, sed paulo angustior. Corpus æneu T ibus, capite thorace pedibusque pilis longis niveis SC LN P s^ ^^ Mr. Kinn's Century of Taberi, pressorum nigrorum. Postpectus * et abdomen medio glabra " _ purpurascentia. ipi " i (Carabide.) : Wie ScaRITES Fabr. excavatus. 3. S.ater,elytris elevato-striatis: interstitiis serie punc- torum excavatorum. Long. corp. lin. 172. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus lineari-oblongum, atrum, glaberrimum, vix nitidum. Caput antice striatulum bisulcum : puncto impresso in utroque sulco, -alioque insu per utrinque in vertice. Mandibule extus elevato- lineatæ, intus dente lato depresso rotundato striato armatæ. Elytra striis septem elevatis: interstitiis serie punctorum mag- norum excavatorum. Epipleura + medio longitudinaliter gra- nulata. Pevecium Kirby. | ; Labrum brevissimum disco excavatum, antice et postice obtusan- gulum : angulis anum spectantibus. Labium apice subemarginatum biaristatum. iid Palpi articulo extimo magno elongato obtriangulari sive obcunei- formi. < A | | | Antenne filiformes. Thorax cordato-oblongus. Tibie anteriores intus emarg 205 SES CSS hé SET tS and de fra et x coa Fic. Eiklcs T T TES à à De 6 à La * Bythis term Mr. Spence and myself have distinguished that part of the body in which the four posterior legs are inserted, t By this term we designate that part of the elytrum that is under the lateral margin, which often covers the sides of the body, and is remarkable in many Heteromerous insects. This + $ Mr. KirBx’s Century of Insects. i : This genus is distinguished from all others of the tribe by the form of its labrum, and of the last joint of the palpi. It should be. placed at the end of Latreille’ s fifth section, between Pana- geus and Cychrus *. ". 4 cyanipes. À, P. provin Prare XXI. Fig. 1. Long. corp. lin. 75. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus oblongum, atrum, glabrum, obscurum. Caput subcor- datum violascente-nigrum. Clypeus distinctus, transversus, quadrangulus; pone clypeum foveole dus longitudinales. Labrum tenue, hic inde obtusangulum: angulis anum spec- tantibus, disco excavatum. Mandibule capitis fere longitudine, .edentulez, acute. Labium articulatum, apice subemarginatum | biaristatum. Mentum magnum, transversum, emarginatum, basin maxillarum tegens. Palpi maaillares exteriores quinque- articulati: articulis duobus primis brevissimis, tertio elongato subarcuato, quarto brevi obconico, extimo magno compresso elongato-obtriangulari vel obcuneiformi ; labiales triarticulati : articulo primo brevi fere obconico, secundo elongato filiformi flexuoso, extimo fere ut in maxillaribus sed paulo majori. An- tennæ rufæ, basi violascentes: articulis longitudine fere æqua- libus: primis quatuor obconicis, sequentibus oblongis: extimo, obtuso. Collum subglobosum. Thorax oblongus vel oblongo- »cordatus, quadrangulus, antice latior et emarginatus, postice subrepandus et utrinque sulco impressus : lateribus rotundatis marginatis, dorso canaliculatus. Scutellum minutum, triangu- lare. Elytra porcata: porcis septem obtusiusculis, ante mar- * Cuvier, Règne Animal, iii. 197. : ginem Mr. KirBy's Century of Insects... 379 ginem lateralem serie punctorum excavatorum. Epipleura an- gusta, sinuata. Sternum elevatum apice anum spectante. Tibie antice intus emarginatæ. Tarsi anteriores dilatate: arti- culo penultimo bilobo. | CALOSOMA. chinense.. 5. C. atrum, supra nigro-æneum, scabrum, elytris punc- tis impressis inauratis triplici serie. Long. corp. lin. 15. Habitat in China. D. J. Davie. Corpus subtus atrum, supra nigro-æneum, obscurum. Caput punctulis minutissimis confluentibus impressis irroratum. Tho- rav punctulis rugulisve confertissimis scaber, dorso obsolete canaliculatus, utrinque postice valde impressus. Coleoptra oblongo-quadrata, granulis minutissimis numerosissimis exas- perata, punctis insuper impressis inauratis triplici serie. Epi- pleura angustissima. | laterale. 6. C.æneum nitidum, thorace elytrisque margine viridi, . his striis crenatis, punctis elevatis triplici serie. Long. corp. lin. 13. | Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus subtus atrum, supra æneum nitidum. Caput inter oculos confluenter, postice sparse, punctulatum. Antenne apice ci- nereo-rufescentes. Thorax canaliculatus, utrinque impressus : margine omni viridi punctulato; disco lzviori. Elytra elevato- ` striata: striis transverse impresso-lineatis ; interstitiis punctatis, unde stri: crenate videntur. Striz a sutura tertia, septima, et undecima e punctis elevatis oblongis lzvibus: interstitiis viridi-inauratis, constant. Margo lateralis viridis. Epipleura antice angusta, postice angustissima et vix ulla. YOL. XII. : 3 D : This | 380 . Mr. Kinav's Century of Insects; - This insect stands in the Banksian cabinet as Carabus calidus Fabr.; but since that specimen was not labelled by Fabricius, and does not agree either with his description or that of Olivier, I conceive my insect to be nondescript. curvipes. T. C. nigro-æneum, obscurum, elytris striatis: punctis impressis inauratis triplici serie, tibiis posteriori- bus arcuatis. Long. corp. lin. 112. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Priecedenti simillimum sed minus, supra magis obscurum, tactu scabrum. Caput et Thorax punctulis minutissimis confertissimis confluentibus tecta; hic totus concolor postice angustior. Ely- _ tra fere ut in precedente, sed unicolora nec margine viridi: striis ànterstitiis: haud punctatis,. et omnibus transverse impresso- lineatis. Puncta impressa inaurata triplici serie. — Epipleura postice magis conspicua. Tibie quatuor posteriores arcuate: (Buprestide). . BUPRESTIS. pulchella. 8. B. elytris acuminatis scabris : laco duabus ob- scuris albis, corpore lineari cyaneo. : Long. corp. lin. 42. Habitat in Australasia. D. MacLeay. Corpus angustum, lineare, cyaneum, punctatum. | Caput orbicu- latum, postice longitudinaliter impressum. Antenne breves, serrate. Thorax ex rugulis transversis scaber, postice utrinque elevatus et in medio foveatus. Scutellum transversum, brevis- simum, supra. linea elevata. Elytra amoene violacea, ex gra- nulis complanatis scabra, sericeo-obscura, pone medium utrin- que tumida, basiin medio impressa, apice attenuata et extus mucrone Mr. Kinay's Century of Insects. — 25» mucrone valido acuto armata. Fasciæ duz obsolete piloso- albidz ante apicem in elytro cernende. ; jucunda. 9. B. elytris serratis cyaneis : fascia postica punctoque laterali sanguineis, thorace canaliculato. Long. corp. lin. 13. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus oblongum, subtus viride nitidissimum. Caput punctula- tum, cyaneum: ore acuminato. Antenne thorace breviores, serrate, Cyaneæ. Thorax punctulatus, cyaneus, conicus, an- tice truncatus, postice utrinque subito dilatatus et in medio sublobatus, dorso canaliculatus. Scutellum rotundatum, basi emarginatum, apice impressum. Elytra planiuscula, cyanea, striato-punctata, basi impressa, a medio ad apicem serrata, ante apicem fascia lata sinuata et in medio prope marginem externum puncto, sanguineis. Sternum magnum, protensum, conicum. Pedes cyanei. Anus supra rufus. At first I mistook this beautiful insect for B. equestris Fabr. ; but the terms—Corpus æneum—sterno parum porrecto—Elytra punctorum duorum par, by no means agreed with it: and when I further compared it with Olivier's B. hemorrhoidalis, to which Fa- bricius refers as synonymous with his B. equestris, Iwas fully con- vinced that they were distinct species; since from Olivier's figure E appears ihat: D. hamorrhoidalis is. little more than half the “se of this abdomen are red, whereas fir the latter they are ireen". amæna. 10. B. elytris serratis, apice bidentatis, cyaneis, striatis : fascia postica subarcuata testacea. Long. corp. lin. 84—11. * Fabr, Ent. Syst. Em. ii. 195. Oliv. ii. Buprestis 32. 38. 47, t. x. f. 109. 3 D 2 Habitat 382 Mr. Kinrsy’s Century of Insects. -. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Affinis precedenti sed alia. Corpus e viridi cyaneum. Thorax haud canaliculatus: angulis posticis non dilatatis. Scutellum oblongum. Elytra subsulcata: sulcis vix conspicue puncta- tis, ante apicem fascia subarcuata subtestacea aut flava, apice ipso interne bispinoso. Abdomen supra et infra concolor. Var. 8. minor, cyanea: elytris fascia vix arcuata lutea: thoracis dorso foveolis binis impressis. An eadem? leucosticta. 11. B. elytris serrulatis atro-violaceis scabris: punc- tis sparsis albis, corpore aurato-viridi. Long. corp. lin. 6—63. Habitat in Australasia. D. MacLeay. | . B. in Mus. D. Brown. i n oblongum, subcylindricum, aurato-viride, punctulatum. - Caput orbiculatum, excavato-punctatum, cupreo-auratum, inter oculos valde impressum. Antenne breves, æneæ, serrate. Thorar cupreo-auratus, excavato-punctatus. Scutellum latum, acuminatum, leve, aurato-viride. Elytra atro-violacea, reti- culato-rugosa: areolis singulis granuliferis unde tactu scabra, punctis sparsis squamoso-albis irrorata, apice serrulata. : 4b- domen segmentis ventralibus utrinque macula squamoso-alba. Var. 8. capite thoraceque aurato-viridibus ; elytris purpurascen- tibus. (Elateride.) EvaTer. pubescens. 12. E. niger, thoracis lateribus linea intermedia litu- | risque duabus obliquis, elytrorumque latere exteriori, pallidis. Long. corp. lin. 93. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. 385 Corpus lineare, nigrum, ex pube infuscatum. . Caput inter oculos fovea impressa. Antenne thoracis fere longitudine, serrate. Thorax obtuse canaliculatus : margine laterali et antico, lituris duabus dorsalibus obliquis, lineaque intermedia longitudinali, pallidis. Scutellum oblongum. ` Elytra vix striata, basi im- pressa: margine laterali, apice excepto, late pallida. inermis. 13. E. testaceus, thcrace linea dorsali, ran sp vittis tribus, antennisque, nigris. Long. corp. lin. 174. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. : Corpus lineari-lanceolatum, læve, nitidum, glaberrimum, subtus pallide testaceum. Palpi mazillares articulo extimo magno, oblongo, subarcuato, subpetiolato, compresso. Facies inter oculos pone antennas utrinque longitudinaliter elevata: fossula profunda intermedia. Antenne thoracis longitudine, serrate, nigræ : articulis duobus primis testaceis. Thorax elongatus in- æqualis, flavo-testaceus : vitta dorsali nigra, antice obsolete tri- ]obus : lobo intermedio emarginato ; lateralibus deflexis, postice etiam trilobus : lobo intermedio truncato ; lateralibus acutissi- mis. Scutellum rotundatum. Coleoptra punctato-striata, trans- verse rugulosa, basi impressa, lutea: vittis tribus, intermedia communi, lateralibus per medium elytri a humero ductis, nigris, apice mucronata. Abdomen subtus segmento anali foyeis binis ovatis excavatis pilosis. cornutus, 14, E. testaceus, capite bicorni, thorace lineis duabus dorsalibus interruptis, coleoptrisque vittis tri- z bus atris. | Long. corp. lin. 11—15. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus dilute testaceum, nitidum, subtus utrinque vitta, sæpius interrupta, 384 Mr. Kirey’s Century of Insects. interrupta, atra. -Caput cornubus duobus brevibus porrectis antice armatum, inter cornua impressum, puncto nigro antice et postice signatum. Palpi et Antenne fere ut in precedente. Thorax elongatus, antice utrinque angulis porrectis, postice obsolete trilobus: lobis rotundatis, lineis binis dorsalibus pone interruptis, et utrinque supra et infra puncto laterali, atris. Scutellum subrotundatum. Coleoptra punctato-striata: vittis tribus, intermedia communi, lateralibus marginalibus basin haud attingentibus, atris, apice mucronata. Abdomen subtus segmento anali foveis binis oblongis pilosis. | These two insects seem nearly allied to three species of Fabri- cius, Æ. suturalis, bicornis, and vespertinus; but at the same time they appear to be quite distinct from them. From the first they are sufficiently distinguished by having no lateral thoracic tooth or spine; from the second in their colour, E. bicornis being en- tirely black; and from the third i in the colour of their head and antenne. From the different shape of the last joint of their .palpi, and from the remarkable pair of impressions on the anal segment of the underside of the abdomen, these insects should form a distinct family, if not a distinct genus. (Cebrionide.) ANELASTES Kirby. Labrite tectum, minutum, apice rotundatum. Labium subquadratum, bifidum. Mandibule exsertæ, edentulæ, incurvæ, acutæ. Palpi brevissimi, filiformes. Mavillares articulo extimo paulo majori, oblique truncato. s Antenne filiformes, moniliformes: articulo extimo sublunato. Corpus lineare, subcylindricum. Pectus inerme. This Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. . See This genus connects Latreille’s tribe of Cebrionites (Cebrionide K.) with the Elateride. It differs from all the present genera of that tribe in its moniliform antenne and short palpi, and more espe- ` cially in having its labrum quite concealed by the clypeus. From Elater, which in habit it most resembles, it is distinguished not only by these circumstances, but also by its protended mandibles and deflexed sternum. | Drurii. :35:.A. | Phara XXI. Fic. 2. Long. corp. lin. 6. Habitat Ex Muszo D. Drury. Corpus lineare, subcylindricum, fuscum, obscurum, sonbeusr. Caput suborbiculatum, thorace receptum. | Labrum subinflex- um, parvum, apice rotundatum, hirsutum, clypeo penitus tec- tum. Labium subquadratum, bifidum. — Mandibule exsertæ, edentulz, apice incurva, acute. Maaille breves: lobo lato, corneo, glabro, apice rotundato. Palpi brevissimi; filiformes, maaillares articulo extimo obtriangulari. Mentum transversum, quadrangulum, disco excavatum. Antenne in sinu frontis anteriori insertæ, thorace breviores, filiformes, moniliformes : articulo primo incrassato reliquis longiori, secundo subgloboso, tertio sequentibus longiori obconico, sequentibus subglobosis, extimo longiori sublunato acuto. Thorax convexus, antice transversus, postice dorso acini tre obsolete trilobus : an- gulis lateralibus. acuminatis. . tellum tr ilare, acutum. Elytra striata : striis punctatis. "Epipleard vix ulla. Tibie apice bicalcarate. Sternum deflexum. at PT RurPricrnA Latreille. marginata. 16. R.viridis pubescens, elytris fuscis punctatis: mar- gine omni pallido, pedibus nigris basi rufis. PLATE 386 Mr. Kannav's Century of Insects. Prate XXI. Fic. 3. Long. corp. lin. 103—12. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. : Corpus lineare, subcylindricum, obscuro-viride, mollissime cine- reo-pubescens. Caput suborbiculatum. Labrum rotundatum, apice emarginatum. Labium integrum, minutum, hirsutissi- mum. Mandibule magne, porrectæ, primum divergentes, de- mum subito convergentes, unde subfractæ evadunt, intus basin versus dente valido acuto armate. Palpi longi admo- dum: articulo extimo subovato. Mentum transversum. An- tenne nigra, multiarticulate, flabellatæ : ramulis circiter 27,a medio basin versus et apicem longitudine sensim decrescentes. | Thorax subconicus, antice transversus, postice obsolete trilo- bus: lobo intermedio emarginato, lateralibus acutis. Elytra - fusca, punctata, margine omni, summo apice excepto, pallide favo. Pedes nigri: femoribus, apice excepto, coxisque rufis. Tibie apice bicalcaratz. Sternum rufum, acutum, incurvum, vix deflexum. Abdomen segmentis plerisque apice obscure rufis. The Brasil species of this genus vary from those of New Hol- land (one of which I shall hereafter have occasion to describe) in. having only one tooth near the inner base of each mandible; whereas in the latter there are two. The last joint of the palpi of this. is cylindrical, while in R. marginata it is subovate or ovato- lanceolate. Hence may be formed two natural families in the genus, * Mandibulis intus unidentatis ; ** Mandibulis intus biden- tatis, (Lampyride.) , Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. 387 (Lampyride.) Lampyris Linn. * Ovate. Latreilli. 17. L. elytris nigris testaceo-lineatis, antennis mas- culis disticho-flabellatis, femineis disticho-ser- ratis. Pratt XXI. Fro. 4. Long. corp. d. lin. 12. | | 2, lin. 13. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. d. Corpus depressum, atrum, obscurum. Antenne decem-articulate, nigra: articulis intermediis octo utrinque ex apice ramum longum, compressum, linearem, fere foliiformem, flexilem emit- tentibus, extimo simplici compresso longissimo. Thora pal- lide testaceus: maculis tribus magnis, intermedio longiori tri- 7 angulari, nigris. Elytra confluenter punctulatissima ; margine omni, apice excepto, lineolis tribus obscuris dorsalibus, vitta- que hamata a humeris ducta postice abbreviata, pallide testa- ceis. Ale nigrae. Abdomen immaculatum. . : à ! Antenne undc imbricatim disticho-serratæ. In honorem viri . , Entomologorum hodiernorum facile principis, DOPO Latreille, Galli. icd E Ie Illigeri. 18. L. thorace lituris duabus elytris unica laterali ba- sis, pallidis, antennis flabellatis. Long. corp. lin. 10. — Habitat in Brasilia: D. Hancock. . | YOL. XII. 3 E Corpus 388 Mr. Kinnv's Century of. Iisects. Corpus atrum, supra magis obscurum. Antenne nigræ, undecim- articulate, intus flabellatæ. Thorav reflexus, punctatus, dorso leviusculus gibbus: lituris duabus obliquis pallidis. Elytra confluenter punctulatissima; lineis quinque longitudinalibus elevatiusculis in apicem elytri anastomosantibus, vitta margi- nali basis pallida. Pedes basi pallidi. Abdomen subtus seg- mento anali utrinque lucernula* pallida. In honorem viri doctissimi, et in Entomologia heu desideratissimi, D. Illigeri, Borussi. . Savignü. 19. L. thorace fenestrato pallido; dorso margineque nigris: vitta laterali abdomineque pallidis. Long. corp. lin. 91. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. : | Affinis precedenti, sed distincta. Corpus pallidum. Antenne corpore dimidio breviores, nigri, compressæ, serrate. Thorax pallidus, vix reflexus, supra oculos fenestratus: dorso gibbo ` margineque nigris. Elytra fusco-nigra: lineis quatuor eleva- ` tis obsoletiusculis, vitta Jaterali apicem haud attingente pal- ~ Jida. ; ` In honorem Zoologia Ægypti peritissimi interpretis, in Entomolo- gia oculatissimi, D. J. C. Savigny, Galli. - - ; (Cleride.) - Y exclude from this tribe two genera placed in it by Latreille, (Mastigus Hoff. and Scydmenus Latr.), but which, having little affinity with it, had better stand by themselves, and then divide it into two sections: the first containing those with serrated an- tennæ (serricornes), and the second those with clavated (clavicornes). * By this term I distinguish the phosphoric spots on the thorax of Elater noctilucus, and those also on the ventral segments of the abdomen of Lampyris, : : | * Serricornes. Mr. Krnpy's Century of Insects. 389 * Serricornes. Evryeus Kirby. Labrum transversum, integrum. Labium bifidum. Palpi omnes articulo extimo majori, securiformi. mazillares quadriarticulati. labiales biarticulati. Antenne serrate. Thorax subquadratus. Corpus depressum. | Trizus Fabr. Labrum transversum, integrum. Labium minutum, integrum. Palpi maaillares filiformes, triarticulati. labiales biarticulati: articulo extimo maximo, securiformi. Antenne serrate. Thorax cylindricus. Corpus convexum, | | AxiNA Kirby. Labrum emarginatum. Labium bifidum? _ : | Palpi omnes articulo extimo magno, securiformi. — . gnaaillares triarticulati, | labiales biarticulati. Antenne serrate. — Thorax cylindricus. Corpus subdepressum. = PriocerA Kirby. Labrum emarginatum. | Labium bifidum. 3z2 Palpi 390 Mr. Kirey’s Century of Insects. Palpi maxillares filiformes, quadriarticulati: articulo extimo com- presso, oblongo. : labiales triarticulati: articulo extimo magno, petiolato, se- curiformi. eter | TN Antenna serrate. Thorax teretiusculus, postice valde constrictus. Corpus convexum. Latreille's character of Tillus in Cuvier's Règne Animal *, “où la majeure partie des antennes est en forme de scie, et où les tarses, vus sur les deux faces, ont cinque articles trés-apparens,” would include the four genera I have here defined. But the other characters exhibited by them, both as to their habit and general form, and their oral instruments, are so different, that every ento- mologist who at all adopts that learned author's system would consider them as good genera. Thus in Eurypus and Tillus the labrum is entire, while in Arina and Priocera it is emarginate. Again, the labium in Tillus is entire, but in the three other genera bifid. In Eurypus and Axina all the palpi terminate in. a securi- form joint; in Tillus and Priocera, only the labial ones. In Eury- pus and Priocera the maxillary palpi consist of four joints ; in Tillus and Avina, only of three. In Eurypus, Tillus, and Aaina the labial palpi are biarticulate, but in Priocera they are triarti- culate. In Eurypus the thorax.is square; in Tillus and Aring, cylindrical ; and in Priocera, constricted behind. Evnv»rvus. " rubens. 20. E. | PraATE XXI. Fre. 5. - Long. corp. lin. 6, Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. * iji, 254, | P | orpus Mr, Kirpy’s Century of Insects. 391 Corpus lineari-oblongum, depressum, nitidiusculum, punctalatis- simum, villosulum, rubens. Caput suborbiculatum: ore pro- ducto. Labrum transversum, integrum. Labium bifidum. Man- dibule tectæ. Palpi maaillares longiusculi, quadriarticulati : articulo primo brevissimo subcylindrico, sequentibus duobus brevibus obconicis, extimo magno obtriangulari, /abiales biar- ticulati brevissimi: articulo primo filiformi, secundo majori, sed non magno, obtriangulari. Mentum subtransversum qua- drangulum. Antenna serrate? rufæ, apice nigrz. (In nostro specimine articuli quatuor ultimi desunt.) . Oculi prominuli, sub- hemispherici. Thorax subquadratus, planiusculus: dorso fo- veis binis impressis. Elyéra planiuscula, basi latere exteriori, et lineola apicis prope suturam nigris. Pedes breves. Tibie vix calcarate. Tarsi articulo penultimo latissimo, bilobo. AXINA. Pirit XXI. Fio. 6. : Long. corp. lin. 6. - Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus lineare, villosum, subtus fuscum, supra pallidum. Caput deflexum, orbiculatum, punctatum, rufescens. Labrum trans- versum, emarginatum. Labium bifidum? Mandibule eden- . tuhe. Palpi rufi, mazillares triarticulati : articulo primo elon- gato clavato, secundo brevi obconico, extimo magno securi- A formi, labiales articulo primo et extimo ut in maxillaribus. | Oculi magni, reniformes, villosi, distincte reticulati. Antenne thorace breviores, rufie. Thorax elongatus, cylindricus, punc- tatus, dorso impressus, rufescens : lateribus fuscis. Elytra dorso planiuscula, punctata: lateribus, fasciis duabus; prima ante medium angusta, angulata, intus abbreviata, altera latiori di- lutiori analis, 921. A. 392 Mr. Krnnay's Century of Insects. lutiori apicis, punctisque sparsis, fuscis. Apex ipse elytri im- maculatus. Pedes fusci. Tibie vix calcaratæ. Tarsi longius pulvillati. Abdomen subtus segmentis duobus ultimis pallide flavis. | vt | PRIOCERA. PraATE XXI. Fic. 7. Long. corp. lin 6. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus lineare, nitidum, fusco-nigrum, villosum. Caput suborbi- culatum, deflexum, ex punctis confluentibus inter oculos rugu- losum. Labrum transversum apice emarginatum. Labium bifi- dum. Maxille lobo exteriori elongato, rotundato. Mandibule apice dentatæ. Palpi maaillaresfiliformes, quadriarticulati: arti- culis tribus primis brevissimis, extimo oblongo subcompresso, labiales triarticulati: articulo primo brevissimo, secundo elon- gato lineari compresso, extimo magno petiolato securiformi. Mentum subquadratum, disco excavatum. Antenne rufescentes, capite longiores, serrate, ex cochlea tubiformi in cantho oculo- rum sita provenientes. Oculi magni, reniformes, villosi, distincte reticulati. Thorax fuscus, punctatus, teretiusculus, postice valde constrictus et strangulatus, unde quasi capuciformis, dorso impressus. Coleoptra dimidiato-excavato-punctata, apice levia, rufa: maculis quatuor magnis quadratim ordinatis ; an- ticis duabus humeros occupantibus, posticis fasciæformibus | per medium transverse ductis, punctisque intermediis, flavis. Fascia fusca lata pone fasciam mediam flavam cernenda in singulo elytro. Apex immaculatus. Pedes fusco-nigri: tarsis rufescentibus ; pulvillis elongatis involutis. Tibie vix calca- rate. Abdomen subtus segmentis apice summo anaque rufis. variegata. 22. P. ** Clavicornes, Mr. Kannay's Century of Insects. 393 ** Clavicornes. asi EwoPLiUM Latr. lituratum. 23. E. pallidum, capite thoraceque rufis, elytris litura arcuata, antennisque, nigris. Long. corp. lin. 6. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. , Corpus obcuneato-lineare, pallidum, pubescens. Caput orbicu- latum, rufum, punctatum. Labrum transversum, emarginatum. - Labium apice bilobum: lobis rotundatis. Mandibule eden- tulæ, apice rotundatæ. Palpi maaillares triarticulati: articulo extimo majori subsecuriformi, labiales biarticulati: articulo extimo item securiformi. Antenne nigre : articulo primo rufo, tribus ultimis magnis clavam serratam formantibus, Thorax teretiusculus, punctatus, rufus, utrinque vitta nigra: lateribus retusis. Elytra punctata, apice latiora, pallida, basi rufescentia: litura angusta laterali arcuata, apiceque summo, nigris. Pedes pallidi: duobus anterioribus genubus nigris. Tibie vix calca- rate. Tarsi articulo primo minutissimo et tantum non obsoleto, | supra nigri, subtus longius pulvillati pallidi : articulis interme- diis bilobis. The first joint of the tarsi in this genus is scarcely visible under a strong magnifier; so that they may rather be regarded as tetra- merous than pentamerous insects. _ viridipenne. 24. E. rufum, elytris aurato-viridibus i punctato- | striatis, abdomine nigro utrinque punctis flavis. : ; Long. corp. lin. 71. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus lineare, rufum, punctatum, subhirtum. | Caput et Thorax figura 394 Mr. Kirey’s Century of Insects. figura fere ut in precedente. Antenne rufæ. Elytra aurato- viridia, nitidissima, basi seriatim punctata: punctis excavatis, apice levissime punctulata. Abdomen nigrum: i Es | . Long. corp. lin. 11. —. Habitat in Australasia. | EAE nf | Corpus subtus nigrum, pube alba decumbente incanum, supra luridum, nitidum. |. Thorax utrinque puncto majori impresso. - Elytra punctata: dorso insuper lineolis punctisque nigris inus- . . tis notato. Sternum acutum, porrectum, testaceum. Pedes tes- © taceisubaurati: tarsis splendore viridi. Tibie antice tridentate. - Abdomen nigro-cupreum. ATE RurELA latr. pulchella. 41. R. viridi-lutea, thoracis dorso, scutello, elytrisque fascia lunari, viridibus. so? PLATE 406 Mr. KinaY's Century of Insects. Prate XXI. Fie. 10. - Long. corp. lin. 83. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus luteo-testaceum, nitidum : flavedine viridi tincta. Caput punctatum, viride: clypeo antice luteo. Labrum subtriangu- . lare, sub clypeo latitans inflesum. Labium minutum transver- sum. Palpi maxillares clavati: articulo extimo majori, ovato- lanceolato. Labiales filiformes. Mandibule apice bidentate : dentibus rotundatis. Clypeus antice truncatus, emarginatus. Thorax medio latior, utrinque subangulatus, viridis, punctu- latus: lateribus luteis. Scutellum triangulare, viride. Coleoptra obsolete punctato-striata, luteo-testacea: basi apud scutellum, fasciaque lunari pone medium, viridia. Tibie valide, antice acute tridentate: tarsis nigris: unguiculis simplicibus. liturella. 42. R. viridi-lutea, supra viridis, thorace lateribus linea dorsali elytrisque vittis duabus luteis. : Long. corp. lin. 53. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus luteum, viridi micans, subtus utrinque rugulosum. | Caput punctatum viride: ore luteo. Clypeus antice truncatus emar- ginatus. Labium emarginatum. Thorav punctatissimus, viri- dis: lateribus obtusangulis lineolaque dorsali postice abbrevi- ata, luteis. Scutellum longitudine latius, viride, breve. Elytra striata: striis levibus; interioribus antice abbreviatis, viridia : vittis duabus, antice latioribus connexis, luteis. Tibie postice supra virides subtus cupreæ : anterioribus quatuor margine ex- terno viridi, antice acute tridentate. Tarsi rufo-picei. cyanipes. 43, R. oblonga, aurato-viridis, pedibus cyaneis. + Long. corp. lin. 17. 5 n Habitat Mr. Kirsy’s Century of Insects. ^. AUT Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Affinis Cetonie ignitæ Oliv. sed diversa. Corpus oblongum, to- tum aurato-viride, subtus pubescens. Caput punctulatum., Clypeus margine reflexo. Antenne clava elongata, viridi: caule fusco. Thoraz punctatus: lateribus rugosis. Elytra punctata: punctis impressis subseriatim ordinatis: serierum interstitiis punctulatis, lateribus rugosis. Pedes cyanei: tibiis anticis tri- dentatis. Abdomen ex lineolis impressis supra rugulosum, po- dice inflexo. | Gozraruus Lamarck. fasciatus, 44. G. fuscus albido irroratus, thorace viridescenti, elytris fascia obliqua nigra, clypei cornubus emarginatis. Long. corp. lin. 154. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus subtus nigrum, pubescens, supra totum varium punctis maculisque pollinoso-albis. Clypeus bilobus: lobis cornifor- mibus compressis elevatis, apice emarginatis. Antenne tes- tacez. Thorax fusco-viridis, inæqualis: margine laterali ro- tundato, dentato, dorso obsolete canaliculatus. Elytra fusca, polline albido variegata: fascia nigra obliqua angulata, ante apicem gibba. Tibie antice acute tridentate. Alt. serus cly- peo quadrato, rugoso: margine recurvo, quinquedentato. inscriptus. 45. G. fuscus albido irroratus, thorace viridescenti, elytris litera n reversa nivea inscriptis, clypei cornubus apice rotundatis. Long. corp. lin. 12. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Simillimus precedenti, sed minor. Clypeus die oi apice rotun- datis. 408 ‘Mr. Krrey’s Century of Insects. datis. Elytra punctis et: maculis pollinoso-subcinereis obscu- rioribus. In utroque elytro litera x reversa alba conspicienda. o bia: | "[nicuius Fale. Teiangaiam: 46. Ei ater; thorace triangulo i impresed; elytris lu- nula lituraque furcata, fulvis, podice utrin- que albo. Long. corp. lin. 4. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Affinis T. Delta, tamen omnino distinctus. Corpus nigrum, sub- tus rugulosum. Caput rugulosum : clypeo elotffhto; emargi- nato. Antenne brunnew: clávà dilutiori. Thorax glaber, sparse punctatus, et inter hac puncta minutissime rugulosus, dorso triangulo obverso impressus. E/ytra inæqualia : lituris duabus arcuatis; posteriori apicem versus elongata furcata, unde literze - -. Graecorum y reversa quodammodo similis, fulvis, lineola insu- per transversa laterali alba. — Postpectus utrinque punctis tri- bus pollinoso-albis. Pedes brunnei. Tibie anticæ acute triden- tata. Podex utrinque pollinoso-albus. CrrToxrA Fabr. aes Macleaii. 47. C. nitidissima, aurato-viridis, thoracis disco, co- leoptris maculis duabus quadratis, fasciaque communi lunata, atris. » PEATE X XECPIGPTT Long. corp. lin. 103. | Habitat in Insula Luconia prope Manillam. D. Davidson. Insectum splendidissimum pulcherrimum. Statura et habitus fere C. africane, &c. Corpus depressum, kevigatum, glaberri- mum, nitidissimum, aurato-viride, fere smaragdinum. - Caput basi Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. 409 basi nigrum, punctatum, inter oculos postice leve. Vertex cornu brevi decumbenti apice obtuso armatus. | C/ypeus mar- | gine reflexo, apice bidentatus: dentibus rotundatis. Antenne nigræ : clava semiovali picea. Palpi picei. Thoraz triangularis, apice subtruncatus, utrinque antice canaliculatus, postice medio emarginatus: disco macula magna subtriangulari antice angu- lata, atra. Scutellum elongato-triangulare basi paulo dilatatum. Coleoptra supra planiuscula, lateribus deflexis: macula magna quadrata utrinque apud scutellum fasciaque apicis lunari com- muni, atris. Elytrorum apex apud suturam mucronatus. Post- sternum porrectum, canaliculatum, apice auctum incurvum. Thoracis latera deflexa et femora lineolis nigris obliquis in- sculpta. Tibie tarsique castanea. Tibia antice edentulz. Ab- domen segmentis apice nigris. Viro amicissimo, nature scrutatori docto indefesso, in Entomologia eximio, et insectorum musai ditissimi, ex omni fere orbis terrarum re- gione collectorum digno possessori, Domino Alexandro MacLeaio S. R. et L. S. Soc. Linn. a Secret. hoc pulcherrimum insectum ab i, ipso mihi benevole communicatum merito. dicatur. This beautiful insect was brought from Manilla by Mr. Sigii Davidson, Surgeon in the Royal — who purchased several of them in a shop, where its elytra and.those of some splendid. Bu- prestes were sold as ornaments for ladies’ head-dresses. dk Ja Ee ES ek B® insculpta. 48. C. thorace lobato, livida, tota lunulis nigris in- | sculpta, elytris macula apicis lunata nigra. Long. corp. lin. 9. Jabitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock... Corpus subtus: glaucum, supra lividum, totum lineolis plus minus arcuatis, interdum confertis, in prona pagina sae plus brevissime setigeris, * 410. Mr. Kinay's Century of Insects. setigeris, insculptis, atris irroratum. Clypeus apice reflexus emarginatus. Antenne brunneæ : clava caulis fere longitudine. Thorac triangularis, antice emarginatus, pone oculos utrinque paulo excisus, ciliatus, postice lobatus: lobo apice rotundato. Scutellum minutum, triangulare, niveum. Elytra dorso plani- uscula, inz qualia: macula sublunata atra pone apicem. Tibie anticæ edentule. reticulata. 49. C. thorace lobato, subpilosa nigra, fulvo macu- lata,elytris obsolete reticulatis, oculorum septo bicarinato. À Long. corp. lin. 6. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Affinis videtur C. maculose Oliv. sed, distincta « et alia. Corpus nigrum, subpilosum. Caput pallidum, punctis impressis nigris irroratum. Clypeus apice transversus. Antenne nigra. Oculi septo bicarinato. Thorar punctis impressis, sæpius nigris, irroratus, nigricans: lituris duabus obscuris sordide luteis: lobo posteriori apice rotundato. Elytra velutino-nigra: ma- culis sparsis obscuris sordide fulvis: lineolis tenuissimis trans- versis, arcuatis, elevatis obscure reticulata. Pedes hirti, ni- gri, immaculati. Tibie antice acute bidentate. Postpectus utrinque macula lutea. Abdomen luteo utrinque variegatum. Podex utrinque macula lutea. (Lucanide.) Lucanus Linn. nebulosus, 50. L. niger, obscurus, mandibulis recurvis thorace | canaliculato inæquali, elytris fuscis cinereo- nebulosis. PLATE Mr. Kirey’s Century of Insects. 411 PraATE XXI. Fic. 12. Long. corp. mandibulis exclusis, lin. 10. mandibularum, lin. 22. Habitat in Australasia. D. MacLeay. Corpus oblongum, depressum, subtus nigrum nitidum punctatum, supra valde obscurum. Caput transversum, punctatum, sub- carinatum, postice cinereum, antice obtusangulum elevatum utrinque tuberculo intermedio munitum. Mandibule thorace breviores, intus rectiuscule hirsute punctate, apice recurvee emarginate, utrinque dente magno prominentes, supra dente obtuso armate, subtus etiam dentibus tribus parvis obtusis in- terioribus. Labrum penitus tectum. Palpi articulis arcuatis. Mentum bifidum. Antenne thorace breviores, fractæ, clavate : clava compressa pectinata quinquefida. Thorax transversus, punctatus, nigricans, dorso late canaliculatus, utrinque insu- per foveis quatuor impressis, antice emarginatus, postice re- pandus: lateribus deflexis obtusangulis. Scutellum triangulare. Elytra levissima, valde obscura, purpurascente-fusco cinereo- que nebulosa. Femora antica lata, oblonga. Tibie antice mul- tidentatæ. Abdomen fuscum. This species differs from the other eg in having a bifid men- tum, recurved mandibulæ (in which it agrees with Lamprima Latr.), and palpi with curved articulations; but its broken an- tennæ with a pectinated clava, and depressed body, prove that it is more nearly related to Lucanus than to Lamprima, in which the body is more convex, the antennæ unbroken with a lamellated clava. It seems scarcely entitled to be considered as distinct from Lucanus; but at any rate it forms a family in that genus. VOL: XII. 3 H COLE- 412 Mr. Kirzy’s Century of Insects. COLEOPTERA nETEROMERA. (Tenebrionide.) Psammopes Kirby. Labrum emarginatum. E Labium bifidum : lobis divaricatis. Mandibule apice conniventes, bidentatæ. Maxille basi aperte. Palpi filiformes, maaillares elongate. Mentum trapeziforme. Antenne graciles, subclavatæ: clava triarticulata. Corpus oblongo-ovatum. This genus is intermediate between Pimelia and Tentyria: from the former it is distinguished by its bifid labium, by its quadran- gular mentum, narrowest below so as not to cover the base of the maxilla, and by its long, slender, clavate antennz ; and from the latter, besides these characters, by its emarginate labrum. It is to be observed, that in this latter organ Pimelia muricata and his- pida differ from each other, as well as in their antenne, and the form of their bodies; hence the genus might be divided into two families, * Corpore subgloboso, ** Corpore oblongo. longicornis, 51. Ps. niger, cinereo-setosus, antennis elongatis, ely- tris granulatis scabris. PLATE ABI. Fic. to, + Long. corp. lin. 10. i Habitat apud Promontorium Bone Spei. D. Green. Pimelie brunnee et levigate Oliv. congener et affinis: ab amba- bus differt antennis longioribus, a priori colore nigro et capite postice, nec antice, punctato, et a posteriori thorace excavato- punctato Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. 413 punctato nec leviter, et elytris granulato-scabris et haud lævi- gatis. Corpus oblongo-ovatum vel ovato-lanceolatum, supra ex pilis rigidiusculis subincanum, subtus disco piloso-ferrugi- neum. Caput triangulare, postice punctatissimum: clypeo de- presso, emarginato, punctis sparsis; labro levi. Palpi filiformes, ferruginei. Maxillares quadriarticulati: articulo primo brevis- simo, secundo majori clavato, tertio obconico, extimo oblongo apice rotundato. Antenne thorace longiores, graciles, ferrugi- nez, pilos; : articulo primo crasso, subcampanulato, secundo brevissimo, tertio longissimo subclavato, sequentibus quinque longitudine sensim decrescentibus subclavatis, tribus ultimis majoribus clavam formantibus: nono obconico, decimo turbi- nato, extimo ovato. Thorax convexus confluenter punctulatus, antice emarginatus, postice transversus, in medio latior, lateri- bus tenuissime marginatus, dorso subcarinatus: carina levi. Scutellum subacuminatum, basi latissimum. Coleoptra obovata, connata, marginata: margine subexplanato, granulato-scabra : granulis piligeris. Epipleura linearis, acuta. Pedes graciles, postici elongati. Tibie apice bicalcarate. Tarsi filiformes: un- guiculis longis, gracilibus, simplicibus. Oxvna Kirby. - Labrum subquadratum, subemarginatum. Labium bifidum : lobis divaricatis. Mandibule breves, apice bidentate. Mazille basi apertæ. Palpi mavillares elongati : articulo extimo magno, securiformi, labiales filiformes. Mentum fere trapeziforme. Antenne medio attenuate, subclavate : lava triarticulata. Corpus lineare. | | 3H2 Caput 414 Mr. Krnnav's Century of Insects. Caput rhomboidale: oculis prominulis triangularibus. Thorax teretiusculus, vix marginatus. The characters which distinguish Ozura from Psammodes, which it much resembles, are principally the last joint of the maxillary palpi, which is securiform, its linear body,its rhomboidal head con- tracted almost into a neck behind the eyes, its prominent triangu- lar eyes, its barrel-shaped thorax with scarcel y any margin, and its elytra furnished with a mucro at their apex like those of a Blaps. setosa. 52. O, | PLATE XXII. Fic. 3. Long. corp. lin. 8j. Habitat apud. Promontorium Bonz Spei. D. Green. | Corpus lineare, angustum, fusco-nigrum, ex setis rigidis subcine- . reum... Caput subrhomboidale, postice fere in collum: angus- - tatum,. punctatum : punctis setigeris. Palpi rufi, maxillares elongati, quadriarticulati: articulo primo brevissimo, secundo elongato clavato, tertio triangulari, extimo magno securiformi, labiales triarticulati, filiformes. Antenne ante oculos sub cly- pei margine laterali insert, rufe, clavate, medio attenuate : articulo primo incrassato subcampanulato, secundo brevissimo turbinato, tertio filiformi sequentibus duobus simul sumptis longiori, proximis quinque subclavatis, longitudine et crassitie | . sensim decrescentibus, tribus ultimis majoribus clavam oblon- gam formantibus: nono obconico, decimo turbinato, extimo ovato. Oculi prominentes, triangulares. Thorax immargina- tus, teretiusculus, medio latior vel fere doliiformis, antice sub- constrictus, punctatissimus : punctis cinereis setigeris.. Elytra linearia, levia: lineis duabus longitudinalibus intermediis eleva- tiusculis, marginata : margine explanato recurvo, apice mucro- nata. Epipleura linearis. Pedes fere ut in Psammode longicorni. T 3 SCOTINUS Mr. Kirsy’s Century of Insects. 415 Scorinus Kirby. Labrum bifidum. | Labium bifidum : lobis divaricatis. Mandibule apice conniventes, dentate. Maaille basi apertze. | Palpi crassiusculi: articulo extimo majori obtriangulari. - Mentum bifidum: lobis divaricatis. E Antenne moniliformes, apicem versus subcrassiores: articulo ex- timo brevissimo vix distincto. Corpus ovatum, marginatum. This genus resembles Erodius and Asida in the last joint of the antenne, but it differs from them both in the labrum, labium, and mentum. With Erodius it has a bifid sternum ; its clypeus, how- ever, is not bifid, in which it agrees with Asida, but the sternum of the latter genus is entire. crenicollis. 53. Sc. subcinerca a thoracis margine cré- nato. Pirate XXI. Fre. 14. | Long. corp. lin. 94. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. — — Corpus obovatum, obscurum, nigrum, ex setulis emet re qui- busdam brevissimis subcinereum, levissimum, supra planius- culum. .. Caput deflexum, inæquale, inter oculos postice trans- verse elevatum. Clypeus. antice emarginatus, apice in medio triangulo nitido. Labrum magnum, nitidum, vix longitudine latius, piceum, excavato-punctatum, apice bifidum: lobis ro- tundatis. Labium breve, nitidum, excavato- -punctatum, piceum, apice bifidum: lobis divaricatis. Palpi breves crassi: articulo extimo majori obtriangulari. Mentum basi constrictum, apice latissimum, 416 Mr. Kinnav's Century of Insects. Jatissimum, bilobum: lobis divaricatis. Antenne capite paulo longiores, setosæ, piceæ, apicem versus paulo crassiores, moni- liformes: articulo primo reliquis paulo crassiori clavato, se- cundo brevissimo subgloboso, tertio reliquis longiori subclavato, sequentibus sex subglobosis, decimo brevissimo transverso un- decimum minutissimum recipiente, ita arcte ut hi duo quasi — unum articulum subglobosum formant. Articuli 1, 8, 9 nitidi, reliqui obscuri. Thorax quadratus, antice paulo latior et emar- ginatus, postice rotundatus et utrinque angulatus: lateribus marginatis; margine crenato, linea dorsali postica piloso-fulva sipnatis. Sternum anum versus bilobum: lobis rotundatis. Scutellum minutum, acuminatum, basi latissimum. Coleoptra obovata, connata, acute marginata, apice declivia mucronata rufescentia, apud scutellum macula parva quadrata velutino- nigra. Epipleura maxima. Pedes setosi. Tibie apice bicalcaratze.- Mr. MacLeay possesses a smaller species of this genus, also from Brasil, distinguished from S. crenicollis by having the mar- gin of the thorax entire, and that of the elytra crenate. Spuxrotus Kirby. Labrum transversum, apice rotundatum ciliatum. - Labium minutum, apice truncatum. 5i Mandibule vix dentate. | Mazille basi apertæ. | Palpi maxillares incrassati: articulo extimo maximo, securiformi. labiales articulo extimo paulo majori, subcampanulato. Mentum apice truncatum, basi rotundatum, medio valde con- vexum. Antenne extrorsum stibcrassiores : : articulo extimo oblique trun- cato. | Corpus globoso-ovatüm, immarginatum, This Mr. Kinnav's Century of Insects. 417 This genus in habit much resembles Moluris Latr.; but the bi- fid labium, cordate mentum, subfiliform palpi, and antennæ ter- minated by an ovate acute joint, which distinguish the latter, sufficiently warrant me in considering them as distinct. | curvipes. 54. S. "TI CTI Pirate XXI. Fic. 15. cs . Long. corp. lin. 54. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus globoso-ovatum, glaberrimum, nitidiusculum, nigro-zene- um. Caput orbiculatum, levissime punctulatum. Clypeus sub- | triangularis, a fronte sutura profunda separatus. Antenne api- cem versus. paulo crassiores: articulo primo brevi obconico sequentibus vix crassiori, secundo brevissimo subgloboso, ter- tio sequentibus paulo longiori subclavato, reliquis longitudine | sensim decrescentibus plus minus obconicis: extimo oblique truncato. Thorax convexus, levissime punctulatus, antice sub- emarginatus, postice transversus subemarginatus, lateribus ro- tundatis tenuissime marginatis. Scutellum minutissimum. Co- leoptra subglobosa, seriatim quasi variolosa: variolis obscuris canaliculatis. Epipleura latiuscula. Pedes piceo-nigri. Tibie graciles, arcuatæ: calcaribus duobus minutissimis obsoletis. - Tarsi pulvillati. | |... STRONGYLIUM Kirby. Labrum transversum. ; | Labium subcordatum. Mandibule brevissimæ, validæ, apice edentulæ acutæ. Maxille apertæ, apice bilobæ : lobo exteriori majori extus rotun- dato, interiori minuto acuto. Palpi articulo extimo magno securiformi. Mentum 418 Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. Mentum fere cordatum. Antenne apicem versus sensim crassiores: articulo extimo sub- ovato. ; | Corpus lineari-oblongum, immarginatum. This genus in many respects resembles the preceding. But the labium, mentum, and labial palpi are different: the body also is oblong, the thorax has no margin, and the tarsi no pulvillus ; circumstances which combined satisfactorily establish their claim to be considered as distinct genera. chalconatum. 55. Str. Prate XXI. Fic. 16. Long. corp. lin. 6. - . Habitat in Australasia. hax: £c | Corpus lineari-oblongum, subcylindricum, nitidum, glabrum, ni- gro-zneum. Caput orbiculatum, punctulatum. Palpi omnes articulo extimo majori sécuriformi. Clypeus postice linea curva impressa a fronte separatus. Antenne thoracis longitudine, apicem versus sensim crassiores: articulo primo reliquis cras- siorl, secundo brevissimo obconico, sequentibus duobus longi- tudine fere æqualibus subclavatis, sex proximis magnitudine crescentibus longitudine decrescentibus fere obconicis, extimo ovato acuto. Thorax subquadratus, immarginatus, levissime punctulatus, postice canaliculatus. Scutellum triangulare. Ely- tra subseriatim quasi foveolata: foveolis oblongis excavatis fundo canaliculatis. Epipleura angustissima: … Pedes graciles. Tibie obsolete calcaratæ. Evrynorus Kirby. - Labrum transversum, emarginatum. Labium fissum, brevissimum, submembranaceum. Sion iet Mandibule sg - Mr. Kings Y's Century of Insects. 419 Mandibule validæ, conniventes, apice bidentate. Maaille basi aperte. Palpi articulo extimo majori securiformi. ! Mentum quadrangulum: lateribus rotundatis, subcarinatum. Antenne extrorsum crassiores: articulo extimo orbiculato. Corpus oblongum, apterum. : Tarsi anteriores quatuor dilatati, pulvillati. -Eurynotus is distinguished from Pedinus Latr., to which it is nearly allied, in having a much larger and more conspicuous /a- brum, and a clypeus though emarginate not cleft. "The four ante- rior tarsi of the males, and not the first pair only, are dilated. The thorax also is widest behind, whereas in Pedinus it is widest in th middle. . muricatus. 56. E. Pirate XXII. Fria. 1. Long. corp. lin. 71. Habitat Unde accepi non reminiscor. Corpus oblongum, atrum, glabrum. Caput suborbiculatum, le- vissime punctulatum. Gula rugosa postice triangulo levi. Cly- peus transversus, antice emarginatus, a fronte linea impressa - . separatus. Antenne vix thoracis longitudine, sensim crassiores : articulo primo reliquis crassiori, secundo brevissimo turbinato, tertio elongato subclavato, quatuor sequentibus obconicis sen- sim crassioribus, 8°, 9°, et 10° compressis triangularibus, ex- timo compresso orbiculato. Thorax transversus, leviter punctu- latissimus, antice angustior segmento circuli dempto, postice subrepandus, lateribus marginatis. Scutellum transversum, bre- vissimum. Elytra connata, striata: striis punctatis, apice punc- tis elevatis acutis muricata. Femora postica arcuata, intus cili- YOL. XII. OI . ata. 420 Mr. Kinnv's Century of Insects. ata. Tibie bicalcarate. Tarsi quatuor anteriores articulis in- termediis dilatatis subtus pulvinatis. i AprELIUM Kirby. Labrum sübeendrals m, subemarginatum. Labium bifidum. Mandibule breves, apice conniventes bidentatze. Maxille basi apertæ. Palpi maaillares articulo extimo maximo obtriangulari subcom- presso. Ha labiales brevissimi, filiformes. Mentum subtrapeziforme, inæquale. Antenne filiformes: articulo extimo oblongo. Thorax brevissimus. | : Corpus oblongum, apterum. This genus has little affinity with any other of this tribe: the species of it, unless closely examined, would be set aside as be- longing to Calosoma or Carabus. They are however heteromerous, and belong to the Tenebrionide. 1 know only three species, the two here described, and the other Calosoma porculatum of Fabri- cius. They are all New Holland insects. calosomoides. 57. A. nigro-æneum, nitidiusculum, thorace utrin- | que impresso, elytris punctato-striatis. Prarr XXII. Fic. 2. Long. corp. lin. 6. Habitat in Australasia. Corpus nigro-eneum, nitidiusculum, glabrum. | Caput orbicula- tum, punctatum. Clypeus apice truncatus, postice linea im- pressa curva a fronte separatus. Antenne filiformes, thorace longiores, pilosæ, nigra: articulo primo reliquis paulo cras- siore, Mr. Kinpy's Century of Insects. 421 siore, secundo- brevissimo subturbinato, tertio sequenti duplo longiori subclavato, proximis tribus oblongis 7°, 89, 9°, et 10° obconicis, extimo oblongo. Thorax planiusculus, punctatus, longitudine latior, antice emarginatus, postice truncatus, late- ribus fere in segmentum circuli rotundatis, marginatis, dorso obsolete canaliculatus, utrinque foveola lunata impressus. Scu- | tellum minutum, triangulare. Coleoptra obovata, leviter punc- tulato-striata, apice acuta. Epipleura basi latiuscula, apice acu- tissima. Tibie apice brevissime bicalcarate. Tarsi pulvinati. licinoides. 58. A. æneo-nigrum -nitidum thorace utrinque im- presso, elytris substriatis punctatis, tarsis rufis. Long. corp. lin. 6. Habitat | in £u D. Francillon. Precedenti valde affine, sed angustius, supra nigrius: thorace ma- gis quadrato, supra inæquali: lateribus postice subexcisis. Elytra substriata: striis punctatis: punctis magis excavatis, apice minus acuta. Femora antica paulo crassiora. Tarsiomnes . rufi. | ( Helopide.) Spueniscus Kirby. Labrum transversum, integrum. Labium minutum, cuneiforme. Mandibule apice conniventes. Mazille basi apertae. ia Palpi omnes articulo extimo magno, minus compresso, obtrian- gulari. Mentum oblongum, convexum, apice subemarginatum. Antenne extrorsum crassiores, serrate: articulo extimo subrhom- boidali oblique truncato. Corpus ovato-obcuneiforme : elytris gibbosis. 313 The 422 Mr. Kirex’s Century of Insects. The habit of this genus is at first sight very much that of one of the gibbous Erotyli; but it is heteromerous, and belongs to the present tribe, and, with many others'equally distinct, may have been arranged under Helops. It however possesses very few cha- racters in common with the genuine species of that genus, H. cha- lybeus, &c., differing in antennæ, labium, mentum, palpi, and genea ral habit. erotyloides. 59. Sph. : Pirate XXII. Fic. 4. Long. corp. lin. 8. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus fere obcuneiforme, subtus planiusculum, nitidum, glaber- rimum, aterrimum, orbiculatum, punctatum, inter oculos ca-- _naliculatum. Mentum transverse subcarinatum. Clypeus de- _ pressus, antice subrotundatus, postice linea curva impressa a fronte separatus. Antenne thoracis longitudine, sensim cras- siores, apice compresse, serrate: articulo primo sequente paulo crassiori, secundo brevissimo subcylindrico, tertio sequentibus longiori cylindrico, quarto majori subtriangulari, sequentibus sex magnitudine crescentibus, triangularibus, extimo subrhom- boidali. Thorax planiusculus, subtrapeziformis, antice seg- mento circuli dempto, inæqualis, sparse punctulatus, immar- ginatus, postice trifoveatus. Scutellum triangulare. Coleoptra subovata: dorso valde gibbo, seriatim punctata, tenuissime marginata, pallida: fascia media angulata, apicibus, punctis- que plurimis sparsis interdum confluentibus,atris. Pedes longi, graciles. Tibie brevissime bicalcaratæ. Tarsi compressi, lon- gius unguiculati: unguiculis basi intus dente obsoleto. STENOCHIA - Mr. Kinnav's Century of Insects. 493 STENOCHIA Kirby. Labrum transversum, apice rotundatum;. Labium minutum, cuneiforme. Mandibule apice conniventes.. , Maxille basi apertæ. | Palpi omnes articulo extimo minus.compresso; obtriangulari.. Mentum. subtrapeziforme, disco subelevatum. _ Antenne extrorsum crassiores : articulo extimo oblongo. Corpus lineare, angustum. - | This genus possesses many characters in common. with the pre-- ceding ;. but it is sufficiently distinguished by its antenne, which. are not at all. serrate, by its linear body, and cylindrical thorax. I possess two species distinguished by the same character. rufipes.. 60. St. virescens, supra cyanea, elytris fasciis duabus. luteis. margine connexis, antennis pedibusque: rufis.. . Piare XXH. Fro..5.. Long. corp. lin. 8. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock:. Corpus lineare, angustum, .subtus virescens,. ex pilis brevissimis micantibus sericeum.. Caput postice confluenter punctatum : cæruleum, antice pilis-aureo micantibus ornatum.. Clypeus an-- tice transversus, postice rotundatus, linea. curva impressa a. fronte separatus. Palpi rufi. Antenne extrorsum crassiores, . thorace longiores, rufz:- articulo primo sequentibus crassiori: obconico, secundo brevissimo, tertio vix. quarto longiori,. sed paulo tenuiori, ambobus clavatis, sequentibus obconicis et sub-. turbinatis subcompressis, extimo oblongo-ovato obtuso.. Tho-. fax cylindricus, postice submarginatus, confluenter punctatis- simus, 424 Mr. Kirex's Century of Insecis. simus, virescenti-cyaneus. Elytra cyanea: basi et medio fascia sublunata margine laterali connexa pallide lutea, sulcata: sul- . cis lineis transversis elevatis decussatis. Pedes graciles, rufi : intermediis longioribus. Tibie apice vix calcaratæ. Tarn un- » guiculis simplicibus basi intus subdentatis. | cyanipes. 6i: St. cyanea, antennis rufis, E brevissimo, ely- . tris fasciis duabus fulvis margine connexis. Long. corp. lin. 6. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. — Precedenti affinis sed minor,corpore toto glaberrimo, cyaneo, post- pectore solummodo et pedibus viridi-cyaneis. Thorax brevis- simus, punctatus: punctis vix confluentibus. Antenne articulo extimo magis oblongo. Elytra striata: striis punctatis, trans- verse rugosis : fasciis fulvis, anteriori suturam haud attingente, postica vix lunata. . I possess the mutilated remains of a third species without head or thorax, the legs of which are dirty-red, the elytra violet, and the fascia of the base of St. rufipes replaced by a large acute ovate pallid spot with the point towards the apex; T middle fascia does not reach the suture. In sculpture they resemble those of St. cyanipes ; the abdomen and postpectus are green and hairy, but the hairs are not shining as in St. rufipes. —— (Mordellida.) MorDpELLA Linn. clavicornis. 62. M.atra,elytris lunula apicis cinerea, antennis cla- . vatis: clava compressa serrata. Long. corp. lin. 61. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. re Corpus Mr. Kinny's Century of Insects. 425 Corpus crassum, totum velutino-atrum. Antenne clava magna, compressa, serrata, septemfida: articulo extimo hinc subemar- ginato. Elytra ante apicem lunula reversa, obscura, cinerea. Anus aculeo ordinario. This species in every respect so entirely resembles the other Mordelle, under which genus I only place those ano aculeato, that I do not conceive the difference of structure observable in its antennæ, which may perhaps be a sexual character, a sufficient indication that it should form a distinct genus. (Meloide.) -~ Gyatuium Kirby. Labrum transversum. | T Labium minutissimum vix discernendum. Mandibule protensæ, elongate, apice incurvæ, edentulæ, acutis- simae. — —— Maaille apertæ : lobo longissimo gracillimo. Palpi filiformes: articulis cylindricis. Mentum trapeziforme ? : Antenne extrorsum crassiores : articulo extimo elongato-conico. Corpus obcuneato-lineare. Thorax campanulatus. . — 2 | This genus comes next to Nemognatha Ilig., from which it bor- rows that remarkable sexual? character, of having the lobe of the maxillæ, like those of a bee, almost as long as the body ; but it differs in having a transverse instead of a circular labrum, in its mandibule protended far beyond the labrum, in its incrassate an- tennze, which gives it some connexion with Mylabris. 'The shape of the head and thorax also is different. [he insect is so minute that I have not been able to geta clear idea of the shape of the labium and mentum, but I think the latter is tra peziform. Fran- 426 Mr. Kinnav's Century of Insects. Francilloni. 63. Gn. _Prare XXII Fic. 6. Long. corp. lin. 2+. Habitat in Georgia. Ex Mus. D. Francilloni a D. MacLeaio emptum et mihi benevole communicatum. Corpus obcuneatum fere, pilosulum, supra nigrum, subtus pi- ceum. Caput deflexum, elongatum, punctatum: disco levius- ‘culo, collo brevi angusto piceo insidens. Mandibule capite vix breviores, protensæ, apice incurvæ, rufæ. Antenne apicem ver- ‘sus sensim crassiores, articulo secundo quarti fere longitudine, tertio reliquis longiori, sequentibus fere obconicis, 8°, 9°, 10° subcylindricis, extimo elongato-conico. Thorax cam panulatus, glaber, rufus, brevissimus. Elytra rugulosa. Tibie bicalcarate. Tarsi unguiculati: unguiculis bipartitis. Memorie D" Francilloni, S. L.S. heu nimis deflendi, Musai longe et late celebris benevoli RONDES. hoc insectum sacrum esto. COLEOPTERA TETRAMERA. (Curculionida.) * Infracticornes. RHINOTIA Kirby. Labrum rostro postice connatum, minutissimum, emarginatum. Labium minutissimum, cuneiforme. Mandibule valide : apice tridentate. Maxille apertae. Palpi brevissimi, conici. — Mentum subtransversum, convexum. Antenne extrorsum crassiores: articulo extimo ovato lanceolato. Corpus angustatum lineare. Thorax globoso-conicus. This Mr. Kinnay's Century of Insects. 497 This genus is related to Brentus; but its tridentate mandibulæ and incrassate antennæ, taken in conjunction with its short and rather conical thorax, sufliciently distinguish it. hemoptera, 64. Rh. | PraATE XXII. Fro. 7. Long. corp. (Rostro excluso) lin. 74. Habitat in Australasia. Ex Museo D. MacLeay accepi. B. Ex Museo D. Marsham. Corpus angustum, lineare, atrum, obscuriusculum, subtus parce albido-pilosum. Caput deflexum, punctulatum, medio con- strictum, postice convexum. Rostrum teres, capitis thoracis- que longitudine, punctulatum, apice nitidum. Antenne rostro - pone medium insidentes, thorace longiores, basi attenuate gla- — bree, alias pilosissimæ : articulo primo clavato subarcuato cras- siori, secundo brevi obconico, tertio sequentibus vix longiori subclavato, proximis duobus magnitudine crescentibus obco- nicis, reliquis æqualibus subobconicis, extimo ovato-lanceolato. Oculi hemisphærici, supra pilis rufis subtus albidis cincti. Tho- raz subconicus, antice constrictus, piloso-velutinus ; utrinque vitta laterali intus subrepanda, linea dorsali, maculisque dua- bus posticis, piloso-fulvo-aureis. Elytra punctulatissima, pi- losa, fulvo-aurea: sutura nigricanti. Tibie apice bicalcaratze. Tarsi pulvinati. Unguiculi simplices. : P Var. 8. Thorace utrinque macula magna triangulari sanguinea, linea dorsali maculisque posticis nullis. Alias simillima. An eadem ? DOT 7 EvunniNvs Kirby. Labrum vix distinctum. Labium subcordatum. Mandibule apice tridentate : dentibus æqualibus acutis. VOL. XII. 3K Maxille A 498 Mr. Kinnavy's Century of Insects. Maaille aperte. Palpi brevissimi, conici. . Mentum cordatum. Antenne integra, basi submoniliformes, apice clavatæ : clava tri- | fida perfoliata: articulo extimo in maribus longissimo cylindrico. Corpus obcuncatum. Thorax teretiusculus. I sent a sketch of an insect of this genus to M. Latreille, and he was of opinion that it belonged to a genus he had constructed, but which is not yet published, under the name of Orthorhynchus. 1 have since been informed by him, that the type of that genus is Lixus semipunctatus Fabr., which from Olivier's figure appears to be more nearly related to Lirus bidentatus of Mr. Donovan, and is distinguished by acuminated elytra | and filiform antennx ; whereas no species of Eurhinus, and there are several, has acumi- nated elytra, and the antennz terminate in an oblong clava, the last joint of which, in the males, is very long. Olivier describes Livus semipunctatus as antennis moniliformibus vix extrorsum cras- sioribus (v. 242. n. 249. t. xii. f. 141.) In L: bidentatus the an- tennæ are not moniliformes, but they are extrorsum vix crassiores. So that Orthorhynchus seems to be a connecting link between Eurhynus, the antennz of which are submoniliform at the base, and Lirus bidentatus, but belonging to the same genus with the latter. There are-several species of Orthorhynchus in Mr. Mac- Leay’s rich cabinet. As Lixus semipunctatus is in the Banksian cabinet, it may be easily ascertained whether these observations are correct or not. scabrior. 65. Eu. niger, piloso-incanus, elytris. striatis, basi sub- cristatis, granulis tuberculisque acutis scabris. PLATE Mr. Kinnav's Century of Insects. 429 Prare XXII. Fio. 8. Long. corp. (Rostro incluso) lin. 9. Habitat in Australasia. D. Brown: MacLeay. Corpus fere obcuneatum, nigrum, pilositate parva plus minus in- canum. Caput rugulosum, postice læve, inter oculos canalicu- latum. Oculi minus prominuli. Rostruin thorace brevius, apice - paulo latius, lateribus basi piloso-albidis, pone antennas punc- tatum. Antenne rostro pone apicem insidentes, thoracis longi- tudine: articulo primo crassiusculo clavato, secundo brevi ob- conico, tertio sequentibus paulo longiori clavato, proximis quinque brevibus obconicis, tribus ultimis crassioribus : primo obconico, secundo brevi cylindrico, tertio in maribus longissimo cylindrico clavam longam perfoliatam formantibus. Thorax teretiusculus ex punctis confluentibus rugosus. Elytra striata: striis punctatis ; interstitiis granulatis, et insuper serie tubercu- lorum acutorum muricatis, basi apud scutellum longitudinaliter elevata vel subcristata: crista muricata. Tibie calcaribus ob- soletis. Femora antica reliquis crassiora. : | levior. 66. Eu. niger, piloso-albus, elytris striatis, basi subcris- tatis, striarum interstitiis lzevibus. Long. corp. (Rostro incluso) lin. 7. — Habitat in Australasia. D. MacLeay. . ` de Præcedenti similis sed minor, corpore angustiori albidiori. An- tenne articulis brevioribus, 6°, 7°, et 8° globosis. Thorax levior. Elytra striarum interstitiis laevibus, sed crista muricata est. Bracuycerus Fabr. | * Thorace spinoso. maculosus, 67. B. niger subcinereus, thorace spinosolate canalicu- lato, elytris nodulosis cinereo scriatim inaculosis. 9x2 Long. 430 Mr. Kinny's Century of Insects. Long. corp. (Rostro incluso) lin. 14. Habitat apud Promontorium Bone Spei. D. Green. Corpus subovatum, crassum, obscurum, pollinoso-subcinereum. Rostrum inæquale, punctatum, postice triangulo elevato, utrin- que ante oculos strangulatum. Thorax utrinque acute spinosus : spina valida, supra inæqualis, nodulis et tuberculis complanatis utrinque notandus: lineis duabus latis dorsalibus elevatis lzevi- bus, canalem latum inter se includentibus. Coleoptra subglo- bosa, nodulosa, punctulis minutissimis confertissimis quasi re- ticulata, polline cinereo seriatim maculosa. Pedes rugosi. * Thorace inermi. verrucifer. 68. D. ater, thorace subcordato punctato, — glo- bosis verrucosis. | . Long. corp. (Rostro incluso) lin. 5. Habitat apud Promontorium Bone Spei. D. Green. | Corpus ovatum, atrum glabrum. Rostrum punctatum, basi utrin- que strangulatum. Thorax subcordatus : lateribus obtusangu- lis, sparse punctatus : punctis papillatis. Coleoptra globosa, tu- berculis numerosis complanatis verrucosa. This species is nearly related to B. Spectrum Fabr.; but the tubercles on the elytra are not disposed in rows as in that, bcing scattered irregularly. : . RuiNan1A Kirby. Labrum vix distinctum. Labium subtrapeziforme. Mandibule edentulæ. Maaille aperte. Palpi brevissimi, conici. - Mentum quadratum. Antenne Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. 431 Antenne integre, capitate: clava triarticulata ; articulis arctis- sime connexis. Corpus oblongo-ovatum. Thorax subglobosus. The insect, which is the type of this genus, is altogether of the habit of the Curculionide fracticornes brevirostres, particularly Cur- culio asper, &c.: but its unbroken antennz place it. in this sec- tion, from all the genera of which it is foto celo different. I found it in a collection of New Holland insects which I once purchased. cristata. 69. Rh. . | : Pirate XXII. Fie. 9. Long. corp. (Rostro excluso) lin. 44. Habitat in Australasia. Corpus oblongo-ovatum, subtus- squamulis pallidum, supra gri- seum. Caput postice convexum, antice inter oculos crista squamoso-pallida tetragona: vertice quadruplici lobis subhe- misphericis. Rostrum capitis fere longitudine crassum, rec- tum, deflexum, tetragonum, levissimum, glaberrimum, niti- dum, nigrum, apice subtus utrinque dente triangulari acuto ar- matum, basi constrictum strangulatum, ante antennas eleva-- tum. Antenne rostro basi utrinque insidentes, articulo primo: reliquis paulo crassiori, longitudine secundi, his duobus excep- | tis, qui et subclavati, articuli reliqui longitudine fere æquales sunt, tertio subcylindrico, proximis quinque obconicis, ultimis tribus paulo majoribus capitulum arcte imbricatum lanceola- tum efformantibus. Oculi prominuli, subtriangulares, distincte reticulati. Thorax subglobosus, ex punctis confluentibus, no- dulis intermixtis, scaber. Elytra subsulcata, squamosa : sulcis punctis ocellaribus albis ornatis, interstitiis serie setarum de- - cumbentium et granulorum alternorum, notandis. In prona corporis 432 Mr. Kinnany's Century of Insects. corporis pagina puncta ocellata sparsa utrinque conspici pos- sunt. ** Fracticornes. CnvrronnyNcnvus Illig. corruscans. 70. Cr.cupreo-auratus, nitidissimus, pedibus cyaneis, corpore rhomboidali, thorace postice lobato. Long. corp. lin. 44. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Insectum splendidissimum. Corpus fere rhomboidale, nitidissi- mum, glaberrimum, cupreo-auratum, splendore fere rubini ful- gidum, levissime punctulatum. Caput postice viridi-sericeum, minus nitidum, antice cupreum: fovea impressa. Rostrum tho- racis longitudine, inflexum, rectiusculum, cylindricum, apice paulo latius, viride, basi cupreum. Antenne nigræ, rostri medio insidentes. Thorax subhemisphzericus, antice constrictus, postice lobatus: lobo rotundato. Scutellum triangulare. Elytra trian- gularia, striata: striis levissime punctulatis; interstitiis leevibus, sublacunosa: humeris valde gibbis. Pedes cyanei. Tibia vix cal- caratæ, apice intus bispinose. Abdomen viridi-auratum. Leachii. 71. Cr. ater, unicolor, corpore rhomboidali, thoracis | dorso elevato, pectore bicorni. uS Long. corp. (Rostro excluso) lin. 5. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. | Habitus Cryptorhynchi Spiculatoris D. Humboldt. Corpus rhom- boidale, glaberrimum, leve, obscurum, totum aterrimum. Ros- irum thorace longius, arcuatum, punctulatum. ` Antenne rostri medio subtus insidentes: capitulo ovato-lanceolato. Oculi mag- ni, planiusculi. Thorax antice constrictus: lateribus rotunda- tis, dorso postice maxime elevatus. Scutellum quadratum. : | | Elytra + Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. 433 Elytra triangularia, striata: striis subpunctatis, humeris valde gibbis. Pedes punctulati: femoribus subtus dente acuto. Tibie inermes, posticæ elevato-lineate. Pectus inter pedes anticos, . utrinque cornu elongato, arcuato, declivi armatum. Serus alter minor: pectore inermi. : In honorem D. G. E. Leach, M.D.S.L.S., insectorum et anima- lium aliorum indefessi oculatissimi et perspicacissimi indagatoris. Arnoldi. 72. Cr. ater, corpore rhomboidali, pectore bicorni, tho- _ race rufo postice lobato. Long. corp. (Rostro excluso) lin. 3. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Similis admodum præcedenti, sed Corpus nitidum, subtus punc- tatum. Rostrum arcuatum, compressum, apicem versus sensim angustius. ‘Thorax transversus, rufus, levissimus, antice haud constrictus, postice lobatus. Elytra humeris minus gibbis, striis magis exaratis. Pectus cornubus minoribus. Sexus alter major: pectore inermi. Observatori morum insectorum éoRdato, D. Arnold, M.D. S.L. S., hec species inedita dicatur. Ryncnænus Fabr. - Dufresnii. 73. R. subcylindricus, coleoptris maculis sex auran- | tiis, basi triangulo magno obverso pallido. Prare XXII. Pic 10. °° Tong corp. (Rostro excluso) lin. 83. Habitats in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Css subcylindricum, fere cuneiforme, subtus pilis decumben- - tibus pallidum. . Caput inflexum, nigrum, pilis pallidis, præ- cipue postice et ad basin rostri, consitum. Rostrum crassius- culum, 434 Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. culum, capite longius, pallido-pilosum, apice glabrum puncta- tum. Antenne pone apicem rostro insidentes: capitulo ovato- lanceolato quadriarticulato: articulis arctissime connexis, unde capituli solidi speciem exhibet. Oculi ovales, minus prominull. Thorax subglobosus, antice.constrictus, nodulis minutis scaber, dorso carinatus, velutino-ater, postice piloso-pallidus. Cole- optra item in locis nodulosa, atra: maculis sex magnis subro- tundis aurantiis, ex pilis vel squamulis decumbentibus, densis .confectis, basi triangulo magno obverso piloso-pallido, pilis minus confertis, apice subcompressa. Pedes intermedii reliquis breviores. Femora dente brevi armata. — — Viro mihi amicissimo, qui museum insectis, avibus, conchyliis raris- ¿»simis ezuberans collegit, ordinavit, D™ Dufresne, Musei Regalis Pa- risiens. curatori digno, sit species hac pulchra dicata. Roddami. 74. R. oblongus, cinerascens, coleoptris verrucosis, fasciis duabus albis. - Long. corp. (Rostro excluso) lin. 154. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Maximus in hoc genere. Corpus oblongum, squamulis piliformi- bus subtus albidum. .Caput deflexum, squamulis incanum. Rostrum thoracis fere longitudine, glabrum, levissime punctu- latum, subcylindricum, apice paulo latius. Antenne prope basin rostro insidentes: articulo primo haud ita elongato: ar- ticulo octavo reliquis subito majori, sed a clava distincto: clava ovata triarticulata. Oculi subovati, subprominuli. ‘Thorax co- nicus, tuberculis et nodulis sparsis muricatus, ex pilis fulvo- cinereus, postice macula subcirculari squamoso-albida. Elytra striata: striis excavato-punctatis, interstitiis complanato-verru- cosis, squamoso-fulvescentia: fasciis duabus, anteriori magna arcuata a humeris ad medium usque ducta, posteriori trans- versa, x Mr. Kirey's Qiitoty of Insects. 435 _ versa, squamoso-albis. Poststernum concavum: lateribus ad recipiendum rostrum reflexis. Tibie validissime calcarata, Reidi. 75. R. ovatus ater, thoracis basi et apice, elytrisque fas- ciis margine connexis nigro-punctatis, flavis. Long. corp. (Rostro excluso) lin. 114. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus atrum, ovatum, obscurum. Caput inflexum. Rostrum thorace vix brevius, depressum, planum, subcarinatum, apice - labro distincto cordato minuto in medio terminatum. Antenne piceæ, rostro ante basin insidentes, et ejus fere longitudine: articulo octavo. praecedentibus subito majori; clava brevi ovata triarticulata. Thorax conicus, antice, dorso postice, et late- ribus, squamoso-flavus. Tubercula qusedam sparsa in thorace etiam notanda. Elytra punctato-striata: striis interstitiis parce complanato-verrucosis ; fasciis quatuor sinuatis, nigro macula- tis, margine connexis, squamoso-flavis. Postpectus basi et apice utrinque squamoso-flavum. Poststernum ad recipiendum ros- trum excavatum. Tarsi ex pilis fulvo-aurei. : In honorem D. Geo. Roddam, M.D. et D. Dav. Reid, chirurgi, qui ambo plurima insecta hactenus inedita summo studio collegerunt, hoc Curculionini par nominatur, Curcuzro Linn. Hancocki. 76. C. corpore squamoso : squamulis fe. | scenti-cæsiis, coleoptris gibbis quadritubercu- ; latis: humeris apicibusque mucronatis. Prate XXII. Fie. 11. Long. corp. (Rostro incluso) lin. 154. Habitat in Brasilia rarissime, semel lectus. D. Hancock. VOL. XII. S 5 Insectum B 436 Mr. Ktrey’s Century of Insects. Insectum splendide pulcherrimum. Corpus totum squamulis mi- nutissimis, subrotundis, virescenti-cæsiis, auratis micans. Ca- put porrectum, brevissimum, subtus atro-bivittatum. Rostrum crassum, tetragonum, capite longius, supra canaliculatum, apice emarginatum : mandibulis porrectis, conicis, truncatis, vertice insculptis tuberculo parvo centrali. Mentum excavatum. An- tenne in nostro specimine mutilate, sed articulus tertius elon- gatus. Thorax suborbiculatus, depresso-planus, tuberculo late- rali atro utrinque in medio armatus. Elyira pone medium apud suturam elevato-obtusangula: angulo tuberculo obtuso coro- nato, disco in medio alio minori complanato, atris. Inter hæc tubercula fascia sinuata obsoleta pallide aurea notanda. Ely- tra basi intus obtuse subdentata, humeris mucronatis recurvis, apice etiam mucronata sunt. Pedes setosi. Femora posteriora fasciis duabus atris. Tibie vix calcaratæ. Abdomen segmentis ultimis macula basis triangulari nigra. | In honorem D. Hancock, Classis Regie Navarchi, qui innumera insecta, quamplurima inedita, mei gratia in Brasilia collegit, et mihi benevolentissime dono dedit, hoc splendidissimum insectum nominavi. Marshami. 77. C. niger, thorace utrinque elytrisque disco, spi- nosis, rostro brevissimo cristato, Long. corp. (Rostro incluso) lin. 94. Habitat in Australasia. D. Marsham. Corpus ovato-oblongum, glabrum, obscurum, nigrum. Rostrum crassissimum, subcylindricum, basi utrinque cristà compressa bifida: lobis rotundatis, apice ante antennas tuberculo com- presso munitum, antice emarginatum : lobis divaricatis; labro intermedio triangulari. Mandibule magne, crassæ, trigone, edentulee, supra rugolose, ipio acute. Antenne articulis, primo Mr. KinBY's Century of Insects. 437 primo elongato excepto, obconicis, tertio sequentibus longiori, octavo elongato clavato tres ultimos brevissimos excipiente, et . clavam subsolidam quasi petiolatam simul formante. Thorax medio postice elevato-lineatus: dorso utrinque nodosus, lateri- bus bispinosis: spina anteriori longiori emarginata, sub spinas latera deflexa varie plicata. Elytra oblonga, rugosa, seriatim spinosa: seriebus tribus, duabus interioribus anum versus ab- breviatis, exteriori dimidiata ; spinis acutis. Serierum intersti- tia seriatim nodulosa. Elytrorum latera et apex deflexa. This species, as well as that which precedes it, would in a mo- dern system doubtless form two genera, from the remarkable dif- ference in their mandibles. But since, in a late number of Ger- mar’s Magazin der Entomologie (Zwieter Band, p. 339) the names of 52 genera of Curculionide are given, amongst which these may probably be included, I judged it best to give them for the pre- sent as Curculiones. Amico mihi semper facili et bencvolo auctori Entomologie Britan- nice celebri hoc insectum sacrum esse volui. | elegans. ‘78. C. angustus, viridi-auratus, thorace vittis quatuor, elytris plurimis atris. se aie | PLATE XXII. Fie. 12. — Long. corp. (Rostro incluso) lin. 74 Habitat in Brasilia, D. Hancock... . Animal elegantissimum, statura fere C. Sprengleri, sed angustius. Corpus ovato-lanceolatum, angustum, squamulis viridi-auratis micans, subtus subvillosum; lateribus nigro maculatis. Rostrum tetragonum, supra carinatum, Antenne clava lanceolata, qua- driarticulata. Thorax subcylindricus, vittis alternis atris et viri- di-auratis : his nigro punctatis, eleganter variatus. Elytra vittis, Zi lineolis, 438 Mr. KinBv's Century of Insects. lineolis, maculisque, atris et viridi-aureis quasi tessellata. Pedes villosi. Abdomen segmento ventrali ultimo supra carinato. Seaus . alter segmento abdominis anali plano et minime carinato. | 1 (Cerambycida-) Prionus Fabr. Spenciz. 79. P. thorace inermi carinato, testaceo: vittis duabus nigris, elytris nigris: fascia obliqua fulva. FLATE XXII. Fic. 13. _ Long. corp. lin 16. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus oblongum, nigrum, glabrum. Caput testaceum utrinque postice nigrum. Labrum transversum, breve, parvum. Man- _dibulæ porrectæ, testaceæ, edentulæ, apice incurvæ nigræ, acu- tissimæ. Mentum transversum. Gene apice bidentate: dente exteriori majori. Antenne thorace paulo longiores, compressæ, subserratæ, pilose, nigræ : articulo primo subtus flavo. Thorax transversus, confluenter punctatissimus, antice emarginatus, postice sublobatus : lobo intermedio rotundato, lateralibus ob- tusis, testaceus: maculis binis oblongis dorsalibus nigris; mar- gine laterali reflexo undante, sinuato, dorso tricarinatus: cari- nis lateralibus arcuatis antice abbreviatis. Elytra confluenter punctulatissima, nigra: fascia magna, media, obliqua, fulva, prope suturam carina dorsali. Pectus testaceum, utrinque ma- cula nigra. Postpectus inter pedes flavescens. Femora apice testacea. Abdomen medio longitudinaliter flavum. Viro in Entomologia apprime docto, oculatissimo, coadjutori strenuo utilissimo amicissimo Gulielmo Spence, S, L.S. hoc insectum ab amico $uo dicatur. LAMIA Mr. Kirey’s Century of Insects. 439 Lamia Fabr. speculifera. 80. L. cinerea, thorace, elytrisque basi, spinosis, his | lunula levigata nitidissima. Long. corp. lin. 6. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Affinis videtur L. tribulo et horride Fabr. sed penitus distincta. |. Corpus oblongum, ex pilis tenuissimis decumbentibus cinereum, pilis longioribus rectis sparsis subhirtum. Caput inter oculos sparse punctatum, piloso-fuscum : fascia inter antennas pallida. Mandibule nigra, lævissimæ. Antenne mediocres, piloso-ci- nereæ, subtus hirsute. Thorax subcylindricus : spina elongata ascendente acutissima apice nigra utrinque armatus, spinis in- super quatuor, antico obsoletissimo, brevissimis dorsalibus in rhombum ordinatis, linea elevata inter se et cum lateralibus connexis. Scutellum quadratum, fuscum. : Elytra basi spinis duabus validis acutis, anteriori humerali, oblique positis ar- mata, lunula longitudinali, laevigata, glaberrima, nitidissima, fusca, speculum instar micanti notanda, apice spina laterali mucronata. annulicornis. 81. L. plumbea, thorace spinoso, utrinque albo, elytris carinatis latere albidis, antennis an- tiüistié. 1:102 25a | : Long. corp. lin. 83. | Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus lineare, nigrum, ex pube brevissima plumbeum. Caput sub oculos et linea intermedia piloso-album, supra canalicula- tum. Mandibule apice bidentate. Antenne breviores, nigræ : articulis basi albis, intermediis subtus atro-barbatis. Thorax lateribus 440 Mr. Kinsy's Century of Insects. lateribus piloso-albis, postice spina obtusa armatis. Elytra line- aria, apice paulo latiora rotundata, punctatissima, apud latus, apice excepto, piloso-alba. Anus subtus ex pilis albus. Pedes basi fulvi. | BE ^ragifera. 82. L.fusca, thorace subspinoso, elytris apice cristatis, basi tuberculo fragiformi. : Long. corp. liù. 9. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus oblongum, subtus disco villoso-fulvescenti, supra ex pilis cinerascente-fuscum nigro subnebulosum. Caput subinflexum. Mandibule late, edentulæ, nigra. Vertex canaliculatus : punc- tis binis obliquis atris. Antenne breviores, ex tuberculo pro- venientes: articulis fuscis, basi pallidis; primo apice valde in- crassato fulvo. Scutellum subquadratum, fulvo-pilosum. Elytra fusca, subnebulosa, rugosa, apice cristata : crista pilis coronata ; lineola transversa alba antice adjacente, postice tuberculo magno hemisphærico fragiformi, vel tuberculis pluribus mino- ribus aciniformibus exasperato. Humeri etiam elytrorum tu- berculato-rugosi. Pedes nebulosi. : aculeicornis. 83. L. oblonga cinerea, thorace spinoso, elytris basi subcristatis, antennis apice unguiculatis. Long. corp. lin. 6. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. | Valde affinis L. Scorpioni, sed multo minor, elytris basi tantum . .€ristatis. Corpus totum cinereum, nec subtus et thorace album. Tibie item antice haud dilatatee—alias simillima. This insect, as well as Lamia Scorpio, exhibits a most extraordi- nary character; the terminal joint of the antenne exactly resem- bles Mr. Kinny's Century of Insects, 441 bles a claw, such as arms the tarsi of many insects. This charac- ter, perhaps, would indicate a separate genus, but in every other respect these are true Lamiæ. What may be the use of this claw is not ascertained ; it is probably for the purpose of laying hold of surfaces. CeramByx Linn. ; hirticornis. 84, C. ater, thorace sexspinoso testaceo nigro macu- lato, elytris testaceis dimidiato-nigris, anten- nis barbatis. "m ves = Long. corp. lin. 11. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Affinis Cerambyci barbicorni. Corpus oblongum, subdepressum, atrum. Caput suborbiculatum: gula mandibulisque testaceis, supra velutino-atrum: vitta media obscuriuscula fulvo-aurea, Gene apice bidentate: dente exteriori majori. Antenne me- diocres, atrze: articulis intermediis hirtis, subtus barbatis. Tho- rax obtuse sexspinosus : spinis quatuor obtusis lateralibus, ante- rioribus brevioribus, et unica utrinque postice in dorso, testace- us: macula magna dorsali subtriangulari vittisque duabus late- ralibus, nigris. Scutellum atrum. Elytra testacea: apice late humerisque velutino-atris: linea dorsali elevata longitudinali sinuata glabra apicem haud attingente. Femora basi testacea. Sternum et Poststernum elevata obtusa: hoc antice excavato. E e NOCORUS E abr. hirtus. 85. St. piceo-æneus, hirtus, thorace submutico, elytris maculis duabus pallidis. . Long. corp. lin. 113. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus lineare, nigro-piceum, æneo tinctum, pilis cinereis longi- usculis 442 Mr. Kinsv's Century of Insects. usculis sparsis hirtum. Caput horizontale, inter oculos canali- culatum. Gene apice spina armate. Antenne articulis infe- rioribus apice spinosis. Thorax punctatus, cylindricus, utrin- que bituberculatus, dorso tuberculis quinque laevibus glabris in quincunce ordinatis. Scutellum sericeum, pallidum. Elytra punctata: macula intermedia irregulari obliqua exterius ramum emittente, aliaque apicis angulata, pallidis, apice bispinosa. SAPERDA Fabr. hirsuticornis. 86. S. nigra, thorace elongato, utrinque vitta ar- . gentea, coleoptrisque aurea, antennis medio fasciculatim barbatis. | Long. corp. lin. 9. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus lineare, angustatum, obscurum, nigrum. Caput inclina- tum, vel declive. Palpi labiales maxillaribus longiores. An- tenne mediocres, piceæ, articulis tribus intermediis elongatis sulcatis, atro fasciculato-hirsutis. Thorar elongatus, cylindri- cus, infra apicem constrictus, utrinque linea pallida piloso-ar- gentea. Elytra dorso plana, latere deflexa: vitta angusta in- termedia piloso-aurea. femora filiformia apice clavata: clava lanceolata. eo | scopulicornis. 87. S. rufo-picea, thorace elongato, elytris vitta au- rca, antennis articulo quinto apice scopula stellari. Long. corp. lin. 5. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock: Affinis præcedenti. Corpus lineare, angustatum, totum rufo-pi- ceum, obscurum. Antenne mediocres, subtus pilis longis spar- sis, barbatæ: articulo quinto apice scopula quinque-radiata, : sive | Mr. KikBY's Century of Insecis. 443 sive ex fasciculis quinque pilorum nigrorum divergentium con- stante. Thorax antice et postice constrictus. Elytra vitta dor- sali angustissima utrinque abbreviata, pallide aurea. Femora fere ut in precedente. Necypatts Linn. aurulenta. 88. N.aureo-pubescens, elytris subulatis fulvis: vitta laterali furcata nigra, antennis apice extus ser- ratis. : à Long. corp. lin. 10. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus pube fulvo-aurea vestitum. Caput inter oculos carinatum : carinacanaliculata, pone antennas pube subferruginea. Antenne thorace longiores, sensim crassiores, nigra, apice extus serratæ. Thorax subglobosus, depressus, pube aurea et fusco-ferruginea nebulosus, postice constrictus : lineis tribus dorsalibus elevatis ; exterioribus arcuatis, glabris levibus, postice utrinque spatio glabro, escavato-punctato. Elytra subulata, corpore paulo bre- viora, fulva, punctata: vitta marginali antice furcata, sutura- que nigris. Pedes rufi: femoribus tibiisque medio nigricantibus. Temora quatuor anteriora incrassata, postica clavata. Tibie posticæ apice barbatæ. Abdomen rufum, aureo-pubescens. barbicrus. 89. N.nigra, elytris abbreviatis subulatis, macula ha- - mata alba, tibiis posticis undique barbatis. Long. corp. lin. 6. | Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus lineare, angustum, nigrum, subtus piloso-incanum. Caput - punctulatum, inter oculos canaliculatum. Antenne breviores, extrorsum crassiores, apice intus serrate, rufo fuscoque varie. VOL, XII. 3M Thorax 444 Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. Thorax brevis, subcylindricus, reticulato-punctatus: punctis papillatis, postice utrinque tuberculo dorsali levi. Elytra bre- vissima, subulata, punctatissima: vitta antice intus uncinata ` et in medio obtusangula, levi, pallida. Pedes postici testacei ; tibiis, basi nuda excepta, undique atro dense barbatis. Anus rufus. (Crioceride.) Mecatopus Oliv. sexmaculatus. 90. M. flavus, subtus fascia, capitis vertice, thora- cis dorso, coleoptrisque maculis sex, atris. Long. corp. lin. 5. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. | Corpus oblongüm, flavum, punctulatum : punctulis piligeris. Ca- put triangulare, postice inter oculos nigrum. Antenne nigre. Collum dorso nigro. Thorar teretiusculus, antice constrictus : dorso macula, utrinque angulata postice rotundata, nigra. Ely- fra fascia humerali, maculaque magna medii et apicis, lineola- que marginis, atris. Postpectus fascia lata nigra. Tibia posticæ arcuate, tarsique omnes, nigra. Jemora postica valde incras- sata. ns s (Hispide.) Aturnus Fabr. rostratus. 91. A. fronte rostrata, supra testaceus, thorace vitta dorsali elytris apice, corporeque nigris. Long. corp. lin. 7. Habitat Ex Museo D. Drury. Corpus lineare, angustum, glabrum, atrum. Caput rufum, clypeo in rostrum breve apice truncatum, supra sulco exaratum nigrum, subtus declive rufum, producto. Ossub capite inter oculos. An- : tenne Mr. Kinnav's Century of Insects. 445 tennein nostro specimine desunt. Oculi magni, laterales. Thorax planiusculus, quadratus: angulis anticis truncatis, postice sub- lobatus, confluenter excavato-punctatus, rufus: vitta dorsali nigra. Elytra striata: striis lineis elevatis decussatis, unde exca- vato-punctate, rufa, apice nigra. Pectusrufum. Ale nigræ. This insect, which I purchased from the late Mr. Drury's col- lection, appears to vary both from Alurnus and Hispa, and might | perhaps constitute a new genus; but as my specimen has no an- tennee, I have for the present considered it as an Alurnus. (Chrysomelida.) Lamprosoma Kirby. Labrum subquadratum, apice deflexum. Labium minutissimum, oblongum. Mandibule apice incumbentes, edentule. Palpi crassi, subclavati. : .. Mentum minutissimum, oblongum. Antenne subclavatæ : clava compressa subserrata. Corpus hemisphæricum fere, dorso gibbo. Caput inflexum, a thorace receptum. Thorax postice lobatus. One species of this genus has been described by Fabricius as a Chrysomela (C. Globus), and another by Olivier as a Eumolpus (E. globosus). Itexhibits much more affinity to Clytra, from which however it is sufficiently distinguished by its labrum, mandibulæ, and palpi, as well as by the globose form of its body. bicolor. 92. L. supra cupreo-fulgidum, subtus cyaneum. Prate XXII. Fre. 15. Long. corp. lin. 44. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. 4 3M 2 Corpus 446 Mr. Kirey’s Century of Insects. Corpus subglobosum, antice angulatum, glaberrimum, subtus cy- aneum, supra nitidissimum splendore cupreo fulgidum. Caput suborbiculatum, deflexum, punctulatum, inter oculos fovea ob- longa impressum. Os nigrum: mandibulis validis apice rotun- datis. Antenne capite vix longiores, nigre: articulo primo magno subcompresso, subrhomboidali, vel antice et postice ob- tusangulo, secundo brevi et fere conico, quarto minutissimo subgloboso, sequentibus tribus brevibus obconicis; rcliquis majoribus subtriangularibus, clavam compressam subserratam formantibus. Oculi magni, laterales, subreniformes. Thorax an- tice emarginatus, postice lobatus : lobo apice rotundato; lateri- bus obliquis, supra punctulatus. Scutellum minutissimum, acu- minatum. Coleoptra dorso gibbo, punctato-striata, lateribus angulata. Sternum oblongum, punctatum. Pedes violacei. Fe- mora subtus pro receptione tibiarum longitudinaliter excavata. Tibie apice vix calcaratæ. Curamys Knoch. Bacca. 93. Ch. atra, supra cupreo-aurata, thorace bilobo, ely- tris muricatis punciatis: : sutura denticulata. Long. corp. lin. à Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. | Animal singulare, baccam rubicundam acinis constantem super- ficie rugoso simulans. - Corpus crassum, subquadratum, fere pentagonum, glabrum, subtus punctatum, atrum, supra obscure cupreo-auratum, sericeum. Caput orbiculatum, deflexum, fere totum in thorace receptum, quasi concentrice rugulosum: cly- peo distincto, subtriangulari, punctato. Labrum subquadratum, rufum. Palpi subfiliformes, labiales articülo secundo haud extus producto. Labium rufum, emarginatum. Antenne rufo-piceæ, subserratæ ; articulo primo elongato clavato arcuato. Thorax i minu- Mr. Kirpy’s Century of Insects. 447 minutissime rugulosus, cupreo-auratus, dorso elevato bilobo: lobis emarginatis, antice constrictus, postice lobatus, lobo bifi- do. Coleoptra quadrata, tuberculato-muricata: tuberculis sub- trigonis, anticis acutis, reliquis obtusis anterius excavatis: su- turis denticulatis, lateribus profunde sinuata. Sternum ele- vatum, os claudens. femora subtus cuprea, pro receptione ti- biarum longitudinaliter excavata. Anus inflexus. Segmenta antica brevissima, et quasi plicata, anali profunde excavato. This species seems to differ from the others of the genus. in the structure of its labial. palpi, since they are not at all furcated. Whether the other species have the sutures denticulated I do not know, having only this species of the genus. Olivier does not no- ‘tice it. The circumstance is so unique and rémarkable, that if they have it not, it would indicate that C. Bacca belongs to a - distinct genus. (Choragide.) Cuoracus Kirby. Palpi subsetacei : articulo extimo acuto. Antenne clavatæ: clava triarticulata, basi afticulis duobus pri- mis incrassatis. Corpus cylindricum. Caput inflexum : clypeo elongato. After repeated examinations under a powerful magnifier, I have not been able clearly to discover more than three joints in the tarsi of this insect; but Mr. Curtis in one tarsus detected four. Indeed its general habit, &c. connect it witb the Tetramera, espe- cially Cis and Cryptocephalus : it will not however well arrange under any of the present families of that section of Coleoptera; I have therefore considered it as the type of a new one, to which some other nondescript genera in my cabinet belong. Shep- 448 Mr. Kinay's Century of Insects. Sheppardi. 94. Ch. | Prate XXII. Fic. 14. Long. corp. iin. 2. | Habitat in Anglia. Apud Offton in Suffolcia a D. — rarius lectus, strenue saltans. Corpus oblongum, cylindricum, piceum, pilositate parva obscu- rum. Caput subinflexum, subtriangulare, punctulatissimum : clypeo plano subelongato. Mandibulæ acute, edentulæ. Palpi subsetacei: articulo extimo acuto et fere subulato. Antenne thoracis fere longitudine, nigræ: articulis duobus primis magnis incrassatis rufis, tertio brevi obconico, quarto subelongato cylin- drico, sequentibus quatuor obconicis, tribus ultimis preeceden- tibus subito majoribus, nono et decimo obconicis extimo fere ovato, clavam laxam efformantibus. Oculi subrotundi, plani- usculi. Thorax ex globoso conicus, convexus, punctulatissi- mus: puncto utroque sub lente forti centro eminenti. Scutel- lum vix ullum. Coleoptra oblonga, striata: striis punctatis. T'i- bie rufæ submutice. Tarsi item rufi: articulo intermedio reli- quis latiori. Unguiculi duo brevissimi. Entomologo cordato oculatissimo Revetto Sheppardo, A.B. S. L.S. hoc insectum ab ipso solummodo adhuc inventum, et mihi benevole com- municatum, merito dicatur. ORTHOPTERA. BLATTA. Moufeti. 95. B. fusca, thorace antice reflexo utrinque angulato. Mouffet 130, fig. infima. _ Kirby and Spence Introduct. to Entomology, ii. 320. Long. corp. lin. 22. Habitat in Brasilia frequens. D. Hancock. 3 Corpus Mr. Krrpy’s Century of Insects. 449 Corpus depressum, totum fuscum, obscurum. Caput utrinque sub oculos apud antennarum basin interne puncto pallido. Thorax supra rugosus, antice fulvus; margine antico emargi- nato, et laterali exciso, reflexis pallidis, disco gibbus. Tarsi _ articulis omnibus pulvillatis. Var. B. Elytris, thoraceque luridis. MANTIS. sinuata. 96. M.fusco-cinerea, oculis spinosis, elytris sinuatis ala- rum longitudine. l Long. corp. lin. 24.. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock, ? in Mus. D. MacLeay. : | d 1 ; Affinis M. oculate et lobate Fabr. Folium aridum exactissime re- fert. Corpusfusco-cinereum, obscurum. Oculi ovales,spina acuta sursum terminati. Antenne setosæ, fulvæ, submoniliformes: ar- ticulis ultra 30 brevissimis turbinato-conicis. Thorax utrinque ante medium in angulum obtusum dilatatus. Brachia fulves- cunt. Elytra longitudine alarum, latere externo sinu magno posterius excisa. Ale fusco maculatæ. Abdomen fuscum. — gx OM Antenne medio crassiores, duodecim-articulatæ : articulo primo crassiori longiori cylindrico, secundo minimo cylindrico, tertio elongato subclavato, reliquis cylindricis, ultimis quinque mag- nitudine sensim decrescentibus. _ "Those Mantes whose eyes terminate in a spine seem to form a separate family from the rest, if they may not rather be considered as a genus ; for, besides the above singular character afforded by the eyes, their antenne are very different both in the number and form of the joints of which they are composed. HEMI- 450° Mr. Kinpy’s Century of Insects. HEMIPTERA. Furcona. Lathburii. 9T. F.fronte rostrata ascendente, elytris viridibus, albo flavoque ocellatis, alis luteis apice nigris. | Long. corp. lin: 18. | Habitat in China. Ex Mus. D. Lathbury. Affinis F.candelarie, sed rostrum supra nigrum, apice tantum rufo. Truncus disco nigro. Elytra nigro-viridia: vasis luteis, maculis pluribus sparsis ocellaribus, pupilla lutea, iride alba. Puncta quzdam alba in margine interiori. Abdomen pallidum, nigro maculosum. | ARACHNIDES Lamarck. ^(Phalangide.) — — GoxvrEPTES Kirby. : Character essentialis. Mandibule chelate. mS Palpi unguiculati. Tarsi 6—10-articulati. : Character naturalis. Corpus triangulare. Caput thorace multo angustius, et ab illo linea impressa obtusangula: angulo anum spectante separa- tum, antice in medio biemarginatum, utrinque rectum, tuber- culo vel cornu dorsali basi oculigero : oculis binis rotundis pro- minulis, armatum. Mandibule inflexæ, biarticulatæ : articulo . primo subito apice valde incrassato, ultimo subovato chelato. Marxille nulle, ni coxæ pedum anticorum pro maxillis habendae. Labium pectorale, pharynge duplici. Palpi quinque-articulati, incurvi: articulo primo fere obcampanulato, secundo longiori subcylindrico, tertio brevi incurvo, quarto crassiori subcylin- drico, Mr. Kirsy’s Century of Insects. 451 drico, intus aculeato: aculeis pluribus setiformibus mobili- bus, ultimo subovato intus aculeato, apice unguiculato: un- gueincurvo. Thorax suborbiculatus: lateribus marginatis in- crassatis. Pedes octo: coxis sex anterioribus arcuatis basi subcoalitis, intermediis longioribus, posticis duobus maximis cum postpectore coalitis et vix linea impressa separatis, extror- sum rotundatis, supra apice spina valida armatis, trochanteri- bus brevibus cylindricis, femoribus cylindricis: posterioribus spinosis genubus convergentibus, tibiis triarticulatis: articulo primo brevi incrassato campanulato, secundo tenuiori longiori cylindrico, tertio gracili longo filiformi apice bicalearato, tarsis filiformibus pilosis: anticis sexarticulatis, antepenultimis sep- tem- vel undecim-articulatis, penultimis brevioribus sex- vel septem-articulatis, posticis octo-articulatis: articulo primo ob- soletiusculo, secundo reliquis longiori, penultimo brevissimo. Tarsi omnes unguiculati, sed in quatuor anterioribus unguicu- lus internus obsoletus. Sternum inter pedes sex anteriores an- gustissimum, subcuneiforme. Poststernum inter coxas posticas et ab eis linea impressa levi separatum, fere sagittatum, postice utrinque spiraculo lunari pertusum. Abdomen brevissimum, interdum retractum, segmentis brevissimis et quasi plicatis, dorsalibus quatuors ventralibus sex, analibus mame bu: - This genus belongs to Latreille’s Arachnides Trachéennes Hole- tres, and should come before Phalangium, to which it is nearly re- lated. It is sufficiently distinguished from that genus by its tri- angular body, immense posterior coxa coalite with the postpec- tus and scarcely separated from it, except anteriorly, even by an impressed line; and more particularly by not having more than eleven joints in any of its tarsi. The third joint of the tibiæ may by some perhaps be regarded as the first joint of the tarsus, but VOL. XII. 3N the 452 Mr Krinsv's Century of Insects. the spurs which arm its apex sufficiently prove that it belongs to the tibiæ. The knees of the hind-legs of these extraordinary in- sects converge; and being armed with spines, seem adapted to catch or retain their prey ; and probably on this account itis that the coxe of these legs are so strong. It seems to me that this genus and Phalangium, instead. of coming after the Pycnogonide, as Latreille has arranged them, should precede those marine animals, since their affinity to the spider tribe, scorpions, &c., is much greater. aculeatus. 98. G. cornu oculigero inclinato, thorace aculeato: aculeo incurvo, coxis posticis extus spina bi- dentata. Long. corp. lin. 6. . Habitat i in Brasilia. D. noi. ni: Corpus glabrum, leve, obscurum, fusco-rufum. Caput cornu 2n». sali oculigero elevato, acuto, inclinato. Thorax subnebulo- sus, transverse seriatim nodulosus: margine laterali exteriori pallide flavo, interiori incrassato noduloso, postice in medio spina aculeiformi validissima, incurva, acuta, basi sinistrorsum bidentata, dextrorsum unidentata terminatus, Pedes sordide pallidi: coxis fuscis, penultimis postice pectinatis: pectine fixo sexdentato, posticis extus spina robustissima apice bi- dentata armatis. Femora postica fusca, nodulosa, subtus prope - basin spina validissima obtusa pluribusque aliis minoribus uni- . caque dorsali armata. Genua item intus bispinosa. Tibie pos- tice articulis duobus primis nodulosis, intus acute spinosis.. sdidonen, inter coxas retractum et quasi intrusum, horridus, 99. G. cornu oculigero brevi bidentato, thorace tuber- culis binis, coxisque posticis spina furcata, ar- matis. | PLATE Mr. KinnyY's Century of Insects. 453 Pirate XXII. Fre. 16. P i Long. corp. lin. 63. Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. _ Corpus fusco-rufum, glabrum, leve, obscurum. Caput elevatum : . cornu oculigero brevissimo bidentato: dentibus distantibus. Thorax postice tuberculis binis dorsalibus elevatis, in margine punctis elevatis pallidis. Puncta quædam alia elevata in tho- race notanda. Pedes elongati. Cove postice extus spina elon- gata apice furcata terminantur. Trochanteres et femora postica spinosa: spinis pluribus longitudine variis; unica prope basin elongata hinc emarginata. Sternum tricarinatum. Abdomen apertum: segmentis dorsalibus me elevatis callosis albis notatis. Var. 8. Abdomine subtus fusco rufoque marmorato. scaber. 100. G. cornu oculigero bifido, thoracis disco seriatim - tuberculato, coxis posticis spina apice recurva. ME SEE Long. corp. lin. 33. . Habitat in Brasilia. D. Hancock. Corpus griseum, obscurum, subtus subsetosum et granulis sca- brum. Caput cornu oculigero elevato apice. bispinoso. Thorax postice tuberculis quatuor oblongis magnis: anterioribus mi- noribus, aliisque quatuor parvis hemispheericis, per paria lon- " gitudinaliter ordinatis. In margine laterali et angulis posticis puncta elevata pallida. fere ocelliformia. Cove postice spinis externis apice recurvis. Pemora postica spinosissima : spina elongata basis apice diffracta. Abdomen fere verticale, haud retractum, scabrum. ET " KAVIT. í ( 454 ) XXVIII. A Description of several new Species of Insects collected in New Holland by Robert Brown, Esq. F.R.S. Lib. Linn. Soc. By the Rev. William Kirby, M.A. F.R. and L.S. Read February 17, 1818. No country has produced more novelties in every department of Natural History than New Holland ; and the plants and animals of that insular continent, if I may so speak, are most of them of a peculiar character. Even such as are most nearly related to those of other climates usually exhibit some diagnostic that se- parates them from their correlatives, and indicates the region that gave them birth. "Thus, the Rhipicere of New Holland are distin- guished from those of South America by the teeth that arm the inside of their mandibles: their Lucani, (L. nebulosus Kirby, at least,) from those of other countries by their recurved mandibles and emarginate mentum. Not to mention the differences that separate Anoplognathus from Geniates and Rutela, or Scarabeus | proboscideus from its affinities Sc. mobilicornis, quadridens, &c. Mr. Brown, (who has so ably illustrated the Flora of New Hol- - land, and whose observations and discoveries have diffused so much new light over the science of Botany,) when in that country did not overlook its zoological productions, and amongst other subjects collected many new and singular species of insects. Desirous of having these treasures described, and his time and attention,—to the great benefit of the botanical world,—being de- voted Mr. Kinpr's Description of several new Species of Insects. 455 voted to another science; though fully competent to the task him- self, he has requested me to lay a description of them before the Linnean Society, which I shall now do to the best of my ability, adhering to the plan begun in my former paper. COLEOPTERA PENTAMERA. (Buprestida.) Burrestis Linn. cruentata. 1. B. viridis, elytris subacuminatis violaceis: fasciis duabus, maculaque antica laterali, sanguineis. PLATE XXIII. TIO. d. Long. corp. lin. À. Parva sed pulcherrima. Corpus lineare, subcylindricum, nitidum, punctulatissimum, glabrum, ameene viride. Caput triangulare, inter oculos impressum, postice canaliculatum. Antenne ca- pite vix longiores, nigræ. Thorax linea angustissima dorsali longitudinali levi. Scutellum triangulare: disco excavato. Ely- tra striata: striis punctatis, violacea; fasciis duabus, anteriori - subsinuata, postica lunata, maculaque sub humero cum fascia antica connexa, sanguineis. Inter fascias color violaceus ely- trorum vergit in purpureum. El Jtrorum apex subacuminatus. tricolor. 2. B. viridi-aurata, elytris bidentatis, flavis; litora bis, sutura, fascia, maculaque apicis, violaceis. | | Long. corp. lin. 5i. Corpus subdepressum, oblongum, punctulatum, subtus Hadian- ratum: pube parva albida. Caput inter oculos impressum, postice canaliculatum. Antenne nigræ. Thorax æneus: late- ribus sordide flavis, postice paulo latior: puncto medio im- presso. Scutellum triangulari-cordatum, viride: disco impresso. Elytra 456 Mr.Kinnt's Description of several new Species of Tnsects Elytra striata: striis punctatis ; interstitiis punctis sparsis, soré dide flava: litura laterali postice hamata basis, sutura late, fascia angulata pone medium, maculaque apicis subtriangulari, cum macula elytri alterius lanulam formante, purpurascente- violaceis, vel cruce obversa lunula coronata. | : 4 pheorhea. 3. B.viridi-aurata, elytris bidentatis subsulcatis luteis, apice fusco-purpurascentibus. . PLATE XXII. Fic. 2. - | - .. Long. corp. lin. 4s. Insectum elegans. Corpus lineari-oblongum, subdepressum, punc- tulatum, glabrum, nitidum, viridi-auratum. Caput canalicu- latum. Antenne viridi-æneæ. Thorat antice submarginatus, postice latior subtrilobus, utrinque puncto majori foveolaque — dorsali impressus. Scutellum triangulare, viridi-auratum, disco impressum. -Elytra subsulcata: sulcis punctatis ; interstitiis sparse punctatis, obscuriuscula, pallide lutea, apice late fusco- purpurascentia, spinis duobus distantibus terminata. rufipennis. 4. B.atra nitida, elytris bidentatis sanguineis: sutura nigra. | Long. corp. lin. 7. Corpus lineari-oblongum, subdepressum, punctulatum, glabrum, nitidum, atrum. Caput inter oculos longitudinaliter impres- sum. Thorax sparse punctatus, postice sublobatus, utrinque obtusangulus ; lateribus fovea profunde excavatis. Punctum impressum ante scutellum, et unum utrinque in ipso margine postico. Elytra striata: striis punctatis, sanguinea: sutura atra, apice bidentata: dentibus brevissimis approximatis, decemmaculata. 5. B. sulphurea, elytris tridentatis atris: maculis quinque luteis, pedibus violaceis. i PLATE collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown: 457 Prars XXIII. Fre. 8. Long. corp. lin. 6. | Et - Corpus lineari-oblongum, punctulatum, glabrum, obscuriusculum, subtus sulphureum. Caput nigro-æneum, inter oculos postice canaliculatum : antice macula lanceolata sulphurea. ^ Antenne nigrae. Thorax nigro-æneus: lateribus sulphureis, dorso obso- "m canaliculatus, ante scutellum impressus. Scutellum trian- gulare, atrum: disco antice impresso. Elytra striata: striis punctatis, atra: maculis quinque luteis, prima nempe subro- tunda ad scutellum, secunda oblonga laterali ad humeros, ter- tia transversa ante medium, quarta lunata pone medium, ultimo in apice subtriangulari minori, luteis. Apex ipse dentibus tri- “bus parvis, intermedio longiori, armatus. Postpectus medio et lateribus macula nigra. Pedes violacei. | * 3 cuprifera. 6. B. supra nigro-ænea, rugulosa, elytris serrulatis : UI vitta laterali cupreo-aurata, margine nent Long. corp. lin. 55. Corpus oblongum, depressum, subtus nitidum, viridi-æneum, punc- tulatum, parva pube pilosulum, supra minutissime rugulosum, nigro-æneum, obscuriusculum, glabrum. Caput inter oculos . punctis impressis valde excavatis quasi reticulatum. Antenne, thoracis fere longitudine, filiformes, subserratæ. Thorax trans- versus, utrinque postice subimpressus. Scutellum minutissimum, . | apice rotundatum, lævissimum. Elytra acuta, a medio fere ad apicem minutissime serrulata : vitta laterali subflexuosa fulgide cuprea: margo ipse lateralis violaceus. cupriceps. 7. D. viridi-aurata, elytris serratis punctato-striatis, capite cupreo, ano bispinoso. : Long. corp. lin. 54. i Corpus 458 Mr.Krinnv's Description of several new Species of Insects Corpus lineari-lanceolatum, subdepressum, punctatum, nitidum, viridi-auratum. Caput obscuro-cupreum. Antenne filiformes, æneæ, subserratæ. Thorax postice latior, puncto impresso ante scutellum. Scutellum subquadratum. Elytra seriatim punc- tata, ba: i impressa, a medio serrata, apice truncata, trispinosa. Anus | spinis duabus minutis armatus. fissiceps. 8. B.ænea, elytris integerrimis sericeis substriatis, basi lobatis, capite emarginato. PEATE XXIIT. Fre. À. Long. corp. lin. 4. Corpus oblongum, subdepressum, æneum, subtus albido-pilosum. Caput inter oculos profunde impressum, quasi bifidum, in val- leculæ fundo carinatum. Antenne filiformes haud serratæ. Thorax lineolis plurimis dorso concentricis insculptus, postice lobatus: lobo truncato. Scutellum minutum acuminatum. Ely- tra striato-punctata: punctis quasi concatenatis, rugulis trans- versis minutissimis sericea, basi apud scutellum lobata: lobo rotundato. .— | (Cebrionida.) . Rurprcera Latr. femorata. 9. R. atra, thorace elytrisque punctis albis irroratis, femoribus rufis. Long. corp. lin. 8. Habitat in Australasiæ insulis dictis Kent’s Islands in freto dicto Bass’s Straits. R. mystacinæ affinis. Corpus lineare, subcylindricum, nigrum, subtus pube albida incanum.. Caput punctulatum, inter an- tennas impressum. Antenne multiarticulatæ, atre, flabellatæ : ramulis ultra 30 linearibus com pregas elongatis, primis qua- tuor collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown. 459 tuor abbreviatis. Mandibule protense, primum divergentes, dein convergentes, intus bidentate : dentibus rotundatis, apice acutissimæ. Thorax brevis, subcylindricus, postice paulo latior, ante scutellum impressus, punctis. difformibus piloso-niveis utrinque precipue irroratus. Scutellum rotundatum, d .cavatum. Elytra punctata: lineis quinque longitudinalibus elevatis interiori postice. dimidiata, punctis plurimis sparsis piloso-niveis variegata. Femora rufa, apice nigra. (Scarabæide.) SCARABÆUS Latr. Juba. 10. S. thorace antice retuso subcornuto, clypeo reflexo cornu brevi recurvo, elytris castaneis cinereo-punc- tatis. Long. corp. lin. 13. | Habitus fere S. syloani Fabr., et S. Ascanii Kirby. Corpus oblon- gum, nitidum, subtus piceum, pubescens. Caput nigrum, conflu- enter punctatum, postice lævius. Clypeus reflexus, apice trunca- = tus, cornu brevi punctato, subrecurvo, obtusiusculo armatus. Thorax niger, levis, levissime attamen et sparse punctulatus : punctulis sine lente forti omnino inconspicuis, postice repan- dus, antice retusus: fovea parva; fundo ruguloso. Cornu par- vum, brevissimum in i pso margine antico. Elytra castanea, sub- seriatim punctata: punctis excavatis pollinoso-cinereis. Tibie antice tridentate. | Bozsoceras Kirby. Labrum transversum. Labium bipartitum : laciniis oblongo-quadratis. Mandibule corneæ, supra concava, altera apice bidentata : dente interiori longiori acuto. VOL. XII. 30 i Maxille 460 Mr. Kirsy’s Description of several new Species of Insects Mazille apice bilobæ : lobis ciliatis; interiori minuto, exteriori subcuneiformi: angulo apicis intus producto acutissimo. Palpi filiformes. Mentum subquadratum, integrum. n we und lecim-articulatze: articulo primo subclavato extus - minutissimo, secundo cylindrico, proximis sex transver- sis, ultimis tribus clavam maximam compressam subor- biculatam, pilosam, articulo intermedio sæpius penitus tecto et abdito, formanitibus. GrornvuPrs Latr. Labrum transversum, integrum. Labium bifidum : lobis rotundatis. Mandibule cornes, arcuatæ, edentule, acute, supra concave. Maaille lobo exteriori trigono, apice scopigero: scopa densa, ri- gida, trigona. : Palpi filiformes. : Mentum suborbiculatum, apice —o emarginatum. Antenne undecim-articulatæ : articulo primo incrassato clavato piloso, secundo brevissimo sequentibus crassiori obco- nico, sex proximis magnitudine sensim crescentibus, ul- timis tribus clavam subovatam obscuram papillosam, intermedio semper aperto, formantibus. These two sets of characters are designed to point out the dif- ferences between two distinct families of Scarabeide that have hitherto been considered as belonging to the same genus. Sc. mo- bilicornis Linn. (of which Sc. testaceus Fabr. is only a variety), qua- dridens Linn., farctus Fabr., Lazarus Fabr., Cyclops Oliv. &c., be- long to one of these families; and Sc. Typheus Linn., dispar Fabr., Momus Fabr., stercorarius Linn., foveatus Marsh., Mutator Marsh., splendidus Fabr., sylvaticus Fabr., hemisphericus Oliv., and verna- lis collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown. 461 lis Linn., &c. to the other. Whoever considers these characters, and compares these sets of insects with each other, will be immediatel y ` convinced that, according to the modern system, they ought to constitute different genera. The mandibula of one side (in some the right-hand one and in others the left) bidentate : the maxilla with the outer lobe truncated at the apex, the i in ner angle acuminate, and narrowest at the base, and ciliated; the quadrate entire mentum; and above all the compressed, orbiculate, shining, punctate, hairy clava of their antennæ, the exterior lamellæ of which usually inclose the intermediate one as entirel y as the valves of a bivalve shell the animal which inhabits it, distinguish the for- mer of these tribes, to which I have long given the generic name of Bolboceras; whereas the other, the true Geotrupes, or earth- borer, is remarkable for mandibule without teeth; maxillæ with a prismatic exterior lobe terminating in a brush of stiff dense hairs; an orbicular deeply-emarginate mentum ; labium with rounded lobes; and antennz with a subovate clava, the third joint of which is always.apparent, and all its joints exhibiting a downy appearance, but having no hairs. The body of the former also is more hemispherical than that of the latter, and the clypeus is not rhomboidal. a Geotrupes vernalis seems to connect these two.genera ; its body approaching to an hemispherical form ; its labrum, though not emarginate, terminating in a concave line; and its mandibulæ having two teeth at the end. It differs from both in having the interior tooth the shortest, and the exterior edge of the mandible sinuate. In most other respects it agrees with G. stercorarius, &c. In Bolboceras Cephus the middle joint of the clava of the antennæ is not so wholly shut up between the two exterior ones as to be entirely hidden by them. Ih other respects it agrees with the rest. My details of Bolboceras were taken from B. quadridens, 302 and .- d 462 Mr. Krrey’s Description of several new Species of Insects and those of Geotrupes from G. stercorarius. I-shall now describe a new species of the former genus from Mr. Brown’s collection. Austra 11. B. testaceus, thorace punctatissimo antice re- tuso, clypeo obtuse carinato. z* Prate XXIII. Fie. 5. *, Long. corp. lin. 9. Corpus oblongo-hemisphzricum, totum testaceum, subtus pubes- cens. Caput antice confluenter, postice sparse punctatum. Clypeus antice rotundatus, marginatus : margine subreflexo, su- pra carinatus; carina transversa, obtusa, utrinque abbreviata. Mandibula sinistra a tergo bidentata: dente exteriore obtuso. Labrum late emarginatum. Palpi articulo extimo elongato, sub- Janceolato. Antenne clava magna, compressa, exacte orbicu- lata, nitida, punctata, lamella intermedia penitus clausa. Tho- rax transversus et fere lunatus, confluenter punctatissimus : dorso postice longitudinaliter lzviori punctulis sparsis, utrinque obtusangulus et puncto ordinario majori impressus, antice re- tusus: fovea subtriangulari, prominentia obsoleta triplici. Ely- tra striata: striis ex punctis impressis crenatis. Tibie anticae serrate : serraturis nigris. Tibiarum calcaria longissima. | Trox Fabr. spurius. 12. T. oblongus, scaber, subcinereus, elytris seriatim pa- pillatis. Long. corp. lin. 5. Intermedius inter Trogem et Melolontham, et forsan proprii gene- ris Corpus oblongum, nigrum, glabrum, obscurum, punctis papillatis et centro oblongo eminentibus pallidis subcinereum i et scabrum. . Caput suborbiculatum, deflexum, inæquale: cly- peo collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown. 468 peo reflexo antice subemarginato. Os concursu labri et menti ` omnino clausum: labio, mandibulis maxillis palpisque labiali- bus penitus tectis. Palpi maxillares articulo extimo przcedenti- bus majori, subarcuato, basi tenuiori. Mentum magnum. _ tum, dorso depressum, triangulari-cordatum. Antenne ı articulate: articulo primo subglabro longiori, secundoqu b vi, clavatis, apice incrassatis ; tertio graciliori, clavato ; quarto brevissimo, subcylindrico ; quinto et sexto subpateræformibus, transversis; clava lamellis tribus lanceolatis acutis. Thorax transversus, antice emarginatus, postice obsolete obtusangulus, lateribus rotundatis, dorso utrinque tri-impressus. Elytra punc- tis papillatis seriatim ordinatis, seriebus plurimis. Tibie antice obtuse tridentate. : . Not being able to come at the trophi (Znstrumenta cibaria Fabr.) of this insect, I cannot clearly ascertain whether it belongs to Trox or Melolontha. Its habit, stature, and closed mouth are nearly those of the former genus; but the first joint of the an- tennz is not hairy as in that, its abdomen not vaulted and flat, and the anterior pair of tibiæ are not without teeth. MELoLoNTHA Fabr. sericea. 13. M. viridis, supra sericea subtus piloso-incana, pedi- bus rufis, clypeo elongato emarginato. Long. corp. lin. 5. Affinis M. aulicole Fabr. et M. aurulente Kirby, sed distincta. . Corpus oblongum, viride, sericeo-nitidum, subtus ex pilis albis decumbentibus incanum. Caput inclinatum, ex punctis con- fertis impressis quasi reticulatum. Clypeus elongatus, antice profunde emarginatus: margine omni reflexo. Palpi maxil- lares niveo-pilosi. Mazille basi apertæ, magne. Mentum ob- triangulare. Antenne pallide rufæ, decemarticulatæ : articulo secundo 464 Mr.KinnY's Description of several new Species of. Insects secundo sequentibus longiori; clava fusca. Oculi septo cili- ato: cilia nivea. Thorax subconicus, confluenter punctatissi- ‘mus, dorso subcanaliculatus, lateribus subspinosis impressis. | ellum acuminato-triangulare, levissimum. Elytra subseri- atim punctata: lineis duabus longitudinalibus elevatiusculis. Pe le rufi, niveo-pilosi. Tibie antice apice subsinuatæ, vix den- ‘tate. Tarsi unguiculis apice bifidis. Abdomen ventre valde con- vexo et fere gibbo. Crronia Fabr. atropunctata. 14. C. olivacea, clypeo elongato pide, elytris punctis sex vel octo atris. - Long. corp. lin. 12. Habitat in Australasia. Apud Port Jackson a D. Brown in Mimosa lecta. Corpus nitidum, olivaceum, supra glaberrimum, subtus pubescens. Caput deflexum, punctatum. Clypeus elongatus, apice bifidus: lobis obtusis, margine incrassatus. Palpi subclavati. Thorax triangularis, antice truncatus: angulis porrectis acutis, postice sublobatus: lobo emarginato, sparse punctatus: margine late- rali incrassato, subrepando. Scutellum triangulare, lævissimum. Elytra punctata, at vix seriatim, punctis impressis, subrugosa, basi lzviuscula: punctis tribus atris in triangulo obtusangulo ordinatis, uno minori semicirculari apud scutellum, altero ma- jori extus in medio, tertio minori intus pone medium, rotundis. Apice mucronata sunt elytra: mucrone brevissimo. Postpec- tus in medio, et abdomen subtus segmentis quatuor primis, ni- gris. Poststernum porrectum, apice triangulare. Core antice tuberculo parvo subtriangulari fusco prope apicem inserto. Ti- bie anticæ acute tridentate. Tarsi unguiculis duobus com- pressis, truncatis. | | Var. 8. elytris punctis octo atris. D. MacLeay. : : Browni. collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown. 465 DBrownü. 15. C. castanea, capite, thoracis disco, scutello, pec- toreque nigris, clypeo elongato bifido. Prare XXIII. Fic. 6. Long. corp. lin. 133. » d. Habitat à in Australasia, apud Port Jackson. +.. Corpus obovatum, glaberrimum, nitidum, læve. Caput a atram. Clypeus elongatus, bifidus: lobis divergentibus, utrinque im- pressus, margine incrassato. Antenne castaneæ. Thorax vix a præcedente differt quoad figuram, sed anguli antici haud pro- tensi et latera rotundata, levissime punctulatus, castaneus : margine antico et postico, et macula magna dorsali sublobata, atris. Scutellum triangulare atrum. Elytra levissime, ast se- riatim, punctulata, castanea; basi humeris suturaque, atris: Pectuset Postpectus atra. Pedesatri: tibiis castaneis apice atris. Abdomen nigro-castaneum. Anus lineolis transversis inscul ptus. Horum insectorum collectori Botanices Australasie elucidatori eximio, Ordinum plantarum Naturalium docto et lynceo extricatori D. R. Brown, S.R.S. Bibl. L.S. hoc insectum ab illo lectum merito dicatur. brunnipes. 16, C.supra viridis, thoracis lateribus, punctisque du- obus dorsalibus elytrorumque plurimis, albis, pedibus brunneis. Long. corp. lin. 5$. Affinis admodum videtur C. aulice Fabr. sed multo minor et di- stincta: Corpus obovatum, subtus nitidiusculum, nigrum, pi- losulum, polline pallido variegatum ; supra viride, obscurum. Caput deflexum, punctatum, postice lunula interrupta polli- noso-alba. Clypeus apice emarginatus, subreflexus.. Palpi cum antennis brunnei. Thorax quoad figuram fere ut in præce- dente, 466 Mr. Krrey’s Description of several new Species of Insects dente, sed latera obsolete obtusangula, et postice haud loba- tus, ante scutellum tamen emarginatus: lateribus margine punctisque duobus dorsalibus distantibus pollinoso-albis, line- olis arcuatis sparsis insculptus. Scutellum elongatum, trian- gulare, leve: lineola utrinque pollinoso-alba. Elytra pone humeros sinuata, punctis lineolisque sparsis pollinoso-albis picta, lineolis, interdum duplicatis interdum figura ferri equini, insculpta : lateribus ante apicem, apiceque ipso, obscure brun- neis. Pedes setosi, brunnei. Tibiæ antice acute tridentate. . Podex rugosus: maculis quatuor, interioribus majoribus, polli- noso-pallidis. Abdomen subtus lineolis arcuatis setigeris in- sculptum. COLEOPTERA HETE ROMERA. (Tenebrionide.) ApELium Kirby. caraboides. 17. A. nigrum, thorace postice utrinque angulato, elytris porcatis: porcis alternis catenulatis. Piare XXIII. Fic. 7. Carabus porcatus apterus, ater, elytris striatis apice granulatis. Fab. Ent. Syst. Em. i. 147. 101. Calosoma porculatum. Fab. Syst, Eleuth. i. 911.8. Long. corp. lin. 74. — Facies omnino Carabi sed hujus generis. Corpus subdepressum, nitidum, glabrum, nigrum. Caput subtriangulare, ex punctis excavatis confluentibus postice rugosum, antice inter antennas transvetse elevatum. Antenne fere filiformes, thorace longiores. Thorax planiusculus, transversus, ex punctis impressis conflu- entibus valde rugosus, antice emarginatus, postice transversus: angulis lateralibus extantibus, subrecurvis, utrinque margina- tus: collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown. 467 tus: margine explanato rotundato. Scutellum apice rotunda- tum, punctatum. Elytra porcata: porcis crenatis, alternis ca- tenatis, vel ex punctis oblongis elevatis, ut in Carabis pluribus obtinet, constantibus. Obs. Porci omnes in apice elytri interrupti sunt. I did not discover that Adelium caraboides had been described by Fabricius till after the figures illustrative of this paper were drawn; and as the insect here given confirms the genus I had laid down in my former paper, and is another instance of its spe- cies imitating the form and appearance of the Carabide, I think it may be interesting to Entomologists, particularly on account of Mr. Curtis's excellent figure, if I retain it. I have altered Fabricius's trivial name, as the insect certainly is neither a Cara- bus nor a Calosoma, to make it harmonize with those of the spe- cies before described. Hzrzvs Latreille. * Thorace antice bipartito, ante caput protenso. Brownii. 18. H. ater, glaberrimus, thorace caput ambiente, co- leoptris disco elevato granulato: sutura cari- nata. Prare XXIII. Fre. 8. Long. corp. lin. 9. | Affinis H. perforato Latr. sed dimidio minor. Palpi maaillares articulo extimo minori, subpetiolato. Coleoptra glaberrima, haud punctata, granulis quibusdam subseriatim notata. Su- tura in carinam elevata. Sternum vix carinatum. Alias simil- limus. This family of the genus Heleus presents some of the most sin- gular insects in nature. "The lobes of the thorax meet over the VOL. XII, 3P head, 468 Mr.Kinnv's Description of several new Species of Insects head, and by their union, by means of a sinus cut out of their in- ner side, form a round hole where the vertex of the head appears and part of the eyes, so that the animal is thus enabled to see things above it as well as below it. The-anterior part of the head is below the thorax. ; i ** Thorace haud caput ambiente. piceus. 19. H. fusco-piceus glaber, thorace emarginato, elytris | seriatim punctatis. | Long corp. lin. 62. Forsan ad aliud genus amandandum. Corpus oblongo-ovale, totum glaberrimum, obscuriusculum, fusco-piceum. Caput postice angustius, levissime punctulatum. Labrum transversum, apice rotundatum. Labium transversum, rotundatum. Mentum fere pentagonum. Palpi maxillares quadriarticulati: articulo extimo magno, sed haud maximo, securiformi.: Clypeus apice subemar- ginatus, Thorax semicircularis, segmento circuli antice dempto, postice subrepandus: lateribus marginatis, levissime punctula- tus; dorso valde convexo. Elytra seriatim punctulata, margi- nata: margine subreflexo. Epipleura lata, levis. COLEOPTERA TETRAMERA. (Curculionidz.) | | . Evuruinus Kirby. muricatus. 20, E. niger, piloso-subincanus, elytris basi subcris- tatis: granulis tuberculisque acutis elevatis - Scabris. T m Long. corp. (Rostro excluso) lin. 8. Corpus. obcüneiforme, plus. minus piloso-incanum. Caput ru- gulosum, postice læve, inter oculos. canaliculatum.. Rostrum thoracis collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown. 469 thoracis longitudine, pone antennas punctatum. Antenne ros- tro pone apicem insidentes, tboracis fere longitudine, basi vix moniliformes: articulis tribus primis subclavatis, proximis quin- que obconicis, sensim brevioribus et majoribus, ultimis tribus . fere ut in E. leviori K. Thorax teretiusculus, rugosus. Cole- optra oblonga, granulata, striata : striis punctatis; punctis pro- funde excavatis ; dorsalium interstitiis tuberculorum acutorum serie, apud scutellum utrinque crista obsoletius elevata tuber- culis acutis muricata. Pedes antici longiores: femoribus in- crassatis. | Curcutio Linn. mirabilis. 21. C.fuscus, rostro brevissimo, thorace confertim el y- trisque seriatim nodulosis, ventre masculo pos- tice aperto. PLATE XXIII. Fic. 9. . Long. corp. (Rostro excluso) lin. 10. Corpus lineari-oblongum, obscurum, nigro-fuscum. Caput squa- mulis luteo-pallidis consitum. Rostrum brevissimum, crassissi- mum, subcylindricum, supra inæquale, canaliculatum, apice emarginatum. Mandibule maximæ, subtrapeziformes, intus lævissimæ, glaberrimæ, nitidissimæ, extus pallido-squamulosæ : pilis nigris intermixtis; verticeextus excavatæ. Antenne frac- tæ: articulis 4°, 5°, 6°, 7? globosis, quatuor ultimis clavam lan- ceolato-rhomboidalem acutam arctissime imbricatam et fere subsolidam formantibus. Thorax depressus, suborbiculatus, dorso subimpressus, antice subconstrictus, confertissime nodu- losus. Elytra subporcata, seriatim nodulosa: nodulis parvis setigeris, apice obtusa et ad suturam submucronata. Femora inermia. - Tibie vix calcarate. Venter segmentis duobus ulti- mis ut videtur quasi circulo dempto, adeo ut patent interiora ; 3P2 sed 470 Mr. Kinsy’s Description of several new Species of Insects — sed revera deflexa est horum segmentorum pars media. Ex fundo cavitatis lamine due, late, compresse, obcuneatæ, apice rotundatæ, lævissimæ, glaberrimæ, nitidæ emergunt, et postice utrinque in margine ipso circuli setarum rigidissima- rum fasciculi, vel potius pectines duo. Basi late excavatus est . venter. | Var. Sexus alter: mandibulis trigonis obscuris, rugosis setosis, acutis, thorace vix impresso, ventre integro: cavitate nulla. I know no insect amongst the Curculionide (except one of the same tribe with this in Mr. MacLeay's cabinet with an anal for- ceps, something like that of an earwig,) that is so wonderfully formed as the species here described. The ventral cavity, lami- nee, and pecten have no parallel that I am aware of in the insect world. These organs are probably for sexual purposes, since the other sex, if I am not mistaken in supposing the variety I have described merely sexual, is without them. (Cerambycida.) STENOCORUS Fabr. punctatus. 22. St. piceus, thorace spinoso, elytris excavato-punc- | tatis, pallido nebulosis. | Long. corp. lin. 14. Corpus lineare, subdepressum, piceum, nitidum, subtus piloso- incanum. Caput subinclinatum, subtus transverse rugosum : gula in medio levissima, supra subpilosum postice rugosum, inter antennas canaliculatum. Labrum transversum: disco de- presso. Labium bilobum: lobis divaricatis pilosis. Mandi- bule incurvæ, acute, supra rugose. Mazille aperte: lobo exteriori elongato scopigero, interiori brevi ciliato. Palpi ar- ticulo extimo semicordato, mavillares longiores. Mentum trans- versum, collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown, 47 1 versum, apice rotundatum. Antenne breviores, rufo-piceæ; ar- ticulis quinque intermediis extus apice spina armatis. Thorax rugosus, utrinque spina acuta valida, antice et postice constric- tus, dorso verrucis s. tuberculis quinque, in quincunce ordi- natis, complanatis. Scutellum piloso-cinereum. Elytra exca- vato-punctata: punctis magnis profundis, piceo pallidoque varia, apice bispinosa. Pedes dilute picei. Disticnuocera MacLeay. Labrum transversum, tetragonum. Labium membranaceum, apice bilobum: lobis divaricatis. Mandibule trigonæ, edentulæ, apice incurve, acuta. Maxille basi aperte. Palpi filiformes. Mentum transversum, trapeziforme. Antenne sensim crassiores, disticho-ramosæ. This genus, named long ago, as above,-by Mr. ee ps con- nects Cerambyx with Molorchus, Necydalis, and Rhagium. With the latter indeed it has little other connexion than from the simi- lar shape of its elytra, which grow gradually narrower towards the apex ; from Cerambyz it is distinguished by its antennæ; and from Molorchus and Necydalis by its elytra, scarcely at all shorter than the wings, and by its disticho-ramose antennæ, | maculicollis. 23. Prate XXIII. Fic. 10; Long. corp. lin. 8 Corpus fere cuneiforme, subtus pilis argenteis nitidum, supra ni- grum, obscurum. Caput subcordatum, pilosum, canalicula- tum, utrinque ante antennas carinatum. Oculi brunnei. An- tenne breviores, nigrae : articulis omnibus apice biramosis (duo- bus primis brevissime); ramis oppositis compressis vertice ro- tundatis, 472 Mr. Kinny's Description of several new Species of Insects tundatis, sinistris paulo longioribus, articulo extimo simplici clavato. Thorax subcylindricus: maculis quatuor dorsalibus quadratim ordinatis. Elytra cuneiformia : lineis tribus longitu- dinalibus elevatis; striga apud scutellum et alia majori in me- dio apud suturam, piloso-argenteis, apice truncata. Femora brunnea. Tibie bicalcarate. Ale elytris longiores. Moroncnvus Fabr. cingulatus. 24. M. niger, elytris dimidiatis luridis, apice ma- = cula alba, abdomine cingulis tribus niveis. Long. corp. lin. 11. Corpus lineare, subtus atrum, pilis albis maculosum. Caput in- clinatum, subcordatum, medio canaliculatum, utrinque sub antennis carinatum, ex punctis conftuentibus rugulosum. Cly- peus a fronte linea impressa separatus, pentagonus, vel rhom- boidalis: angulo antico truncato. Antenne mediocres, apicem versus crassiores, nigra. Thorax brevis teretiusculus, antice constrictus, postice impressus, lateribus caput versus obtusan- gulis, confluenter punctulatissimus. Scutellum nigrum. Ely- tra brevissima, oblique truncata, confluenter punctulata, luri- da: lateribus deflexis fuscescentibus, apice in medio macula triangulari pilosa alba. Ale nigricantes, corporis longitudine. Pedes brunnei: femoribus dilutioribus. Abdomen cingulis tri- bus piloso-niveis circumcinctum. (Lepturida.) - Lrzrruna Linn. ceramboides. 25. L. nigra, thorace subspinoso antice constricto, | elytris croceis, ore pedibusque rufis. Puate XXIII. Fie. 11. Long, corp. lin. 73. A habitu ME MI ie collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown: 473 À habitu generis omnino recedit, Cerambycibus propior. Corpus li- | neare, angustum, nitidum, glabriusculum, nigrum. Caput por- rectum, oblongiusculum, subtus et antice rufum, inter oculos canaliculatum, ante antennas declive. Labrum transversum, minutum. Labium apice bifidum: lobis divaricatis. Mandi- bule trigonæ, subforcipate; acute. Maaille basi aperte. Palpi breves, filiformes. Mentum transversum, quadrangulum. An- tennæ submediocres: articulis intermediis subtus barbatis. Oculi subtriangulares, prominuli. Thorax antice valde angustatus. et late constrictus, utrinque subspinosus, supra quadrituber- culatus :'tuberculis complanatis, anticis approximatis. Elytra punctulatissima, obscura, elevato-quadrilineata, crocea : sutura in medio violacea. Pedes rufi. | This species approaches very near to Stencorus suturalis of Olivier (iv. no. 69. 29. 25. t. 3. f. 29.); but in his insect the legs: are black, the thorax has only two tubercles, and the base of the exterior margin as well as that of the suture is violet; whereas im L. ceramboides the legs are red, the thorax has four tubercles, and only the suture is violet. His insect also comes from a different country, being a native of the East Indies. "These two species: form a distinct section of Leptura, or perhaps a new genus.. (Chrysomelide.) - CunvsouELA Linn. | Curtisii. 26. C. oblonga, sanguinea, thoracis vitta, elytrisque dis- co, aurato-viridibus.. - PLATE XXII. Fic. 12. | Long. corp. lin. 4. Corpus oblongum, sanguineum. Caput punctulatum. Antenne ex- trorsum crassiores, compresse, nigra, basi rufz. Thorac trans- versus, 474 Mr. Krnnv's Description of several new Species of Insects versus, punctatus, antice utrinque puncto vittaque dorsali an- gusta cyaneo-viridibus. Scutellum viride. Elytra vage punc- tata: disco aurato-viridi. Postpectus utrinque viride. Pedes genubus tarsisque nigris. — Ab insectoruin pictori eximio, collectori strenuo, indagatori assiduo, cordato, D* Johanni Curtis Norvicensi, Aoc pulchellum insectum nomen mutuatur. HEMIPTERA. — (Cimicida.) SCUTELLERA Lam. Dua. 27. S. viridis, supra cyanea, scutello basi macula biloba, abdomine, lateribus, femoribusque, aurantiacis. Long. corp. lin. 6. Corpus ex ovali subheptagonum, viride, punctulatum. Caput tri- angulare, subtus gula flava utrinque puncto nigro. Rostrum nigrum, basi rufum. Antenne nigra. Thorax antice levis vi- ridis: lineola transversa obscura rufa, postice convexus cya- neus punctulatus utrinque obtusangulus. Scutellum cyaneum : antice macula magna transversa postice biloba aurantiaca. Postpectus cyaneo maculatum. Ale nigra. Pedes villosi, cy- anei: femoribus rufis. Abdomen lateribus dentato-aurantiacis. ‘(Cicadiade.) Acuitus Kirby. Frons tricarinata. ; Labrum vix distinctum, cum clypeo in medio coalitum. Antenna suboculares biarticulatæ : articulo primo brevissimo cy- lindrico, secundo paulo crassiori tereti, lzevi, setigero. Thorax brevissimus, antice subrepandus, postice obtusangulus: angulo caput spectante. l The " st ü » collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown. 475 The situation of the antennæ of the insect from which I have formed this genus, agrees with that of Fulgora; but in all the genuine species of the latter their second joint is much larger than the first, globose, and covered with papillæ : whereas in Achilus it is not remarkably larger than the first, is rather taper- ing, and without papilla. The labrum also is not separated from the clypeus, except on the sides, by any suture or even impressed line; the thorax a good deal resembles that of Fulgora, but it is more completely obtusangular. ; flammeus. 28, A. Es : Prate XXIII. Fic. 13. Long. corp. lin. 6. Corpus sanguineum, immaculatum. Caput vertice transverso qua- drangulo, postice segmento circuli dempto. Fronsinflexus, vix a clypeo separatus, tricarinatus. Clypeus cum labro in medio connatus. Oculi hemispheerici, albi, laterales, postici. Antenne sub oculis insertæ, biarticulatæ : articulo primo brevissimo cy- lindrico, secundo longiori paulo crassiori teretiusculo, haud pa- pillato, setigero. Ocellus utrinque intus inter oculos et antennas ad clypeum situs. Thorax brevis, postice sinuatus: sinu magno obtusangulo, antice repandus. Metathorax cum Scutello fere rhomboidalis. Elytra corpore longiora, plana, oblonga, latere exteriori et apice rotundata, intus subsinuata. Ale plicatiles, elytris paulo breviores, apice latiores obliquæ rotundatæ. Pe- des angulati: tibiis posticis apice calcaribus et spinulis semi- coronatis. Anus flosculiferus*. . .* By this term we designate an anus terminated by a process resembling a floret, Ex, Fulgora candelaria, . VOL. XII. — Oo . g HYMEN- 476 Mr. Kinny's Description of several new Species of Insects HYMENOPTERA. | (Sphegida-.) Tuynnus Fabr. | à annulatus. 29. 'T.fulvescente-villosus, thorace obscure ferrugineo nigro maculoso, abdomine flavo: segmentis utrinque annulo nigro. Long. corp. lin. 153. Corpus nigrum, pube densa satis fulvescenti vestitum. Caput sub- triangulare: ore flavo. Clypeus flavus, postice macula dorsali longitudinali subcampanulata nigra. - Antenne nigra. Truncus oblongus, quadrangulus, fulvus: maculis quibusdam obscuris dorsalibus nigris. Pedes fulvi: cosis posterioribus basi nigris. Ale corporis fere longitudine, fuscescentes. Abdomen lineari- lanceolatum, basi retusum, apice deflexum, flavum: segmentis apice annulisque duobus latere exteriori interruptis, nigris. Podex macula nigra. Venter segmentis: utrinque lunula; stri- gaque intermedia, nigricantibus; ultimo spina acuminata ar- mato. variabilis*. 30. T. rufus, nigro maculosus, abdomine atro: seg- mentis quinque anticis supra et infra flavo maculatis. Long. corp. lin. 13. Corpus fere lineare, mollissime sed vix dense fulvo pubescens.. Caput flavum: vertice macula magna angulata nigra. Antenne thoracis fere longitudine, setaceæ, nigra. Truncus subglobosus, supra fulvus: antice fasciis duabus vitta intermedia connexis, * I adopt this name from the MSS. of Dr. Leach, who observes that this species varies considerably. He possesses four varieties, and Mr, MacLeay a fifth, "ER | nigris, Ld æ collected in New Holland by Mr. Robert Brown. 477 nigris, disco nigro: lineolis duabus obliquis rufis, subtus ful- vus, spatio inter pedes primi paris et posteriores nigro utrin- que fulvo strigoso. Pedes rufo-fulvi. Ale corpore longiores fuscescentes. Abdomen ovato-lanceolatum, vel fere cuneiforme, nigrum, segmento primo flavo: apice, maculis duabus, cruce- que, nigris, intermediis quatuor nigris: maculis quatuor flavis transverse digestis. Venter segmentis anticis fascia flava, ulti- _ mis interruptis, anali mucronato. (Apide) | : XvLocopA Latr. : Australensis. 31. X. cyanea, supra viridis, alis violaceis, capite anoque villoso-albis. Long. corp. lin. 8. Corpus oblongum, subtus cyaneum: pube nigra. Caput orbicula- tum, viride: vertice cyaneo tincto, totum villoso-album. An- tenne nigrae, subtus picez: stipite viridi-æneo. Truncus supra cyaneo-viridis, punctulatus: disco lævissimo nitido, antice ca-. naliculatus. Ale violacez. Pedes cyanei atro hirti, tarsi pos- | tici precipue. Abdomen supra viride, punctatum, nitidum: ano pilis albis ciliato. (Formicide.) Formica Linn. intrepida. 32. F. nigra, trunco pedibusque rufis, capite abdo- mine majori. Long corp. lin. 7. Habitat in Australasia, apud Port Jackson. Formicarum auda- cissima, strenuissima. Affinis F. rufe, L. Corpus glabriusculum, nigrum. Caput trian- gulare, postice subemarginatum, supra sparse punctatum, et in- (Es 3Q2 super * 478 Mr. Kinnv's Description of several new Species of Inseets. super sub lente forti reticulato-lineatulum: areolis minutissi- mis. Stemmata in triangulo in foveolis inserta, sed posteriora duo difficillime cernuntur. Frons inter antennas bicarinata : carinulis flexuosis ; interstitio canaliculato. Mandibule vali- dissimæ, supra punctate, apice sexdentatæ. Antenne rufes- centes: stipite nigro. Clypeus,obtuse carinatus, emarginatus. Truncus compressus, cum — rufus ; femoribus dilutiori- bus. Squama rufa, integra, pilis subciliata,. Abdomen subovale, nigrum, subpilosum. viridis. 33. F. glauco-viridis: antennis oreque rufis, abdomine segmentis margine albis. Long. corp. lin. Habitat in Australasia septentrionali. Affinis videtur F. smaragdine Fabr. sed minor. Corpus fere glau- cum, pube brevissima obscuratum. Caput triangulare. Man- dibule apice nigra, supra punctate. Labium cum mazillis pal- lidum. Frons stemmatibus tribus in triangulo. Antenne pal- lide rufze. Clypeus truncatus. Truncus subglobosus dorso sa- turatior, subtus utrinque macula obscura pallida. Tarsi rufes- centes. Ale corpore longiores, albæ: neuris fuscis. Squama bre- vissima, crassa, emarginata. Abdomen ex globoso ovatum, glau-. cum: segmentis supra et infra margine albis. This is the ant the bite of which Sir Joseph Banks found 80. painful *. | . * Hawkesworth's Cook’s Voy. iii. 223, Kirby and Spence, Introduct. to Entomo- logy, i, 9rd ed, 123, EXPLA- 479 5 27 Hat ? 7 Curtis ad Fig. 10. E a. Mandibula: b. Maxilla with Maxillary Palpus. c. La- Explanation of Plates. 479 EXPLANATION OF PLATES XXI. XXII. XXIIT. PLATE XXI. . Pelecium cyanipes. a. Labrum. b. Maxillary Palpus. c. Labial ditto. d. Li- gula. e. Antenna. Anelastes Drurit. a. Clypeus. bb. Mandibulæ. c. Antenna. Rhipicera marginata. | aa. Mandibulæ. bb. Ditto of RA. femoralis. Lampyris Latreillii. a. Antenna of female. Eurypus rubens. 4 a. Maxillary Palpus. b. Labial ditto. c. Labrum. d. Tarsus. Axina analis. a. Maxillary Palpus. 6. Labial ditto. c. Tarsus. j Priocera variegata. iss | a. Maxillary Palpus. &. Labial ditto. c. Tarsus. Geniates barbatus. a. Mandibule. b. Maxilla with Maxillary Palpus. c. La- brum. dd. Labial Palpi. e. Labium. f. Mentum with circular beard or brush. g. Antenna. -h. Dis | lated anterior Tarsus. — ; Apogonia gemellata. - a. Mandibula. b. Maxilla with | Maxillary Palpus. c. La- brum. ‘d. Labium with — Palpi. e. Antenna. f. Part of Tarsus. Rutela pulchella. . brum, d. Labium with Labial Palpi. e. Antenna. Fig. 480 Fig. 11. 19. 13. 14. 15. [ IO. Fig. 1. Explanation of Plates Cetonia MacLeayi. Lucanus nebulosus. a. Maxilla with Maxillary Palpus. b. Labium with La- bial Palpi. c. Mentum. _ ! Psammodes longicornis. | a. Labrum. 6. Base of Maxilla. c. Maxillary Palpus. d. Labium with Labial Palpi. e. Mentum. f. One of the setigerous puncta of the Thorax. Scotinus crenicollis. a. Labrum. b. Base of Maxilla. c. Labium. d. Maxil- lary Palpus. e. Mentum. f. Antenna. Sphærotus curvipes. a. Labrum. 6. Mentum. c. Maxillary Palpus. d. La- bial ditto. e. Apex of Antenna. f. One of the puncta of the Elytra. - Strongylium chalconatum. a. Labrum. b. Base of Maxilla with Maxillary Palpus. c. Labium with Labial Palpi. d. Mentum. e. Apex of Antenna .. f. One of the puncta of the Elytra. PrATE XXII. Eurynotus muricatus. a. Labrum. b. Labium. c. Mentum. d. Antenna. Adelium calosomoides. : | a. Labrum. b Labium with Labial Palpus. c. Base of Maxilla with Maxillary Palpus. d. Mentum. e. Apex of Antenna. f. Anterior Tarsus. Ozura setosa. | a. Labrum. b: Labium. c. Mentum. d. Mandibula. c: One of the setigerous puncta of the Thorax. | Fig. Linn. Trans. VoL XI. Tab 22 P480 JJ Curtis ad nat piny et scudp. to Mr. Kinnv's Descriptions of new Species of Insects. 481 Fig. 4. Spheniscus erotyloides. a. Labrum. b. Labium with Labial Palpi. c. Base of Maxille with Maxillary Palpus. d. Mentum. 5. Stenochia rufipes. E. a. Labrum. b. Labium with Labial Palpus. c. Base of 7 Maxilla with Maxillary Palpus. d. Mentum. 6. Gnathium Francilloni. a. Head (front view). b. Labrum. c.Mandibule. d. Lobes of Maxille. e. Labium. f. Mentum. . 7. Rhinotia hemoptera. 16. . Rynchanus Dufresnii. . Curculio Hancocki. . Curculio elegans. a. Mandibule. b. Labium with Labial inis: cc. Max- ille with Maxillary Fabi. d. Mentum. . Eurhinus levior. a. Mandibulæ, b. Labium with minute Labial Palpi. cc. Maxillæ with Maxillary Palpi. d. Mentum. e. Antenna d. f. Antenna ? of another species. Rhinaria cristata. a. Head (front view). b. Crest. c. Mandibula. d. Labium. s ssa" a. Head (front view). a. Apex of Mandibula. Prionus Spencii. Choragus Sheppardi. ; a. Head (front view). b. Palpi. c. Puncta of the Thorax. . Lamprosoma bicolor. a. Labrum. bb. Mandibule. c. Maxillary Palpus. d.La- bial ditto. e. Antenna. Gonyleptes horridus. a. Mandibula with Chela. 6. First joint of ditto. c. Part of Pectus. d. Sternum. PLare 482 Fig. . Buprestis cruentata. j .—— —— 10-maculata. © Qv E Co 19 mi Explanation of Plates. Pirate XXIII. -— pheorhea. 2 + ————— fissiceps. à à * . Bolboceras Australasie. a. Labrum. 6. Mandibulæ. c. Labium with Labial Pal- pus. d. Maxilla with Maxillary Palpus. e. Men- tum*, f. Antenna. Cetonia Brownii. Adelium caraboides. Heleus Brownii. Curculio mirabilis. a. Ventral Cavity and Apparatus. 55 cc. Lamine in ditto. Distichocera maculicollis. a. Labium. b. Antenna. . Leptura ceramboides. - Chrysomela Curtis. . Achilus flammeus. a. Front. b. Antenna. * ed e are from Bolboceras quadridens, | ^ A t pinxe sup . ad na J ardor ( 483 ) E d XXIX. Some Account of the Island of Tristan da Cunha and of its Natural Productions. By Captain Dugald Carmichael, ELS. Read December 16, 1817. Tre British Government having judged it expedient to take pos- session of the island of Tristan da Cunha, a military detachment, consisting of about fifty men, with a captain, two subalterns, and a medical officer, was sent to occupy it from the Cape of Good Hope. Motives of curiosity led me to apply for permission to accompany this expedition, which embarked on board His Ma- jesty's ship Falmouth on the 2d of November 1816. A liberal © supply of agricultural instruments, with a team of labouring oxen, © and some cattle for breeding, was sent on board at the same time. We sailed from Table Bay on the 3d, and two days after en- countered a heavy gale, during which, our cattle, standing unshel- tered upon deck, were so much injured by the rolling of the ship, 4 and by the sea washing over them, that they all died before we © arrived at our destination. The westerly winds, which usually prevail in the high southern latitudes, protracted our voyage to the 28th of November: but we had the good fortune to come to anchor in fine weather, and landed all the stores without loss or damage. Tristan da Cunha is situated in 37°6’ south lat. and in 11° 44’ west long. The whole island is apparently a solid mass of rock in the form YOL. XII. 3 R of 484 Capt. CARMICHAEL’s Description of of a truncated cone, rising abruptly from the sea, and ascending at an angle of 45 degrees to the height of three thousand feet. "This mass is surmounted by a dome upwards of five thousand feet high, on the summit of which is the craterof an old extinguished volcano. The island is of a circular form, and about nine leagues in cir- cumference. In various places the sea beats home against the salient angles of the mountain, rendering it impossible to walk round theisland. Between those points a narrow beach has been formed, by the gradual accumulation of the fragments of rock daily precipitated from above; and is covered in some few places with a layer of fine black sand resembling gunpowder, which is, however, kept in constant motion, being washed away by one gale, and cast up again by the next. ‘The face of the mountain, as far ups the base of the dome, is mostly covered with brush-wood, intermixed with fern and long grass, which veil its native ruggedness. | In many parts, however, it is completely bare, and presents to view the edges of a vast num- ber of strata arranged horizontally, or at slight degrees of incli- nation. These strata are in-general from five to ten feet in thick- ness, and vary essentially in their internal structure. ‘The greater number are of solid rock, of a blueish-gray colour and extreme hardness, in some instances homogeneous, in others exhibiting * crystals of hornblende, felspar, and olivin sparingly scattered, or forming more than a moiety of the compound mass. Between those are frequently interposed beds of scoria cohering from the effect of partial fusion; of tufa studded with crystals of augite; or of ashes condensed by the pressure of the superincumbent mass. The latter, still retaining in a great measure their friable nature, moulder gradually away, and leave the more compact strata in projecting shelves. The ! the Island of Tristan da Cunha, $c. . 485 The mountain appears to have been rent asunder by some vio- lent convulsion, and the fissures filled up by a hard stony mass of a blueish or a reddish colour, and of the nature of trap, forming regular veins, the ramifications of which can be traced by the eye to a great height in the face of the rock. The sides of these veins, where they come in contact with the rock, are invariably in a semivitrified state, and exhibit obscure marks of crystallization. Along the north-west side of the island there runs a belt of low land about six miles long, varying from a quarter of a mile to a mile in breadth, and presenting to the sca a perpendicular front from fifty to three hundred feet in height. The whole of this plain is a confused assemblage of stony fragments, scoria, and - other volcanic products, resting on a bed of Java. All these mat- ters are in a progressive state of disintegration, and the greater part of them reduced to mere nuclei imbedded in their consti- tuent elements in the state of a black indurated earth. _ The northern extremity of the plain is in a great measure cleared of its wood. By setting fire to the grass the trees have been so far scorched as to destroy their vegetation ; but-they still lie strewed along the ground, and it will cost some labour to remove them. The rest is still in a state of nature, covered with an impenetrable copse. _. The surface of the plain, though apparent! y smooth and even while clothed with its native herbage, is in fact extremely irrega- - lar, being every where broken by small ridges of loose stones concealed under a mere scurf of soil. Between those ridges, how- ever, the soil is pretty deep, and consists for the most part of the remains of decayed vegetables, with here and there a substratum of alluvial earth approaching to the nature of clay, . It is soft, spongy, retentive of moisture, and possesses most of the charae- ters of peat. ‘This soil has been found admirably adapted for the 3 R2 production 486 Capt. CARMICHAEL’s Description of production of culinary vegetables, but is far too light to support the weight of trees or large shrubs. | This plain is the only part of the island that is in the least sus- ceptible of cultivation; and serious obstacles oppose the conver- sion even of this to the purposes of agriculture. With the excep- tion of fhe few spots already mentioned, where the earth washed down by the rain has accumulated, the whole of the ground, be- fore it will be fit to receive the plough, must undergo a regular trenching in order to remove the loose stones, and to loosen the hard earth which lies immediately underneath the surface, and in- corporate it with the vegetable mould. After this preliminary operation, there can be no doubt that the soil will yield a fair re- turn in all sorts of European grain. "The ascent to the peak is practicable in sundry places; but the undertaking is attended with serious difficulties, and not free from danger. I went up on the Ath of January, accompanied by Dr. Evers, a couple of servants, and a guide, who had. been up some days before. We experienced some obstruction at the out- set in making our way through the long grass (Spartina arundi- nacea) which grows along the lower part of the mountain in close entangled tufts. As we advanced, our progress was retarded by the extreme steepness of the ascent, and the loose incohesive na- . ture of the rocks, which we could hardly venture to touch, lest these fragments should fall upon our heads; nor did we run less risk in availing ourselves of the branches of the arborescent Phy- lica to support our weight; for the greater proportion of these being rotten, it was necessary for us to choose with caution, as a mistake might prove fatal. After a laborious effort of three hours, however, we gained the table land, and there discovered to our mortification, that the upper region of the mountain was com- pletely obscured. Urged by a strong west wind, the cloud broke from the Island of Tristan da Cunha, 4c. 487 from time to time against the sides of the dome, and gave us à transient glimpse of the peak at a height and distance that were by no means encouraging. After resting, however, for a few mi- nutes, we proceeded across the base of the dome, trusting that the cloud would be dissipated by the meridian sun; nor were we in this respect altogether disappointed. In the mean time, we found the ground as we advanced a perfect swamp, studded with tufts of small rushy plants, that gave way under the slightest pressure. Here also we had to pass through extensive patches of fern (Lo- maria robusta), the stems of which, like junks of old cable, trail along the ground, and cross and recross each other in such an in- tricate manner, that it required all our circumspection to avoid stumbling over them. Further on, the ground becomes more firm, but is perforated in all directions by the various species of Petrel, which resort in myriads to the island during the season of incubation, and burrow in the earth. The weaker tribes of these birds are devoured in vast numbers by the Skua gulls, which pounce upon them as they come out of their holes in the evening, and leave nothing but the bones and feathers to attest the havock made among them. The surface of the dome is furrowed on every side with ravines, which take their rise among the scoria of the peak, deepen as they descend, and open in tremendous chasms on the edge of the precipice. The various portions of the surface thus cut off in a great measure from all mutual communication, grow narrower and narrower as you approach the base of the peak, and dwindle at last into bare ridges of scoria, so sharp and so steep, that the wild goats of the mountain dare hardly venture to thread them. ‘That ridge in particular over which we must either have passed or returned without accomplishing our object, is for at least fifty yards not more than twelve inches in diameter. The wind blow- ing 488 Capt. CanMICUAEL’s Description of ing in violent gusts at the time, rendered it the more difficult to maintain that strict equilibrium of body, the slightest bias from which, either to one side or the other, would precipitate any of us in an instant to the depth of several hundred feet. We got safely over it, however, though with some trepidation, and in a manner as various, I believe, as the number of our party would admit of. A short way beyond this ridge vegetation ceases ; not so much, however, owing to the elevation of the ground, as to the total want of any kind of soil wherein plants could fix their roots. From this point to the summit, a distance of about a mile and a half, the whole is a mass of scoria, fragments of cellular lava, and all sorts of volcanic refuse, constantly slipping under your feet, and rendering the toil of ascending excessive. For nearly a mile we walked along a ridge of blue lava, which seems to have been at one time covered over, but afterwards left exposed by the gradual recession of the loose matters which covered it. In grain and co- lour it resembles the veins which intersect the island mass; but as disposed on the slightest stroke to break into small amorphous fragments. The crater is nearly a mile in isle Ti i its border is irre- gular, the south side being two or three hundred feet higher than the north, by which we ascended. At the bottom of it there isa pool of water about 150 yards in diameter, to which the descent by the north side is gradual and easy. dts depth appears to be inconsiderable, as we could discover the bottom more than half way across; and its border is covered with rounded fragments of cellular lava, which float about at the humour of the breeze. The water is pure, and untainted with any mineral solution. From the peak we could see the distant ocean on all sides over the cloud which still shrowded the lower part of the dome ; but no part of the low land can be seen at any time, being covered by the the Island of Tristan da Cunha, $c. 489 the projection of the table land. I found several mosses on the summit of the peak and some lichens, among others the L. pas- chalis.: There was also a large patch of snow a considerable way down its side, and another within the crater. Besides the principal crater, which terminates the peak, there are several others scattered over the declivity of the dome, which must have rested for ages quiescent, as they are now covered with verdure. Two of these are situated near the edge of the table land, looking down on the landing-place. As we walked down the mountain on our return, we passed among flocks of albatrosses engaged in the process of incubation, or tending their young. There are four species of them that breed on the island, none of which hatches more than one egg ata time; the Diomedea spadicea, exulans, chlororynchos, and fuliginosa : the two former give themselves no trouble in constructing their nest, merely choosing a dry spot of ground, and giving it a slight concavity to prevent the egg from rolling out of its place. The egg is white, very large, and of a peculiar shape, being uncom- monly long in proportion to its diameter, and equally thick, or nearly so, at both ends. The black albatrosses ( D. fuliginosa) are at this season gregari- ous, building their nests close to each other. In the area of half an acre I reckoned upwards of a hundred. They are constructed of mud, raised five orsix inches, and slightly depressed at thetop. At the time we passed, the young birds were more than half grown, and covered with a whitish down. There was something extremel y grotesque in the appearance of these birds standing on their re- spective hillocks motionless like so many statues, until we ap- proached close to them, when they set up the strangest clattering with their beaks, and, if we touched them, squirted on us a de- luge of fœtid oily fluid from the stomach. i The 490 Capt. Canut1cuaEL's Description of The D. chlororynchos builds its solitary nest in some sheltered corner, selecting in particular the small drains that draw the water off the land into the ravines. There it runs up its nest to the height of ten or twelve inches, of a cylindrical form, with a small ditch round the base. A curious circumstance with regard to this bird is, that when irritated the feathers of its cheeks are separated, so as to display a beautiful stripe of naked orange skin, running from the corners of. the mouth towards the back of the head. : | | previo usi ^ All of these birds nourish their young by disgorging the con- tents of their stomach. They are never observed to carry any ar- ticle of food in their bill: those matters, indeed, from which they derive the chief part of their sustenance, the blubber of dead whales, seals, and sea-lions, would melt away if carried in the bill to any distance. We could not help admiring the utter uncon- sciousness of danger displayed by them on our approach: they never showed the least disposition to move out of our way: even when kicked or pulled off their nests, they made not the smallest show of resistance; but quietly returned to their post, or stood still until we passed on. Their plumage is in the finest order, co- pious, and without the slightest stain. They find great difficulty in getting on wing, and must run twenty or thirty yards along the ground with expanded wings before they can get fairly under way. We had the curiosity to take one of them by the point of the wings and fling it over the rock; yet, though it had several hundred feet of a clear fall, it never recovered itself, but dropped down like a stone. On this account, when not engaged with their young, they usually rest upon the edge of the precipice, from which they can launch at once into the air ; and on entering again upon that difficult part of our route, we had to kick upwards of a dozen of them to the right and left of us before we could get on. We the Island of Tristan da Cunha, 4c. 491 Wearrived at the cantonment about sun-set, after a most fatiguing journey of fourteen hours. In viewing the general structure of the island, and comparing its diminutive size with the great number of spiracles crowning its summit, and which must all have been at one time or another in a state of activity, there can remain little doubt that the whole of it isof igneous origin. The solid foundation on which it stands is undoubtedly lava. The platform which forms the plain is also a sheet of lava; and though the face of it at one part breaks into prismatic columns, after the manner of basalt, yet the bed of semivitrified rock on which it rests seems to leave no room for doubt with regard to its origin. An entire hill, seven or eight hundred feet high, near the centre of the plain, is composed of nothing but stratified tufa. The plain is encumbered with large detached masses of porphyritic stone, and with others, inclosing crystals of sulphur or of augite, which seem to have been ejected in their present state from the interior of the mountain; and in one instance I met near the base of the mountain, and under one of its strata, with a specimen of the convoluted lava, so common in the Pays-brûlé of the island of Bourbon. The climate of Tristan da Cunha is so mild, that the herbage remains unimpaired throughout the year. Snow is never seen on the low land; and the only indicaton of winter is a transient sprinkling of hoar frost, too slight to give any serious check to ve- getation. The thermometer during summer rarely ascends beyond 74 degrees in the shade, and stands at about 110° when exposed to the meridian sun. At night it occasionally falls as low as 48 or 50 degrees. | ‘If we may give credit to the information of a man of the name of Currie, who has lived on the island for the last six years, its climate may be regarded as one of the most rainy in the world. YOL. XII. : 3s According 492 Capt. CARMICHAEL’ S Description of According to his account, the months of January, February and March are the only period throughout the year in which fair weather may be expected with any degree of certainty. During the other nine months the rain, he told us, is almost perpetual. How far the latter part of this statement may be correct, remains still to be proved ; but it was our misfortune so far to experience the fallacy of the first, that from the 28th of November, the day on which the detachment landed, to the 30th of March, when I quitted the island, it rained on an average every second day. This excessive humidity is not however entirely chargeable to the latitude in which the island is situated. Of this we had fre- quent and tantalizing proofs ; for, at the very time that the rain poured heaviest down, we could plainly distinguish from under the skirts of the cloud which hung over us, the distant horizon illuminated by the rays of the sun. / | ` The power which high mountains possess of condensing the moisture of the atmosphere, and precipitating it in the form ofrain, is no where, indeed, more apparent, or more unremittingly exerted than on this island. The upper region of the mountain is usually involved in a thick cloud, which not only obscures the whole island, but extends its shade to some distance over the surround- ing ocean. From this cloud the rain descends in heavy and pro- tracted showers, for the most part on the lower grounds only, but occasionally on the summit also. In the latter case its fall is an- nounced by the sudden appearance of torrents of water pouring in a hundred channels over the edge of the precipice, dashing down from cliff to cliff, and forming a series of cascades the most magnificent, perhaps, on the whole face of the globe. -With such a moist climate, and such frequent rains, it is a cir- cumstance worthy of remark, that the island is but scantily sup- plied with running water. The only permanent stream of any | | magnitude the Island of Tristan da Cunha, &c. 403 maguitude in the whole island, is one which gushes out at the base of the mountain immediately behind the cantonment. Ex- cepting this brook, you meet with nothing from one end of the plain to the other but the dry beds of mountain torrents, impe- tuous, indeed, while they flow, but ceasing with the shower to Which they owe their existence. This singular deficiency of spriugs may, perhaps, be attributed to the nature of the rocky mass of which the island is formed. Though regularly stratified, the rock is cracked and split in all directions, and the rain transmitted through the spongy, absorbent soil, penetrates easily through its fissures, and sinks down at once to the level of the sea, where it may be seen along the shore gush- ing out through the sand on the reflux of every tide. Notwithstanding the frequency of the rains, the climate appears to be abundantly healthy. Nota symptom of sickness appeared among the soldiers during the four months I remained on the island. ; The spot pitched upon for the cantonment is at the northern extremity of the plain; ile- landing-place, and within range of cannon-shot from the anchorage. It is plen- tifully supplied with excellent water from the stream alread y men- tioned, which runs close by it, and which, even during the hottest days of summer, maintains the low temperature of 50° degrees. This stream, after running its course for about half a mile, preci- pitates itself in a cascade over the face of the rock into a small sandy cove, where boats can easily put in to supply shipping with wood and water. The prevailing winds off Tristan da Cunha blow from the west- ward and southward. Strong gales are frequent, but rarely con- tinue above twenty-four hours. They never blow quite home on the island, but incline upwards at some distance from the shore, : 3s2 and 494. Capt. CARMICHAEL'S Description of and striking against the face of the mountain, are beat back on the low land in furious whirlwinds. j The sea immediately round the island is fathomable to the distance of a mile and upwards. The bottom is every where rocky, and covered with a gigantic species of sea-weed (Fucus py- rifer), which, after growing from the depth sometimes of twenty fathoms or more, stretches along the surface of the water, and preserves it in some degree smooth and unruffled during even the highest winds. This is a circumstance of the more importance, as the coast abounds in a variety of excellent fish, which will prove a valuable source of subsistence should the island come to be per- manently inhabited. Among these are several species well known at the Cape of Good Hope. The Snook (Scomber serpens), the Horse-mackarel (Scomber Trachurus), the Roman fish (Sparus _), and the Jacobeever (Scorpena Capensis). The best fish, however, and fortunately the most abundant, is a species of Che- todon I should think, but which is figured by Forster as a New Zealand fish, under the name of Sparus Carponemus. To the ge- nus Sparus it has certainly no affinity, if the form and disposition of the teeth are of any weight in the character. This fish usually grows to the weight of five or six pounds; and is remarkable for this circumstance, that when pulled up by the hook it discharges from its vent a great quantity of air, which follows it up in large bubbles. A large species of Perca is sometimes caught in the deep water. Among the rocks are found an undescribed species of Callionymus, and a most beautiful Labrus. I saw one Exocetus eziliens that dropped on board a ship while at anchor, and which measured eighteen inches in length. The only shell-fish I ob- served were a Chiton, a diminutive Cardium, a Patella, and two Buccinums. A large crawfish is found in abundance and of a good quality. The Sepia détapoda, and an Echinus, with a small land in- sect the Island of Tristan da Cunha, $c. 495 sect belonging to the old genus Cancer. Several species of Co- rallina are common on the rocks. Two species of the Seal are the only quadrupeds on the island that can be considered as strictly indigenous, the wild goats and hogs having been introduced subsequently to its discovery by the Europeans. The Bottle-nosed Seal, or Sea-lion (Phoca Leonina). The colour of this animal is blueish-gray along the back, approaching to white on the belly. It sheds its hair once a year, which falls off in large irregular patches, and gives the animal at that season a most ragged and uncouth appearance. The full-grown male mea- sures from twenty to twenty-five feet in length, and yields seventy gallons of oil. ‘The female is considerably smaller. When irri- tated it has a curious manner of protruding its snout, and infla- ting the skin over its nose ; but there is nothing like the crest with which the head of this animal is ornamented in Shaw’s Zoology. The whole figure is in truth a complete caricature, without the slightest resemblance to the original. These animals pass thie-grcater-part-of their time ashore, never quitting it unless when disturbed, or when, urged by hunger, they repair to the reef to feed on the sea-weed. They may be seen in hundreds lying asleep along the sandy beach or concealed among the long Spartina grass which borders the sea-shore. ‘These huge animals are so little apprehensive of danger, that they must be kicked or pekat with stones before they make any effort to move out of one's way. When roused from their slumber they raise the fore part of their body, open wide their mouth, and display a formidable set of tusks, but never attempt to bite. Should this however fail to intimidate their disturbers, they set themselves at length in motion, and makefor the water; butstill with such de- liberation, that on an expedition we once made to the opposite side 496 Capt. CARMICHAEL’S Description of side of the island, two of our party were tempted to get astride upon the back of one of them, and rode him fairly into the water. The Falkland Island Seal (Phoca Australis). This species grows to the length of five or six feet. The fur on the back is dark- : brown, intermixed with long hairs tipped with white. The throat and breast are cream-coloured, the belly rufous. The vibrissæ of the male are white, very long, some of them twelve inches, and hang down over its breast. The fore-feet are placed near the centre of the body, which enables it to sit erect, in an attitude much resembling that of a penguin. "Though these animals herd occasionally with the sea-lions, they are much more shy in their nature, and speedily forsake those parts of the island where they are liable to intrusion. They bark like a dog, and are of a bold, ferocious disposition. > MEE: | The wild hogs secrete themselves in the deepest recesses of the wood, where it is impossible to pursue them. "Their ordinary suste- nance is from the roots of the wild celery and of the Pelargonium : but they occasionally prowl along the sea-shore, and feed on the dead carcasses of seals and sca-lions when they fall in their way. The wild goats have retreated to the highest ridges of the mountain, where they are equally secure from disturbance. From the very small number, however, that has been seen there, it may be inferred that they have not greatly multiplied. The only land birds on the island are a species of thrush (Tur- dus Guianensis ?), a bunting (Emberiza Brasiliensis ?), and the com- mon moor-hen (Fulica Chloropus). These birds have spread over the whole island, and are found on the table-land as well as on the low ground. The Fulica conceals itself in the wood, where it is occasionally run down by the dogs; the others fly about the cantonment, and are so tame as to suffer themselves to be caught with a hand-net. The latter proved extremely destructive to our | : garden, B the Island of Tristan da Cunha, 4c. 497 garden, nipping off the young plants as soon as they appeared above ground: but their ordinary food are the larve of certain species of Phalena, and the berries of the Empetrum and Nerteria. Of aquatic birds there is great abundance. I have already mentioned four species of Diomedea. There are six species of Procellaria, among which are the P. gigantea, cinerea, and vittata. The last, and the other three, which are smaller, are night birds, never appearing on wing until after sun-set. They may be caught in any number by kindling a large fire of wood. Attracted by the light, they approach and flutter round it, like so many moths round a candle, till at length the greater number of them, dazzled by the glare, plunge into the flame and perish. The Larus Cata- ractes is the common tyrant of all the smaller birds, and destroys them in multitudes. There are two species of Sterna, the S. sto- lida, and one which varies very little from the S. Hirundo. The former builds in the trees, and lays a solitary egg. I never saw the nest of the latter. | The Crested Penguin (Aptenodytes chrysocoma) conceals itself among the long grass, and in the bottoms of the ravines where they open upon the shore. Here they assemble in countless mul- titudes, and keep up a moaning noise which can be heard at a great distance; and, combined with the roar of the surge re-echoed from the mountain, and the bold inhospitable coast around you, is calculated to excite a train of ideas by no means pleasant. It is owing perhaps to the scantiness of its plumage that the pen- guin swims heavier than any other bird, no part of it except the head appearing above the water. This gives it undoubtedly a peculiar facility of diving and pursuing its prey under the water. With the same view, perhaps, its eyes appear to be uncommonly sensible to the stimulus of light. In every bird that I had an op- portunity of examining the pupil was contracted to a mere dot. There are no reptiles of any kind on the island : and the only insects 498 Capt. CarmicHAEL’s Description of insects I observed, are three small species of Curculio; four of Phalæna ; one of Hippobosca ; two of Musca; one of Tipula; one of Spheroma; and one of Oniscus. The latter has multiplied asto- nishingly in the soft yegetable soil, and proved a great nuisance to us, creeping up the roofs of our tents, and dropping thence upon our beds during the night. ‘The common window-fly of the Cape was not observed until two months after our arrival; but before I left the island it had begun to be troublesome. The Flora of Tristan da Cunha is as copious perhaps as the ex- tent and situation of the island would warrant us to expect; but with the exception of the cryptogamous class of plants, it offers nothing that is possessed of any peculiar interest. The only plant on the island that approaches to the size of a tree is a species of Phylica. This plant occupies not only the whole of the plain, but has also spread over the face of the moun- tain, wherever its roots could insinuate themselves into the cre- vices of therock. In favourable situations it grows to the height of twenty feet and upwards, measuring from twelve to eighteen inches in diameter. Its trunk is extremely crooked and twisted, but the wood. is hard, close-grained, and, according to the report of a ship's carpenter, who examined it, would make excellent timbers for vessels of sixty ton and under. Its bark possesses a slight de- gree of astringency. Owing to the lightness of the soil, and the frequency of high winds, these trees rarely stand upright, but lean against the ground, and cross each other in such a manner, as to make it a business of extreme — to penetrate to any distance through the wood. . Besides the Phylica there are only two shrubby plants on the island, both of which belong to the genus Empetrum, and may be only varieties of one and the same species. They possess no qua- lity to recommend them, but that they grow on the most barren spots, where no other plant could vegetate. Of the Island of Tristan da Cunha, &c. 499 Of the herbaceous plants, the most remarkable is a gigantic spe- cies of Spartina (S. arundinacea). "This grass overruns the whole of the island, from the upper edge of | the table-land down to the sea- shore, accommodating itself to a and situations. It springs up in large close tufts which, ; When full grown, are borne down by their own weight, and lean upon each other in such a manner that a person may roll himself. n without any danger of sinking. Its stems grow to the f six or seven feet, and are of a solid, almost ligneous, te covered with a pro- fusion of leaves. This grass €ellent and durable thatch, and the young leaves ar orses and oxen. — The wild Celery grows in ab theTow ground, and attains a great size, its stem uring upwards of three inches in diameter. It pos gh degree the fla- vour of the garden celery, and by : ment might be brought to equal it in every respec 1 A species of Chenopodium (C. to odour, is. common around the cant dried leaves of this plant is used a ? for tea by the Hottentots sent down in charge of the "he soldiers use for the same purpose the leaves of the ? baies — yield to the others in strength of odo | The low ground is overrun with a spe ' Acena (4. sarmen- Nea, a plant of no apparent utility, but an intolerable nuisance to such as have occasion to walk over the ground where it grows. Its fruit is a sort of bur, which on the slightest touch fixes itself on one’s clothes, and falling in a hundred pieces, covers him all over with an unseemly crust of prickly seeds, not to be got rid of with- out infinite labour. : | strong balsamic infusion of. the VOL. XII. 3T Descrip- 500 Capt, CAnM1cH AEL's Description of Description of Four Species o ish found on the Coast of Tristan | Cunha. | 1. Cnæronon MoNoDACTXLUS, subolivaceus dorso transversim nigro fasciato, spinis elongata. Length eighteen inch front sloping; mout teeth subulate, crow ing to a single row G. plates scaly; part fleshy and. rayed ; six lo the bottom tw lar consideral j fleshy, and sca oval, compressed. Head sharp; ictile ;-Jij S flesh ys; jaws equal; e fore part of. the jaws, diminish- Eyes large; iris amber-coloured. l -rayed. Dorsal fin 17-24, soft - = Pectoral fan-shaped, fifteen- rest. bifid ; the sixth ray from e others. Ventral 1-5, triangu- ine-of the pectoral fin. Anal fin .9-12, the second ray very strong. smooth. L. line parallel with the | olive to bronze, with six broad, ob- - scurely-marked across the back, reaching half-way - down the side: lackish ; pectoral, amber-coloured, ex- tremely delicate. t : 'o ex | This fish is very mmon on the coast of Tristan da Cunha, and feeds on the leaves of the Fucus pyriferus, such of them especially as are covered with serpulæ. It takes the hook freely. I have called:this fish Chetodon, as coming nearer to that genus than to any other that I am acquainted with. | Among Forster’s drawings in the collection of Sir Joseph Banks, a figure of it is given under the name of Sparus Carponemus; but the form and disposition of the teeth exclude it from that genus. The specific name was suggested by the uncommon form and length of the | fifth i Zinn. ^... ToU XI ab 24 p. $00. L. Curtis us vs monodady la J. T ; v ARN antarctica. Z. Gatis sculp. ~ JL Curtis sculp. J oa NP pr (aa dub d LL dc Hite. the sl md "a “te fifth pectoral ray. I have in my possession the figure of another fish from the Cape of Good Hope, nearly akin to this, with the four lowest rays of the pectoral fin lengthened. of Tristan da Cunha, 4c. 501 2. PERCA ANTARCTICA, nigro- -cœrulea subtus argentea, spinis dorsalibus novem : 8 abbreviatis fossula reconditis ; ventrali unica. | Tas. XXV. Length thirty inches; weight fifteen pounds. Head large, abrupt, punctured, naked. Mouth large, ascending. Jaws equal, armed with a single row of small teeth. Palate rough. Eyes large. G. covers scaly, slightly serrated. Membrane seven-rayed. Dorsal fin 9-18, the eight anterior rays very. short, lodged in a groove; soft part covered with small scales. Pectoral falciform. Ventral fins 1-6, triangular. Anal 18, scaly at the base. Tail concave. L. line parallel with the back. Scales smooth. Colour dark blue above, silvery underneath. This fish was caught by one of the officers, of e the Falmouth, while the ship lay at anchor off Tristan. afterwards. Flesh not remarkably good, | 3. CALLIONYMUS DIACANTHUS, Olivace s punctisque albis marmoratus, pi n: (8) corpore aliquoties brevioribus, | p ribus spinosis. dorsalis prioris radiis ctoralis radiis 5 inferio- Tia. XXVL Length seven inches. Body round, tapering from the head. Belly flat. Front depressed. Mouth large, armed with nume- rous small teeth. Palate rough. Jaws equal. Eyes approxi- mated; iris brown. G. covers marked with tortuous streaks, terminating in two strong, subulate spines, that stand upright when the gills are expanded. G. membrane seven-rayed. First pe 3 T 2 sa + 502 Capt. CARMICHAEL'S Dess of sal fin eight-rayed.: Second twenty-rayed. Pectoral fins rounded, fifteen-rayed ; five lowest rays simple, curved; the rest divided. Ventral fins distant, five-rayed. Anal fin sixteen-rayed. Tail con- vex. L. line raised, parallel with the back. Scales none. Colour olive, marbled with green blotches and white dots. Skin mucous. This fish is very common among the rocks, and takes the bait greedily. Flesh delicate. - à. Laprus onNATUSs, olivaceus corpore pinnisque fasciis longi- tudinalibus azureis. ` : | Tan. XXVII. Length eight inches. Body oblong, compressed. Head small, naked. Mouth very small, armed with a single row of subulate teeth. Eyes small; iris flame-coloured. Cheeks scaly. G. mem- brane five-rayed. Dorsal fin the length of the body, twenty-two- rayed, a few of the anterior rays spinous. Pectoral fan-shaped, twelve-rayed. Ventral six-rayed, lanceolate. Anal sixteen-rayed. Tail rounded. Scales large, deciduous. L. line parallel with the back. Colour olive, with four agure stripes along the sides, and three along the dorsal and anal fins. Head variegated with azure stripes; four bars of azure across the tail. Dorsal and pectoral fins, with the upper half of the tail, purple. | A very rare fish, Caught off the rocks. Flora of Tristan da Cunha. 1, ACENA SARMENTOSA, diandra hermaphrodita, aristis qua- tuor, capitulis globosis, foliolis argute serrato-incisis: supra glabris venosis; subtus sericeis, stipulis indivisis. Ancistrum sarmentosum. Aubert du Petit Thouars Flore de Tristan @ Acugna, p. 44. in Melanges de Botanique. m is Linn, Trans. Vol AM Lab. 27. p. $02. : — rs se BY on MN | 1 Te e L ' lotta OINAS. Z Curtis sculp. Mee of Tristan da Cunha, 4c. * S This plant grows-all over the low ground ; never, how- ever, taking root.as is implied in the specific name. The extremities of the branches are ascending. | 2. ĪsOLEPIS SULCATA, capitulo laterali globoso polystachio, spiculis ovatis, squamis latè ovatis nervosis margine sca- riosis apice calloso. | Scirpus sulcatus. Aubert op. cit. p. 36. Culmus 1—2-pedalis, nudus, compressus, sulco exaratus. Stamina 3. Stigmata 3. " It grows on the plain in large tufts. 5. IsorEPis BICOLOR, culmis angulato-filiformibus, foliis cana- liculatis angustissimis, capitulo terminali, spiculis (5—7) ovatis teretibus, squamis margine coloratis, involucro sub- diphyllo : foliolo altero erecto capitulum superante ; altero deflexo spiculam vix equante. This plant grows in moist situations, both on the low ground and thetable-land. It collects in tufts, rising from a spongy base resembling a rotten stalk. à. horses SQUARROSA, culmis angulato-filiformibus. indivisis basi foliatis, foliis canaliculatis angustissimis, capitulo ter- minali globoso, spiculis (12—20) ovatis, squamis margine concoloribus, involucro diphyllo: breviore deflexo. 5. IsoLEPIS PROLIFER, culmis angulatis ramosissimis, foliis fas- ciculatis, capitulis passim proliferis, spiculis oblongis tere- tiusculis, involucro diphyllo. Scirpus prolifer. Aubert op. cit. p. 36. Grows on the plain. 6. SPAR- Capt. CarMicHAEL’s Description a 6. SPARTINA ARUNDINACEA; Spica communi teretiuscula ; partialibus arcte imbricatis, valvula minore glume exte- riorem oblique truncatam perianthii superante. Ponceletia arundinacea. Aubert op. cit. p. 36, Culmi plurimi, fasciculati, suberecti, solidi, 5—8-pedales. Folia longitudine culmi, linearia, plana, externe nitida, in- terne glauca profundè sulcata, margine scabra. Spathæ striatæ, superne ventricosæ. Spica vix emergens, stricta, cylindracea, sexpollicaris, e spiculis pollicaribus undique imbricatis composita. - | 7. PoLYPOGON INTERMEDIUS, panicula coarctata lobata, glu- mis subulatis pubescentibus, seta perianthii terminali val- vula quadridentata breviore. | Phalaris mollis. Aubert op. cit. p. 37? Culmi plurimi, 1—2-pedales, fasciculati, adscendentes. Folia linearia glabra, vaginis glabris, suprema ventricosa. Pa- nicula vix omnino exserta, nutans. - This grass grows in spreading tufts, chiefly confined to the clear ground. It is greedily devoured by cattle. 8. AGROSTIS RAMULOSA, Culmis filiformibus ramosissimis, fo- liis setaceis, panicula simplicissima, glumis acutis glabris: | carina supra denticulata, perianthio glabro sessili: setula apicis brevissima. 9. AGROSTIS MEDIA, Culmis filiformibus ramosis, foliis setaceis, . panicula simplici rara, glumis acutissimis pubescentibus : carina longitudinaliter denticulata, perianthio sessili im- berbi: seta terminali valvulam subæquante. Both these species of Agrostis are found on the high part of the mountain, forming the chief part of its herbage: a : few athe Island of Tristan da Cunha, &c. 505 few straggling tufts are met with on the low ground, along the bottom of the ravines, where the seeds have been washed down by the torrents. 10. NERTERIA DEPRESSA. Willd. Sp. Pl. i. D. 105. Erythrodanum alsineforme. Aubert op. cit. p. 42. tab. 10. Grows in the plain in the most barren spots. 11. Nenrerta ASSURGENS. Aubert l.c. Erythrodanum majus. Aubert op. cit. p. 42. tab. 11. Flowers pale yellow, very small. Berry scarlet, the size ofa pepper-corn. Tt grows on the plain. 12. CONVOLVULUS SoLDANELLA. Linn. ? This plant is found on the south-east side of the island, growing in the sand close to the shore, and confined to a single spot. It appears to be of recent introduction, hav- ing in all likelihood been wafted to this shore by the cur- rents. | 13. Puvrica amnonza, foliis sparsis ovato-lanceolatis aveniis subtus tomentosis, capitulis axillaribus lanatis. Phylica arborea. Aubert op. cit. p. 45. © — sa _ Truncus arboreus, cortice cinereo. _Ramuli albo-tomentosi. Folia conferta, semipollicaria, subtus albo-tomentosa, ju- = niora supra pilosa apice barbata. Bractea longitudine florum. Calyx lanatus. Petala squamuliformia, subro- tunda, concava. Capsula corticata, ovata. Flores seepe abortientes. - 14. CHENOPODIUM TOMENTOSUM. Aubert op. cit. p. 38. Common on the plain. 15. Hy- 506 Capt. CARMICHARL’s Description of 15. HYDROCOTYLE CAPITATA, hispida, foliis reniformibus obso- lete lobatis crenatis, capitulis subsessilibus, bracteis pedi- cellos superantibus. Hydrocotyle capitata. Aubert op. cit. p. 43. tab. 12. Caulis repens subterraneus. Rami debiles, flexuosi, pilosi. Folia utrinque hispida, setis crassis erectis albis. Petioli semiteretes. Stipulæ obtuse marcescentes. Pedunculi oppositifolii, petiolis breviores. Capitula globosa, multi- flora. Bractea lanceolata singulum florem fulciens ; exte- riores involucrum polyphyllum efformantes. A common weed on the plain, creeping among the grass. It has a strong taste and odour of the carrot-leaf. 16. APIUM AUSTRALE, umbellis subsessilibus confertis, foliis bi- pinnatifidis: pinnis suboppositis; laciniis cuneiformibus acutis argute incisis, caule striato. | | Apium australe. Aubert op. cit. p. 43. 17. Rumex rnuTEscENs, floribus monoicis, valvulis graniferis, foliis obovato-oblongis. | Rumex frutescens. Aubert op. cit. p. 88. Caules fasciculati, sesquipedales, adscendentes, sulcati. Fo- lia glabra, retusa. Flores glomerati, hermaphrodito-mas- culi femineis intermixti. 18. RANUNCULUS? I found this plant growing in a ravine on the table-land ; and, there being no flower, judge of its genus merely from the form of the leaves and their extreme acrimony to the taste. 19. Car- 19. 20. 21. 22. 23. 24. the Island of Tristan da Cunha, 4c. 507 CARDAMINE PROPINQUA, glaberrima, foliis pinnatis, foliolis * obtusis dentatis: terminali majori. Proxima C. antiscorbutice. Grows in the ravines on the side of the dome. PELARGONIUM ACUGNATICUM, umbellis subcapitatis multi- floris, calycibus pilosis acuminatis, nectario dimidiam pe- dicelli subæquante, foliis reniformibus obsolete lobatis dentato-crenatis glabris. Pelargonium acugnaticum. Aubert op. cit. p. 44. tab. 18. Herbaceum. Caules plurimi, fasciculati, adscendentes, in- ferne obsolete trigoni, superne ancipites, pubescentes. Folia reniformi-cordata, venis subtus pubescentibus. ^ Pe- tioli semiteretes. Stipulæ reflexæ. Pedunculus foliis lon- gior. Umbellæ 6—12-floræ. Petala longitudine calycis, cuneata, rubella. It grows abundaatly all over the lower parts of the island, and diffuses the strong odour common to the genus. SONCHUS OLERACEUs. Linn. Common on the plain. GNAPHALIUM PYRAMIDALE. Aubert op. cit. p. 40. Abundant on the cleared ground. CHEVREULIA STOLONIFERA. Cassini in Bullet. des Scien. 1817, p. 69. i 1 TISO Xeranthemum cæspitosum. Aubert op. cit. p. 39. tab. 8. Grows on the most barren spots on the plain. LAGENIFERA MAGELLANICA. Cassini in Bullet. des Scien. 1816, p. 199. Calendula pusilla. Aubert op. cit. p. 40. tab. 9. Grows on the dome: apparently rare. VOL.. XLII. 3 U , 25. Ux- 508 Capt. CarmicHAEL’s Description of 25. UNCINIA BREVICULMIS, spica cylindracea longissima basi attenuata, squamis arcte imbricatis apice subcalloso, fruc- tibus lanceolatis acuminatis: dimidia superiore hispida, foliis laxis. | = : Uncinia brevicaulis. Aubert op. cit. p. 35. tab. 6. Uncinia gracilis. Aubert op. cit. p. 35. tab. 5? Grows in the thickest part of the wood. The culm greatly elongated after the period of flowering. 26. Carex Tuovarstt, spicis androgynis oblongis confertis ses- silibus: infima remotiuscula, squamis aristatis, fructibus rostratis bidentatis, foliis planis. - Carex spicis confertis sessilibus hermapbroditis. Aubert op. cit. p. 36. | 27. CAREX INSULARIS, spicis masculis pluribus, femineis pedun- culatis distantibus: inferioribus pendulis, squamis arista- tis, fructibus ovatis bidentatis. Carex spicis pluribus masculis, femineis pedunculatis. Au- bert op. cit. p. 36. Both this and the preceding grow on the plain. 28. EMPETRUM MEDIUM, floribus (plerisque) hermaphroditis, baccis 7—9-spermis, ramulis foliorumque marginibus spu- riis (angulis reduplicationis) lanatis. Empetrum rubrum. Aubert op. cit. p. 39. Non Vahlii, cui tamen quam maxime affine. ; 29. ATRIPLEX PLEBEJA, caule herbaceo erecto, foliis rhombeo- hastatis dentatis obtusis ; superioribus hastatis lanceolatis- que edentulis. This plant grows along the shore, and seems to be almost a stranger on the island. | 30. Ly- * the Island of Tristan da Cunha, 4c. 509 30. Lycoropium prAPHANUM. Willd. Sp. Pl. vip. 28. Lycopodium clavatum? Aubert op. cit. p. 30. This elegant plant grows indiscriminately on the dome, the face of the table-land, and the plain. It extends to the length of several fathoms, decaying from the base in proportion as it advances, and drawing sustenance by the radicles which it pushes from time to time into the soil. It is entirely clothed with leaves ending in a white filament, which gives it in its fresh state a silky feel. The shoots are numerous and irregularly subdivided. The spikes sessile, cylindrical, two inches long, simple, bifid, or in pairs, equal in thickness to the shoot, and of a yellowish colour. The floral leaves are reflected after the dispersion of the seeds. 31. LYCOPODIUM wacELLANICUM. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. p. 15. Grows on the side of the dome. 32. LYCOPODIUM INSULARE, capsulis axillaribus, foliis lineari- lanceolatis acutis integris confertissimis patulis reflexisve, caule dichotomo. Grows on the sides of the ravines. 33. OPHIOGLOSSUM OPACUM, spica caulina, fronde cordata opa- ca: venis inconspicuis, radice bulbosa. Grows high up on the dome. - 34. ACROSTICHUM CONFORME. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. p. 107. Acrostichum laurifolium. Aubert op. cit. p. 31. In the wood. 202 35. AcRos- 35. ACROSTICHUM SUCCISÆFOLIUM, fronde simplice oblonga co- riacea utrinque squamosa: squamis peltatis lanceolatis ciliatis. | Acrostichum succisefolium. Aubert op. cit. p. 31. 510 Capt. CARMICHAEL s Description of . In the wood. 36. ACROSTICHIUM CILIARE, fronde simplici elongato-lanceo- lata subacuminata membranacea marginibus costaque squamatis: squamulis subulatis nudis. Acrostichum ciliare. Aubert op. cit. p. 32? Fronds 6—12 inches long; fertile ones smaller margined. Grows on the mouldering banks of the ravines. 37. ACROSTICHUM OBTUSATUM, frondibus simplicibus : squamu- lis subulatis sparsis; sterilibus oblongis ; fertilibus ovatis, stipitibus hispidis. On the highest rocks of the table-land. 38. GRAMMITIs AUSTRALIS. Br. Prodr. 146. On the table-land and rocky borders of the ravines. 39. GRAMMITIS CHEILANTHOIDES. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. p. 143. Asplenium filipendulæfolium. Aubert op. cit. p. 34. tab. à. High on the face of the table-land, and on a detached hill in the middle of the plain. 40. POLYPODIUM AQUILINUM, fronde tripinnatifida deltoidea : subtus pubescenti, pinnulis falcatis: inferioribus crenato- c incisis, stipite pubescente et paleaceo. Polypodium aquilinum. Aubert op. cit. p. 32. Caudex repens, basibus stipitum induratis muricatus. Frons 1—4-pedalis, subquadripinnatifida. Stipes rachis costæ- que ^"^^ the Island of Tristan da Cunha, &c. 511 que pubescentes, paleisque rufis deciduis adspersæ, paleæ baseos lineares, confertissime. Sori submarginales. Grows in the wood: very common. 41. AsrrDiUM BIFIDUM, fronde bipinnatifida lanceolata pube- scenti, pinnulis integris obtusiusculis: venis indivisis, soris lateralibus seriatis. i Polypodium tomentosum. Aubert op. cit. p. 32. tab. 3. Stem about twelve inches long, beset with the remains of the decayed stipes, forked at the top. Fronds from one to ` three feet long. In the wood: common. 42, AsPIDIUM CORIACEUM. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. p. 268? Polypodium calyptratum. Aubert op. cit. p. 33. Grows on the face of the table-land ; appears to be very rare; perhaps a stranger. I met with one plant only. 43. Asprp1um MEDIUM, fronde bipinnatifida deltoidea glabra, pinnulis pinnatifido-incisis dentatis, involucris lateralibus incisis stipite rachique squamosis. s Stem about six inches, crowned with a circle of fronds from nine to twelve inches long. | Grows on the table-land. A4. CHEILANTHES viscosa, fronde tripinnatifida pubescenti, pinnulis inciso-dentatis, stipite rachique hispidis. Polypodium villoso-viscidum. Aubert op. cit. p. 33. Caudex subterraneus, repens, setosus, stipes erectus teres sul- co exaratus fragilis rufus. Frons sensim explicata, 2—3- pedalis. Planta tota setis rigidis erectis glandulosis viscidis obsessa. . 3 It grows in the wood: rather common. | 45. As- 512 e, Capt. CARMICHAEL’s Description of 45. ASPLENIUM MONANTHEMUM. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. p. 322. In the ravines. 46. AsPLENIUM INSULARE, frondibus pinnatis submembrana- ceis, pinnis oblongis duplicato-crenato-incisis basi supc- riore auriculatis inferiore excisis. Asplenium marinum. Aubert op. cit. p. 34. In the wood. 47. ASPLENIUM OBLIQUUM. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. p. 315. Asplenium crassum. Aubert op. cit. p. 33. In the wood. 48. BLECHNUM AUSTRALE. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. p.410. Aubert op. cit: DOSS In the ravines. 49. Lomaria ROBUSTA, frondibus pinnatis, pinnis oblongo-linea- ribus acutiusculis : sterilibus integerrimis : paginis discolo- ribus; costa super lanata subter rachique paleaceis, stipitis paleis subulatis elongatis. Pteris palmæformis. Aubert op. cit. p. 80. This beautiful fern is more generally scattered than most of the others, being found in all moist places from the table- land down to the plain. The trunk grows to the length of four or five feet, sometimes erect, but usually lying on the ground, with its apex only upright. T hough not above two inches in diameter, the stumps of the decayed fronds, with their thick scaly covering remaining attached to it, give it an apparent diameter of eight or nine inches. It is crowned | with numerous stiff fronds, from one to three feet in length, according to the age and situation of the plant. The barren fronds form a spreading circle, within which, in the summer, five or six fertile fronds shoot u p in a perpendicular tuft. 50. Lo- 50. 51. 59. 53. 5A. 29. the Island of Tristan da Cunha, 4c. 513 Lomaria ANTARCTICA, frondibus pinnatis, pinnis semi- oblongis obtusis integris: terminali breviore, involucris eroso-incisis. Acrostichum polytrichoides. Aubert op. cit. p. 32. tab. 2. . On the most barren parts of the plain. PTERIS VESPERTILIONIS f. Br. Prodr. 154. Grows in the wood: not common. ADIANTUM ZTHIOPICUM. Willd. Sp. Pl. v. 452. Aubert op. cit. p. 34. | In the ravines. VITTARIA STRICTA, frondibus linearibus acutis strictis, so- ris intramarginalibus. Pteris? vittarioides. Aubert op. cit. p. 31. tab. 1. Grows in the wood. TRICHOMANES ANGUSTATUM, frondibus elongato-lanceolatis glaberrimis bi-tripinnatifidisve, pinnulis linearibus integer- rimis, involucris alatis turbinatis : ore dilatato. On the rocks. HyMENOPHYLLUM ÆRUGINOSUM, frondibus lanceolatis bi- pinnatifidis hirsutis, pinnulis bifidis linearibus, stipitibus | filiformibus. : Trichomanes æruginosum. Aubert op. cit. p. 34. ‘On the rocks. | | I have nothing to remark regarding the Mosses and Lichens, not having made any memoranda of them. XXX. Some - * * 3 LI ) €" (gat) XXX. Some Account of the Spiral Tubes or Ligaments in the Genus Terebratula of Lamarck, as observed in several Species of Fossil Shells. By Mr. James Sowerby, F.L.S. Read December 6, 1814; and February 7, 1815. I wave the honour of submitting to the Linnean Society a sketch, showing the general construction with the extraordinary spiral and perhaps originally cartilaginous tubes of a certain division of the genus Anomia of Linnæus, or Terebratula of Lamarck, ‘The Anomia striata of Martyn is represented at Fig. 2. (Tas. XXVIII), having its triangular aperture between the beaks, which is charac- teristic of the division. In this species the side of the spiral tube is of a darker colour than the crystallized carbonate of lime which fills the shell, the whole being limestone. It is probable that these peculiar constructions may give characters to new genera, of which many species are found in England, France, Ireland, and even in New Holland, imbedded in limestone, flint, chert, or sandstone. In a specimen brought from New Holland by Mr. Brown, one only of the spiral tubes is to be seen ; and it was not known positively that the shell ought to have two, until, a short time since, I discovered in my collection a complete speci- men, from which Fig. 1. is taken. | Fig. 1. * B * ; Mr. Sowrnrsy on the Spiral Tubes in the Terebratula. 515 Fig. 1. Terebratula striata, Anomia striata of Martyn*. The lower valve containing the spiral tubes considerably enlarged, the specimen being little more than one inch long. a.a. Sections of those parts of the spiral tubes by which they are attached to the upper valve. b. The place of the triangular aperture immediately above the lower beak. Fig. 2. Terebratula striata. The two valves with onc end cut off. a. The triangular aperture between the beaks. b. Section of the spiral tube near the end. B suspect Anomia cuspidata}-, Linn. Trans. vol. iv. Pl. 4, with the beak of the perforated valve lengthened and reverse, may have a similar construction within, as well as Anomia subconica of Martyn, tab. 47. aa Since I presented to the Society a sketch of an Anomia or Te- rebratula with a spiral internal cartilage, I have received a species of Terebratula of a very different construction with a spiral carti- . lage; and I conceive that a figure of this species would be a con- venient addition to my former communication, as showing that the spiral cartilage is less confined to shells of a certain external form than might have been expected. Such as I had seen before had straight elongated hinges, and the deeper shell had a trian- gular foramen, or distant curved beaks indicating it. The present. sketch (fig. 3, 4.) represents a shell curved laterally from the hinge, which must bé very short, the beaks very small, and with- out any space for a triangular foramen externally, although within * Mr. Martyn sent me this specimen some years since. It shows the triangular aper- ture, although his figure does not ; but the shell showed no sign of the tube till I broke it for information. T Figured, since the pU of this Paper, as T cupid in Mineral Concho- logy, tab, 120. VOL. XII. 9x there 516 Mr.Sowznnx on the Spiral Tubes in the Terebratula. there appears a nearly triangular appendage to the cartilage, - which, if not possessed of the outer shell, might indicate a trian- gular foramen. I presume to lay this sketch before the Linnean Society, hoping that the subject will meet with attention and in- vestigation when opportunity offers. The construction of the shells in my former communication would, without the present specimen, have given an idea of the straight hinge being peculiar to those Terebratule with a spiral cartilage, as agreeing with Parkinson and Martyn, and might therefore have been mislead- ing. The spiral remains in the present species seem rare, as most of the sliells are filled with a hard marley earth. It was found with some other species in Sladacre's Quarry, on the right-hand side of the road leading from Wych to Calwell-Green, a part of the Malvern hills. Some specimens. had small round joints of Enara on them. EUR, XXVIII. Fig. 3. "Téseitotula obtusa. The remains of the spiral cartilage and the somewhat triangular appendage; the shell having been worn off. | Fig. 4. The marle cast nearly covered with the shell and two small round joints of an Encrinus, perhaps the new species mentioned by Mr. Horner* as found also at the Mal- -vern hills. 1 I add also. a drawing of a small Terebratula, which might be called. T. sinuata, with a straight hinge. It seems plentiful in a marley stratum somewhere. I do not think it is noticed in any work; and I shall be glad to learn its locality. | Fig. 5. T. sinuata, natural size. | a. Upper side. b. Under side. Fig. 6. T. sinuata, magnified upper side. — * Trans. of Geological Society, vol. 2. cl de en XXXI. On d. po s ad ne AR / oy. lad 2^5 Vig J (5973 XXXI. On the Use of the Pedes scansorii of Birds; in a Letter to the Rev. William Kirby, F.R.S. and L.S. By the Rev. Revett Sheppard, F.L.S. Read June 16, 1818. | Mx pear Sin, Ha»rrrsixo a few days since to take up Ray's Wisdom of God in the Works of the Creation, I was particularly struck with the passage where, speaking of the Woodpecker tribe, he says, “ Their toes stand two forwards, two backwards; which disposition (as Aldrovandus well notes) Nature, or rather the wisdom of the Cre- ator, hath granted to Woodpeckers, because it is very convenient for the climbing of trees.” | The attempt to prove this assertion, adopted by so many and able naturalists, to be altogether unfounded, must appear to sa- vour of presumption in one who has so little of the philosopher about him: nevertheless, I hope to convince you that such dis- position of the toes in the Woodpecker tribe was intended by the Author of Nature for a very different, though equally wise pur- pose. I know of but six genera, viz. Psittacus, Cuculus, Picus, Ramphastos, Trogon, Bucco, that are furnished pedibus scansorus, i.e. with two toes before and two behind ; and of this number I am acquainted with the manners of the three first only. To begin with Cuculus :—I speak only of our common species : Here is a bird furnished with two toes before and two behind, and yet is actually never known to climb at all; a convincing proof that such conformation does not necessarily bring with it the power 3x2 | of 518 The Rev. Rgv rrr SHEPPARD on the Use of climbing; more especially when we consider that the Nut- hatch (Sitta europea) and Tree-creeper (Certhia familiaris) have their toes placed in the usual manner, and yet run up and down trees with as much facility as the Woodpeckers. The use of the pedes scansorii *, then, to the Cuckow (as they evidently, in this case, conduce not to climbing,) I judge to be this: It is well known that this bird will oftentimes sit by the half-hour together on the bough of a tree vociferating its loud and pleasing note; in doing this it sits remarkably forward, and appears in constant agitation, continually moving its body up and down with great elegance: now, as it sits so forward whilst using this exertion, it would be liable to lose its balance and quit its hold, had it only one toe behind ; whereas, by the contrivance of two, it is enabled strongly to adhere to the branch. _ , Psittacus also has the pedes scansorii, and is actually a climbing genus; yet does not this conformation in my opinion in any man- ner conduce thereto. To say that Parrots assist themselves with their beaks in climbing, would not argue the pedes scansorii to be of no utility. "Their real use to this genus seems to be not only to grasp their food (for the foot of the Parrot serves the purpose of a hand in that respect), but to enable them to step securely from one branch to another, and likewise to hang suspended, as they often do; in which case the two toes before and two behind certainly give stability to their hold. With respect to the Pici, rather a clumsy tribe, the very stiff feathers in the tail are of material service to prop them up in the act of climbing : : not so the pedes scansorii, for the Nuthatch with- out them runs up trees equally well. Of what use then can these be to the Woodpecker? I answer, that in boring trees, (in which * I think a more appropriate term might be ond for this peculiar conformation ; and for this purpose I take the liberty of suggesting the word comprehensorii, occupation of the Pedes scansorii of Birds. 519 occupation the bird is often engaged for a considerable length of time), its weight is thrown backward, and thus the supply of two toes behind is rendered extremely necessary for its support: What makes me think the wise Author of Nature had this end principally in view is, that the Nuthatch, from the want of this conformation, is, when breaking nuts, under the necessity of sit- ting with its head downwards. | It may be alleged that its flexible tail compels it to this position; but, as I have before observed, it runs up trees with equal or greater facility than the Wood- pecker, notwithstanding that disadvantage. -It would be a curious circumstance, and a conclusive argu- ment in my favour, should it ever be ascertained that the three- toed Woodpecker (Picus tridactylus*), which has only one toe behind, bores trees in the attitude assumed by the Nuthatch when breaking nuts. | I have now brought this letter, which I fear has tired your pa- tience, to a conclusion; but as it is upon a subject hitherto not sufficiently examined into, you may possibly think it worthy of being communicated to our scientific brethren. Fam, &c. Wrabness Parsonage, Revetr SHEPPARD.. April 15, 1818. T " * Linnzus, in his description of the Picus tridactylus, says, Europæus vertice flavo, Americanus rubro est." It is worthy of observation, that a fine specimen, brought by my brother Edmund Sheppard, Esq., of the Royal Artillery, (whose assiduity in collecting sub- jects of natural history when abroad, entitles him to great credit,) from Drummond's Island, in Lake Huron, Upper Canada, has the crest, like the European species, of a bright yellow. - Es XXXII. 4n ( 590 ) | XXXII. An Account of a new Species of Gull lately discovered on © the West Coast of Greenland. By Joseph Sabine, Esq. F.R.S. and L.S. 4c. | Read December 15, 1818. I nzcrivzp in the last summer, by one of the whaling ships from Davis's Straits, a collection of birds, which had been made by my brother Captain Edward Sabine of the Royal Artillery, who ac- companied the late expedition in search of a North-West passage. Among them were specimens of a Gull hitherto unknown and undescribed. | E à | My brother's account of them was as follows: They were met with by him and killed on the 25th of July last on a group of three low rocky islands, each about a mile across, on the west coast of Greenland, twenty miles distant from the main land, in latitude 75° 29’ N., and longitude 60°9 W. They were associated in considerable numbers with the Sterna Hirundo, breeding on those islands, the nests of both birds being intermingled. The male and female are nearly the same size, the latter is rather the smallest, but their plumage is exactly similar. The length of different specimens varies from twelve and a half to fourteen inches; the extent of the wings is about thirty-three inches, and the weight from six and a half to seven and a half ounces. ‘The following is a full description. The bill one inch long, the base of both mandibles black as far as the angular pro- jection of the lower mandible, the remainder yellow; the inside of Mr. Sasine’s Account of a new Species of Gull, 4c. 521 of the mouth bright vermilion. ‘The irides dark, surrounded by a naked circle of the same colour as the inside of the mouth; a small white speck beneath the eye, scarcely perceptible. ‘The whole of the head and upper part of the neck a very dark ash- or lead-colour; the remainder of the neck behind and before, as “well as the breast and belly, pure white; a narrow black collar surrounds the neck at the meeting of the ash-colour and of the white. The back, scapulars and wing-coverts are ash-coloured, very much lighter than the head, but darker than the corre- sponding parts of the Larus ridibundus; the lower ends of the scapulars are tipped with white. The first five primary quill- feathers with black shafts, the whole outer webs of these black; the edge of their upper webs white to within an inch and a half of the tips, the white sometimes continued to the tip; the tips of the first and second of these quill-feathers in some white, in others black; the tips of the third, fourth and fifth white, giving the wing when closed a spotted appearance; the sixth primary quill- feather with a white shaft, having the web more or less black, but principally white, with sometimes a black spot near the end ; the other primaries, the secondaries, and the tertials white; the whole under parts of the wings white. The wings extend an inch or more beyond the longest feather of the tail. The legs, feet, and claws black; the thigh feathered to within three-eighths of an inch of the knee; the length of the tarse one inch and a half; the length of the front toes about one inch, the inner one the shortest; the hinder toe small, and placed high. The tail with its upper and under coverts white; the tail-feathers twelve, the outer narrower than the centre ones ; the outer tail-feathers about five inches long, the others in succession gradually shortening, so that the whole tail becomes forked by a diminution of nearly an inch, This 522 Mr. Sasine’s Account of a new Species of Gull This is the description of the bird in its mature and breeding plumage: it is probable, that in its immature and winter state it resembles other black-headed Gulls, in being divested of the dark colour of its head. This species lays two eggs on the bare ground, which it hatches the last week in July: the young when first hatched are mottled with brown and dull yellow. The eggs are an inch and a half in length, and of regular shape, not much pointed; the colour is olive, much blotched with brown. Little of course can be known of the manners and habits of these birds, for they were not seen in any other instance during the voyage through Davis’s Straits and Baffin’s Bay: the Esqui- meaux who accompanied the expedition as interpreter, and who possessed some knowledge of the native birds of South Greenland, had never observed them before. "They flew with impetuosity towards persons“ approaching their nests and young; and when one bird of a pair was killed, its mate, though frequently fired at, continued on wing close to the spot where it lay. "They get their food on the sea-beach, standing near the water's edge and perte up the marine insects which are cast on shore. | In conformity with the custom of affixing the name of the ori- ginal discoverer to a new species, this bird has been called Larus Sabini. It will naturally fall into the division of the Gulls with black heads, of which there. are several species, though most of them are but little known, and it d be distinguished by the following specific character: | L. albidus, capite nigricante, torque « | rico nigro, Pr basi nigro apice luteo, pedibus nigris, cauda forficata, Tas. XXIX. The forked tail of the bird will fi ground, to those who are desirous of increasing the number of genera, to place this in a new genus + x 1 : CS PAY ?. m : l j oT A Mr ps” # uw à. ip in P a e gi AL 15 * ah i : y » KT À juna aet E | el m ` Jp! Ca ga Mt à rd ios ts api vag na 1j 3 ; Ain [i y! » py" pss \ # T "i m SW m hos ' if NON KON ud dil P prar aun hun M j^ » AT \ i aan ^. LU n P A iy m MA or adm NS M m \ FN à MSS WM 4 N NY S SN eO N SS “ANAT : Se SSS $ NN S N W = NN NS N N w \è* ilie cd vu uud eo > - OA. ^ Ys et AS b Sonate ih oos ~ = eal WE À MA iu NS iN NONIUS TEST TS ^ uM SNMP CH, € ue CA c ” foc XM. Jul 2 fr 494 3 lately discovered on the West Coast of Greenland. 523 genus intermediate between Larus and Sterna. If every diversity _ of character is to become the foundation of a new genus, we shall have as many genera as there are species ; and when multiplied to excess, genera will cease to afford the facility of investigation to the examiner of species which they were designed to give. Between each individual species there will always be some difference of character beyond that of colour of plumage, which may be made to constitute what with some modern ornithologists is so impro- perly called a generic distinction. In the present instance the forkedness of the tail is very remarkable; but if the want of an even termination of the tail-feathers is to constitute a generic di- stinction, then the Larus tridactylus must be removed from its present place and become a new genus; for the tail of that bird, though slightly forked, is certainly uneven, and more distinctly so in the younger birds. Since I received the specimens which I have described above, I have obtained one from Hudson's Bay of another black-headed Gull bearing a strong resemblance to the Larus Sabini, except that it has an even tail, and is without the dark collar round its neck. It is certainly an undescribed species, and must be placed in the genus Larus, although its bill approaches more to that of a Tern than that of any other Gull with which I am acquainted. Such instances, I think, satisfactorily prove that, if every exist- ing species were before us in one view, we should find individuals so approaching each other in particular points, as to make it very difficult to determine where to place the boundaries of genera. VOL. XII. 3v XXXHE Re. ( 524 ) XXXIII. Remarks on the Changes of the Plumage of Birds. By the Rev. William Whitear, of Starston in Norfolk. Communicated by Joseph Sabine, Esq., F.R.S. and L.S., §¢. Read April 6, 1819. Ir is well known that birds annually change their feathers, and that in many of them the new feathers are of a different colour from those which were cast. 1t is also known, that several birds put on a different livery during the breeding season to that which they wear in autumn. But no writer, with whom Iam acquainted, has hitherto pointed out the fact, that in some birds the full-grown feathers themselves change colour without being replaced by new ones. Some recent observations that I have made upon birds assuming their summer plumage give me reason to suppose that such a change does really take place. | In the year 1817, Mr. Youell of Yarmouth had sixteen young wild Mallards confined in a small pond by netting; and he was much surprised to find that towards the end of the year these birds put on a great deal of the beautiful plumage of the old bird, and yet that no feathers were to be found floating on the water, or scattered on the banks of the pond, as is usually the case when birds are moulting. Mr. Youell having made the same remark last year upon other birds of the duck genus, and com- municated his suspicions to me, that birds sometimes change the colour of their dress without shooting their feathers, I determined to Rev. W. WurrEAn on the Changes of the Plumage of Birds. 595 to make such observations upon them as might tend either to establish or disprove the fact. On the 9th of January last I received a young wild Mallard, which had nearly assumed the plumage of the adult bird. Upon examining the feathers of this bird, I found many of them which were party-coloured, the same individual feather retaining in some parts the colours of the bird during its first months, and in other parts exhibiting those of the perfect bird. A male Chat- finch, killed in February, had the feathers on the crown of the head blueish ash-colour, except at their extremities, which were rufous-brown, apparently still retaining on those parts the colour of the young bird, while the greater part of each feather had as- sumed that of the old one. Three specimens of the Swiss Sand- piper, in a state of change from the winter to the summer garb, had many feathers upon the breast and belly perfectly black, others perfectly white, and the rest sprinkled with black and white in various degrees; in some the black just beginning to appear, in others only a little white remaining upon them. . A white-fronted goose, killed in October, had the breast, belly and sides, white blotched irregularly with black. The feathers upon those parts exhibited exactly the same varied appearance as those of the Swiss Sandpipers. A Dunlin, in a state of change from winter to summer plumage, presented a similar mixture of black and white in the feathers on the belly; but in this bird the black did not predominate so much as in the foregoing. In a young specimen of the black-headed Gull, killed the 9th of March, the scapulars were of a mixed colour, the same feather retaining some of the brown of the imperfect bird, together with the light blue ash-colour of the adult state. And the two colours prevailed in various degrees, some feathers exhibiting only the nascent shades of the ash-colour, and in others the remains alone of the | $2 | brown 526 Rev. W. WurTEAn on the Changes of the Plumage of Birds. brown were discoverable. The wing-coverts were in a similar state of change. Many of the feathers on the head of a Reed- Bunting (killed the same day as the gull) were black with reddish- brown tips, the extremity of each feather apparently retaining the winter tint, while the greater part of it had assumed that of the summer. : fe The above observations seem pretty strongly to confirm the fact which Mr. Youell has pointed out, namely, that a change in the colour of the plumage of birds does not always arise from a change of feathers, but sometimes proceeds from the feathers themselves assuming at one season of the year a different colour from that which they have at another. This fact may be fully tried upon living birds. If the feathers of a live bird, apparently beginning to change, were marked by fastening a piece of silk to them, notch- ing, them, or otherwise, and it was observed that the first colour of the feather gradually disappeared, while the new colour ex- tended itself more and more, till the feather had assumed that ‘exhibited by the perfect bird, the fact would be established be- yond contradiction. Having called the attention of ornithologists to this subject, I hope it will be pursued by those who have better opportunities of investigating it than myself. An inquiry into the changes which the feathered race undergo, can hardly fail of throwing light upon the history of this beautiful and interesting part of the creation. March 18, 1819. XXXIV. A (::597 ~) XXXIV. A Memoir on the Birds of Greenland; with Descriptions and Notes on the Species observed in the late Voyage of Discovery in Davis's Straits and Baffin's Bay. By Captain Edward Sabine of the Royal Artillery, F.R.S. and L.S. ` Read April 6, 1819. I wave much pleasure in presenting to the Linnean Society a Memoir on the Birds of Greenland. In accompanying the expedi- tion which sailed last year in search of a North-West passage, I had opportunities, when not engaged in the official duties which I was sent to perform, of making some observations on the Orni- thology of that part of the world. | . Of fifty species enumerated by various authors as having been found 3 in Greenland, twenty-four fell under my notice: some in- teresting’ facts relating to these have been ascertained, and four other species have been added to the list, one of which has not been before described by any naturalist. "That so few birds were seen is to be explained by the circumstance, that the ships: very rarely approached the shores so as to permit a landing; but it is confidently hoped, that the voyage which is about to be under- taken will afford facilities for more extensive research. I have confined my account to the birds seen either in Davis's Straits or in Baffin’s Bay, omitting all notice of those observed on the voyage when we were nearer the shores of the British islands than those of any part of Greenland. The works which have been generally quoted are the following : Gmelin, 598 Capt. SaBiNE's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, &c. Gmelin, Systema Nature Linnei. | Latham's General Synopsis of. Birds. Latham's Index Ornithologicus. - Fabricii Fauna Groenlandica. Brünnichii Ornithologia Borealis. Pennant's Arctic Zoology. | Linnei Fauna Suecica, Editio altera. Müller, Zoologie Danice Prodromus. Temminck, Manuel d'Ornithologie. = Wilson's American Ornithology. Pennani’s British Zoology. Second edition. Montagu’ s Ornithological Dictionary and Supplement. I did not consider it expedient to introduce the synonyms of or reference to any other authors than those above mentioned, except the particular circumstance of any individual case required it; where such occurs, the title of _ work will appear in the refe- rence itself. 1. Fatco IsraANDICUS. Jerfalcon. F. TIRE Gmel. i. 275. Lath. Ind. Orn.i. 32. Temm. 33.— White Iceland Falcon. Lath. Syn. i. 71.—F. Candicans. Gmel.i. 975.—W hite Jerfalcon. Lath. Syn.1.83. & Supp. 21.—Gyrfalcon. Arct. Zool. ii. 991. Br. Zool. i. 217.—Jerfalcon. Mont. Dict. & Supp.—F. Islandus. Gmel. i. 971. Fabr. 58. Brün. no. 7 & 8. Müll. no. 73.— Spotted Iceland Falcon. LatA. Syn. i. 7 1.—F. Rusticolus. Gmel. i. 268. Fabr. 55. Faun. Suec. 19. Lath. Ind. Orn. i. 98.— Collared Falcon. Arct. Zool. ii. 222. Lath. Syn. i. 56. YOUNG BIRDS. F. Gyrfalco. Gmel.i.275. Lath. Ind. Orn.i. 32. Faun. Suec. 22.—F. Fuscus. Fabr. 56. Briin. no. 9.—F.Sacer. Gmel.i.273. Lath. Ind. Orn. i. 34.—Sacre Falcon. Lath. Syn. i. 77 & 78. & Supp. 20. Arct. Zool. ii. 202.— Dusky Falcon. Arct. Zool. ii. 990.— American Falcon. Lath. Syn. Supp. 38.—Brown Jer- falcon. Lath. Syn. i. 82.—Iceland Falcon. Lath. Syn. 1.70. Arct. Zool. ii. 216.— Greenland Falcon. Lath. Syn. Supp. 36. The Jerfalcon was seen in a single instance at Baffin’s Three Islands, on the west coast of Greenland; in lat. 74°. It was wounded, but got away. The Capt. SABINE's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, &c. 529 The progress of this bird from youth, when it is quite brown, to - the almost perfect whiteness of its maturity, forms a succession of changes in which each individual feather gradually losés a portion of its brown as the white edging on the margin increases in breadth from year to year; such has been the cause of the variety of synonyms which have been referred to. 2. FArco PRREGRINUS. Peregrine Falcon. F. Peregrinus. Gmel.i. 272. Lath: Ind. Orn i. 33. aon 34.— Peregrine Falcon. Br. Zool. i. 218. Arct. Zool. ii. 202. Lath. Syn. i. 73. & Supp. 18. Mont. Dict. & Supp. —F. Communis. Gmel. i. 270. Lath. Ind. Orn. 1. 30.— Common Falcon. Lath. Syn. i. 65.—Lanner. Br. Zool, i. 223.—Great-footed Hawk. Wil. Am. Orn. ix. 190. Killed in the third week of September in lat. 66° N. and long. 58° W., and therefore most probably from America. Fabricius does not mention this bird as an inhabitant of Greenland. The specimen from which the note is taken was a young bird, and re- mained for some hours about the ship in company with three others. I have not hesitated to add the synonym of the F. com- munis to the other received ones of this species; the French spe- cimens under that name fully proving the identity. The broad black line or patch, extending from the eye down to the throat, is a distinguishing mark of this bird, and of the Falco Subbuteo, or Hobby, in the various states of their plumage; the difference in size of the two species will always prevent their being con- founded. i À I suspect that the Falco Lannaxius of Briinnich is a Merlin, and therefore have not referred to it. The Lanner of the British Zoology is a young Peregrine Falcon; but the F. Lannarius of Linneus and Gmelin, of Latham and others, as well as the Lanner of the Arctic Zoology and of Latham’s Synopsis, is a distinct spe- cies (as I am informed by M.'Femminck) common in Russia, Po- land, and Hungary, to which also the F. Stellaris and Starry Fal- -con of authors must be referred, being the same bird in a younger state. 530 Capt. SariNe’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, 6c. state. "These have hitherto been usually referred to as synonyms of the F. Peregrinus. ! i 3. Convus Conax. Raven. C. Corax. Gmel.i. 364. Lath. Ind. Orn.i. 150. Temm. 66. Fabr. 62. Faun. Suec. 29. Müll. no. 86. Briin. no. 8.—Raven. Lath. Syn. i. 367. & Supp. 74. Arct. Sool. ii. 945. Br. Zool. i. 279. Mont. Dict. & Supp. Wil. Am. Orn. ix. 113. Killed at Hare Island, and seen on the west coast of Greeniand in lat. 754°. We did not notice a pied one, although such a vari- ety is said to be common in arctic countries. 4. Terrao Lacorus. Ptarmigan. T. Lagopus. Gmel.i. 749. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 659. Faun. Suec. 73. Brün. nos. 198 & 199. Fabr. 114. Müll. no. 993.. Temm. 293.—Ptarmigan. Lath. Syn. iv. 741. Br. Zool. i. 359. Arct. Zool. ii. 315. Mont. Dict. 8 Supp.—T. Rupestris. Gmel. i 751. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 640.—Rock Grous. Lath. Syn. a 217. Arct. Zool. ii. 312. Killed June 19th + at Mi Island. The females were laying : they had been abundant, but only a few were left on our arrival, several whalers having anchored there before us, the crews of which had destroyed them. Were I not quite satisfied of the iden- tity of the species, the difference of the plumage of these birds would seem to justify a persuasion that they are distinct; but in all essential characteristics they are the T. Lagopus. The pecu- liarities which are to be noticed have escaped the attention even of Fabricius; who nevertheless describes these birds as seen du- ring the summer. The period when they fell under my observa- tion being that of their full breeding season, it must unquestion- ably be allowed that they were in perfect summer plumage. The male birds were wholly white, with the exception of the black line from the bill to the eye, of the under tail-feathers, and a very few scattered black feathers on the top of the head: even the shafts of the large quill-feathers were white ; the females had not the usual portion of white on the breast; the coverings of the legs Capt. SABINE’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, &c. 531 legs were white, as were the quill-feathers, but the shafts of these were dark ; the whole of the coloured plumage was more rich and gaudy than in Scottish specimens. In the latter the ash-colour predominates, in the Greenland Ptarmigan the orange. The bars of brown are also broader and deeper in the Greenland specimens. 5. Emperiza Nivatis. Snow Bunting. E. Nivalis. Gmel. i. 866. Lath. Ind. Orn, i. 397. Temm.188. Faun. Suec. 82. Brün. nos. 245 & 246. Mull. no. 250. Fabr. 117.— Snow Bunting. Lath. Syn. ii. 161. & Supp. 157. Br. Zool. i. 444. Arct. Zool. ii. 355. Mont. Dict. Supp. & Appen. Wil. Am. Orn. ni. 36.—E. Glacialis. Lath. Ind. Orn. i. 398.—Tawny Bunting. Lath. Syn. iii. 164. Br. Zool. i. 442. Mont. Dict. & Supp—E. Montana. Gmel. i. 867. Lath. Ind. Orn. i. 398.— Mountain Bunting. Lath. Syn. iii. 165. Br. Zool. i. 445. Mont. Dict. & Supp. These birds were abundant in Hare Island on the west coast of Greenland, lat. 70? 26', in the month of June, and were breed- ing there. We also saw them on the western coast of Davis's Straits, about the same latitude, in September. Fabricius has well described their nest as formed externally of grass, next of feathers, and lined with the hair of foxes. Eggs four or five, dirty white, spotted with ash-colour and yellowish brown ; the nests are placed in ledges of the rocks. The song of the male bird was noticed fre- quently. Notwithstanding the deference which is due to the general accuracy of Montagu, I have ventured to place the Snow, Tawny and Mountain Buntings together, believing them to be the same species in different states of plumage, the effects of age, sex, or climate. Those seen at Hare Island exactly corre- spond to the Snow Bunting of Montagu, and those on the opposite coast to the Tawny Bunting. | 6. SYLVIA OENANTHE. Wheatear. Motacilla Oenanthe. Gmel.i.966. Faun. Suec.93. Fabr. 122. Brün. nos. 245 & 246. Miill.no.274.—S. Oenanthe. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 529. Temm.135.—Wheatear. Lath. Syn. iv. 465. & Supp. 182. Br. Zool.i. 521. Arct. Zool. ii. 490. Mont. Dict. & Supp. VOL. XII. | 9 Z j This 582 Capt. Sagıne’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. This species was not seen on the shores of Greenland on which we landed: but on our return homewards in October, off Cape Farewell, a few were seen at a distance from the land, doubtless on their passage southward. In our outward voyage, in May, we also met with them in lat. 60° N. and long. 13° W., then most probably migrating north ward. 7. Trinca Maritima. Purple Sandpiper. T. Maritima. Gmel. i. 678. Lath. Ind. Orn. 5.731. Brün. no. 189. Müll. no. 206.. —Selninger Sandpiper. Arct. Sool. à. 480. Lath. Syn. v.: 173. & 2d. Supp. 312. Br. Zool. ii. 80.—T. Striata. Gmel. 1. 672. - Lath. Ind. Orn. 3. 733. Fabr. 107.— Striated Sandpiper. Arct. Zool. ii. 472. Lath. Syn. v. 176.—Sea Sandpiper. Mark- wick in Linn. Trans. iv. 22.—T. Nigricans. Montagu in Linn. Trans. iv. 40.—Purple: Sandpiper. Mont. Dict. & Supp.. Fabricius was the first naturalist who knew this bird to be the same in all its changes of plumage; he called it T. Striata ; but it being now more generally known as T. Maritima, I have given it that name, being what it is usually called when in its summer dress: the specimens killed at Hare Island in June, and at Possession Bay on the 1st of September, were in this plumage. In its winter state it has been called the T. Striata, or Striated’ Sandpiper. As a British bird it has been described only in the latter plumage, and it is the Sea Sandpiper of Mr. Markwick, the Purple Sandpiper and Tringa Nigricans of Montagu. Temminck does not notice it in his. Masel The Greenland specimens have been compared with two in my brother's cabinet of British birds, the latter having been killed in winter: the difference of the plu- mage of the two seasons consists in the under parts during sum- mer having less of dusky and more of white; and the feathers. of the back and scapulars being of a much deeper and richer colour, and beautifully marked with broad white edgings: a similar mark- ing is observable, but not so distinctly, on the back of the head | . and - Capt. Saninr’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, §c. 533 and neck; there is also a little dash of ferruginous occasionally interspersed on the upper plumage. ‘This species was found in flocks of six and eight on a shingly beach. 8. Trinca CINEREA. Knot or Red Sandpiper. "T. Cinerea. Temm. 404. SUMMER. T. Islandica. Gmel. 1.689. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 737.—T. Ferruginea. Brün.no.180. Müll. no. 203.—Red Sandpiper. Arct. Zool. ii. 476. Mont. Dict. & App. Lath. Syn. v. 186. Br. Zool. ii. 89. WINTER. T.Cinerea. Gmel.i. 673. Lath. Ind. Orn.ii.733. Brun. no. 179. Mull. no. 202.—Ash-coloured Sandpiper. Lath. Syn. v.177. Br. Zool. ii. 78. Arct. Zool. ii. 474. Mont. Dict. & Supp. Wil. Am. Orn. vii. 36.—T. Grisea. Gmel. i. ‘681. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 733.—Grizzled Sandpiper. Lath. Syn. v. 175.—T. Ca- nutus. Gmel. i. 679. Lath. Ind. Orn. 31. 738. Faun. Suec. 65.—Knot. Lath. Syn. v. . 187. Br. Zool. ii. 76. Arct..Zool. ï. 473. Mont. Dict. & Supp. - BIRDS OF ONE YEAR. T. Calidris. Gmel.i. 681. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 732. —Dusky Sandpiper. Lath. Syn. v. 174. Mont. App.-—T. Nevia. Gmel. i. 681. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 732.—Freckled Sandpiper. Arct. Zool. ii. 480. Lath. Syn. v. 174.—T. Australis. Gmel. 1.679. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii: 737.—Southern Sandpiper, Lath. Syn. v. 187. & Supp. 249.—Aberdeen Sandpiper. Br. Zool. ii. 89. Killed at Hare Island in June. It is probably a rare species in Greenland, being unknown to Fabricius. Its various stages of plumage have been correctly described by Montagu in bis Æp- pendix, article * Dusky Sandpiper,” and by Temminck in his Ma- nuel: they had been previously involved in much obscurity, and had given rise to the variety of synonyms which are referred to. In its winter state it is the T. Canutus, or Knot: in its progress to the summer state it becomes first the T. Grisea, or Grizzled, then the T. Cinerea or Ash-coloured Sandpiper: the old birds in summer are the T. Islandica and T. Ferruginea, and Red Sandpiper: the birds of the first year, not attaining the high colour of the old ones, have been described variously ; as the T. Calidris or Dusky, T. N«evia or Freckled, T. Australis or Southern, and the Aberdeen Sandpiper. $322 9. TRINGA 534 Capt. SaBine’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, 4c. 9. TRINGA ALPINA. Dunlin. "F. Variabilis. Temm. 395. SUMMER. T. Alpina. Gmel. i. 676. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii..736. Brün. no. 178. Mull. no. 197. Faun. Suec. 64. Fabr. 111.—Dunlin. Lath. Syn. v. 185. & Supp. 249. ` Arct. Zool. ii. 476. Mont. Dict. Supp. & App. Br. Zool. ii. 99. —R ed- backed Sandpiper. Wil. Am. Orn. vii. 25. WINTER. T. Cinclus. Gmel. i. 680. Lath. Ind. Orn. ñ. 735.—Purre. Arct. Zool. ii. 475. Lath. Syn. v. 182. Br. Zool. 294. Wil. Am. Orn. vii. 89. : Mont. Dict. Only a single specimen was killed. . The bird is said by Fabri- cius to be very rare in Greenland. The fact of the Tringa Cinclus and Alpina being the same bird may be considered as established, the former in the winter and the latter in the summer plumage: for this discovery Europeans are indebted to our countryman Montagu. Even the acute and accurate Temminck has not ar- rived at clearness on this point in kis Manuel, though he concludes the T. Cinclus as referable to the Alpina (his Variabilis) in some state. It must not be overlooked, however, that before Montagu had published his discovery, the close practical observation of . Wilson the ornithologist of America, had put him in possession of the fact also. | | or These birds must certainly migrate from the arctic regions in the winter; since neither Brünnich, Müller, Fabricius, nor the Fauna Suecica make any mention of the Tringa Cinclus. 10. CHanapmius HiaTicULA. Ringed Plover, C. Hiaticula. Gmel. i. 683. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 743. Müll. no. 209. Brün. no. 184. Fabr. 112. Faun. Suec. 66.—Ringed Plover. Lath. Syn. v. 201. Arct. Zool. ii. 485. Br. Zool. ii. 105. Mont. Dict. & Supp. Wil. Am. Orn. 765. = Killed at Hare Island in June: perfectly agreeing with Mon- tagu’s description of British specimens; from whence it may be inferred thatthe remark made by Pennant of the black collar be- coming Capt. Santne’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. 535 coming fainter in North America, from the effect of climate, is not correct. Montagu mentions that he has seen several of these birds which had been killed in England, in which the collar was extinct. 11. PHaraRoPus Hvrznnonzus. Red Phalarope. P. Hyperboreus. Temm. 457. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 775 .—Tringa Hyperborea. Gmel. i. 675. Mull. no. 196.—Tringa Lobata. Fabr. 109. Faun. Suec.64.—Red Phalarope. Lath. Syn. v. 270 & 271: Br. Zool. ü. 125. Arct. Zool. ii. 494. Mont. Dict. Supp. & App. Wil. Am. Orn. ix. 75. i IMMATURE. Phalaropus Fuscus. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 776.—Tringa Fusca. Gmel. i. 675.—Tringa Lobata. Brün. no. 171.—Brown Phalarope. Lath. Syn. v. 274. Arct. Zool. ii. 495. A small flock of these birds were met with on the west coast of Greenland, in latitude 71°, in June. A considerable variation takes place in the ferruginous colouring of the sides of the neck, in some instances the colour meets at the breast, and in others it does not; it has been considered that this difference is characteristic of the sex, but I am inclined to think that such opinion is errone- ous. Some authors have supposed the Tringa Fulicaria of Linneus’s Systema Nature and of Brünnich to be the female of this species, and have consequently described it as differing extremely: but I have had no hesitation ia placing the Tringa Fulicaria as a synonym of the true Tringa Lobata (not the T. Lobata of Fabricius, which is the present bird). The Phalaropus Fuscus with its syno- nyms is considered as the immature bird, on the authority of Temminck and the Fauna Suecica ; but great confusion has been made in the synonyms referred to by other writers. Iam not ac- quainted with the winter plumage of this species; but think it probable that the ferruginous tints are peculiar to the summer months, as the specimens killed in J une were very irregularly and uncertainly marked. | Az Pia- 536 Capt. SaniNz's Memoir of the Birds of Greenland, 4c. 12. PHALAROPUS Pratyryncuos. Flat-billed Phalarope. Phalaropus Platyrynchos. Temm. 459. SUMMER. Tringa Fulicaria. Linn. Syst. Nat. ed. xii. vol.i.249. Brün. no. 172. Fabr.111. Müll. no. 196.—Tringa Hyperborea, var... Gmel.1.676.— Red Pha- larope female. Lath. Syn. v. 271. | WINTER. Phalaropus Lobatus. Lath. Ind. Orn. à. 776.—Tringa Lobata. Gmel. i. 674. Mull. no. 195.—Grey Phalarope. Br. Zool. ii. 123. Lath. Syn. v. 979. Arct. Sool. ii. 494. Mont. Dict.—Grey Phalarope. Wil. Am. Orn. ix. 72. IN CHANGE. Phalaropus Glacialis. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 776.—Tringa Glacia- lis. Gmel. i. 675.—Plain Phalarope. Lath. Syn. v. 273. Arct. Zool. ii. 495 Grey Phalarope. Mont. App. -YovwG. Tringa Lobata, var. 8. Gmel. i. 674. However unwilling I feel to admit alterations in names, I am induced to do so in the present instance, and to adopt Tem- minck's specific appellation, both as appropriate, and distinct from the confusion in which the various other synonyms which are referred to are involved. "The specimen from which the ac- count is taken was killed on the 10th of June, out of a flock of four, on the west coast of Greenland, in latitude 68°. They were swimming in the sea, amongst icebergs three or four miles from the shore. From the considerable difference between the summer and winter plumage of this bird, it is not surprising that so many mistakes have been made. My specimen, which was a male, agrees with Temminck's description of the full-plumaged bird in sum- mer, except that the whole under parts have a considerable quantity of white mixed with the brick red, the white being rather predominant. Before I had an opportunity of consulting the Manuel d'Ornithologie, which confirmed my opinion, I had arrived at the conclusion that the Tringa Fulicaria of Brünnich was this bird: his accurate description of the bill left no doubt in my mind, notwithstanding the difference in the plumage, the consequence of season. Fabricius enumerates the Tringa Fulicaria in Capt. San1Nx's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, &c. 537 m his Fauna Groelandica ; but the bird itself does not appear to have fallen under his notice: he was aware, however, that it could not be referred to his Tringa Lobata. This species is only known to British naturalists in its winter state. 13. Atca ALLE. Little Auk.. A. Alle. Gmel. i. 554. Lath. Ind. Orn. i. 705: Briin. no. 106. Fabr. 84. Faun. Suet. O. Mull. no. 142.—Little Auk. Lath. Syn. v. 327. Arct. Zool. ii. 512. Mont. Dict. & Supp. Br. Zool. à. 158. Wil. Am. Orn. ix. 94.—Uria Alle. Temm. 611. This species was abundant in Baffin’s Bay and Davis’s Straits ; and in latitude 76° was so numerous in the channels of water separating fields of ice, that many hundreds were killed daily, and the ship’s company supplied with them. The whole of the birds in the breeding season (the sexes being alike) had the under part of the neck an uniform sooty black, terminating abruptly and in an even line against the white of the belly; the young birds, which we saw in all stages from the egg, as soon as they were feathered were marked exactly as the mature birds: but in the third week of September, when we were on our passage down the American coast, every specimen, whether old or young, was. observed to be in change ; and in the course of a few days the en- tire feathers of the throat and cheeks and of the under part of the neck had become white; this latter state has been erroneously considered by some authors as that of the immature bird. It has been correctly described however by. Fabricius as the winter plumage. Montagu arrived at the same conclusion in his Sup- plement. We saw neither of the varieties which Fabricius remarks. that he had heard of; namely, a red-breasted variety, and one: wholly white.. : 14. Urra +. 538 Capt. SABINE’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, &c. 14. Urra Bnüxwieuir — Brünnich's Guillemot. Uria Troille. Briin. no. 109. Until the last autumn this bird was known to naturalists on the authority alone of Brünnich ; who, in his Ornithologia Borealis hav- ing described the species at present denominated the Uria Troile, under the specific name of Lomvia, proceeds to notice the exist- ence of a second species much resembling it, and which he names the Uria Troile: this second species is the present bird. Linneus originally called the first bird Alca Lomvia in his Systema Nature, edit. 10. (1758) vol. i. 130; but in the second edition of his Fauna Suecica (1761), he named it Troile. Briinnich in 1764 took up the specific appellation of Lomvia from the Systema Nature, adding the description he found given of it in the Fauna Suecica under the - name of Troile, and applied Troile to his new bird, referring, how- ever, to the. Fauna Suecica probably as authority for the name. From this confusion I apprehend it has arisen that both these birds have not since Brünnich published his work been noticed by ge- neral authors as distinct species. Dr. Leach on examining this bird ascertained it to be a distinct species; and not being aware that it had been previously distinguished and described by Brünnich, ex- hibited it at the Linnean Society as a new species, under the name of Uria Francsii in compliment to Mr. Frederick Franks, whom he then supposed to have been the person by whom it had been first killed. I have already had occasion, when speaking of the Pha- laropus Platyrynchos, to remark the accuracy in observation of Brünnich. 1t is but justice to attach his name to a species of which his claim to priority of knowledge and of communication is unquestionable. Latham (Synopsis vi. 330) notices this bird of Briinnich’s, but considers it a variety of the Foolish Guillemot. "The Uria Brünnichii was found in abundance in Davis's Straits, and Capt. Sanine’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, &c. 539 and occasionally in Baffin's Bay. A specimen killed on the 10th of June had the feathers of the throat mottled with white; from whence I infer that it undergoes the same changes from season as the Uria Troile. A matured specimen was sent by me to my brother, and reached England towards the close of the summer; several were subsequently brought home by the expedition which visited Spitzbergen, as well as by that which went to Baflin's Bay. TT | It is extraordinary that a species so abundant in the Greenland seas should be unnoticed by Fabricius; it must have escaped his observation altogether, as he has not even mentioned the Uria Troile, for which it might on a slight view be mistaken. Length. 17 inches—extent 2 feet— weight 21b. 6oz.; inside of the throat yellow, irides dark ; throat and neck sooty brown; head black ; hind head, bind neck, back and wings, dark sooty brown; the wings being lightest, and the secondaries tipt white; the feathers of the head and neck have a peculiar smoothness and softness ; from the eye to the hind head is a line occasioned by a division of the feathers; belly and all beneath pure white, running up to a point in the neck ; the feathers are very thick, and on being removed a dark down appears betweet them and the skin ; legs marbled, brown and yellowish; claws black; no difference in by Brünnich in the following words: ** Lomviæ in omnibus simil- . lima, excepto rostro latiori et breviori, cujus margines etiam in exsiccatis exuviis flavescunt." The yellow margin extends from the corner of the mouth, along the edge of the upper mandible, to the point to which the feathers project on the bill: it is rather horn-coloured than yellow. Brünnich mentions three other birds, VOL. XII. à A Nos. 540 Capt.SAB1NE’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. Nos. 110, 111 and 112, which he calls Svarbag, Ringvia and Alga; the two former Iceland and the latter Danish birds: he is undetermined whether these be distinct species, or the present in different states of plumage: I am.inclined to consider the latter supposition as the correct one. | It will be necessary to make some alteration in the specific cha- racter of Uria Troile, as given in Gmelin and Latham, to distin- guish it from Uria Briinnichi. It is therefore proposed to de- scribe the two species as follows: U. Troile. U. corpore fusco, pectore abdomineque niveo, remi- gibus secundariis apice albis, rostro longitudine capitis : mandibula superiore quadruplo longiore quam lata. U. Brünnichii. U. corpore fuliginoso, pectore abdomineque ni- veo, remigibus secundariis apice albis, rostro capite breviore : = mandibula superiore triplo longiore quam lata. 15 URTA GRYLLE. lack C ullemot U. Grylle. Temm. 608. Fabr. 92.—Black Guillemot. Br. Zool. ii. 163. Mont. Dict. & Supp. Lath. Syn. vi. 339. & Supp. 265. MATURE WINTER. -U. Grylloides. Brün. mo. 114. —U. ea Brün. nos. 115 & 116. | MATURE SUMMER. U. Grylle. Brin. no. 113. Lath, Ind. Orn. ii. 197.—Co- lymbus Grylle. Gmel. 584. Faun. Suec. 52.—Colymbus Gryllus. Müll. no. 151.— » Black Guillemot. Arct. Zool, ii. 516. 'The states of plumage of this bird are clearly described from the extensive and accurate observation of Fabricius. The young, when just feathered, are spotted black and white beneath, but otherwise resemble the parents. On the approach of winter the whole become varied with black and white; the feathers of the back margined with white; the head, throat and breast, white lightly spotted with black, the'wings continuing black, and the - speculum Capt. SABINE’ s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, §c. 541 speculum white. In this state it has been described by Brünnich as the Uria Balthica, No. 115. In mature winter plumage the whole bird is more or less speckled, and the upper feathers of the wing spot become tipt with black, giving it a mottled appearance. It is then the Uria Balthica, No. 116, of Brünnich. A male speci- men, killed in November at Shetland, having the wing spot mot- tled, shows that this circumstance is not peculiar to the females, as has been supposed. In the spring the plumage gradually re- assumes the black. A male killed in Davis's Straits early in June, had the whole head and neck mottled with black and white, equally distributed ; the plumage beneath and the back being black with a few white feathers dispersed ; the lower part of the abdomen gray as in the neck; the speculum still mottled, but with the white predominating. This bird was killed on our first arrival in the Greenland seas; and it is presumed that the change to full summer plumage was proceeding very rapidly, as we did not afterwards see a mottled bird. The legs of the November and Jüne specimens were red, though not so bright as in sum- mer. The breeding plumage is too well known t6 need descrip- tion. We did not see a variety, unless a specimen killed in September having the primaries rusty brown instead of black may be con- sidered such : the varieties which are noticed by Gmelin, and a by Latham in the Index Ornithologicus and in the Synopsis, and which are supposed to be found in different. places, are referable to the changes of plumage which this bird undergoes during the winter. 4A2 16. Co- 542 Capt.SaBiNe’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, 4c. 16. CotymBus SEPTENTRIONALIS. Red-throated Diver. C. Septentrionalis. Fabr. 95. Temm. 602. s MATURE. C. Septentrionalis. Gmel.i. 586. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 801. Müll. no. 153.—C. Lumme. Briin. no. 132.—Red-throated Diver. Lath. Syn. vi. 344. Arct. Zool. ii. 520. Br. Zool. ii. 169. Mont. Dict. Supp. & App. . BIRDS OF THE FIRST YEAR. C.Stellatus. Gmel. i. 587. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 800. Brün. no. 130. Müll. no. 159.—Speckled Diver. Lath. Syn. vi. 341, Br. Zool. ii. 168. Arct. Zool. ii.519. Mont. Dict. & Supp. BIRDS OF THE SECOND YEAR. C. Striatus. Gmel. i. 586. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 802.—C. Borealis. Brün. no. 131. Lath. Ind. Orn, 31. 801.—Striped Di- ver. Arct. Zool. ii. 519. Lath. Syn. vi. 345. Killed June 30, on the west coast of Greenland, in lat. 71°. The rich chesnut marking on the throat is conical in shape, having the apex, which is sharply pointed, at the throat, and the base resting on the white of the breast; the back of the specimen is slightly sprinkled with white spots, showing that it is a bird of the third or fourth. year. Following Temminck, the Colymbus Stellatus and Striatus, with their synonyms, are here introduced as the imma- ture birds of the present species: Fabricius was aware of the change of plumage, and has described the mature bird well; but no author before Temminck appears to have supposed that the Striped and i spenhled. Divers were referable to this species. 17. STERNA HIRUNDO. Common Tern. S. Hirundo. Gmel.i.606. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 807. Fabr. 105. Müll.no. 170. Faun. Suec. 55. Temm. 481.—S. Paradisæa. Briin. mo. 159.—Great Tern. Wil. Am. — Orn. vii. 76.—Common Tern. Br. Zool. ii. 196. Mont. Dict. & Supp. IMMATURE. S. Hirundo. Brün. no. 151.—Common Tern. Lath. Syn. vi. 361. Great Tern. Arct. Zool. ii. 524, Abundant on the coast of Greenland. In the accounts of the authors who have been cited, a difference is observable in the de- - scription of the colour of the forehead of this species: by some it is represented as white, and by others as black: the specimens which Capt. SaBinr’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, &c. 543 which were obtained, and which were very numerous, were all of the latter plumage, which is certainly that of the perfect adult bird. The white feathers on the forehead are found only on young birds of the first year considerably advanced towards maturity. In astill younger state it is supposed to be the S. obscura or Brown ‘Tern of Gmelin and Latham, and perhaps also the S. nigra of the Fauna Suecica, Müller and Brünnich. There is a remarkable dif- ference between the Greenland common Terns and those of the European coasts, in their bills and legs ; the bills of the Greenland birds are one-third shorter than the European ones, and the tarsi of the former are only half the length of the latter. 18. Larus Marinus. Great Black-backed Gull. L. Marinus. Fabr. 109. Temm. 490. MATURE. L. Marinus. Gmel.i.598. Lath. Ind. Orn.ii. 813. — Brün. no. 145. Faun. Suec. 55. Müll: no. 163.—Black-backed Gull. Lath. Syn. vi. 371. Br. Zool. ii. 179. Arct. Zool. ii. 527.—Great Black-backed Gull. Mont. Dict. & App. IMMATURE. L. Nevius. Gmel. i. 598.— Wagel. Lath, Syn. vi. 575. Br. ^ Zool. ii. 189. rct. Zool. ui. 598. The largest of the known Gulls. This bird was once, and once only, seen from the ships, when they were high up in Baffin’s Bay, but at a distance too great to obtain a specimen. It was known to Fabricius both in its mature and immature plumage; but he was probably mistaken in considering the L. varius of Brünnich ` asa synonym of the young bird : that from its size is probably an immature Herring Gull. -The L. marinus is too well known to need a particular description. 19. Larus Graucus. Glaucous Gull. L. Glaucus. Gmel. i. 600. Fabr. 100. Briin. no. 148. Müll. no. 169. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 814.—Glaucous Gull. Lath. Syn. vi. 374. Arct. Zool. ii. 539. & Supp. 70. Notwithstanding the confusion in which the larger species of Gulls 344 Capt. SaBINE's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, &c. Gulls are involved, there appears no doubt of the a pplication of all the above references to the species now under descri ption. The L. glaucus of Temminck is not quoted, because, as will be here- after shown, it is a different species. None but mature birds in the perfect summer state were killed during the voyage, but these were very common throughout Da- vis's Straits and Baffin's Bay. I am fortunately able to make the history of its plumage complete from specimens in my brother's collection of British birds ; and I am happy thus incidentally to record it for the first time as an addition to British ornithology. In immature plumage it is mottled throughout with an uniform light-brown and white, being distinguished from the young of other well-described species by being without the darker marks on the wings and tail: during the first year the bill has the upper mandible less arched, the angular projection of the lower mandi- ble not so defined, and the extremities of both lead-coloured. In winter the mature bird has the head and neck mottled with brown, as is usual with all the white-headed Gulls. In the perfect sum- mer state, the whole plumage is white excepting the back, scapu- lars, and wing-coverts, which are a very light ash-colour; the pri- mary quill-feathers are still lighter, the ends and under part being pure white; there is no black whatsoever on any part of the plu- mage: hence the bird from Hudson's Bay, described in Latham's Synopsis at the page referred to above, with six of the primary quill-feathers black at the ends, must have been another species. When arrived at maturity the bill is three inches in length, of a lightish horn-colour, the angular projection of the lower man- dible being bright red; orbits naked, straw-coloured and very fierce ; legs and feet a livid flesh-colour. In size jt is somewhat inferior to the L. marinus ; the bill, tarsus, and body of the latter being decidedly greater. Length of a male specimen twenty-nine inches Capt. Sastne’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. 545 inches and a half. Extent sixty-three inches. Weight 4lb. 8 oz. Length of the tarsus two inches seven-eighths: the females ave- raged rather less. Temminck (Manuel, p. 490, note) appears to have seen an immature specimen of this bird, to which he was disposed to give the name of L. giganteus : this name would not be a correct one, because it is a smaller bird than the L. marinus. Temminck identifies his specimen with the L. Ictyætos of Pallas, but that bird is a black-headed Gull. | The Larus glaucus is unquestionably the Burgomaster Gull of the Dutch, and preys on smaller birds as well as on fish. One spe- cimen which was killed disgorged a little Auk when it was struck, and proved on dissection to have a second in its stomach. lam indebted to Mr. James Ross, a midshipman of the Isa- bella, (one of the Discovery ships,) for a singular specimen of a Gull which, though differing in several points, I conceive must be placed under this species: it was shot on the 6th of June near the middle of Davis’s Straits. Its description is as follows: Length twenty-six inches; extent fifty-eight inches; a male bird ; plumage wholly white, the feathers of the hind head, neck, back and wings being occasionally tinged with a very faint brown- ish hue; the legs and feet flesh-coloured; length of the tarsus two inches and a half; irides deep brown; the length of the bill from the corner of the mouth two inches and a half, being full half án inch shorter than in the usual specimens of the Larus- glaucus ; the bill is a yellowish horn-colour, the ends of both mandibles being a lead-colour. From the colour of the bill and the faint spots on the feathers, this bird was evidently immature ; and it may reasonably be presumed that its full plumage would have been entirely white. In this, and in its smaller size, it differs strongly from the Glaucous Gull; both of these circumstances, I conjecture, 546 Capt. SaniNE's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. conjecture, may have been caused by sickness or by scan ty su pply of food. | 20. Larus AncENTATUs. Silvery Gull. The bird now under consideration does not appear to have been described in any of the books which are referred to in this memoir. It is necessary therefore to explain why the name of argentatus or silvery, which has been used before, has been at- tached to it. A Larus argentatus was introduced by Brünnich, who was followed by Gmelin; but the bird to which the name was applied is evidently the Larus fuscus or Herring Gull of La- tham, in winter plumage: as is also the Silvery Gull of the Arctic Zoology and of Latham’s Synopsis. In this opinion Temminck concurs, as is shown by his quotations in his Manuel under the head of Larus glaucus. Latham in the Index Ornithologicus takes up the Larus argentatus of Drünnich, but considers it erroneously as an aged bird of the Larus marinus or Great Black-backed Gull. Montagu finding the term argentatus at liberty, applied it in his Dictionary to his Less Black-backed Gull; but it will be seen by reference to the Manuel of Temminck that the Less Dlack-backed Gull is the Larus fuscus of Linneus and Gmelin. I apprehend that the reason why the bird under consideration has not been hitherto distinctly described is to be found in its general resemblance to the Larus glaucus: it will be therefore best distinguished by a comparative description. In the general character of the plumage they are alike, differing from the other large species of this genus in the entire absence of black in the primary quill-feathers; the shade of the ash-colour of. the back, scapulars, and coverts, varies in different specimens from almost the lightest percéptible tint to a darker than the darkest Larus glaucus that was killed on the voyage; the principal distinction between Capt. SaB1NE's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, &c. 547 between the two species is in the difference of size; the males of this species average twenty-four inches in length, and the fe- males rather less : extent four feet five to four feet six inches: the legs and bill of both are alike, except insize: length of the tarsus two inches and a half; the wings of the argentatus are rather longer in proportion than those of the glaucus. j These birds were abundant in Davis’s Straits and Baffin’s Bay, but were only seen in mature summer plumage: from analogy it may be expected that the immature birds will resemble those of the Glaucous Gull. I should have been disposed to have considered this bird as a new and undescribed species; but in a personal communication with Mr. Temminck, whose extensive skill and judgement in or- nithology are only equalled by the liberality and kindness with which he communicates his knowledge, I have learned that he considers the bird of Greenland to be specifically the same with the Herring Gull of the more southern shores of Europe; but that from the effect of climate the black markings of the primary quill-feathers, which have been hitherto considered an essential characteristic of the species, are changed to white in the arctic countries. ‘The mature summer birds of Greenland (in which state only I have seen them) certainly strongly resemble our Her- ring Gull in all other points. In deference therefore to such high authority, I add the synonyms of the authors I quote belonging to that bird, as it is found in temperate climates. , L. Fuscus. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 815. Müll. no. 164. Faun. Suec. 54.—L. Glaucus. Temm.493.—Herring Gull. Lath. Syn.vi.372. Br. Zool. ii.181. Mont. Dict.& Supp. MATURE WINTER. L. Argentatus. Gmel. i. 600. Briin. no. 149.—Silvery Gull. Lath. Syn. vi. 875. Arct. Zool. ii. 555. MATURE SUMMER. L. Fuscus. Gmel.i. 599. Brün. no. 142.—Herring Gull. Arct. Zool. ii. 527. | : | | IMMATURE. L. Varius. Brün. no. 150.—W agel. Æret. Zool. Supp. 70. - VOL. XII. : 4 B Before 548 Capt. Sanine’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. Before I had the pleasure of meeting with Mr. Temminck, he had designed to give the specific name of argentatus to the Eu- ropean bird; it will therefore remain as I have placed it at the head of this species: the name of glaucus, which in his Manuel was given to the Herring Gull, will be removed by him to the true Glaucous Gull. It is singular that Pennant, in his Arctic Zoology, under the head of Herring Gull, states that bird to be common in Greenland throughout the year; though no other writer, as far as my observation has extended, mentions the cir- cumstance, and we did not observe a single one with black pri- mary quill-feathers during our voyage in the Straits. 21. Larus EsunNEvus. Ivory Gull. L. Eburneus. Gmel.i. 596. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 816. Temm. 498.—Ivory Gull. Lath. Syn. vi. 377. Arct. Zool. ii. 529. & Supp. 70.—L. Candidus. Fabr. 103. Müll. p. viii. Abundant in Baffin’s Bay. Authors describe the length of this bird as sixteen or seventeen inches; the matured specimens obtained, averaged twenty inches; but an immature one measured an ineh less. Weight about twenty ounces. Nothing can exceed the beauty of the delicate snow-white plumage of this species in its maturity: I apprehend that this takes place at the end of the second year; on the 24th of August the young birds were ob- served 3t flight, much mottled with brown about the head, and probably also about the wings, though not so visibly. A specimen killed the first week in June, of a bird apparently of the pre- ceding year, has a few light-brown feathers about the bill, extend- ing towards the eyes, a very small transverse band of brown spots. across the primary wing coverts, thickest at the point of the wing; the primary quill and the tail feathers slightly tipped with brown. Since my return I have seen a specimen of an immature bird with the ends of the primary quill-feathers and of the tail- | feathers Capt. SABINE’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, §c. 549 feathers tipped with brown : the bill of the immature bird has the extremity yellow as in the mature bird. The wings of this species extend an inch and a half beyond the tail: the legs are black, and the skin very rough; they are feathered within a very short distance ! of the knee: length of the tarsus only one inch and a half ; the claws are much hooked : irides dark brown in every specimen: the legs and bill of the mature birds agreed in colour with the descriptions of the authors quoted; the hind claw is sufficiently conspicuous, though Fabricius says not. These birds are attracted in consider- able numbers by whale blubber, and are therefore usually found in company with the Procellaria glacialis; they are easily killed, being by no means shy. 29. Larus Tripacryzus. Kittiwake Gull. L. Tridactylus. Temm. 502.—Kittiwake. Mont. Dict. & Supp. ^ MATURE SUMMER. L. Tridactylus. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 817. Fabr. 98.— Kittiwake. Lath. Syn. vi. 393. Br. Zool. ii. 186.—L. Rissa. Gmel. i. 594. Arct. Zool. Supp. 70. Brün. no. 140. Müll. no. 160. T" MATURE WINTER. Kittiwake. Arct. Zool. ii. 529. & Supp. 70. .. IMMATURE. L, Tridactylus. Gmel. i. 595., Müll. no. 161. Faun. Suec. 55. —L. Tridactylus. 6. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii, 817.—Tarrock Gull. Mont. Dict. & Supp. Lath. Syn. vi. 392. & Supp. 068. Br. Zool.ii. 187. Arct. Zool. ii. 533. S Supp. 70. It is expedient to distinguish the different states of plumage of this bird, in reference to the authors quoted. Temminck is the first writer who appears to have had a fuil knowledge of the changes it undergoes. The mature summer plumage is wholly white, with the exception of the back and wings; these are of a deep ash-colour: the black markings of the primary quill feathers have been correctly described by Temminck. In the autumn, the white at the back of the head and neck is changed into a light ash-colour, which is rather deepest behind the ear, forming the appearance of a spot: the small feathers under the eye are 4B 2 also 550 Capt. Sapine’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. also rayed with black. The young birds when full grown have this autumnal appearance with additional differences correctly. described in the Fauna Suecica; the bill is black instead of yel-. low; at the back of the neck the feathers are tipt black, forming: a narrow crescent-shaped patch; the wing coverts are tipt black, forming a bar across the wings ; primary quills black, with more or less E the inner webs in didiont specimens white: tail tipt for. . half an inch with black, except the outer feather on each side, the second having only a spot on the inner web. It is worthy of ob- servation that the outer tail feathers are somewhat longer than the inner ones, giving the tail an appearance of being slightly forked ; this is more perceptible in the young birds than in the old ones. . The specific name of tridactylus (though given by Linneus to the immature bird) appears preferable, as being more appropriate than that of Rissa: it is therefore adopted. I am inclined to suppose that this species attains maturity at the age of one year. In June none were seen with spotted plumage; early in October several immature birds were killed, being marked as above de- scribed: the specimens noticed by Montagu as killed in the month of March, and supposed by him to be i in complete plu- mage, had evidently not got rid of all the black markings on the wing coverts, which I believe would have taken place, had they lived a few weeks longer. The L. tridactylus of Gmelin and Müller, and the Tarrock Gull of the Arctic Zoology, are the young bird afterit has lost the black bar upon the wing, and before the colour has disappeared from the neck and from the tips of thetail-feathers. Itis apprehended that the Larus cinerarius of Fabricius is the tridactylus in winter plumage: its rarity in Greenland, as noticed by him, may be ac- counted for by the probability that most of these Gulls migrate southwards during that season. 23. Larus Capt. SàgixE's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, dc. 551 23. Larus Sagini. — Forked-tailed Gull. A fall description of this bird having been already presented to - the Society*, it is unnecessary to repeat the account. Mr. Temminck informs me that he has seen this bird in the Museum at Vienna, where it was proposed to call it Larus colla- ris, but that it has not been described by the ornithologists of that capital, or by any author whatsoever before the Memoir above referred to was presented to the Society. The specimen, he thinks, was obtained from Professor Giesecké ; but the bird is not to be found in a MS. list of Greenland birds in his own hand-writing, with the sight of which I have been favoured by Mr. Bullock, nor is any other Gull there mentioned with which it could possibly have been confounded. 24. LrsrRis PARASITICUS. Catharacta Parasitica. Fabr. 105. MATURE. Larus Parasiticus. Gmel. ii. 601. Lath. Ind. Orn. à. 819. Faun. Suec.55. Miill.no.166. Temm.519.—Arctic Gull. Br. Zool.ii. 179. Arct. Zool. ii. 530. Lath. Syn. vi. 389. Mont. Dict.& Supp.— Catharacta Parasitica. Brün. no. 197. IN BROWN PLUMAGE. Catharacta Coprotheres. Briin. no. 128. : IMMATURE. Lestris Crepidatus. Temm. 515.—Larus Crepidatus. Gmel. ii. 602. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 819.—Black-toed Gull. Br. Zool. ii. 178. Arct. Zool. ii. 531. Lath. Syn. vi. 387. Supp. 268. Mont. Dict. & Supp.—Larus Cepphus. Müll. no. 168. — Catharacta Cepplius. Brün. no. 126. I have followed the example of Temminck in removing this with the other dark-coloured Gulls from Larus and giving them the generic appellation of Lestris. Much inaccuracy as well as difference of opinion has existed respecting not only the imma- ture, but the mature birds of this species. ‘The immature bird has been described as a distinct species. Montagu was the first author who had a doubt of the correctness of this arrangement, but he erred in considering the young bird as a variety only. It has been * See page 520 of this volume. e fled 552. Capt. SaniNE's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, ác. called by the different names cited above, during the first year of its existence, when its tail is destitute of the long feathers, and its whole plumage is marked with transverse bars of light-brown and dingy white. The markings do not entirely leave it in the second year, but are perceptible in the under parts of the wings and in the adjoining under parts of the body: at this period the two centre tail feathers have become elongated, the breast and throat have become white, though sometimes spotted a little, and the ends of the feathers of the back and wing coverts are tinged with brown, the crown of the head being dark brown. As the birds advance in age the under parts and back of the neck become white stained more or less with brown, and the sides and back of the neck are tinged with yellow; the crown of the head and the whole u pper parts except the neck are an uniform dark brown, and the two tail feathers are much lengthened. In all these changes there are however considerable variations; and even in the descri ption of the immature bird as a separate species, authors have varied ac- cording to the age of the specimen before them. F abriciüs's ob- servations ascertained that there was no difference between the sexes; and as he saw them at their breeding places he must have been aware of their difference of plumage in their young state. I learn from Mr. Temminck, who has had recent opportunities of investigating the history of this bird, that he is satisfied the males and females of the same age are alike, and that he is convinced of the specific identity of the Larus crepidatus. But the great diffi- culty is where to place the birds which have their whole under parts. brown: these have been erroneously considered by many as the females, and Briinnich made them a distinct species ;—the elu- cidation of this point must wait for further investigation. Several birds in that state of plumage, but no young ones, were killed during the voyage in the Straits. 25. Pro- Capt. SABINE’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. 553 25. PRocELLARIA GLACIALIS. Fulmar Petrel, P. glacialis. Gmel. i. 562. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 823. Faun. Suec. 51. Temm. 518. Brün. no. 118. Fabr. 86. Müll. no. 144—Fulmar Petrel. Lath. Syn. vi. 403. Arct. Zool. ii. 534. Br. Zool. ii. 203.—Fulmar. Mont. Dict. & Supp. These birds are very abundant at all times in Baffin's Bay and Davis's Straits; the greater part in the plumage described by authors generally: but some were occasionally seen in which the whole under parts as well as the head and neck were ash-coloured, . instead of white; and the back and wings of a darker shade: these latter birds agree with the plumage which Temminck has assigned to the young birds; if they were such, the species is two years in attaining maturity, because we killed full-plumaged birds of this character in June; the difference cannot be sexual, as males and females in each colour were obtained. Whilst the ships were detained by the ice in Jacob's Bay in latitude 71°, from the 24th of June to the 3d of July, Fulmars were passing in a continual stream to the northward, in numbers inferior only to the flight of the passenger pigeon in America. Latham appears to have been in error in his Synopsis in re- ferring to Brünnich as an authority for the tail of this species being black: we did not see any birds so marked. 26. Anas SPECTABILIS. King Duck. Anas Spectabilis. Gmel. i. 507. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 845. Faun. Suec. 39. Müll. no. 108. Fabr.63.—King Duck. Arct. Zool. ii. 554. Lath. Syn. vi. 473. Br. Zool. ii. 246. Mont. Dict. & App. I am indebted to Mr. Skane! midshipman of the Isabella, for the only male specimen of this most beautiful Duck, which was shot during our voyage. They were very numerous on the coast of Greenland in company with the Eider Ducks; but they were too shy to approach the ships, and opportunities of seeking them on 554 Capt. SapiNe’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. on shore were very rare and very hurried. Two females were killed, agreeing as well as the male with the descriptions of au- thors. It is reasonable to suppose that they are the same num- ber of years in attaining maturity as the Eider Duck; but the different states of their immature plumage have not as yet been noticed. This is one of the desiderata which it is hoped the next voyage will supply. The rarity of this bird in the milder parts of Europe, and the want of specimens of it in the best collec- tions, have occasioned it to be im perfectly known, except amongst the writers on the ornithology of the northern regions. Temminck in his Manuel considers it as the Anas mollissima in one of its changes; this is the cause that there is no reference to his work amongst the books cited. It is however noticed in the second edition of his Manuel, now preparing for publication, as a distinct species. | . The trachea of the King Duck has so close a resemblance to that of the Anas mollissima or Eider Duck, that one description and figure will suffice for both: they are represented in the an- nexed plate. Tab. XXX. Fig. 1 and 2. 27. Anas Morrissiwa. Eider Duck. A. Mollissima. Gmel. i. 514. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 845. Temm. 549. Müll. no. 116. Fabr. 68. Brün. nos. 57, 58, 59, 60, 61, 62, 63,64, 65,& 66. Faun. Suec. 41.— Eider Duck. Lath. Syn. vi. 470. Supp. 974. Br. Zool. ii. 943. Mont. Dict. & ` Supp. Arct. Zool. ii. 553. Wil. Am. Orn. viii. 122 (male). 125 (female). Abundant on the coast of Greenland; but we were not fortu- nate in obtaining many specimens. According to Fabricius these Ducks congregate in immense flocks during the winter. Brün- nich has described the male of yarious ages, as well as the female, and several varieties: according to his account the male is not perfectly mature in plumage till the fourth year; he describes the male at one year old as having white as well as black markings on various Capt. SABINE’S Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. 555 various parts; buta young male which was killed in June exactly resembled the female in colour, though much larger in size. A specimen of a young male, which I obtained in June, had no ap- pearance of change from the brown plumage, and certainly was not a bird of that year; I have therefore formed an opinion on this point different from that of Brünnich. The trachea of the male is uniform in size, rather compressed; the tympanum is small and flatly globose ; the branchiz are of different sizes, the larger one being dilated considerably in the centre. . 98. Anas Gracrazis. Long-tailed Duck. A. Glacialis. Gmel. i. 599. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 864. Temm. 558.—Anas Hyemalis. Fabr. 71. Müll. no. 123. Faun. Suec. 44 & A7. no. 133 (female). Brün. nos.75, 76, 77, 78, & 79.—Long-tailed Duck. Lath. Syn. vi. 528 (male). & 599 (female). Br. Zool. ii. 968. Arct. Zool. ii. 566. Mont. Dict. Supp. & App. Wil. Am. Orn. viii. 93 (male). & 96 (female). ~ IMMATURE. Anas Glacialis, var. y. Lath. Ind. Orn. ii. 865 (female).—Anas Hyemalis. Gmel. i. 520.—Long-tailed Duck. Arct. Zool. ii. 566. & App. 76. —— . As the Long-tailed Duck only winters in Europe, returning to the arctic regions in the summer, the state of its plumage at the time we were in Baffin’s Day is interesting. I obtained a speci- men of a mature male on the 30th of June. Its winter dress has been detailed by several of the authors referred to, but I believe a description of its summer plumage will be new. "The whole under part of the neck and the breast is black, the appearance of the black spot so conspicuous in winter being removed by the general diffusion of the dark feathers; the sides of the head and a little beyond the eye are a brownish white; round the eye are some white feathers; from the bill a black line runs on the top of the head to the crown, which is black; the back of the neck is chiefly black, but at a small distance below the crown a few white feathers are intermingled with the black ones across VOL. XII. Ac the 556 Capt. Sapix e's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, ác. the neck; the black of the back of the neck extends down the back, but in the centre of the upper part of the back near the neck is a patch of black feathers edged with ferruginous; the scapulars are long and narrow, black ia the centre and edged with ferruginous-white, the longer ones having more white; the wings are a brownish-black, the quill feathers being the palest ; the lower belly and sides to the rump and the under tail- coverts are white, a line of black descending between the white from the back to the tail; of the four middle tail-feathers two are eight inches, the others are about four and a half inches long. Briinnich gives this bird in five different states of sex and plu- mage, the second (No. 76) is the male in summer plumage. Mon- tagu, in the Appendix to his Supplement, has described the trachea well; the figures in the annexed engraving, Tab. XX X. fig. 3 and 4, will convey a very correct idea of its appearance: it is most curi- ous and singular in its construction ; the window-like formation at the lower part next the tympanum is particularly so. Subjoined is a complete list of the birds of Greenland, as far as I conceive they are at present ascertained; the Fauna Groenlan- dica has been taken as the foundation thereof, and the alterations which appear to be necessary have been made in it. The species enumerated by Fabricius are fifty-four: I have re- duced five of these, considering them as synonyms of some of the others, but have enlarged the list again by the addition of an equal number of species which had not fallen under the notice of that author; the names of the five reduced species are placed in italics under those to which I have referred them; and the added spe- cies are marked with an 4; in those cases where I have given the bird of the Fauna Groenlandica under a more correct name, the synonym of that work follows in the same line in italics. The birds which are marked * are described in the preceding pages. 1. Falco Capt. SaB1NE's Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. 357 a p 3. "15. j* 18. "36. * 20. 21. = 22. "4128. 24. Falco Albicilla. Vultur Albicilla. Islandicus. Falco Islandus. - rusticolus. - fuscus. j - peregrinus. Not mentioned by Fabricius, or by any other author, as a bird of Greenland. — Strix nyctea. nie: . asio. Fabricius had not seen this bird himself. . Corvus corax. Tetrao lagopus. . Emberiza nivalis. Fringilla Lapponica. linaria. . Sylvia Oenanthe. Motacilla Oenanthe. . Parus bicolor. Not seen by Fabricius. . Ardea cinerea. Not seen by Fabricius. . Scolopax Lapponica. - Scolopax. Jardreka. — —-— gallinago. This and the preceding species are very rare according to Fabricius. | Tringa maritima. Tringa striata. -— interpres. Not seen by Fabricius. - cinerea. Not mentioned by Fabricius or by __ any other author as a bird of Greenland. -— Alpina. Charadrius hiaticula. ; pluvialis. Charadrius apricarius. Phalaropus hyperboreus. Tringa lobata. platyrynchos. Tringa fulicaria. Not seen by Fabricius, but described as a Greenland bird by Brünnich, Alca impennis. 4c2 [* 95. Alca $58 Capt.SasiNE's Memoir onthe Birds of Greenland, 6c. 95. Alca torda. pica. 26. —— Arctica. ver. alle. 4% 28. Uria Brünnichii. Not described before as a bird of - l — Greenland. * 20 grylle. 30. Colymbus glacialis. "3E septentrionalis. * 39. Sterna hirundo. * 33. Larus marinus. * 34. glaucus. J* 35. argentatus. Not noticed by Fabricius. * 36. eburneus. Larus candidus. * 37. ——- tridactylus. Lee — cinerarius, Not seen by Fabricius. +* 38. Sabini. A new species. * 39. Lestris parasiticus. Catharacta parasitica. * 40. Procellaria glacialis. 41. puffinus. | 42. Mergus merganser. ‘Not seen by Fabricius. 43. serrator. 44, Anas anser. Not seen by Fabricius. 45. bernicla. * 46. spectabilis. "4T. mollissima. 48. - boschas. | = —— clangula. | glaucion. * 50. —— hyemalis. 51, —— histrionica. 52 . Pel i- Capt. Sanine’s Memoir on the Birds of Greenland, $c. 559 52. Pelicanus carbo. 53. graculus. Pelicanus cristatus. 54. . Bassanus. Only seen off the coast; not an inhabitant. Of the above fifty-four species, I have in the preceding pages described twenty-eight which came immediately under my own observation. Of the twenty-six species which I did not meet with, six were not even seen by Fabricius, and others are unquestion- ably rare birds in Greenland. XXXV. Cha- ( 560 ) 2 XXXV. Characters and Description of LYELLIA, a new Genus of Mosses, with Obserfations on the Section of the Order to which it belongs; and some/ Remarks on LE PTosroMuM and BuxBAUMIA. By Robert Brown, Esq. F.R.S. Libr. L.S. Read April 6, 1819. Ix the tenth volume of the Society's Transactions, I have given a description of Dawsonia, a genus of Mosses having entirely the habit of Polytrichum, but whose peristomium, instead of con- sisting of a single row of short teeth connected by a horizontal membrane, is composed of an indefinite number of capillary cilia. These cilia, originating both from the inner surface of the capsule, immediately within the orifice, and from the columella itself, form a loose pencil, of which the hairs are sufficiently distinct to allow of a gradual discharge of the seeds. The correctness of this account of Dawsonia, especially as to the origin of the peristomium*, and the nature of the supposed columella}, has been questioned by some of those authors, who have since adopted the genus. From a careful re-examination, however, I find no reason to alter in any respect the generic character formerly given; and to the description of the species I have only to add, that the upper surface of the leaves is furnished with parallel lamellæ, like those of Polytrichum ; and that the inner membrane of the capsule is, . * Bridel Meth. Nov. Muscor. p. 205. f De la Pylaie in Journal de Botanique appliq. iii. p. 134. Y in Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buxbäaumia. 561 in the early stage at least, connected by numerous plice with those elevations of the surface of the columella, which are no- ticed in my description, and well expressed in Mr. Bauer's excel- lent figure. My principal object, in the present paper,.is to establish another genus of the same family, equally related to Polytrichum in habit, which resembles Dawsonia in the remarkable form of its capsule, but whose peristomium is of so peculiar a structure as to require its separation from both these, and readily to di- stinguish it from all other genera of Mosses. This new genus I shall name Lyellia, in honour of Mr. Charles Lyell, an accurate English Botanist, who has particularly studied, and made several important discoveries in, the natural order to which it belongs. . Mr. Hooker has already intimated his intention of establishing a Lyellia in the same order, to consist of those species of Leuco- don that have a mitriform calyptra*; but he has readily agreed to transfer the name of our friend from a genus, respecting which there is still some uncertainty, to one so unquestionable as that here proposed ; and.as I have not a drawing prepared to accom- pany the present communication, I trust he will give the necessary ilustration of this interesting genus, in an early aumher of his excellent Musci fune | T AE LYELLIA. Stoma edentulum, clausum epiphragmate (crasso depresso), cujus discus circularis a limbo (latiori) persistenti secedens, cum colu- mellà remanenti inclusà cohzret. Capsula hinc plana inde convexa. | Calyptra cucullata (apice pilosa). * Musci Exotici, vol, i. 17. Muscus 562 Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buxbaumia. Muscus (Nepalensis) habitu Polytrichi ; capsule figurá et structurá interiori Dawsoniz similis; peristomio ab utroque genere diver- sissimus. LYELLIA CRISPA. Descriptio. Muscus cæspitosus. Caulis erectus, simplicissimus, 3-4-uncialis, ipsa basi tomento: ` radicali cinereo copioso tenuissimo tectus, dein, ad 4 circiter longitudinis, basibus emarcidis foliorum squamatus, supra dense foliatus. Folia undique versa, e basibus dilatatis subcuneatis semiva- ginantibus membranaceis pallidis imbricatis, subulata, ca- naliculata, nigro-viridia, opaca ; marginibus ab apice ad + longitudinis et ipso apice carinæ serratis; disco intus lon- gitudinaliter lamellis numerosis, parallelo-approximatis, _ tenuissimis, e nervo ipsaque superficie ortis; limbo elamel- - lato: minutissime areolato; madore patula leviterque in- trorsum falcata, siccitate contorta. Masculi Flores non visi. Fructificatio Feminea terminalis, solitaria. Vaginula ori xdtdppa) villis iuplesis instructa, apice truncato: simplici. FE Seta tutos Hits erecta, teres, leevis, castanea, demum cava. Calyptra (nonnulle delapse solum a nobis vise) cucullata, hinc alté fissa inde truncata, levis, apice pilis brevibus simplicibus hispidula. Capsula erectiuscula, circumscriptione ovata, fusca, vix mani- feste areolata, hinc plana et ala perangusta cincta, inde convexiuscula, collo brevissimo cylindraceo.. Apophysis nulla nisi basis castaneo-fusca et undique instructa punc- tis parvis, sparsis numerosis, pustuliformibus, verticaliter el- lipticis Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buabaumia. 563 ~ lipticis, margine paulo incrassatis, disco angusto, porum referente sed laminam tantum exteriorem perforañte. . Operculum (unicum tantum visum quod calyptra delapsa in- clusum) e basi depresso-conica desinens in rostrum longi- tudine circiter ipsius baseos, intus auctum processu cylin- draceo, centro baseos inserto, et proculdubio disco circu- lari terminali columelle applicito. Peristomium horizontale, nec obliquum, clausum quasi oper- culo interiori seu epiphragmate crasso, opaco, edentulo, pla- niusculo, persistente ; limbo latiusculo crassiore castaneo ; disco pallido leviter depresso ; ipso centro circulari plano, crassiusculo fusco, a disco pallido mox separante, arcte cum columella coherenti, eaque demum abbreviata intra cavitatem retracto. | Membrana. interior. (s. 'Theca vera) approximata exteriori, quacum processubus numerosis vasculiformibus connexa, ore coarctato, spongioso-membranaceo, collum breve colu- melle arcte amplexante, superficie interiore alt? corrugata. Columella in capsula matura majuscula, subovalis, lacunosa, - rugis elevatis applicitis et forsan connexis plicis respon- dentibus membrane interioris. — | : Semina minutissima, in cumulo viridia, separatim hyalina, levier + e Lyellia crispa was lately discovered in Nepaul (probably in the vicinity of Kathmandu,) by the botanical collectors sent from the Company's garden at Calcutta, by Dr. Nathaniel Wallich, the worthy successor of Dr. Roxburgh in that establishment. The specimens here described were received from Dr. Wallich by Sir Joseph Banks; and I have also seen others sent at the same time to Mr. Lambert, part of which he very liberally com- municated. VOL. XII. À D The 564 Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Burbaumia. The whole number of capsules examined does not exceed twenty-five; but as all of these were ripe and of uniform appear- ance and structure, they will probably be considered sufficient for the establishment of the genus. l To complete the description of Lyellia, male flowers, which, however, probably resemble those of Polytrichum and Dawsonia, are still wanting; and although there is no reason to doubt that the calyptra and operculum, both of which I have ventured to describe from fallen specimens, really belong to this species, yet it would be more satisfactory to find them while still attached to the capsule; for in this state only, the form of the operculum and its probable central connection with the orbicular disk of the pe- ristomium can be absolutely determined. It will be necessary also to examine a greater number of specimens, and perhaps in dif- ferent states, to ascertain absolutely the ceconomy of this moss in the dispersion of its seeds. It is evident, however, if the descri p- tion already given be correct, that as far as dispersion takes place, by the mouth of the capsule, it can only be effected by a contrac- tion or shortening of the columella, and a corresponding retraction within the cavity of the capsule, of the central portion of the peristomium which adheres to it; and in this state several of the specimens were actually found. |. But it is also manifest, both from the great size of the columella, and its numerous points of connection with the inner membrane, that in this way the whole of the seeds cannot be discharged. It is possible therefore, that in certain circumstances at least, their dispersion may be assisted by the minute pores existing at the base of the capsule. These pores, in the specimens examined, were found to penetrate the outer membrane, or even its external layer only, and being situated below the origin of the seminal bag, their first effect will probably be to accelerate the decay of the internal spongy Mr. Bnoww on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buxbaumia. 365 Spongy texture of the base of the capsule. Butby thus removing support from the columella and inner membrane, they may con- tribute to the greater shortening of the former, and consequently in increasing the dispersion by the mouth of the capsule ; or, from the same cause, the inner membrane being at length ruptured, the seeds may be in part discharged by the pores themselves. It seems then not improbable, from what we at present know of the structure of Lyellia, that for the dispersion of the seeds in this genus there are two distinct contrivances, both of which, however, in the only species yet known, are apparently imperfect. But hence it is perhaps allowable to conjecture, that either other species of Lyellia, or a nearly-related genus may exist, in which while the mouth of the capsule remains absolutely shut, the pores of the base may be sufficiently enlarged for the complete per- formance of this important function. Pores exactly resembling those of Lyellia crispa have not hither- to been found in any other moss. I have observed, however, in several specimens of Polytrichum alpinum still more minute pus- tules, not very different in appearance, and similarly situated on the base of the capsule. In establishing this new genus of Mosses, it is of importance to determine its more intimate affinities in the family to which it belongs. Its place is unquestionably between Polytrichum and Dawsonia; and it will I believe be admitted, that these three ge- nera, in the natural method, cannot be separated ; though they will necessarily form or be referable to distinct sections of an artificial system founded chiefly on modifications of the peristomium. In attempting to discover characters by which this group of PorvrnicHoiprz may be distinguished from other Mosses, it is in the first place necessary to determine the whole structure of Polytrichum; for this genus, though one of the most common of | 4 D 2 the 566 Mr. Browx on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buabaumia. the order, and, from the great size of the capsules in many of its species, most readily admitting of accurate observation, has never yet been thoroughly examined. One of the most striking characters of Polytrichum is the dense texture and consequent opacity of the leaves; in which it agrees with the other two genera of the section. ‘This character, how- ever, is not altogether confined to Polytrichoidee, and is wanting in Polytrichum undulatum and angustatum. But the lamelle of the upper surface of the leaves probably exist, though in very different degrees, in all the species of Polytrichum; are equally observable in Lyellia and Dawsonia; and I am not aware that they have been found in any other genera of the order: These lamellæ, which are represented in several of the species figured in English Botany, by Wahlenberg in P. levigatum*, and since noticed by Messrs. Hooker and Taylor as existing in nearly the whole of the genus, do not belong to the nerve only, as the authors of Muscologia Britannica seem to suppose, but in several species cover the greater part of the surface of the upper or spread- ing portion of the leaf; the sheathing base being either entirely destitute of them, or having them much less dexcleped and strictly confined to the nerve. te ec git} agi | In the form and position of the ines: flowers there is probably an absolute uniformity in the whole of this group: but the only peculiarities consist in the perigonial leaf or bractea being formed chiefly of the sheathing part of the stem-leaf; and in the new shoot proceeding from the centre of the star-like cluster. In P. undulatum, however, the former character is by no means ob- vious, and the latter is not perhaps constant; and both are only presumed to exist in Lyellia. The double calyptra of Polyirichum, ioni considered as the * Flora Lappon. tab. 22. T Muscoli Brit. p. 24, — - essential LI Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buabaumia. 567 essential character of the genus, equally exists in Dawsonia. But this outer or spurious calyptra, formed of densely matted hairs originating from the vaginula and the apex of the inner cucullate calyptra, is wanting in several species of Polytrichum, in some of which, and in Lyellia, the true calyptra is furnished with a few hairs only, either scattered over the whole of its surface, or con- fined to its apex; while in others, as in Polytrichum undulatum, it is nearly, and in P. magellanicum and levigatum, entirel y smooth. _ Respecting the teeth of the peristomium of Polytrichum, 1 have very little to add, except that in P. magellanicum they appear to be eighty in number, which is a higher multiple of sixteen than has hitherto been noticed in this genus, and the greatest number that has yet been found in a single series in the order. On the nature of the transverse membrane or tympanum of Polytrichum, I have formerly made some remarks in treating of Dawsonia, and have there considered it as the remains of the pulpy continuation of the columella, originally occupying the cavity of the operculum. But its uniform texture, as well as its exactly circular form and equal margin remain to be ac- counted for; unless this regularity may be supposed to depend on the circular, and apparently corresponding, aperture of the inner membrane... ; Most authors have described the tympanum of Polytrichum as. minutely perforated. These pores I have never been able to de- | tect; but I observe in many Cases an appearance which may per- haps account for the belief in their existence, namely, a minute reticulation on the outer surface of the membrane, apparently owing to the corresponding areole of the inner surface of the oper- culum, with which it was originally in contact. Polytrichum is remarkable for the various forms of its capsule. Those species, indeed, in which it is quadrangular have been | considered 568 Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Burbaumia. considered as a distinct genus by Mons. de Beauvois. But un- less this difference of external form should be found connected with others, either in the habit or in theinternal structure, which I believe is not the case, it seems hardly sufficient to justify me subdivision of so natural a genus. : 'The symmetrical quadrangular capsule, admitting of a regular cylindrical inner membrane, is a character of inferior importance to the plano-convex or dimidiate capsule, which almost neces- sarily implies, and in Dawsonia and Lyellia at least is found to be connected with, a corresponding irregularity in the figure of the cavity; and hence I have introduced this remarkable form into the characters of both these genera. On the structure of the inner membrane of the capsule in Poly- trichum the only observation that I have met with occurs in Eng- lish Botany, where, in the account of Polytrichum subrotundum (plate 1624), it is stated that Mr. James D. Sowerby has disco- vered, in this species as well as in Polytrichum undulatum, a real membranaceous peristomium within the teeth, which, according to Sir James Smith, * gives quite a new idea of the generic cha- racter." This inner peristomium, if it may be so termed, which is well represented in the figure referred to, and consists of a horizontal projection of the inner membrane immediately below its apex, will, I believe, be found to exist in all the species of the genus, and in some cases reduces the aperture of the inner capsule to half the size of the outer at the origin of the teeth. It is always, however, quite entire, and, according to my observations, is formed of a doubling of the inner membrane, with a loose cellular or rather spongy substance interposed between the lamelle. Besides this transverse annular projection there are in the inner membrane of all the species of Polytrichum that I have examined, P. undu- Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buxbaumia. 569 P. undulatum alone excepted, four longitudinal equidistant pro- cesses, extending from the aperture to the base of the capsule; © and in many species projecting so far into its cavity as to come .in contact either with the salient angles or sides of the colu- . mella, and consequently to subdivide it into a determinate num- ber of cells. = The analogy of these longitudinal processes with the more nu- merous and irregular plicze in Dawsonia and Lyellia is obvious; and I have not myself met with similar processes of the inner membrane in any other genus of mosses. ‘They do not, however, afford an absolutely distinguishing character of this group, as they seem to be altogether wanting in Polytrichum undulatum; and Hedwig, it must be admitted, has represented an apparently ana- logous structure in Gymnostomum pyriforme*. The quadrangular or four- winged columella of Polytrichum com- mune is well figured and described by the accurate Schmidel+; and I have found an equally regular form of this body in most of the species of Polytrichum that I have examined; though in many it is less evidently winged than in P. commune and the spe- cies nearly related to it. Mons. de Beauvois.seems to consider the alae of the columella as themselves forming complete septa, and also that in this state ‘they exist only in such species as have quadrangular cap- sules; for to these he limits his genus Polytrichum, distinguished by him from Pogonatum by its multilocular fruit. The cavity, however, is completely subdivided in several of the species with cylindrical capsules, as in P. urnigerum, and in a new species. very nearly related to it (P. microstomum, nob.) lately re- ceived from Dr. Wallich: and the ale of the columella, as far as * Fundam. Hist. Nat. Muscor. Frond, pars ii. tab, 2. 6. + Icones pl. p. 236. tab. 59. fig. 15, I have 510 Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buxbaumia. I have observed, never form complete septa, at least in the ripe fruit; though in those species having. quadrangular capsules they nearly reach the parietes opposite to the external angles, towards Which they are directed. As the columella of Polytrichum retains its regular form in the ripe capsule, its real structure may even then be in a great measure determined. In this stage I find its wings, or compressed sides, to consist of a double membrane with an intermediate spongy substance, in which there is no appearance of granules; and the internal denser substance of the axis is equally free from granular matter. But as there is no indication of lateral rup- ture, the sides in several species remaining perfectly smooth, nor of any central cavity, this structure affords a powerful argu- ment in refutation of those hypotheses which assume the exist- ence of two kinds of granules in the capsules of mosses; the one produced in the cavity formed by the internal membrane, the other in the substance or supposed cavity of the columella itself; the latter being considered as seeds in one of the hypotheses *, and in the other as pollen. This argument, however, is not here advanced to disprove the existence of two kinds of granules in the capsules of mosses, but merely against their production in the distinct cavities assigued to them in the hypotheses referred to. In the greater number of Polytricha as well as in Lyellia and Dawsonia the seeds are extremely minute; a fact with which the increased surface for their production is probably connected : for in P. undulatum, where the seeds are larger than in most other species of the genus, this increased surface does not exist; and in P. levigatum, where they are of still greater size, the plicæ of the inner membrane are probably also wanting. * Palisot Beauvois, Æihiog. p. 5. _ T Keith, Physiol. Bot. ii. p. 346. | Although Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buabaumia. 571 Although there is but little resemblance in the structure of the peristomium among the different genera of Polytrichoidee, they may still be said essentially to agree in the function of this part: for in all of them the complete separation of the seeds is ensured by the smallness of the apertures for their discharge. It may be re- marked, that the necessity for this complete dispersion in Mosses seems to be inversely as the size of the seeds. For in those ge- nera of the order in which the capsule either bursts irregularly or has a naked mouth, the seeds are in general larger than in those | with a single, and still more manifestly than in those with a double, peristomium. And in conformity with this also, in Polytrichum undulatum and levigatum the tympanum is sooner ruptured or removed than in the other species of the genus. The result of this comparison of Polytrichum with Lyellia and Dawsonia, although it confirms the propriety of their approxima- tion, does not afford any clearly distinguishing mark for the very natural section of the order which these three genera form. In the mean time, however, it may be circumscribed, though not with absolute precision, by a combination of the more general charac- ters which have been now enumerated. LEPTOSTOMUM. In defining this genus, which was first proposed in my former paper on Mosses, I relied chiefly on the undivided annular pro- jection of the inner membrane of the capsule. I was induced to employ this modification of the peristomium as a character, though certainly far from being obvious, in finding it to exist in several mosses of the southern hemisphere, having a similar and peculiar habit ; and which, had it been neglected, I must have referred to Gymnostomum, with the greater number of whose spe- cies they have hardly any thing in common. VOL. XII. & E Mr. 572 Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Duabaumia. Mr. Hooker, however, has since found, as he states, the same structure in several other mosses, generally considered as having a naked peristomium, particularly in Gymnostomum microstomum, Griffithianum, and fasciculare ; and as these species have but little resemblance to each other, and still less affinity to Leptostomum, he has reduced this genus also to Gymnostomum. If the statement referred to be correct, Leptostomum, though it may be a natural genus, must be given up, until other marks shall be found by which.it may be distinguished. I have not had specimens sufficiently perfect to enable me to judge of the structure of all the species of Gymnostomum mentioned by Mr. Hooker. In one of them, however, Gymnostomum microstomum, the peristomium is certainly very different from that of Leptosto- mum. Jn this species I find, on removing the operculum, that the mouth of the capsule is not only completely covered by a hori- zotital membrane, but that this covering is derived from the outer membrane of the capsule, and consequently differs in origin as well as in form from the peristomium which it has been said to resemble. Its centrai portion, however, being extremely thin is soon ruptured and deciduous, and in this state only it has been seen by the authors of the Muscologia Britannica. Gymnostomum microstomum therefore may itself be considered as a distinct genus, to which the name of Hymenostomum* may be © given; and it is worthy of remark, that in its technical character it approaches most nearly to Lyellia, though no two mosses dife fer more > in almost every other respect. * HYMENOSTOMUM. Fi. Fem. terminalis. Stoma edentulum, . clausum epiphragmate (e membrana exteriore orto), disco tenuissimo . (a columella libero) mox rupto et evanido ; lino persistenti horizontali indiviso. | Calyptra dimidiata, levis. Fl. Mas terminalis, gemmiformis. : From Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buabaumia. 573 From the account given of Gymnostomum Griffithianum it ap- pears that this species also has in the early stage a membrane completely covering the mouth of the capsule. But this mem- brane probably differs in origin, at least, from that of Hymenosto- mum, as it seems to do both in form and dehiscence from the pe- ristomium of Leptostomum. Of Gyinnostomum fasciculare I have examined only imperfect. specimens, I cannot therefore speak with confidence of its struc- ture. The annular process, however, mentioned by Mr. Hooker is more likely to be the remains of a complete horizontal covering, and probably originating from the inner membrane, than to re- semble the peristomium either of Hymenostomum or Leptostomum. A membrane of this kind is certainly present in some species of Gymnostomum, and perhaps may be found in all those that really belong to that genus. It exists also in Weissia Templetoni, which so closely resembles Gymnostomum fasciculare as to be with diffi- culty distinguished from it, unless by the inspection of the peri- stomium ; and, in addition to the erect annular peristomium from which the character of the genus is taken, I have observed a simi- Jar membrane in Leptostomum itself. It seems even to be not arf uncommon process or termination of the inner membrane, though it has been remarked only in some of its more obvious and per- sistent modifications. Thus the spongy membrane figured and described in the two published species of Calymperes, seems to be an analogous structure*, as is also the circular disk terminat- * The circular spongy membrane covering the mouth of the capsule certainly does not form an essential part of the character of Calymperes ; for, in the only species that I have examined, it is either entirely wanting, or firmly adheres to the inner surface of the oper- culum, along with which, also, a considerable portion of the columella separates. Nor has Swartz, who established the genus (in Spreng. Schrad. und Link Jahrb. der Gewäch. vol. i. p. 1.) even noticed this membrane in his description. AE 2 ing 574 Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buxbaumia. ing the columella in several species of Splachnum ; and perhaps even the tympanum of Polytrichum may be of similar origin. But these characters of Leptostomum and Hymenostomum, though they do not appear to have been yet observed in any other mosses, may still perhaps be considered too minute for generic distinc- tions: and it must be admitted that were nothing to be obtained but the subdivision of an extensive natural genus it could not be necessary to have recourse to them. The divisions in question, however, are certainly not of that kind. The weakest part indeed of Hedwig's system is its bringing to- gether all those mosses that have a naked peristomium, and even including the greater partof them in the genus Gymnostomum ; while many of the species so associated are in real affinity much nearer to several other genera of the order having a simple or even a double peristomium. | ‘à | | = Thus Gymnostomum iieri funem: the PANIER of the pre- sent paper, has less the habit of the genus in which it is placed than of Weissia, to some of whose species, especially IV. affinis and £richo- des, it seems to approach even in the structure of its peristomium. Several species of that section of Gymnostomum, to which per- haps the genus should be limited, especially G. fasciculare, Bon- plandii, and Rottleri, can hardly be distinguished from Weissia Templetoni*. % * Weissia Templetoni, along with a nearly related species found in New Holland, Fu- naria minor of Delile (Flor. Ægypt.), and perhaps also Weissia radians, may form a genus distinct from Weissia, and nearly related to Funaria, differing chiefly in the irregular burst- ing and evanescence of the inner peristomium, which in Funaria is regularly divided and ge- nerally persistent, though in some cases perhaps equally deciduous. In a variety of Weissia Templetoni, or a very nearly related species, vollected in 1800 in the county of Donegal, I have observed the outer peristomium to be not unfrequently wanting, even before the se- paration of the operculum ; a fact which, if hereafter confirmed, would establish its affinity to Gymnostomum fasciculare. Gymnostomum Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buxbaumia. 575 Gymnostomum or Anictangium pulvinatum agrees in every other part of its structure with Gris (^ Gymnostomum lapponicum, notwithstanding the difference of ca- lyptra, may be considered as related to Grimmia Daviesii, and consequently to Orthotrichum, which G. Daviesii* resembles in its teeth being approximated in pairs. G ymnostomum viridissimum has exnoily the habit and calyptra of Zygodon. | | Gymnostomum pennatum (Schistostega of Mohr,) i in one remark- able character may be compared with Fissidens}. Anictangium aquaticum is evidently related to Cinclidotus or Trichostomum. Gymnostomum julaceum and Hedwigia secunda of Hooker resem- ble certain species of Pterygynandrum, Neckera and Leskia. —— An unpublished moss (Glyphocarpa capensis) with a naked pe- ristomium, which I observed on the Table Mountain of the Cape * Griffithia Daviesii nob. - T As Schkuhr (in Krypt. Gewüch. ii. p. 31. t. 12.) has ascertained that the — of Gymnostomum pennatum separates entire, the genus Schistostega must be again reduced to Gymnoslomum, until other distinguishing characters are discovered. Its resemblance to Fissidens consists in the somewhat similar disposition of leaves. In Fissidens, as limited by Bridel, (Muscol. Nov. p. 186) the leaves are universally de- scribed as presenting their margin instead of their disk to the stem, and as having a dou- bling of the lower half of their inner or upper margin, extending as far as the nerve. On this view Bridel (in Z. cit.) has formed a separate section of the order, consisting of Fissidens and Octodiceras ; and hence also M. de la Pylaie has changed the name of Fissi- dens to Skitophyllum. (Journal de Botan. Applig. iv. p. 133.) It seems to me a much simpler explanation of the apparent anomaly to consider the supposed doubling or division of. the leaf as its true disk, and the deviation from the usual structure as consequently consisting in the greater compression of the leaf, and in the addition of a dorsal and terminal wing. In support of this view it may be observed, that in the lower leaves of the stem both the additional wings are greatly reduced in size, and in some cases entirely wanting, as they universally are in the perigonial leaves, which have likewise the more ordinary form, being moderately concave and not even navicular. of 576 Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Teptostomum, and Buxbaumia. of Good Hope, has the spherical striated capsule as well as the inflorescence and ramification of Bartramia : and with this genus also Anictangium Humboldtii agrees in its capsule, though its habit is that of Leskia or Hypnum. Drepanophyllum of Richard (Dicranum? falcifolium of Hooker,) in form and disposition of leaves is related to Fissidens and Neckera. Calymperes approaches to Orthotrichum, or rather, perhaps, to Schlotheimia or Macromitrium. Lyellia, which belongs to the same division of the artificial system, is evidently allied to Dawsonia and Polytrichum. And lastly, Leptostomum, the genus more particularly under consideration, appears to me most nearly related to Bryum ; with which indeed its affinity would be completely established, were Hedwig’s account of the peristomium of Bryum macrocarpum proved to be correct. sé To the observations now made on the various affinities of mosses which agree in having a naked peristomium, it may be added, that the genera with a simple peristomium do not form a strictly na- tural series, several of them being much more nearly related to those in which the peristomium is double than to each other. But if the correctness of these statements be admitted, it fol- lows that, in many cases to obtain natural genera in this order either additional sources of distinction must be sought for, or those at present in use more minutely investigated. | Of additional characters, which in some cases may be employed with advantage, I shall merely advert to the membranes of the capsule being distinct or contiguous, and to that more intimate union where there seems to be a single membrane only; to the modifications of internal structure of the inner membrane; the differences in form and duration of the columella, or even its being entirely wanting in the ripe capsule; the presence or ab- sence Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buxbaumia. 577 sence of the annulus; and the insertion, form and relative position of the male flowers, which, though always considered of import- ance by Hedwig, many of the most distinguished muscologists of the present day entirely exclude from the characters of their genera. With respect to the principal source of generic distinctions, the Peristomium, in addition to the circumstances generally attended _ to, namely, the origin, number, direction, form, and actual divi- sion of the teeth, it may be of some importance to ascertain their æstivation, which, though very generally, is not always valvular: and especially to mark the existence or want of the longitudinal strie or semi-pellucid lines: for these, if they do not prove the compound nature, at least clearly indicate a tendency to division in the teeth where they are found; division being always in the course of the striæ, and in no instance taking place unless where they are present. But in considering them, which I am inclined to do, as proving composition or confluence of the teeth, it would appear that there is a much greater uniformity in the structure of the simple or outer peristomium, at least, than is generally admitted ; and that the prevailing number of teeth in this series is thirty-two ; though by a coalescence, more or less complete, they are frequently reduced to sixteen, in some cases to eight, and in a few even to four. 3 According to this view, a single longitudinal line in the axis of a tooth indicates the confluence of two teeth; three equidistant lines, one being central, the coalescence of four; and seven lines similarly disposed that of eight. _ Nearly the whole of these modifications exist in that natural subdivision of the order, which may be named Splachnee, consist- ingof Splachnum, Systylium, Tayloria, (Hookeria of Schwaegrichen,) Splachnum squarrosum of Hooker, and Weissia splachnoides. The 578 Mr. Brown on Lyelka, Leptostomum, and Buxbaumia. The number of teeth in SPLACHNEZ is thirty-two, which, how- ever, are never entirely distinct and at the same time equidistant, but approximated or united in various degrees in the different genera and species of the section. Thus in Tayloria and Systylium the thirty-two teeth are distinct and disposed in sixteen pairs. 3 In Splachnum rubrum and luteum there are apparently only eight pairs, each tooth, however, having a pellucid and obscurely-perfo- rated axis. In almost all the other genuine species,of Splachnum there is the same disposition as in S. rubrum and luteum ; but the pellucid axis of each tooth is less distinct and imperforated. In Splachnum angustatum, and I believe also in a second spe- cies nearly related to it, the arrangement is somewhat different; for the sixteen apparent teeth are approximated, and at the base even united in fours, the pellucid axis of each tooth being still less obvious. Hence these species in their peristomium very nearly approach to Tetraphis, to which they would be absolutely referable were the union complete. In Splachnum squarrosum the apparent number of teeth is eight, without any actual subdivision. But as each tooth has three equidistant pellucid lines, of which the lateral are nearly as di- stinct as the central, there can be no doubt that the composition is the same here as in the rest of the section*. | n By * In a late number of Musci Exotici, (No. 17. tab. 136.) Splachnum squarrosum is transferred to Octollepharum, and, on the authority of M. de Beauvois, is stated to be Octoblepharum serratum of Bridel. Mr. Hooker, however, continues to refer it to this genus, on the supposition of its agreeing with the original species in the form of its ca- lyptra : observing that if this should prove not to he the case, it ought to be separated, under the generic name Orthodon, formerly given to it by its discoverer M. Bory de St. Vincent. The calyptra of O. albidum is represented as distinctly cucullate, both by Swartz (in Ols. Bot. tab. xi, fig. 1.) and M. de Beauvois (in Flore d' Oware, i. tab. 31.). I have also observed Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buabaumia. 579 By these lines also S. squarrosum is readily distinguished from Octoblepharum, in which the apparent number of teeth is the same: for in Octoblepharum each tooth has only a single pellucid line; and hence its affinity to certain species at present referable to Weissia, with a nearly similar habit and sixteen distinct teeth, whose axis is not perceptibly pellucid. Weissia splachnoides differs from the other Splachnee in having sixteen equidistant teeth; but as these teeth, according to the indication of the pellucid axis, are double, the arrangement may be compared with that of Tayloria and Systylium, in which the separation into thirty-two is complete, and the sixteen pairs equi- distant. It agrees, however, also in this respect with Grimmia and with several species of Weissia : but in other important characters, as well as in habit, it is evidently related to Splachnum, and offers perhaps one of the best examples of the importance of the male flowers in distinguishing natural genera. Even Tetraphis pellucida may be cited in proof of the same pre- vailing number in the peristomium ; each of its four teeth, when highly magnified, appearing to have seven longitudinal striæ, which, according to this test, would make the real number thirty- two; a structure contributing to fix the place of Tetraphis in the - natural series between Splachnum and Orthotrichum. — observed it of the same foai in specimens from Madagascar. There seems, therefore, no reason to doubt that these two mosses differ materially even in this part of their structure $ and as other differences, of at least equal importance, also exist, both in the peristomium and male flowers, Octoblepharum serratum, whose habit is nearly that of Splachnum, may be distinguished both from that genus and from Octoblepharum by the following characters, OnTHODON. Fl. Fem. terminalis. : Peristomium simplex, octodentatum, dente singulo striis tribus lengitudinalibus instruct (ideoque e quatuor coalitis composito). Calyptra mitriformis (4-fida, pilosa). Fl. Mas terminalis, discoideus. VOL. XII. ÅT Better 580 Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buabaumia. Better evidence on the same subject is afforded by Trichosto- mum, Didymodon, and Leucodon, in all of which the thirty-two teeth are distinct, though approximated in pairs; by the sixteen bifid teeth of Dicranum and. Fissidens; and by the like number of teeth with a perforated axis in Trematodon, Weissia nuda, Didy- modon latifolium, and several species of Grimmia. | In all the genera having a double peristomium I believe the pellucid axis more or less manifestly exists; but in these genera there is a great uniformity in the apparent number of teeth in the outer peristomium ; there being no instance of actual division in this series beyond sixteen, or of a further approximation, unless in Orthotrichum, in several of whose species the approximation or even union of the double teeth by pairs takes place, while in a few others the sixteen teeth are slightly divided at the apex, and in the whole genus the pellucid axis is remarkably distinct. The only exceptions to the actual division into thirty-two, or t.e structure indicating that number, in the simple peristomium of mosses, occur on the one hand in certain species of JFeissia; perhaps in Encalypta and in Octoblepharum, in all of which, I be- lieve, there is a reduction to sixteen: and on the other in Polytri- chum, where the number is frequently increased, varying in the different species, and chiefly by multiples of sixteen, from thirty- two to eighty. In this genus also, whatever the number may be, the teeth never have»a semipellucid, but rather an opake or thickened axis, and no tendency to union or even approximation is observable. The constant equidistance of the teeth in Poly- trichum seems to be connected with its peculiar mode of disse- mination; for as this takes place through the interstices of the teeth, and as complete separation of the seeds seems necessary on account of their extreme minuteness, a reduction in number and consequent increase of size of these apertures would. proba- bly, Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buxbaumia. 581 bly, in some degree, prevent dispersion, while the unequal di- stances of the teeth might either produce a deviation from the regular figure, or an early rupture, of the tympanum, which forms an essential part in this economy. BUXBAUMIA. In my former paper I have proposed to preserve the genus Buxbaumia, as established by Schmidel; and in constructing a character to comprehend both species, I entirely rejected the outer peristomium of Hedwig; and having also adopted his opi- nion respecting the middle peristomium of B. aphylla, which he has termed corona, and considered as analogous to the annulus in many other mosses, it became unnecessary to advert to this part in defining the genus. Mr. Hooker has since published an excellent analysis of both species, and has followed Ehrhart and Mohr in regarding them as forming distinct genera. | "This determination I have now no hesitation in adopting ; for, whatever the nature of Hedwig's corona may be, it affords at least an obvious character, and is connected with other differences of sufficient importance to justify the separation ; though the two genera must always remain in the same natural section of the © order. T | | "The observations that follow belong, therefore, solely to Buz- baumia aphylla. | ! "My first remark on this plant relates to its peristomium, on the nature of which, as compared with that of other mosses, at least two different opinions may be formed. | According to one of these, the outer peristomium of Hooker may with Hedwig be considered analogous to the fimbria or an- nulus existing in many other mosses ; and the principal objection 4r2 to 582 Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buabaumia. to this view would perhaps be obviated by rejecting the outer pe- ristomium of Hedwig, as I have formerly proposed, and which Mr. Hooker has since done; as there would then be nothing either in the origin or texture of this part essentially at variance with the supposition; the principal remaining difference being its greater length; for the cilia of the peristomium of Buxbaumia may be compared with the striæ or divisions existing in the annulus, Which seem to be equally determinate in number, and in some cases also disposed in a double series. | On the second supposition, the peristomium of Buxbaumia ori- — ginating entirely from the outer membrane, may, thou gh consisting of several and even of dissimilar series, be regarded as analogous to that portion of the pencilof Dawsonia which arises from the same part of the capsule. This analogy is suggested by Mr. Hooker, and is confirmed by a circumstance that he does not seem to have noticed, namely, that his outer peristomium, the corona of - Hed wig, consists of a double series of cilia. The numberof cilia in each series exceeds sixteen, but hardly amounts to thirty-two; it probably, however, corresponds with that of the plicæ in the membranaceous. peristomium. . . Wehave here then a passage from.a number still perhaps defi- nite, though disposed in a triple series, to the indefinite number peculiar to, and so striking in, Dawsonia. — My second observation relates to the inner membrane of the capsule, of which I find the mouth to be quite entire and open, though before the separation of the operculum it is closed by the terminating process of the columella. Hence Burbaumia has some resemblance to Polytrichum, and a still greater to Lyellia, in this part of its structure. crm Buxbaumia aphylla is the only moss considered as being entirely destitute of leaves; and though it has been oftener and more fully described Mr. Brown on Lyellia, Leptostomum, and Buzbaumia. 588 described than any other plant of the order, from the monographs of Linnæus and Schmidel to the excellent illustration recently published by Mr. Hooker, there is no difference of opinion on this point. I have lately ascertained, however, that Buzbaumia aphylla is always furnished with perfect leaves, which more nearly resemble, both in texture and division, those of a Jungermannia than of any species of moss properly so called; and consequently are widely different from those of Polytrichoïdeæ, to which this ge- nus is in several respects related. The leaves in the barren plant, where I first observed them, are lanceolate and but slightly divided. Those at the base of the fe- male perichetium are even broader than the former, but more deeply cut, both laterally and at top, into several capillary seg- ments; while the leaves which proceed from the surface of the pericheetium are still more deeply divided, and their segments so much elongated that the minute foliaceous base has been uni- versally overlooked, and the perichætium consequently described as covered with hairs. | là | * XXXVI. Ex- (584 ) RE RSR RE D a CORES ———ÀÁ— XXXVI. Exrracrs from the Mixure-Book of the Society. Mar.18, Reap an Extract of a Letter addressed to the Secre- 1817. tary from Sir John Jamison, F.L.S., dated at Regentville, New South Wales, September 10, 1816, as follows: * I cannot avoid relating to you an extraordinary peculiarity which I have lately discovered in the Orni- thorynchus paradoxus.—The male of this wonderful.ani- mal is provided with spurs on the hind feet or legs, like a cock. The spur is situated over a cyst of veno- mous fluid, and has a tube or cannula up its centre, through which the animal can, like a serpent, force the “poison when it inflicts its wound. I wounded one with small shot; and on my overseer’s taking it out of the water, it stuck its spurs into the palm and back of his right hand with such force, and retained them in with such strength, that they could not be withdrawn until it was killed. "Phe hand instantly swelled to a prodigious bulk ; and the inflammation having rapidly extended to his shoulder, he was in a few minutes threatened with locked-jaw, and exhibited all the symptoms of a person bitten by a venomous snake. The pain from the first was insupportable, and cold sweats and sickness of stomach” took place so alarmingly, that I found it necessary, be- sides the external application of oil and vinegar, to ad- minister large quantities of the volatile alkali with opium, which I really think preserved his life. He was obliged to keep his bed for several days, and did not recover the perfect use of his hand for nine weeks. This unexpected and Jan. 90, 1818. Extracts from the Minute- Book of the Society. 585 and extraordinary occurrence induced me to examine the spur of the animal; and on pressing it down on the leg the fluid squirted through the tube: but for what purpose Nature has so armed these animals is as yet unknown to me. The female is oviparous, and lives in burrows in the ground, so that itis seldom seen either on shore or in the water. The males are seen in numbers through- out our winter months only, floating and diving in all our ` large rivers; but they cannot continue long under water. I had one drowned by having been left during the night in a large tub of water. I have found no other substance in their stomachs than small fish and fry. They are very shy, and avoid the shot by diving and afterwards rising at a considerable distance." Mr. Lambert, V.P. communicated to the Society an Extract of a Letter from Don Jose Pavon of Madrid, one of the authors of the Flora Peruviana, stating that he and 5 his companions Ruiz and Dombey had found the potatoe Feb. n (Solanum tuberosum) growing wild in the environs of Lima, and fourteen leagues from thence on the coast of Peru, as well as in Chili; and that it is cultivated very abundantly in those countries by the Indians, who call it Papas. Dr. Maton, V. P. communicated a. Letter from the Rev. Revett Sheppard, F.L.S.,. stating that. on the first of this month he shot a fine specimen of the common heron (Ardea major), and that its feathers were covered with a powder of a light blue colour; but in what man- ner this powder is secreted, or whether it occurs in the winter:season only, he has not: been able to ascertain. The Secretary stated, that Mr. Robert Gee has com- municated to the President a specimen of Saliz cinerea, (Flor. Brit. 1063, Eng. Bot. 1897,) with androgynous cat- kins, 586 April T. Extracts from the Minute-Book of the Society. kins, nearly half the flowers in the upper part of the cat- kin being male, and the rest female. It was found by himself at Duckinfield near Stockport, in Cheshire. - Read a Letter addressed to the Secretary by the Rev. Patrick Keith, F. L.S., of which the following is a copy: Dear SIR, Bethersden, Ashford, Kent, March 30, 1818. In my Paper on the subject of the Developement of the Seminal Germ, published in the last volame* of the Society's Transactions, I find that I have unbappily exhibited an incorrect and imperfect representation of Mr. T. A. Knight's hypothesis on the same subject. I have said that * the grand defect of Mr. Knight's hypo- thesis is, that it does not at all account for the ascent of the plumelet ;" a statement that proves to be erroneous ; since the fact is, that Mr. Knight's hypothesis does ac- count for the ascent of the plumelet as well as for the descent of the radicle, though the circumstance (I am sorry to say) had completely escaped my recollection at the time I wrote my Paper: not that I had merely glanced at Mr. Knights hypothesis, and then, after a long interval, undertaken a refutation of it from memory ; but that the notes which I did take from Mr. Knight's Paper at the time I read and perused it, contained, by some unaccountable oversight, nothing whatever on the subject of the ascent.of the plumelet: I am desirous, therefore, that this declaration and admission of error on my part should appear in the next volume of the Soci- ety's Transactions, that the reparation which I now offer to Mr. Knight may be commensurate, as much as pos- sible, with the injury he has sustained. Iam, &c. To A. MacLeay, Esq. | P. Kerru. * Page 252. | May 25. May 25. Extracts from the Minute-Book of the Society. 587 Mr. James Dickson, F.L.S. presented a specimen cf the Misseltoe, found by him on the 20th of this month - growing upon an oak-tree about four miles from Maid- - The Right Hon. Sir Joseph Banks, H.M. 10 VOL. XII. stone, by the side of the Medway. The President announced, that an extensive and valu- able collection of Quadrupeds, Birds and Reptiles, made by Mr. George Caley in New South Wales, bas been purchased by subscription by the following Members of the Society, and lodged in the Society's Museum, viz. Sir Janies Edward Smith, President . . 10 Alexander MacLeay, Esq. Secretary . 10 Edward Forster, Esq. Treasurer . . . 10 William Elford Leach, M.D. . . . . 10 William G. Maton, M.D., V.P. 10 _ James Francis Stephens, Eso ... 5 The Lag Suntik V PE A AnI CIO Thomas Furly Forster, Esq: 5 William Kent, Esq. . 5 Richard Taylor, Esq. . uoc ccr eg .Arclibáld-Menzies; Esq.^ - : +s l1 George Mine, Esq: . . . . .. 2 Henry Grimston, Esq. . . . 1 Michael Bland, Esq. . . 5 Duncan MacArthur, M.D. . 1 The Lord Bishop of Durham, HUM. 430 Daniel Moore, Esq. . + . . . . .10 Joseph Sabine, Esq. . . . . . . . 5 Rev: William Kirby 2745.91. .:4 Carried forward £..128 4G A. B. Lam- QCigococ@wOrGeocroeoe@eococoo6d6o? Qoococoooo0n0"coodüauaccoooot* 588 Extracts from the Minute- Book of the Society. £. Brought forward . 128 A. B. Lambert, Esq. V.P. Charles Stokes, Esq. i Sir Christopher Pegge |... .. A The Duke of Marlborough, H. M. sva Thomas Smith, Esq. at. Arthur Tyton, Esq. Rev. J. B. Johnson William Jackson Hooker, E William Pilkington, Esq. John Sims, M.D. . . G. B. Greenough, Esq. William Horton Lloyd, Esq. The Earl of Mount Norris . Sir George T. Staunton, Bart. Andrew Forster, Esq. Sir Frederick Baker, Dart. . Daniel Stuart, Esq. AS Philip Derbishire, Esq. ——— Rev. Thomas Rackett =. | TONES Charles Konig, Esq. . . . | Rev. Joseph Goodall, D.D., Provost ^ Eton College. sys vi oO 10..0 1 E... MER e cOoOococoooóoooooooooooooootn MO © OO Game COCO COCR Oe © O6 © © O©O OCF £.220 14 0 Nov. 3. Dr.Leachexhibited a new species of Guillemot, named by him Uria Francsii*, discovered by Mr. Francs near ` Ferroe, and afterwards by Lieut. Parry, R. N. on the west coast of Greenland. 5 * For a description of this Bird, under the name of Uria Brünnichii, by Capt. Edward - Sabine, see page 538. 7 ACATA- ( 589 ) CATALOGUE OF THE LIBRARY OF THE LINNEAN SOCIETY. Continued from Page 426 of Vol. XI. of the Society's Transactions. - - - < 7. Leontice thalictroides - - - - - - 8. Tofieldia stenopetala & glutinosa - < - - 9. Seeds of Luzulæ - - - z : ‘ 10. Mitra zonata & Cyclostrema cancellata - - - 11. Terebella gigantea - - : E ‘ š 12. -- cirrhata & nebulosa E - - - 13. -- constrictor & venustula - - - - 14. Sabia lanceolata " = - - e ie : 15. Strychnos axillaris - - . i ë ‘ 15.* Dischidia bengalensis - - à : : : 16. Tylophora exilis - - - " . . 17. Macrolobium bijugum - - Es : 18. Pygeum acuminatum - - - - “ o 19. Lycopodium denticulatum - - - . : 20. Rhizomorpha medullaris - rc $ . 21. Pelicium cyanipes, Anelastes Drurii, &c. - — . à 29, Eurynotus muricatus, Adelium calosomoides, &c. - 23. Buprestis cruentata, D. phæorhea, &c. esl» > 24. Chætodon monodactylus e i. ; 25. Perca antarctica } 2 : n Í 26. Callionymus diacanthus : 24 38 42 69 70 75 151 243 330 338. 341 342 343 355 356 357 358 359 : 360 367 374 479 480 482 500 501 Directions for placing the Plates of the Twelfth Volume. "TAB. 27. Labrus ornatus nann - E to face page 502 28. Fossil Terebratule - ° - - . - 516 29. Larus Sabini - - - - à - - 522 30. Tracheæ of Anas spectabilis, mollissima and glacialis - 554 ome n a n The Binder is requested to observe, that as a general Title-page and a Table of Contents for the whole Volume are now given, the Title-pages to the sepa- rate Parts, and the Table of Contents for Part I., arẹ to be cancelled, END OF THE TWELFTH VOLUME. CITROEN ANDR ARR pm m FRINTED BY RICHARD AND ARTHUR TAYLOR, SHOF-LANFE, LONDON. ERRATA. Page 294, line 17, (and throughout Mr. Bicheno's Paper on Juncus,) for Coruncula read Caruncula. and for Coruncule read Caruncule, 315, line 9, for Wahlenburg read Wahlenberg, . 357, after line 8, insert Tab. XP * $99, line 10, for brevibus read levibus, 415, line 16, for subcinerea read subcinereus,. and for obscura read obscurus. 499, line 1, dele Pl. XXII. fig. 8. —- after line 20, insert Pl. XXII. fig. 8. 537, line 1, for Groelandica read Groenlandica. ERRATA IN THE PLATES. Tab. 9, for Perisperm read Caruncule, 21, fig. 8, letter A wanting, to point out terms. 23, fiz. 13, letters a, b wanting, to indicate front and antenna. .